This is a modern-English version of Apologia pro vita sua, originally written by Newman, John Henry.
It has been thoroughly updated, including changes to sentence structure, words, spelling,
and grammar—to ensure clarity for contemporary readers, while preserving the original spirit and nuance. If
you click on a paragraph, you will see the original text that we modified, and you can toggle between the two versions.
Scroll to the bottom of this page and you will find a free ePUB download link for this book.
APOLOGIA PRO VITA SUA
By John Henry (Cardinal) Newman
London: Published
by J. M. Dent & Sons Ltd.
And in New York
by E.P. Dutton & Co.
London: Published
by J. M. Dent & Sons Ltd.
And in New York
by E.P. Dutton & Co.
Introduction
"No autobiography in the English language has been more read; to the nineteenth century it bears a relation not less characteristic than Boswell's 'Johnson' to the eighteenth."
"No autobiography in English has been read more; it has a significance to the nineteenth century that is just as distinct as Boswell's 'Johnson' has to the eighteenth."
Rev. Wm. Barry, D.D.
Rev. William Barry, D.D.
Newman was already a recognised spiritual leader of over thirty year's standing, but not yet a Cardinal, when in 1864 he wrote the Apologia. He was London born, and he had, as many Londoners have had, a foreign strain in him. His father came of Dutch stock; his mother was a Fourdrinier, daughter of an old French Huguenot family settled in this country. The date of his birth, 21st of February 1801, relates him to many famous contemporaries, from Heine to Renan, from Carlyle to Pusey. Sent to school at Ealing—an imaginative seven-year-old schoolboy, he was described even then as being fond of books and seriously minded. It is certain he was deeply read in the English Bible, thanks to his mother's care, before he began Latin and Greek. Another lifelong influence—as we may be prepared to find by a signal reference in the following autobiography, was Sir Walter Scott; and in a later page he speaks of reading in bed Waverley and Guy Mannering when they first came out—"in the early summer mornings," and of his delight in hearing The Lay of the Last Minstrel read aloud. Like Ruskin, another nineteenth-century master of English prose, he was finely affected by these two powerful inductors. They worked alike upon his piety and his imagination which was its true servant, and they helped to foster his seemingly instinctive style and his feeling for the English tongue.
Newman was already a recognized spiritual leader with over thirty years of experience but wasn’t a Cardinal yet when he wrote the Apologia in 1864. He was born in London and, like many Londoners, had some foreign heritage. His father was of Dutch descent, and his mother was a Fourdrinier, the daughter of an old French Huguenot family settled in England. He was born on February 21, 1801, connecting him to many famous contemporaries, including Heine, Renan, Carlyle, and Pusey. Sent to school at Ealing as an imaginative seven-year-old, he was already described as fond of books and serious-minded. It’s certain he was well-read in the English Bible, thanks to his mother’s influence, before he started learning Latin and Greek. Another lifelong influence— as we’ll see from notable mentions in his autobiography—was Sir Walter Scott. Later, he recalls reading Waverley and Guy Mannering in bed when they first came out—“in the early summer mornings”—and how much he enjoyed hearing The Lay of the Last Minstrel read aloud. Like Ruskin, another significant 19th-century master of English prose, he was deeply influenced by these powerful works. They shaped both his piety and his imagination, which served it well, while also contributing to his distinctive writing style and his appreciation for the English language.
In 1816 he went to Oxford—to Trinity College—and two years later gained a scholarship there. His father's idea was that he should read for the bar, and he kept a few terms at Lincoln's Inn; but in the end Oxford, which had, about the year of his birth, experienced a rebirth of ideas, thanks to the widening impulse of the French Revolution, held him, and Oriel College—the centre of the "Noetics," as old Oxford called the Liberal set in contempt—made him a fellow. His association there with Pusey and Keble is a matter of history; and the Oxford Movement, in which the three worked together, was the direct result, according to Dean Church, of their "searchings of heart and communing" for seven years, from 1826 to 1833. A word might be said of Whately too, whose Logic Newman helped to beat into final form in these Oxford experiences. Not since the days of Colet and Erasmus had the University experienced such a shaking of the branches. However, there is no need to do more than allude to these intimately dealt with in the Apologia itself.
In 1816, he went to Oxford—specifically, Trinity College—and two years later, he earned a scholarship there. His father's plan was for him to study law, and he spent some time at Lincoln's Inn; but ultimately, Oxford, which had experienced a revival of ideas around the time of his birth due to the inspiring impact of the French Revolution, captivated him. Oriel College—the hub of the "Noetics," as the traditional Oxford scholars contemptuously referred to the Liberal group—made him a fellow. His connections with Pusey and Keble are well-documented; the Oxford Movement, in which the three collaborated, was the direct result, according to Dean Church, of their "searchings of heart and communing" for seven years, from 1826 to 1833. We should also mention Whately, whose Logic Newman helped to refine during these Oxford years. Not since the time of Colet and Erasmus had the University seen such a significant upheaval. However, there’s no need to elaborate more than what’s covered in the Apologia itself.
There, indeed, the stages of Newman's pilgrimage are related with a grace and sincerity of style that have hardly been equalled in English or in any northern tongue. It ranges from the simplest facts to the most complicated polemical issues and is always easily in accord with its changing theme. So much so, that the critics themselves have not known whether to admire more the spiritual logic or the literary art of the writer and self-confessor. We may take, as two instances of Newman's power, the delightful account in Part III. of his childhood and the first growth of his religious belief; and the remarkable opening to Part IV., where he uses the figure of the death-bed with that finer reality which is born of the creative communion of thought and word in a poet's brain. Something of this power was felt, it is clear, in his sermons at Oxford. Dr. Barry describes the effect that Newman made at the time of his parting with the Anglican Church: "Every sermon was an experience;" made memorable by that "still figure, and clear, low, penetrating voice, and the mental hush that fell upon his audience while he meditated, alone with the Alone, in words of awful austerity. His discourses were poems, but transcripts too from the soul, reasonings in a heavenly dialectic...."
There, indeed, the stages of Newman's journey are described with a grace and sincerity that are rare in English or any northern language. It covers everything from simple facts to complex debates and always aligns smoothly with its changing themes. So much so that critics can’t decide whether to admire more the spiritual reasoning or the literary skill of the writer and self-reflector. We can look at two examples of Newman's power: the charming account in Part III of his childhood and the early development of his religious faith; and the remarkable opening of Part IV, where he uses the image of a deathbed with a deeper reality that comes from the creative blend of thought and word in a poet's mind. We can clearly see that some of this power was felt in his sermons at Oxford. Dr. Barry describes the impact Newman had when he left the Anglican Church: "Every sermon was an experience," made unforgettable by that "still figure, clear, low, penetrating voice, and the mental silence that fell over his audience while he reflected, alone with the Alone, in words of profound seriousness. His sermons were like poems but also reflections from the soul, arguments in a divine dialogue...."
About his controversy with Charles Kingsley, the immediate cause of his Apologia, what new thing need be said? It is clear that Kingsley, who was the type of a class of mind then common enough in his Church, impulsive, prejudiced, not logical, gave himself away both by the mode and by the burden of his unfortunate attack. But we need not complain of it to-day, since it called out one of the noblest pieces of spiritual history the world possesses: one indeed which has the unique merit of making only the truth that is intrinsic and devout seem in the end to matter.
About his controversy with Charles Kingsley, the immediate reason for his Apologia, what new thing is there to say? It’s clear that Kingsley, who represented a mindset then common in his Church—impulsive, biased, and not logical—undermined himself through both the way he attacked and the content of his unfortunate remarks. But there’s no need to complain about it today, since it led to one of the noblest pieces of spiritual history the world has: a work that uniquely highlights only the intrinsic and devout truths that ultimately matter.
Midway in the forties, as the Apologia tells us, twenty years that is before it was written, Newman left Oxford and the Anglican Church for the Church in which he died. Later portraits make us realise him best in his robes as a Cardinal, as he may be seen in the National Portrait Gallery, or in the striking picture by Millais (now in the Duke of Norfolk's collection). There is one delightful earlier portrait too, which shows him with a peculiarly radiant face, full of charm and serene expectancy; and with it we may associate these lines of his—sincere expression of one who was in all his earthly and heavenly pilgrimage a truth-seeker, heart and soul:
Midway through the 1840s, as the Apologia notes, twenty years before it was written, Newman left Oxford and the Anglican Church for the Church in which he ultimately died. Later portraits capture him best in his Cardinal robes, as seen in the National Portrait Gallery, or in the striking painting by Millais (now part of the Duke of Norfolk's collection). There is also one lovely earlier portrait that shows him with a uniquely radiant face, full of charm and serene expectation; we can associate it with these lines of his—a sincere expression from someone who was, throughout his earthly and heavenly journey, a truth-seeker, heart and soul:
"When I would search the truths that in me burn,
And mould them into rule and argument,
A hundred reasoners cried,—'Hast thou to learn
Those dreams are scatter'd now, those fires are spent?'
And, did I mount to simpler thoughts, and try
Some theme of peace, 'twas still the same reply.Perplex'd, I hoped my heart was pure of guile,
But judged me weak in wit, to disagree;
But now, I see that men are mad awhile,
'Tis the old history—Truth without a home,
Despised and slain, then rising from the tomb."
"When I searched for the truths that burned inside me,
And tried to turn them into rules and arguments,
A hundred thinkers shouted, —'Haven't you realized
That those dreams are scattered now, those flames have gone out?'
And when I tried to focus on simpler thoughts,
To find a theme of peace, I got the same answer."Confused, I hoped my heart was free of deceit,
But worried I was weak for disagreeing;
But now, I see that people act irrationally sometimes,
It’s the same old story—Truth without a home,
Ignored and destroyed, then rising from the dead."
The following is a list of the chief works of Cardinal Newman:—
The following is a list of the main works of Cardinal Newman:—
The Arians of the Fourth Century, 1833; 29 Tracts to Tracts for the Times, 1834-1841; Lyra Apostolica, 1834; Elucidations of Dr. Hampden's Theological Statements, 1836; Parochial Sermons, 6 vols., 1837-1842; A Letter to the Rev. G. Faussett on Certain Points of Faith and Practice, 1838; Lectures on Justification, 1838; Sermons on Subjects of the Day, 1842; Plain Sermons, 1843; Sermons before the University of Oxford, 1843; The Cistercian Saints of England, 1844; An Essay on the Development of Christian Doctrine, 1845; Loss and Gain, 1848; Discourse addressed to Mixed Congregations, 1849; Lectures on Certain Difficulties Felt by Anglicans in Catholic Teaching, 1850; Lectures on the Present Position of Catholics in England, 1851; The Idea of a University, 1852; Callista, 1856; Mr. Kingsley and Dr. Newman, 1864; Apologia pro Vita Sua, 1864; The Dream of Gerontius, 1865; Letter to the Rev. E. B. Pusey on his Eirenicon, 1866; Verses on Various Occasions, 1868; An Essay in Aid of a Grammar of Assent, 1870; Letter addressed to His Grace the Duke of Norfolk on Occasion of Mr. Gladstone's Expostulation, 1875; Meditations and Devotions, 1893.
The Arians of the Fourth Century, 1833; 29 Tracts to Tracts for the Times, 1834-1841; Lyra Apostolica, 1834; Clarifications of Dr. Hampden's Theological Statements, 1836; Parochial Sermons, 6 vols., 1837-1842; A Letter to Rev. G. Faussett on Certain Points of Faith and Practice, 1838; Lectures on Justification, 1838; Sermons on Current Issues, 1842; Plain Sermons, 1843; Sermons Delivered at the University of Oxford, 1843; The Cistercian Saints of England, 1844; An Essay on the Development of Christian Doctrine, 1845; Loss and Gain, 1848; Discourse Addressed to Mixed Congregations, 1849; Lectures on Certain Difficulties Encountered by Anglicans in Catholic Teaching, 1850; Lectures on the Current Status of Catholics in England, 1851; The Idea of a University, 1852; Callista, 1856; Mr. Kingsley and Dr. Newman, 1864; Apologia pro Vita Sua, 1864; The Dream of Gerontius, 1865; Letter to Rev. E. B. Pusey Regarding His Eirenicon, 1866; Verses on Various Occasions, 1868; An Essay in Aid of a Grammar of Assent, 1870; Letter Addressed to His Grace the Duke of Norfolk on the Occasion of Mr. Gladstone's Expostulation, 1875; Meditations and Devotions, 1893.
Biographies.—By W. Meynell, 1890; by Dr. Wm Barry, 1890; by R. H. Hutton, 1891; Letters and Correspondence of J. H. Newman, during his life in the English Church (with a brief autobiography), edited by Miss Anne Mozley, 1891; Anglican Career of Cardinal Newman, by Rd. E. A. Abbott, 1892; as a Musician, by E. Bellasis, 1892; by A. R. Waller and G. H. S. Burrow, 1901; an Appreciation, by Dr. A. Whyte, 1901; Addresses to Cardinal Newman, with his Replies, edited by Rev. W. P. Neville, 1905; by W. Ward (in Ten Personal Studies), 1908; Newman's Theology, by Charles Sarolea, 1908; The Authoritative Biography, by Wilfrid P. Ward (based on Cardinal Newman's private journals and correspondence), 1912.
Biographies.—By W. Meynell, 1890; by Dr. Wm Barry, 1890; by R. H. Hutton, 1891; Letters and Correspondence of J. H. Newman, during his life in the English Church (with a brief autobiography), edited by Miss Anne Mozley, 1891; Anglican Career of Cardinal Newman, by Rd. E. A. Abbott, 1892; as a Musician, by E. Bellasis, 1892; by A. R. Waller and G. H. S. Burrow, 1901; an Appreciation, by Dr. A. Whyte, 1901; Addresses to Cardinal Newman, with his Replies, edited by Rev. W. P. Neville, 1905; by W. Ward (in Ten Personal Studies), 1908; Newman's Theology, by Charles Sarolea, 1908; The Authoritative Biography, by Wilfrid P. Ward (based on Cardinal Newman's private journals and correspondence), 1912.
CONTENTS
APOLOGIA PRO VITA SUA
Part I
Mr. Kingsley's Method of Disputation
I cannot be sorry to have forced Mr. Kingsley to bring out in fulness his charges against me. It is far better that he should discharge his thoughts upon me in my lifetime, than after I am dead. Under the circumstances I am happy in having the opportunity of reading the worst that can be said of me by a writer who has taken pains with his work and is well satisfied with it. I account it a gain to be surveyed from without by one who hates the principles which are nearest to my heart, has no personal knowledge of me to set right his misconceptions of my doctrine, and who has some motive or other to be as severe with me as he can possibly be.
I can’t regret forcing Mr. Kingsley to fully express his accusations against me. It's much better for him to share his thoughts about me while I'm still alive than after I'm gone. Given the situation, I'm glad to have the chance to read the worst things someone can say about me from a writer who has put effort into his work and is clearly proud of it. I see it as a benefit to be viewed from the outside by someone who opposes the beliefs that are closest to my heart, has no firsthand knowledge of me to correct his misinterpretations of my views, and who has some reason to be as tough on me as possible.
And first of all, I beg to compliment him on the motto in his title-page; it is felicitous. A motto should contain, as in a nutshell, the contents, or the character, or the drift, or the animus of the writing to which it is prefixed. The words which he has taken from me are so apposite as to be almost prophetical. There cannot be a better illustration than he thereby affords of the aphorism which I intended them to convey. I said that it is not more than an hyperbolical expression to say that in certain cases a lie is the nearest approach to truth. Mr. Kingsley's pamphlet is emphatically one of such cases as are contemplated in that proposition. I really believe, that his view of me is about as near an approach to the truth about my writings and doings, as he is capable of taking. He has done his worst towards me; but he has also done his best. So far well; but, while I impute to him no malice, I unfeignedly think, on the other hand, that, in his invective against me, he as faithfully fulfils the other half of the proposition also.
First of all, I want to compliment him on the motto in his title page; it's really fitting. A motto should encapsulate, in a nutshell, the content, character, or essence of the work it introduces. The words he has taken from me are so relevant that they almost seem prophetic. He provides a perfect illustration of the saying I intended them to convey. I mentioned that it’s not just a hyperbolic expression to say that, in certain situations, a lie can be the closest thing to the truth. Mr. Kingsley’s pamphlet is definitely one of those cases I was referring to. I truly believe that his perspective on me is about as close to the truth regarding my writings and actions as he's capable of getting. He has done his worst and his best towards me. That's fine, but while I don't believe he has any malicious intent, I genuinely think that, in his attacks against me, he also faithfully represents the other part of that saying.
This is not a mere sharp retort upon Mr. Kingsley, as will be seen, when I come to consider directly the subject to which the words of his motto relate. I have enlarged on that subject in various passages of my publications; I have said that minds in different states and circumstances cannot understand one another, and that in all cases they must be instructed according to their capacity, and, if not taught step by step, they learn only so much the less; that children do not apprehend the thoughts of grown people, nor savages the instincts of civilization, nor blind men the perceptions of sight, nor pagans the doctrines of Christianity, nor men the experiences of Angels. In the same way, there are people of matter-of-fact, prosaic minds, who cannot take in the fancies of poets; and others of shallow, inaccurate minds, who cannot take in the ideas of philosophical inquirers. In a lecture of mine I have illustrated this phenomenon by the supposed instance of a foreigner, who, after reading a commentary on the principles of English Law, does not get nearer to a real apprehension of them than to be led to accuse Englishmen of considering that the queen is impeccable and infallible, and that the Parliament is omnipotent. Mr. Kingsley has read me from beginning to end in the fashion in which the hypothetical Russian read Blackstone; not, I repeat, from malice, but because of his intellectual build. He appears to be so constituted as to have no notion of what goes on in minds very different from his own, and moreover to be stone-blind to his ignorance. A modest man or a philosopher would have scrupled to treat with scorn and scoffing, as Mr. Kingsley does in my own instance, principles and convictions, even if he did not acquiesce in them himself, which had been held so widely and for so long—the beliefs and devotions and customs which have been the religious life of millions upon millions of Christians for nearly twenty centuries—for this in fact is the task on which he is spending his pains. Had he been a man of large or cautious mind, he would not have taken it for granted that cultivation must lead every one to see things precisely as he sees them himself. But the narrow-minded are the more prejudiced by very reason of their narrowness. The apostle bids us "in malice be children, but in understanding be men." I am glad to recognise in Mr. Kingsley an illustration of the first half of this precept; but I should not be honest, if I ascribed to him any sort of fulfilment of the second.
This is not just a sharp comeback at Mr. Kingsley, as will be clear when I directly address the subject connected to his motto. I've discussed this topic in various parts of my writings; I’ve pointed out that minds in different states and circumstances can't truly understand one another, and that in every case, they must be taught according to their abilities. If they aren't taught step by step, they learn even less; children don’t grasp the thoughts of adults, nor do those primitive in their ways comprehend the instincts of civilization, nor can blind people understand sight, nor pagans the teachings of Christianity, nor can humans fully grasp the experiences of angels. Similarly, there are people with practical, straightforward minds who can't appreciate the imaginations of poets; and there are others with shallow, inaccurate thinking who can’t grasp the ideas of philosophical thinkers. In a lecture, I illustrated this point with the hypothetical example of a foreigner who, after reading a commentary on the principles of English Law, ends up misunderstanding them to the point of accusing English people of believing that the queen is perfect and above reproach, and that Parliament is all-powerful. Mr. Kingsley seems to have read me from start to finish in the same way the fictional Russian read Blackstone; not out of malice, I repeat, but due to how he is intellectually made. He seems to lack any understanding of what happens in minds very different from his and is, moreover, blind to his own ignorance. A modest person or philosopher would hesitate to treat with disdain and ridicule—like Mr. Kingsley does in my case—principles and beliefs, even if he disagreed, that have been widely held for so long—beliefs and customs that have defined the religious lives of millions of Christians for nearly twenty centuries—because that is indeed the challenge he is undertaking with such effort. Had he been a man of broader or more cautious thinking, he wouldn’t assume that education must lead everyone to view things exactly as he does. But those who are narrow-minded are even more biased because of their narrowness. The apostle tells us to “be children in malice, but be adults in understanding.” I’m pleased to see in Mr. Kingsley an example of the first part of this teaching; but I wouldn't be honest if I attributed any kind of fulfillment of the second part to him.
I wish I could speak as favourably either of his drift or of his method of arguing, as I can of his convictions. As to his drift, I think its ultimate point is an attack upon the Catholic Religion. It is I indeed, whom he is immediately insulting—still, he views me only as a representative, and on the whole a fair one, of a class or caste of men, to whom, conscious as I am of my own integrity, I ascribe an excellence superior to mine. He desires to impress upon the public mind the conviction that I am a crafty, scheming man, simply untrustworthy; that, in becoming a Catholic, I have just found my right place; that I do but justify and am properly interpreted by the common English notion of Roman casuists and confessors; that I was secretly a Catholic when I was openly professing to be a clergyman of the Established Church; that so far from bringing, by means of my conversion, when at length it openly took place, any strength to the Catholic cause, I am really a burden to it—an additional evidence of the fact, that to be a pure, german, genuine Catholic, a man must be either a knave or a fool.
I wish I could speak as positively about his perspective or his way of arguing as I do about his beliefs. Regarding his perspective, I think it ultimately aims to attack the Catholic Church. He is directly insulting me—yet, he sees me merely as a representative, and overall, a reasonable one, of a group or class of people, to whom, aware as I am of my own honesty, I attribute a merit greater than my own. He wants to convince the public that I am a deceitful, scheming person, completely untrustworthy; that by becoming a Catholic, I've finally found my true place; that I only validate and fit into the common English view of Roman casuists and confessors; that I was secretly a Catholic while I was openly acting as a clergyman of the Established Church; that instead of bringing strength to the Catholic cause with my eventual public conversion, I am actually a liability—an additional proof that to be a true, genuine, real Catholic, a person must either be a rogue or a fool.
These last words bring me to Mr. Kingsley's method of disputation, which I must criticise with much severity;—in his drift he does but follow the ordinary beat of controversy, but in his mode of arguing he is actually dishonest.
These final words lead me to Mr. Kingsley's approach to debate, which I must criticize quite harshly; while he may follow the usual path of argument, his way of arguing is genuinely dishonest.
He says that I am either a knave or a fool, and (as we shall see by and by) he is not quite sure which, probably both. He tells his readers that on one occasion he said that he had fears I should "end in one or other of two misfortunes." "He would either," he continues, "destroy his own sense of honesty, i.e. conscious truthfulness—and become a dishonest person; or he would destroy his common sense, i.e. unconscious truthfulness, and become the slave and puppet seemingly of his own logic, really of his own fancy.... I thought for years past that he had become the former; I now see that he has become the latter." (p. 20). Again, "When I read these outrages upon common sense, what wonder if I said to myself, 'This man cannot believe what he is saying?'" (p. 26). Such has been Mr. Kingsley's state of mind till lately, but now he considers that I am possessed with a spirit of "almost boundless silliness," of "simple credulity, the child of scepticism," of "absurdity" (p. 41), of a "self-deception which has become a sort of frantic honesty" (p. 26). And as to his fundamental reason for this change, he tells us, he really does not know what it is (p. 44). However, let the reason be what it will, its upshot is intelligible enough. He is enabled at once, by this professed change of judgment about me, to put forward one of these alternatives, yet to keep the other in reserve;—and this he actually does. He need not commit himself to a definite accusation against me, such as requires definite proof and admits of definite refutation; for he has two strings to his bow;—when he is thrown off his balance on the one leg, he can recover himself by the use of the other. If I demonstrate that I am not a knave, he may exclaim, "Oh, but you are a fool!" and when I demonstrate that I am not a fool, he may turn round and retort, "Well, then, you are a knave." I have no objection to reply to his arguments in behalf of either alternative, but I should have been better pleased to have been allowed to take them one at a time.
He says I’m either a dishonest person or a fool, and (as we’ll see later) he’s not really sure which, probably both. He tells his readers that once he mentioned he was afraid I might "end in one or the other of two misfortunes." "He would either," he goes on, "lose his sense of honesty, i.e. conscious truthfulness—and become dishonest; or he would lose his common sense, i.e. unconscious truthfulness, and become a slave to his own logic, really to his own imagination.... I thought for years that he had become the former; now I see he has become the latter." (p. 20). Again, "When I read these attacks on common sense, is it any surprise I said to myself, 'This man can’t believe what he’s saying?'" (p. 26). This has been Mr. Kingsley's mindset until recently, but now he believes I’m possessed with a spirit of "almost limitless foolishness," of "simple gullibility, the child of skepticism," of "absurdity" (p. 41), of a "self-deception that has turned into a sort of frantic honesty" (p. 26). As for his main reason for this change, he admits he really doesn’t know what it is (p. 44). However, whatever the reason, its outcome is clear enough. He can immediately, through this supposed change of opinion about me, propose one of these options while keeping the other in the background;—and that’s exactly what he does. He doesn’t need to commit to a specific accusation against me that requires solid proof and can be clearly disproven; he has two options to choose from;—if he’s thrown off balance on one leg, he can regain his footing by using the other. If I prove I’m not a knave, he might shout, "Oh, but you are a fool!" and when I prove I’m not a fool, he can turn around and say, "Well, then, you’re a knave." I’m happy to respond to his arguments for either option, but I would have preferred to address them one at a time.
But I have not yet done full justice to the method of disputation, which Mr. Kingsley thinks it right to adopt. Observe this first:—He means by a man who is "silly" not a man who is to be pitied, but a man who is to be abhorred. He means a man who is not simply weak and incapable, but a moral leper; a man who, if not a knave, has everything bad about him except knavery; nay, rather, has together with every other worst vice, a spice of knavery to boot. His simpleton is one who has become such, in judgment for his having once been a knave. His simpleton is not a born fool, but a self-made idiot, one who has drugged and abused himself into a shameless depravity; one, who, without any misgiving or remorse, is guilty of drivelling superstition, of reckless violation of sacred things, of fanatical excesses, of passionate inanities, of unmanly audacious tyranny over the weak, meriting the wrath of fathers and brothers. This is that milder judgment, which he seems to pride himself upon as so much charity; and, as he expresses it, he "does not know" why. This is what he really meant in his letter to me of January 14, when he withdrew his charge of my being dishonest. He said, "The tone of your letters, even more than their language, makes me feel, to my very deep pleasure,"—what? that you have gambled away your reason, that you are an intellectual sot, that you are a fool in a frenzy. And in his pamphlet, he gives us this explanation why he did not say this to my face, viz. that he had been told that I was "in weak health," and was "averse to controversy," (pp. 6 and 8). He "felt some regret for having disturbed me."
But I haven't fully represented the way of arguing that Mr. Kingsley believes is appropriate. First, take note: when he refers to someone as "silly," he doesn't mean a person who should be pitied, but rather one to be disdained. He describes someone who isn't just weak and incompetent, but a moral outcast; someone who, even if not a villain, has everything wrong with them except actual villainy. In fact, they possess every other terrible vice, plus a touch of cunning for good measure. His simpleton is someone who has become this way as a consequence of having once been a villain. His simpleton isn’t a natural fool but a self-made one, who has drugged and degraded themselves into shameless corruption; someone who, without any doubt or guilt, indulges in mindless superstition, carelessly violates sacred beliefs, shows fanatical extremes, spouts passionate nonsense, and exhibits cowardly cruelty toward the weak, deserving of the anger of fathers and brothers. This is the gentler assessment he seems to take pride in as a form of compassion; and, as he puts it, he "does not know" why. This is what he actually meant in his letter to me on January 14, when he retracted his accusation of my dishonesty. He said, "The tone of your letters, even more than their wording, brings me great joy,"—what? That you've wasted your reason, that you're an intellectual drunkard, that you're a fool in a rage. In his pamphlet, he explains why he didn’t say this to my face, stating he had been told I was "in weak health" and "not keen on controversy," (pp. 6 and 8). He "felt some regret for having disturbed me."
But I pass on from these multiform imputations, and confine myself to this one consideration, viz. that he has made any fresh imputation upon me at all. He gave up the charge of knavery; well and good: but where was the logical necessity of his bringing another? I am sitting at home without a thought of Mr. Kingsley; he wantonly breaks in upon me with the charge that I had "informed" the world "that Truth for its own sake need not and on the whole ought not to be a virtue with the Roman clergy." When challenged on the point he cannot bring a fragment of evidence in proof of his assertion, and he is convicted of false witness by the voice of the world. Well, I should have thought that he had now nothing whatever more to do. "Vain man!" he seems to make answer, "what simplicity in you to think so! If you have not broken one commandment, let us see whether we cannot convict you of the breach of another. If you are not a swindler or forger, you are guilty of arson or burglary. By hook or by crook you shall not escape. Are you to suffer or I? What does it matter to you who are going off the stage, to receive a slight additional daub upon a character so deeply stained already? But think of me, the immaculate lover of Truth, so observant (as I have told you p. 8) of 'hault courage and strict honour,'—and (aside)—'and not as this publican'—do you think I can let you go scot free instead of myself? No; noblesse oblige. Go to the shades, old man, and boast that Achilles sent you thither."
But I’ll move past these various accusations and focus on one thing, which is that he has made another accusation against me at all. He dropped the claim of dishonesty; fair enough: but what was the logical reason for him to come up with another one? I’m at home without a thought about Mr. Kingsley; he randomly interrupts me with the accusation that I had "informed" the world "that Truth for its own sake need not and on the whole ought not to be a virtue with the Roman clergy." When pressed on this, he can't provide even a shred of evidence to back up his claim, and he's exposed as a liar by public opinion. I would have thought he had nothing left to do. "Foolish man!" he seems to reply, "how naive of you to think that! If you haven't broken one commandment, let's see if we can get you on another. If you’re not a fraud or a forger, then you must be guilty of arson or burglary. One way or another, you won't get away. Are you going to suffer or me? What does it matter to you, who's leaving the stage, to receive another small stain on a reputation that’s already so tarnished? But think of me, the pure lover of Truth, so focused (as I mentioned on page 8) on 'hault courage and strict honor,'—and (aside)—'and not like this tax collector'—do you really think I can let you walk away while I don’t? No; noblesse oblige. Go to the afterlife, old man, and brag that Achilles sent you there."
But I have not even yet done with Mr. Kingsley's method of disputation. Observe secondly:—when a man is said to be a knave or a fool, it is commonly meant that he is either the one or the other; and that,—either in the sense that the hypothesis of his being a fool is too absurd to be entertained; or, again, as a sort of contemptuous acquittal of one, who after all has not wit enough to be wicked. But this is not at all what Mr. Kingsley proposes to himself in the antithesis which he suggests to his readers. Though he speaks of me as an utter dotard and fanatic, yet all along, from the beginning of his pamphlet to the end, he insinuates, he proves from my writings, and at length in his last pages he openly pronounces, that after all he was right at first, in thinking me a conscious liar and deceiver.
But I haven't yet finished discussing Mr. Kingsley's way of arguing. Notice this second point: when someone is called a knave or a fool, it usually means he is either one or the other; either in the sense that the idea of him being a fool is too ridiculous to consider, or as a sort of disdainful excuse for someone who lacks the intelligence to be truly wicked. But that’s not at all what Mr. Kingsley is aiming for in the contrast he presents to his readers. Though he describes me as a complete idiot and fanatic, throughout his pamphlet, from start to finish, he suggests, proves from my writings, and ultimately states in his final pages, that all along he was right to originally see me as a deliberate liar and deceiver.
Now I wish to dwell on this point. It cannot be doubted, I say, that, in spite of his professing to consider me as a dotard and driveller, on the ground of his having given up the notion of my being a knave, yet it is the very staple of his pamphlet that a knave after all I must be. By insinuation, or by implication, or by question, or by irony, or by sneer, or by parable, he enforces again and again a conclusion which he does not categorically enunciate.
Now I want to focus on this point. It's undeniable that, even though he claims to see me as senile and foolish, having discarded the idea of me being a dishonest person, the core of his pamphlet still suggests that I must be a schemer after all. Through hints, implications, questions, sarcasm, disdain, or allegories, he continuously reinforces a conclusion that he doesn't clearly state.
For instance (1) P. 14. "I know that men used to suspect Dr. Newman, I have been inclined to do so myself, of writing a whole sermon ... for the sake of one single passing hint, one phrase, one epithet, one little barbed arrow which ... he delivered unheeded, as with his finger tip, to the very heart of an initiated hearer, never to be withdrawn again."
For example (1) P. 14. "I know that people used to think Dr. Newman was writing an entire sermon ... just for one fleeting remark, one phrase, one word, one little pointed comment which ... he delivered casually, almost like with the tip of his finger, right to the heart of an informed listener, never to be taken back."
(2) P. 15. "How was I to know that the preacher, who had the reputation of being the most acute man of his generation, and of having a specially intimate acquaintance with the weaknesses of the human heart, was utterly blind to the broad meaning and the plain practical result of a sermon like this, delivered before fanatic and hot-headed young men, who hung upon his every word? That he did not foresee that they would think that they obeyed him, by becoming affected, artificial, sly, shifty, ready for concealments and equivocations?"
(2) P. 15. "How was I supposed to know that the preacher, who was known as the smartest man of his time and had an especially keen understanding of the weaknesses in human nature, was completely blind to the obvious implications and the straightforward outcomes of a sermon like this, delivered in front of passionate and impulsive young men who hung on his every word? That he didn’t foresee that they would think they were obeying him by becoming affected, artificial, sly, shifty, and ready to hide and equivocate?"
(3) P. 17. "No one would have suspected him to be a dishonest man, if he had not perversely chosen to assume a style which (as he himself confesses) the world always associates with dishonesty."
(3) P. 17. "No one would have suspected him of being a dishonest man if he hadn’t stubbornly decided to adopt a style that (as he himself admits) the world always links with dishonesty."
(4) Pp. 29, 30. "If he will indulge in subtle paradoxes, in rhetorical exaggerations; if, whenever he touches on the question of truth and honesty, he will take a perverse pleasure in saying something shocking to plain English notions, he must take the consequences of his own eccentricities."
(4) Pp. 29, 30. "If he enjoys playing with subtle contradictions and making over-the-top statements; if, whenever he addresses the issue of truth and honesty, he gets a twisted satisfaction from saying something that goes against common sense, he has to face the consequences of his own quirks."
(5) P. 34. "At which most of my readers will be inclined to cry: 'Let Dr. Newman alone, after that.... He had a human reason once, no doubt: but he has gambled it away.' ... True: so true, etc."
(5) P. 34. "At this point, most of my readers will probably shout: 'Leave Dr. Newman alone, after that... He had a human reason once, for sure: but he has wasted it.' ... True: so true, etc."
(6) P. 34. He continues: "I should never have written these pages, save because it was my duty to show the world, if not Dr. Newman, how the mistake (!) of his not caring for truth arose."
(6) P. 34. He goes on: "I never should have written these pages, except because I felt it was my responsibility to show the world, if not Dr. Newman, how the mistake (!) of his not caring for truth came about."
(7) P. 37. "And this is the man, who when accused of countenancing falsehood, puts on first a tone of plaintive (!) and startled innocence, and then one of smug self-satisfaction—as who should ask, 'What have I said? What have I done? Why am I on my trial?'"
(7) P. 37. "And this is the guy who, when accused of supporting lies, first adopts a tone of plaintive (!) and shocked innocence, and then one of smug self-satisfaction—as though to say, 'What have I said? What have I done? Why am I being put on trial?'"
(8) P. 40. "What Dr. Newman teaches is clear at last, and I see now how deeply I have wronged him. So far from thinking truth for its own sake to be no virtue, he considers it a virtue so lofty as to be unattainable by man."
(8) P. 40. "What Dr. Newman teaches is finally clear, and I realize now how deeply I have wronged him. Rather than believing that truth for its own sake is not a virtue, he views it as such a lofty virtue that it is beyond human reach."
(9) P. 43. "There is no use in wasting words on this 'economical' statement of Dr. Newman's. I shall only say that there are people in the world whom it is very difficult to help. As soon as they are got out of one scrape, they walk straight into another."
(9) P. 43. "There's no point in wasting words on Dr. Newman's 'economical' statement. I'll just say that there are people in the world who are very hard to help. As soon as they get out of one mess, they walk right into another."
(10) P. 43. "Dr. Newman has shown 'wisdom' enough of that serpentine type which is his professed ideal.... Yes, Dr. Newman is a very economical person."
(10) P. 43. "Dr. Newman has shown enough 'wisdom' of that serpentine kind which is his professed ideal.... Yes, Dr. Newman is a very frugal person."
(11) P. 44. "Dr. Newman tries, by cunning sleight-of-hand logic, to prove that I did not believe the accusation when I made it."
(11) P. 44. "Dr. Newman attempts, through clever tricks of logic, to show that I didn't actually believe the accusation when I said it.”
(12) P. 45. "These are hard words. If Dr. Newman shall complain of them, I can only remind him of the fate which befel the stork caught among the cranes, even though the stork had not done all he could to make himself like a crane, as Dr. Newman has, by 'economising' on the very title-page of his pamphlet."
(12) P. 45. "These are harsh words. If Dr. Newman complains about them, I can only remind him of the fate that befell the stork caught among the cranes, even though the stork had not done everything he could to make himself look like a crane, as Dr. Newman has, by 'economizing' on the very title page of his pamphlet."
These last words bring us to another and far worse instance of these slanderous assaults upon me, but its place is in a subsequent page.
These final words lead us to another, much worse example of these slanderous attacks against me, but that will be addressed on a later page.
Now it may be asked of me, "Well, why should not Mr. Kingsley take a course such as this? It was his original assertion that Dr. Newman was a professed liar, and a patron of lies; he spoke somewhat at random, granted; but now he has got up his references and he is proving, not perhaps the very thing which he said at first, but something very like it, and to say the least quite as bad. He is now only aiming to justify morally his original assertion; why is he not at liberty to do so?"
Now someone might ask me, "Why shouldn’t Mr. Kingsley take this approach? He initially claimed that Dr. Newman was a blatant liar and a supporter of falsehoods; he spoke somewhat off the cuff, I admit; but now he’s gathered his sources and is showing, if not exactly what he originally said, something very similar, and frankly just as bad. He’s now just trying to morally justify his original claim; why shouldn't he be allowed to do that?"
Why should he not now insinuate that I am a liar and a knave! he had of course a perfect right to make such a charge, if he chose; he might have said, "I was virtually right, and here is the proof of it," but this he has not done, but on the contrary has professed that he no longer draws from my works, as he did before, the inference of my dishonesty. He says distinctly, p. 26, "When I read these outrages upon common sense, what wonder if I said to myself, 'This man cannot believe what he is saying?' I believe I was wrong." And in p. 31, "I said, This man has no real care for truth. Truth for its own sake is no virtue in his eyes, and he teaches that it need not be. I do not say that now." And in p. 41, "I do not call this conscious dishonesty; the man who wrote that sermon was already past the possibility of such a sin."
Why should he not now suggest that I am a liar and a scoundrel! He certainly had every right to make such an accusation if he wanted; he could have said, "I was mostly right, and here’s the proof," but he hasn't done that. Instead, he has claimed that he no longer draws from my work, as he did before, the conclusion of my dishonesty. He clearly states on p. 26, "When I read these absurdities, is it any wonder I thought to myself, 'This man cannot really believe what he’s saying?' I think I was wrong." And on p. 31, "I said, This man has no real regard for truth. Truth for its own sake holds no value to him, and he teaches that it doesn’t have to. I don’t say that now." And on p. 41, "I don't consider this conscious dishonesty; the man who wrote that sermon was already beyond the possibility of such a sin."
Why should he not! because it is on the ground of my not being a knave that he calls me a fool; adding to the words just quoted, "[My readers] have fallen perhaps into the prevailing superstition that cleverness is synonymous with wisdom. They cannot believe that (as is too certain) great literary and even barristerial ability may co-exist with almost boundless silliness."
Why shouldn’t he ?! It’s based on the fact that I’m not a deceitful person that he calls me a fool; adding to the previously mentioned words, “[My readers] have probably fallen into the common misconception that being clever is the same as being wise. They can't accept that (as is clearly true) significant literary and even legal skills can exist alongside nearly limitless foolishness.”
Why should he not! because he has taken credit to himself for that high feeling of honour which refuses to withdraw a concession which once has been made; though (wonderful to say!), at the very time that he is recording this magnanimous resolution, he lets it out of the bag that his relinquishment of it is only a profession and a pretence; for he says, p. 8: "I have accepted Dr. Newman's denial that [the Sermon] means what I thought it did; and heaven forbid" (oh!) "that I should withdraw my word once given, at whatever disadvantage to myself." Disadvantage! but nothing can be advantageous to him which is untrue; therefore in proclaiming that the concession of my honesty is a disadvantage to him, he thereby implies unequivocally that there is some probability still, that I am dishonest. He goes on, "I am informed by those from whose judgment on such points there is no appeal, that 'en hault courage,' and strict honour, I am also precluded, by the terms of my explanation, from using any other of Dr. Newman's past writings to prove my assertion." And then, "I have declared Dr. Newman to have been an honest man up to the 1st of February, 1864; it was, as I shall show, only Dr. Newman's fault that I ever thought him to be anything else. It depends entirely on Dr. Newman whether he shall sustain the reputation which he has so recently acquired," (by diploma of course from Mr. Kingsley.) "If I give him thereby a fresh advantage in this argument, he is most welcome to it. He needs, it seems to me, as many advantages as possible."
Why shouldn’t he not! Because he takes credit for that strong sense of honor that refuses to take back a concession once made; yet (surprisingly!), at the very moment he records this noble decision, he accidentally reveals that his giving it up is just a statement and a facade; because he says, p. 8: "I’ve accepted Dr. Newman’s denial that [the Sermon] means what I thought it did; and heaven forbid" (oh!) "that I should take back my word once given, at whatever cost to myself." Cost! But nothing can benefit him that is untrue; therefore, by claiming that conceding my honesty is a disadvantage to him, he clearly implies that there’s still a chance I am dishonest. He continues, "I’ve been informed by those whose judgment on such matters is final, that 'en hault courage,' and strict honor, I am also precluded, by the terms of my explanation, from using any other of Dr. Newman’s past writings to support my claim." And then, "I have declared Dr. Newman to have been an honest man up to February 1, 1864; it was, as I will show, solely Dr. Newman’s fault that I ever thought he was anything else. It entirely depends on Dr. Newman whether he will sustain the reputation he has so recently gained," (by diploma, of course, from Mr. Kingsley.) "If I give him a fresh advantage in this argument, he is most welcome to it. He needs, it seems to me, as many advantages as possible."
What a princely mind! How loyal to his rash promise, how delicate towards the subject of it, how conscientious in his interpretation of it! I have no thought of irreverence towards a Scripture Saint, who was actuated by a very different spirit from Mr. Kingsley's, but somehow since I read his pamphlet words have been running in my head, which I find in the Douay version thus; "Thou hast also with thee Semei the son of Gera, who cursed me with a grievous curse when I went to the camp, but I swore to him, saying, I will not kill thee with the sword. Do not thou hold him guiltless. But thou art a wise man and knowest what to do with him, and thou shalt bring down his grey hairs with blood to hell."
What a noble mind! So loyal to his impulsive promise, so considerate about the subject of it, so careful in how he interprets it! I don't mean to be disrespectful towards a Biblical Saint, who had a very different spirit than Mr. Kingsley's, but ever since I read his pamphlet, certain words have been echoing in my mind, which I find in the Douay version like this: "You also have with you Shimei the son of Gera, who cursed me with a terrible curse when I went to the camp, but I swore to him, saying, I will not kill you with the sword. Do not consider him innocent. But you are a wise man and know what to do with him, and you shall bring his gray hairs down to the grave with blood."
Now I ask, Why could not Mr. Kingsley be open? If he intended still to arraign me on the charge of lying, why could he not say so as a man? Why must he insinuate, question, imply, and use sneering and irony, as if longing to touch a forbidden fruit, which still he was afraid would burn his fingers, if he did so? Why must he "palter in a double sense," and blow hot and cold in one breath? He first said he considered me a patron of lying; well, he changed his opinion; and as to the logical ground of this change, he said that, if any one asked him what it was, he could only answer that he really did not know. Why could not he change back again, and say he did not know why? He had quite a right to do so; and then his conduct would have been so far straightforward and unexceptionable. But no;—in the very act of professing to believe in my sincerity, he takes care to show the world that it is a profession and nothing more. That very proceeding which at p. 15 he lays to my charge (whereas I detest it), of avowing one thing and thinking another, that proceeding he here exemplifies himself; and yet, while indulging in practices as offensive as this, he ventures to speak of his sensitive admiration of "hault courage and strict honour!" "I forgive you, Sir Knight," says the heroine in the Romance, "I forgive you as a Christian." "That means," said Wamba, "that she does not forgive him at all." Mr. Kingsley's word of honour is about as valuable as in the jester's opinion was the Christian charity of Rowena. But here we are brought to a further specimen of Mr. Kingsley's method of disputation, and having duly exhibited it, I shall have done with him.
Now I ask, why couldn’t Mr. Kingsley be straightforward? If he still wanted to accuse me of lying, why couldn’t he just say so like a man? Why did he have to insinuate, question, imply, and use sarcasm as if he wanted to touch a forbidden fruit but was afraid it would burn him? Why did he have to "play with double meanings" and be contradictory at the same time? He initially said he considered me a liar; well, he changed his mind, and when asked why, he admitted that he really didn’t know. Why couldn’t he just revert to his old opinion and say he didn’t know why? He had every right to do that, and then his behavior would have been honest and acceptable. But no; in the very act of claiming to believe in my sincerity, he makes it clear that it’s just an act and nothing more. The very thing he accuses me of at p. 15—pretending to believe one thing while actually thinking another—he demonstrates himself; yet, while engaging in such offensive behavior, he dares to talk about his sensitive admiration for "noble courage and strict honor!" "I forgive you, Sir Knight," says the heroine in the Romance, "I forgive you as a Christian." "That means," said Wamba, "that she doesn’t forgive him at all." Mr. Kingsley’s word of honor is worth about as much as Rowena's supposed Christian charity in the jester's eyes. But now we come to another example of Mr. Kingsley’s debating style, and having properly pointed it out, I’ll be done with him.
It is his last, and he has intentionally reserved it for his last. Let it be recollected that he professed to absolve me from his original charge of dishonesty up to February 1. And further, he implies that, at the time when he was writing, I had not yet involved myself in any fresh acts suggestive of that sin. He says that I have had a great escape of conviction, that he hopes I shall take warning, and act more cautiously. "It depends entirely," he says, "on Dr. Newman, whether he shall sustain the reputation which he has so recently acquired" (p. 8). Thus, in Mr. Kingsley's judgment, I was then, when he wrote these words, still innocent of dishonesty, for a man cannot sustain what he actually has not got; only he could not be sure of my future. Could not be sure! Why at this very time he had already noted down valid proofs, as he thought them, that I had already forfeited the character which he contemptuously accorded to me. He had cautiously said "up to February 1st," in order to reserve the title-page and last three pages of my pamphlet, which were not published till February 12th, and out of these four pages, which he had not whitewashed, he had already forged charges against me of dishonesty at the very time that he implied that as yet there was nothing against me. When he gave me that plenary condonation, as it seemed to be, he had already done his best that I should never enjoy it. He knew well at p. 8, what he meant to say at pp. 44 and 45. At best indeed I was only out upon ticket of leave; but that ticket was a pretence; he had made it forfeit when he gave it. But he did not say so at once, first, because between p. 8 and p. 44 he meant to talk a great deal about my idiotcy and my frenzy, which would have been simply out of place, had he proved me too soon to be a knave again; and next, because he meant to exhaust all those insinuations about my knavery in the past, which "strict honour" did not permit him to countenance, in order thereby to give colour and force to his direct charges of knavery in the present, which "strict honour" did permit him to handsel. So in the fifth act he gave a start, and found to his horror that, in my miserable four pages, I had committed the "enormity" of an "economy," which in matter of fact he had got by heart before he began the play. Nay, he suddenly found two, three, and (for what he knew) as many as four profligate economies in that title-page and those Reflections, and he uses the language of distress and perplexity at this appalling discovery.
It’s his last, and he has intentionally saved it for the end. Let’s remember that he claimed to absolve me from his original accusation of dishonesty up to February 1. Moreover, he suggests that, while he was writing, I had not yet committed any new acts indicating that sin. He mentions that I have narrowly escaped conviction and hopes that I will take this as a warning and act more carefully. "It all depends," he says, "on Dr. Newman, whether he shall maintain the reputation he has recently earned" (p. 8). So, in Mr. Kingsley’s view, I was still innocent of dishonesty when he wrote these words because a man can't uphold something he doesn't actually have; he just couldn’t be sure of my future. Couldn't be sure! Why, at that very moment, he had already noted down what he considered valid evidence that I had already lost the character he dismissively granted me. He had carefully said "up to February 1st," to keep open the title page and last three pages of my pamphlet, which weren’t published until February 12th, and from those four pages, which he had not cleared of accusations, he had already forged claims of dishonesty against me while implying there was nothing against me at that point. When he offered me that total pardon, as it seemed, he had already done everything in his power to ensure I wouldn’t benefit from it. He knew well at p. 8 what he intended to convey at pp. 44 and 45. At best, I was only on a sort of probation; but that probation was just a cover; he had invalidated it the moment he issued it. However, he didn’t say this right away, firstly, because between p. 8 and p. 44, he wanted to rant about my foolishness and madness, which would have been completely out of place had he deemed me a rogue too soon; and secondly, because he aimed to use all those insinuations about my past dishonesty, which "strict honor" wouldn’t allow him to entertain, in order to give weight and credibility to his direct accusations of dishonesty in the present, which "strict honor" did permit him to push forward. So in the fifth act, he got a shock and found to his dismay that, in my pathetic four pages, I had committed the "enormity" of practicing "economy," which he had already memorized before starting the play. In fact, he suddenly discovered two, three, and (as far as he knew) maybe even four scandalous acts of economy in that title page and those Reflections, and he expresses distress and confusion over this shocking revelation.
Now why this coup de théâtre? The reason soon breaks on us. Up to February 1, he could not categorically arraign me for lying, and therefore could not involve me (as was so necessary for his case), in the popular abhorrence which is felt for the casuists of Rome: but, as soon as ever he could openly and directly pronounce (saving his "hault courage and strict honour") that I am guilty of three or four new economies, then at once I am made to bear, not only my own sins, but the sins of other people also, and, though I have been condoned the knavery of my antecedents, I am guilty of the knavery of a whole priesthood instead. So the hour of doom for Semei is come, and the wise man knows what to do with him;—he is down upon me with the odious names of "St. Alfonso da Liguori," and "Scavini" and "Neyraguet," and "the Romish moralists," and their "compeers and pupils," and I am at once merged and whirled away in the gulph of notorious quibblers, and hypocrites, and rogues.
Now, why this theatrical twist? The reason quickly becomes clear. Up until February 1, he couldn't definitively accuse me of lying, and therefore couldn’t drag me (which was crucial for his argument) into the widespread disdain reserved for the moral cheats of Rome. But once he could openly declare (while maintaining his "high courage and strict honor") that I'm guilty of three or four new offenses, I suddenly have to bear not only my own wrongdoing but also the mistakes of others. Even though my past misdeeds have been forgiven, I’m now seen as guilty of the deceit of an entire priesthood. So, the time has come for my reckoning, and the wise man knows exactly what to do with me; he comes at me with the disgusting labels of "St. Alfonso da Liguori," "Scavini," "Neyraguet," and "the Romish moralists," along with their "followers and students," and I am instantly swept away into the abyss of infamous quibblers, hypocrites, and rogues.
But we have not even yet got at the real object of the stroke, thus reserved for his finale. I really feel sad for what I am obliged now to say. I am in warfare with him, but I wish him no ill;—it is very difficult to get up resentment towards persons whom one has never seen. It is easy enough to be irritated with friends or foes, vis-à-vis; but, though I am writing with all my heart against what he has said of me, I am not conscious of personal unkindness towards himself. I think it necessary to write as I am writing, for my own sake, and for the sake of the Catholic priesthood; but I wish to impute nothing worse to Kingsley than that he has been furiously carried away by his feelings. But what shall I say of the upshot of all this talk of my economies and equivocations and the like? What is the precise work which it is directed to effect? I am at war with him; but there is such a thing as legitimate warfare: war has its laws; there are things which may fairly be done, and things which may not be done. I say it with shame and with stern sorrow;—he has attempted a great transgression; he has attempted (as I may call it) to poison the wells. I will quote him and explain what I mean.
But we haven't even gotten to the real point of the attack, which is reserved for his finale. I honestly feel sad about what I have to say now. I'm in conflict with him, but I don't wish him any harm; it’s really hard to feel anger toward someone you've never met. It’s easy to get annoyed with friends or enemies face-to-face; however, even though I’m writing passionately against what he has said about me, I don’t feel any personal animosity toward him. I think it’s important for me to write this for my own sake and the sake of the Catholic priesthood, but I don't want to accuse Kingsley of anything worse than being swept away by his emotions. But what should I say about the outcome of all this discussion of my decisions and half-truths and so on? What is the exact work that this is intended to achieve? I’m in conflict with him, but there is such a thing as legitimate conflict: war has its rules; there are actions that are acceptable and actions that are not. I say this with shame and deep sorrow—he has attempted a serious wrongdoing; he has tried (as I might put it) to poison the wells. I will quote him and explain what I mean.
"Dr. Newman tries, by cunning sleight-of-hand logic, to prove that I did not believe the accusation when I made it. Therein he is mistaken. I did believe it, and I believed also his indignant denial. But when he goes on to ask with sneers, why I should believe his denial, if I did not consider him trustworthy in the first instance? I can only answer, I really do not know. There is a great deal to be said for that view, now that Dr. Newman has become (one must needs suppose) suddenly and since the 1st of February, 1864, a convert to the economic views of St. Alfonso da Liguori and his compeers. I am henceforth in doubt and fear, as much as any honest man can be, concerning every word Dr. Newman may write. How can I tell that I shall not be the dupe of some cunning equivocation, of one of the three kinds laid down as permissible by the blessed Alfonso da Liguori and his pupils, even when confirmed by an oath, because 'then we do not deceive our neighbour, but allow him to deceive himself?' ... It is admissible, therefore, to use words and sentences which have a double signification, and leave the hapless hearer to take which of them he may choose. What proof have I, then, that by 'mean it? I never said it!' Dr. Newman does not signify, I did not say it, but I did mean it?"—Pp. 44, 45.
"Dr. Newman tries, using some tricky logic, to prove that I didn’t believe the accusation when I made it. He’s wrong about that. I believed it, and I also believed his angry denial. But when he sneers and asks why I should believe his denial if I didn’t trust him in the first place, I can only say I really don’t know. There’s a lot to be said for that perspective, especially now that Dr. Newman seems to have suddenly become a follower of the economic views of St. Alfonso da Liguori and his associates since February 1, 1864. From now on, I doubt and fear, just like any honest person would, concerning every word Dr. Newman might write. How can I be sure I won’t be fooled by some clever trick or double meaning, one of the three types allowed by the blessed Alfonso da Liguori and his followers, even when confirmed by an oath, because 'then we do not deceive our neighbor, but allow him to deceive himself?' ... It is acceptable, therefore, to use words and phrases that have double meanings, leaving the unfortunate listener to pick whichever interpretation they prefer. What proof do I have, then, that when Dr. Newman says 'mean it? I never said it!' he doesn’t mean, I didn’t say it, but I did mean it?"—Pp. 44, 45.
Now these insinuations and questions shall be answered in their proper places; here I will but say that I scorn and detest lying, and quibbling, and double-tongued practice, and slyness, and cunning, and smoothness, and cant, and pretence, quite as much as any Protestants hate them; and I pray to be kept from the snare of them. But all this is just now by the bye; my present subject is Mr. Kingsley; what I insist upon here, now that I am bringing this portion of my discussion to a close, is this unmanly attempt of his, in his concluding pages, to cut the ground from under my feet;—to poison by anticipation the public mind against me, John Henry Newman, and to infuse into the imaginations of my readers, suspicion and mistrust of everything that I may say in reply to him. This I call poisoning the wells.
Now, I'll address these insinuations and questions in their proper time; for now, I just want to say that I completely despise lying, evasion, double-talk, slyness, cunning, smooth-talking, hypocrisy, and pretense, just as much as any Protestant does. I hope I remain free from falling into those traps. But that's just a side note; my main focus is on Mr. Kingsley. What I want to highlight as I wrap up this part of my discussion is his unmanly attempt in his final pages to undermine me—John Henry Newman—by trying to influence public opinion against me ahead of time, and to instill suspicion and doubt in the minds of my readers regarding everything I might say in response to him. I call this poisoning the wells.
"I am henceforth in doubt and fear," he says, "as much as any honest man can be, concerning every word Dr. Newman may write. How can I tell that I shall not be the dupe of some cunning equivocation? ... What proof have I, that by 'mean it? I never said it!' Dr. Newman does not signify, 'I did not say it, but I did mean it'?"
"I’m now filled with doubt and fear," he says, "just as much as any honest person can be, about every word Dr. Newman might write. How can I be sure that I won’t fall for some clever trick? ... What proof do I have that when he says, 'I never said it, but I did mean it!' Dr. Newman doesn’t actually mean, 'I didn’t say it, but I did mean it'?"
Well, I can only say, that, if his taunt is to take effect, I am but wasting my time in saying a word in answer to his foul calumnies; and this is precisely what he knows and intends to be its fruit. I can hardly get myself to protest against a method of controversy so base and cruel, lest in doing so, I should be violating my self-respect and self-possession; but most base and most cruel it is. We all know how our imagination runs away with us, how suddenly and at what a pace;—the saying, "Caesar's wife should not be suspected," is an instance of what I mean. The habitual prejudice, the humour of the moment, is the turning-point which leads us to read a defence in a good sense or a bad. We interpret it by our antecedent impressions. The very same sentiments, according as our jealousy is or is not awake, or our aversion stimulated, are tokens of truth or of dissimulation and pretence. There is a story of a sane person being by mistake shut up in the wards of a lunatic asylum, and that, when he pleaded his cause to some strangers visiting the establishment, the only remark he elicited in answer was, "How naturally he talks! you would think he was in his senses." Controversies should be decided by the reason; is it legitimate warfare to appeal to the misgivings of the public mind and to its dislikings? Anyhow, if Mr. Kingsley is able thus to practise upon my readers, the more I succeed, the less will be my success. If I am natural, he will tell them, "Ars est celare artem;" if I am convincing, he will suggest that I am an able logician; if I show warmth, I am acting the indignant innocent; if I am calm, I am thereby detected as a smooth hypocrite; if I clear up difficulties, I am too plausible and perfect to be true. The more triumphant are my statements, the more certain will be my defeat.
Well, I can only say that if his insult is meant to hurt, I’m just wasting my time responding to his nasty accusations; and this is exactly what he knows and plans for it to accomplish. I can hardly bring myself to object to a way of arguing that's so low and cruel, lest I compromise my self-respect and composure; but it truly is low and cruel. We all know how quickly our imagination can take over, and how fast it can happen;—the saying, "Caesar's wife should not be suspected," illustrates this. The usual bias, the mood of the moment, is what leads us to interpret a defense positively or negatively. We read it through the lens of our previous impressions. The same feelings, depending on whether our jealousy is stirred or our dislike triggered, can be seen as signs of truth or deception. There’s a story about a sane person accidentally locked in a mental hospital, and when he tried to explain himself to some visitors, the only comment he got was, "He talks so naturally! You’d think he was sane." Arguments should be settled by reason; is it fair to play on people's doubts and dislikes? Anyway, if Mr. Kingsley can manipulate my readers this way, the more I succeed, the less successful I’ll actually be. If I seem natural, he’ll tell them, "The art is to hide the art"; if I’m convincing, he’ll suggest I’m good at logic; if I show emotion, I’m just acting like an innocent victim; if I’m calm, I’ll be seen as a smooth hypocrite; if I clear up confusion, then I’m just too perfect and plausible to be real. The more convincing my statements are, the more certain my defeat will be.
So will it be if Mr. Kingsley succeeds in his manœuvre; but I do not for an instant believe that he will. Whatever judgment my readers may eventually form of me from these pages, I am confident that they will believe me in what I shall say in the course of them. I have no misgiving it all, that they will be ungenerous or harsh with a man who has been so long before the eyes of the world; who has so many to speak of him from personal knowledge; whose natural impulse it has ever been to speak out; who has ever spoken too much rather than too little; who would have saved himself many a scrape, if he had been wise enough to hold his tongue; who has ever been fair to the doctrines and arguments of his opponents; who has never slurred over facts and reasonings which told against himself; who has never given his name or authority to proofs which he thought unsound, or to testimony which he did not think at least plausible; who has never shrunk from confessing a fault when he felt that he had committed one; who has ever consulted for others more than for himself; who has given up much that he loved and prized and could have retained, but that he loved honesty better than name, and truth better than dear friends.
If Mr. Kingsley succeeds in his maneuver, it will be as such; but I don’t believe for a second that he will. No matter what judgment my readers make of me from these pages, I’m sure they will trust what I say throughout. I have no doubt that they will be generous and fair toward a man who has been in the public eye for so long; who has many people to vouch for him from personal experience; whose instinct has always been to speak out; who has tended to say too much rather than too little; who could have avoided many problems if he had been smart enough to keep quiet; who has always been fair to the beliefs and arguments of his opponents; who has never glossed over facts and reasoning that went against him; who has never attached his name or authority to evidence he thought was unsound, or to testimonies he didn’t find at least plausible; who has never hesitated to admit a fault when he knew he had made one; who has always looked out for others more than for himself; who has given up much he loved and valued but chose honesty over reputation, and truth over close friends.
And now I am in a train of thought higher and more serene than any which slanders can disturb. Away with you, Mr. Kingsley, and fly into space. Your name shall occur again as little as I can help, in the course of these pages. I shall henceforth occupy myself not with you, but with your charges.
And now I'm in a train of thought that's higher and more peaceful than anything that slander can affect. Go away, Mr. Kingsley, and drift away. I'll mention your name as little as possible in these pages. From now on, I will focus not on you, but on your accusations.
Part II
True Mode of Meeting Mr. Kingsley
What shall be the special imputation, against which I shall throw myself in these pages, out of the thousand and one which my accuser directs upon me? I mean to confine myself to one, for there is only one about which I much care—the charge of untruthfulness. He may cast upon me as many other imputations as he pleases, and they may stick on me, as long as they can, in the course of nature. They will fall to the ground in their season.
What will be the specific accusation that I will address in these pages, out of the countless ones my accuser has thrown at me? I intend to focus on just one, because there's only one that really matters to me—the claim that I’m untruthful. My accuser can hurl as many other accusations as he wants, and they might cling to me for a while, but eventually, they'll all fade away in due time.
And indeed I think the same of the charge of untruthfulness, and I select it from the rest, not because it is more formidable, but because it is more serious. Like the rest, it may disfigure me for a time, but it will not stain: Archbishop Whately used to say, "Throw dirt enough, and some will stick;" well, will stick, but not stain. I think he used to mean "stain," and I do not agree with him. Some dirt sticks longer than other dirt; but no dirt is immortal. According to the old saying, Prævalebit Veritas. There are virtues indeed, which the world is not fitted to judge about or to uphold, such as faith, hope, and charity: but it can judge about truthfulness; it can judge about the natural virtues, and truthfulness is one of them. Natural virtues may also become supernatural; truthfulness is such; but that does not withdraw it from the jurisdiction of mankind at large. It may be more difficult in this or that particular case for men to take cognizance of it, as it may be difficult for the Court of Queen's Bench at Westminster to try a case fairly which took place in Hindoostan; but that is a question of capacity, not of right. Mankind has the right to judge of truthfulness in the case of a Catholic, as in the case of a Protestant, of an Italian, or of a Chinese. I have never doubted, that in my hour, in God's hour, my avenger will appear, and the world will acquit me of untruthfulness, even though it be not while I live.
And I really feel the same way about the accusation of dishonesty, and I mention it specifically, not because it’s scarier, but because it’s more serious. Like the other claims, it might tarnish my reputation temporarily, but it won't leave a lasting mark: Archbishop Whately used to say, "Throw enough dirt, and some will stick;" well, some might stick, but it won't stain. I think he meant "stain," and I don’t agree with him. Some dirt sticks longer than others; but no dirt lasts forever. As the old saying goes, Prævalebit Veritas. There are virtues that the world isn't equipped to judge or support, like faith, hope, and charity: but it can evaluate honesty; it can assess natural virtues, and honesty is one of them. Natural virtues can also become supernatural; honesty is one of those; but that doesn't exempt it from being judged by society at large. It may be more challenging in certain cases for people to understand it, just as it might be hard for the Court of Queen's Bench in Westminster to fairly try a case that happened in India; but that’s about ability, not about rights. People have the right to judge honesty in the case of a Catholic, just as they do for a Protestant, an Italian, or a Chinese person. I've never doubted that, in my time, in God's time, my avenger will come, and the world will clear me of dishonesty, even if it doesn’t happen while I’m alive.
Still more confident am I of such eventual acquittal, seeing that my judges are my own countrymen. I think, indeed, Englishmen the most suspicious and touchy of mankind; I think them unreasonable and unjust in their seasons of excitement; but I had rather be an Englishman (as in fact I am) than belong to any other race under heaven. They are as generous, as they are hasty and burly; and their repentance for their injustice is greater than their sin.
I'm even more confident about being cleared, knowing that my judges are my fellow countrymen. I do think that English people are the most suspicious and sensitive of all; they can be unreasonable and unfair when they get worked up. But I'd still rather be English (which I am) than belong to any other race in the world. They are as generous as they are quick to act and gruff, and their regret for their wrongdoings is greater than the wrongs themselves.
For twenty years and more I have borne an imputation, of which I am at least as sensitive, who am the object of it, as they can be, who are only the judges. I have not set myself to remove it, first, because I never have had an opening to speak, and, next, because I never saw in them the disposition to hear. I have wished to appeal from Philip drunk to Philip sober. When shall I pronounce him to be himself again? If I may judge from the tone of the public press, which represents the public voice, I have great reason to take heart at this time. I have been treated by contemporary critics in this controversy with great fairness and gentleness, and I am grateful to them for it. However, the decision of the time and mode of my defence has been taken out of my hands; and I am thankful that it has been so. I am bound now as a duty to myself, to the Catholic cause, to the Catholic priesthood, to give account of myself without any delay, when I am so rudely and circumstantially charged with untruthfulness. I accept the challenge; I shall do my best to meet it, and I shall be content when I have done so.
For over twenty years, I have faced an accusation that affects me deeply, as the target of it, just as much as it affects those who are merely judging me. I haven’t tried to clear my name because, first, I never had the chance to speak up, and second, I didn’t see any willingness on their part to listen. I’ve wanted to appeal to a more rational version of them. When will I get to say they’re back to being themselves? If I can gauge from the tone of the media, which reflects public opinion, I have good reason to feel optimistic right now. Contemporary critics in this debate have treated me with remarkable fairness and kindness, and I appreciate that. However, the timing and manner of my defense are no longer in my control—and I’m grateful for that. I now feel it is my duty, to myself, to the Catholic cause, and to the Catholic priesthood, to respond promptly when I’m hit with such harsh and detailed accusations of dishonesty. I accept the challenge; I’ll do my best to face it, and I’ll feel accomplished once I’ve addressed it.
I confine myself then, in these pages, to the charge of untruthfulness; and I hereby cart away, as so much rubbish, the impertinences, with which the pamphlet of Accusation swarms. I shall not think it necessary here to examine, whether I am "worked into a pitch of confusion," or have "carried self-deception to perfection," or am "anxious to show my credulity," or am "in a morbid state of mind," or "hunger for nonsense as my food," or "indulge in subtle paradoxes" and "rhetorical exaggerations," or have "eccentricities" or teach in a style "utterly beyond" my accuser's "comprehension," or create in him "blank astonishment," or "exalt the magical powers of my Church," or have "unconsciously committed myself to a statement which strikes at the root of all morality," or "look down on the Protestant gentry as without hope of heaven," or "had better be sent to the furthest" Catholic "mission among the savages of the South seas," than "to teach in an Irish Catholic University," or have "gambled away my reason," or adopt "sophistries," or have published "sophisms piled upon sophisms," or have in my sermons "culminating wonders," or have a "seemingly sceptical method," or have "barristerial ability" and "almost boundless silliness," or "make great mistakes," or am "a subtle dialectician," or perhaps have "lost my temper," or "misquote Scripture," or am "antiscriptural," or "border very closely on the Pelagian heresy."—Pp. 5, 7, 26, 29–34, 37, 38, 41, 43, 44, 48.
I limit myself here to addressing the accusation of dishonesty; and I’m dismissing the nonsense that fills the pamphlet of Accusation as mere rubbish. I won’t delve into whether I am “in a state of confusion,” or have “perfected self-deception,” or am “eager to demonstrate my gullibility,” or am “in a disturbed state of mind,” or “crave nonsense as sustenance,” or “indulge in clever paradoxes” and “rhetorical exaggerations,” or have “eccentricities,” or teach in a manner “completely beyond” my accuser’s “understanding,” or create in him “blank astonishment,” or “elevate the magical powers of my Church,” or have “unconsciously made a statement that threatens the foundation of all morality,” or “look down on the Protestant gentry as hopeless for heaven,” or “would be better off sent to the farthest” Catholic “mission among the savages of the South seas,” than “teaching in an Irish Catholic University,” or have “lost my reason,” or use “sophistries,” or have published “sophisms stacked upon sophisms,” or have in my sermons “culminating wonders,” or use a “seemingly skeptical approach,” or possess “lawyer-like skills” with “almost limitless foolishness,” or “make significant errors,” or am “a clever debater,” or maybe have “lost my cool,” or “misquote Scripture,” or am “against Scripture,” or “come very close to the Pelagian heresy.” —Pp. 5, 7, 26, 29–34, 37, 38, 41, 43, 44, 48.
These all are impertinences; and the list is so long that I am almost sorry to have given them room which might be better used. However, there they are, or at least a portion of them; and having noticed them thus much, I shall notice them no more.
These are all just annoyances; and the list is so long that I'm almost regretful for giving them space that could be used better. Anyway, there they are, or at least part of them; and having pointed them out this much, I won’t mention them again.
Coming then to the subject, which is to furnish the staple of my publication, the question of my truthfulness, I first direct attention to the passage which the Act of Accusation contains at p. 8 and p. 42. I shall give my reason presently, why I begin with it.
Coming to the main topic, which is the core of my publication, the question of my honesty, I first want to point out the section in the Act of Accusation found on p. 8 and p. 42. I'll explain shortly why I start with this.
My accuser is speaking of my sermon on Wisdom and Innocence, and he says, "It must be remembered always that it is not a Protestant, but a Romish sermon."—P. 8.
My accuser is talking about my sermon on Wisdom and Innocence, and he says, "It must be remembered always that it is not a Protestant, but a Catholic sermon."—P. 8.
Then at p. 42 he continues, "Dr. Newman does not apply to it that epithet. He called it in his letter to me of the 7th of January (published by him) a 'Protestant' one. I remarked that, but considered it a mere slip of the pen. Besides, I have now nothing to say to that letter. It is to his 'Reflections,' in p. 32, which are open ground to me, that I refer. In them he deliberately repeats the epithet 'Protestant:' only he, in an utterly imaginary conversation, puts it into my mouth, 'which you preached when a Protestant.' I call the man who preached that Sermon a Protestant? I should have sooner called him a Buddhist. At that very time he was teaching his disciples to scorn and repudiate that name of Protestant, under which, for some reason or other, he now finds it convenient to take shelter. If he forgets, the world does not, the famous article in the British Critic (the then organ of his party), of three years before, July 1841, which, after denouncing the name of Protestant, declared the object of the party to be none other than the 'unprotestantising' the English Church."
Then on p. 42 he goes on, "Dr. Newman doesn’t use that term. He referred to it in his letter to me on January 7 (which he published) as a 'Protestant' one. I noted that, but thought it was just a simple mistake. Besides, I have nothing more to say about that letter. It's to his 'Reflections,' on p. 32, which I can address, that I direct my attention. In those, he intentionally repeats the term 'Protestant:' only he, in a completely fictional conversation, puts it in my mouth, saying, 'which you preached when a Protestant.' Do I call the man who preached that sermon a Protestant? I would sooner call him a Buddhist. At that very time he was teaching his disciples to despise and reject that title of Protestant, under which, for some reason, he now finds it convenient to take refuge. If he forgets, the world does not, the famous article in the British Critic (the official publication of his party) from three years earlier, July 1841, which, after condemning the name Protestant, stated that the goal of the party was none other than the 'unprotestantising' of the English Church."
In this passage my accuser asserts or implies, 1, that the sermon, on which he originally grounded his slander against me in the January No. of the magazine, was really and in matter of fact a "Romish" Sermon; 2, that I ought in my pamphlet to have acknowledged this fact; 3, that I didn't. 4, That I actually called it instead a Protestant Sermon. 5, That at the time when I published it, twenty years ago, I should have denied that it was a Protestant sermon. 6, By consequence, I should in that denial have avowed that it was a "Romish" Sermon; 7, and therefore, not only, when I was in the Established Church, was I guilty of the dishonesty of preaching what at the time I knew to be a "Romish" Sermon, but now too, in 1864, I have committed the additional dishonesty of calling it a Protestant sermon. If my accuser does not mean this, I submit to such reparation as I owe him for my mistake, but I cannot make out that he means anything else.
In this passage, my accuser claims or suggests: 1, that the sermon, which he originally based his slander against me on in the January issue of the magazine, was actually a "Romish" sermon; 2, that I should have acknowledged this in my pamphlet; 3, that I didn’t. 4, That I instead referred to it as a Protestant sermon. 5, That when I published it twenty years ago, I should have said it wasn’t a Protestant sermon. 6, Consequently, I would have had to admit in that denial that it was a "Romish" sermon; 7, and therefore, not only was I dishonest in preaching what I knew at the time to be a "Romish" sermon when I was in the Established Church, but now in 1864, I’ve committed the further dishonesty of calling it a Protestant sermon. If my accuser doesn’t mean this, I’ll accept whatever reparation I owe him for my misunderstanding, but I can't find evidence that he means anything else.
Here are two main points to be considered; 1, I in 1864 have called it a Protestant Sermon. 2, He in 1844 and now has styled it a Popish Sermon. Let me take these two points separately.
Here are two main points to consider: 1, I called it a Protestant Sermon in 1864. 2, He referred to it as a Popish Sermon in 1844 and still does now. Let me address these two points separately.
1. Certainly, when I was in the English Church, I did disown the word "Protestant," and that, even at an earlier date than my accuser names; but just let us see whether this fact is anything at all to the purpose of his accusation. Last January 7th I spoke to this effect: "How can you prove that Father Newman informs us of a certain thing about the Roman Clergy," by referring to a Protestant sermon of the Vicar of St. Mary's? My accuser answers me thus: "There's a quibble! why, Protestant is not the word which you would have used when at St. Mary's, and yet you use it now!" Very true; I do; but what on earth does this matter to my argument? how does this word "Protestant," which I used, tend in any degree to make my argument a quibble? What word should I have used twenty years ago instead of "Protestant?" "Roman" or "Romish?" by no manner of means.
1. Certainly, when I was in the English Church, I did reject the term "Protestant," and even earlier than my accuser claims; but let’s see if this fact really matters to his accusation. Last January 7th I said: "How can you prove that Father Newman tells us something about the Roman Clergy by referring to a Protestant sermon by the Vicar of St. Mary's?" My accuser responds: "That's a tricky argument! The term Protestant is not what you would have used when at St. Mary's, yet you use it now!" That's true; I do; but why does this even matter to my argument? How does using the word "Protestant" undermine my point? What word should I have used twenty years ago instead of "Protestant?" "Roman" or "Romish?" Not at all.
My accuser indeed says that "it must always be remembered that it is not a Protestant but a Romish sermon." He implies, and, I suppose, he thinks, that not to be a Protestant is to be a Roman; he may say so, if he pleases, but so did not say that large body who have been called by the name of Tractarians, as all the world knows. The movement proceeded on the very basis of denying that position which my accuser takes for granted that I allowed. It ever said, and it says now, that there is something between Protestant and Romish; that there is a "Via Media" which is neither the one nor the other. Had I been asked twenty years ago, what the doctrine of the Established Church was, I should have answered, "Neither Romish nor Protestant, but 'Anglican' or 'Anglo-catholic.'" I should never have granted that the sermon was Romish; I should have denied, and that with an internal denial, quite as much as I do now, that it was a Roman or Romish sermon. Well then, substitute the word "Anglican" or "Anglo-catholic" for "Protestant" in my question, and see if the argument is a bit the worse for it—thus: "How can you prove that Father Newman informs us a certain thing about the Roman Clergy, by referring to an Anglican or Anglo-catholic Sermon of the Vicar of St. Mary's?" The cogency of the argument remains just where it was. What have I gained in the argument, what has he lost, by my having said, not "an Anglican Sermon," but "a Protestant Sermon?" What dust then is he throwing into our eyes!
My accuser claims that "we must always remember that it is not a Protestant but a Romish sermon." He suggests that not being Protestant means being Roman; he can say that if he wants, but that's not how the large group known as the Tractarians viewed it, as everyone knows. The movement was based on rejecting the assumption my accuser takes for granted that I accepted. It always stated, and still says, that there's something between Protestant and Romish; there's a "Via Media" that is neither one nor the other. If you had asked me twenty years ago what the doctrine of the Established Church was, I would have said, "Neither Romish nor Protestant, but 'Anglican' or 'Anglo-catholic.'" I would never have agreed that the sermon was Romish; I would have denied, just as strongly as I do now, that it was a Roman or Romish sermon. So, replace the word "Protestant" with "Anglican" or "Anglo-catholic" in my question, and see if the argument is affected at all—like this: "How can you prove that Father Newman tells us something about the Roman Clergy by referring to an Anglican or Anglo-catholic Sermon of the Vicar of St. Mary's?" The strength of the argument stays exactly the same. What have I gained in the argument, and what has he lost, by saying "not 'an Anglican Sermon,' but 'a Protestant Sermon?'" What nonsense is he trying to throw in our faces!
For instance: in 1844 I lived at Littlemore; two or three miles distant from Oxford; and Littlemore lies in three, perhaps in four, distinct parishes, so that of particular houses it is difficult to say, whether they are in St. Mary's, Oxford, or in Cowley, or in Iffley, or in Sandford, the line of demarcation running even through them. Now, supposing I were to say in 1864, that "twenty years ago I did not live in Oxford, because I lived out at Littlemore, in the parish of Cowley;" and if upon this there were letters of mine produced dated Littlemore, 1844, in one of which I said that "I lived, not in Cowley, but at Littlemore, in St. Mary's parish," how would that prove that I contradicted myself, and that therefore after all I must be supposed to have been living in Oxford in 1844? The utmost that would be proved by the discrepancy, such as it was, would be, that there was some confusion either in me, or in the state of the fact as to the limits of the parishes. There would be no confusion about the place or spot of my residence. I should be saying in 1864, "I did not live in Oxford twenty years ago, because I lived at Littlemore in the Parish of Cowley." I should have been saying in 1844, "I do not live in Oxford, because I live in St. Mary's, Littlemore." In either case I should be saying that my habitat in 1844 was not Oxford, but Littlemore; and I should be giving the same reason for it. I should be proving an alibi. I should be naming the same place for the alibi; but twenty years ago I should have spoken of it as St. Mary's, Littlemore, and to-day I should have spoken of it as Littlemore in the Parish of Cowley.
For example, in 1844 I lived in Littlemore, which is two or three miles from Oxford. Littlemore is actually located in three, possibly four, different parishes, making it hard to determine if specific houses are in St. Mary's, Oxford, Cowley, Iffley, or Sandford since the boundaries even run through them. Now, if I were to say in 1864 that "twenty years ago I did not live in Oxford because I lived out in Littlemore, in the parish of Cowley," and if letters of mine from 1844 dated from Littlemore were presented, in which I claimed that "I lived, not in Cowley, but at Littlemore, in St. Mary's parish," how would that show that I contradicted myself and thus must be assumed to have been living in Oxford in 1844? The most that would be demonstrated by this inconsistency, as it was, would be that there was some confusion either in me or regarding the actual boundaries of the parishes. There would be no confusion about the exact place where I lived. I would be stating in 1864, "I did not live in Oxford twenty years ago because I lived in Littlemore in the Parish of Cowley." I would have said in 1844, "I do not live in Oxford, because I live in St. Mary's, Littlemore." In both instances, I would be making it clear that my residence in 1844 was not Oxford, but Littlemore; and I would be providing the same reasoning. I would be establishing an alibi. I would mention the same place for the alibi; but twenty years ago, I would have referred to it as St. Mary's, Littlemore, and today, I would refer to it as Littlemore in the Parish of Cowley.
And so as to my Sermon; in January, 1864, I called it a Protestant sermon, and not a Roman; but in 1844 I should, if asked, have called it an Anglican sermon, and not a Roman. In both cases I should have denied that it was Roman, and that on the ground of its being something else; though I should have called that something else, then by one name, now by another. The doctrine of the Via Media is a fact, whatever name we give to it; I, as a Roman Priest, find it more natural and usual to call it Protestant: I, as all Oxford Vicar, thought it more exact to call it Anglican; but, whatever I then called it, and whatever I now call it, I mean one and the same object by my name, and therefore not another object—viz. not the Roman Church. The argument, I repeat, is sound, whether the Via Media and the Vicar of St. Mary's be called Anglican or Protestant.
And so, regarding my sermon; in January 1864, I referred to it as a Protestant sermon, not a Roman one; but back in 1844, I would have called it an Anglican sermon, not a Roman one. In both cases, I would have denied that it was Roman, based on the fact that it was something else; although I would have referred to that something else by one name then and another now. The doctrine of the Via Media is a fact, no matter what name we use for it; I, as a Roman Priest, find it more common and straightforward to call it Protestant: I, as an Oxford Vicar, thought it more precise to call it Anglican; but regardless of what I called it then and what I call it now, I mean the same concept with my name, and therefore it is not another concept—specifically, not the Roman Church. I repeat, the argument is valid, whether the Via Media and the Vicar of St. Mary’s are called Anglican or Protestant.
This is a specimen of what my accuser means by my "economies;" nay, it is actually one of those special two, three, or four, committed after February 1, which he thinks sufficient to connect me with the shifty casuists and the double-dealing moralists, as he considers them, of the Catholic Church. What a "Much ado about nothing!"
This is an example of what my accuser refers to as my "economies;" in fact, it’s really one of those specific two, three, or four actions taken after February 1, which he believes is enough to link me with the cunning rationalizers and the deceitful moralists, as he sees them, of the Catholic Church. What a "Much ado about nothing!"
2. But, whether or not he can prove that I in 1864 have committed any logical fault in calling my Sermon on Wisdom and Innocence a Protestant Sermon, he is and has been all along, most firm in the belief himself that a Romish sermon it is; and this is the point on which I wish specially to insist. It is for this cause that I made the above extract from his pamphlet, not merely in order to answer him, though, when I had made it, I could not pass by the attack on me which it contains. I shall notice his charges one by one by and by; but I have made this extract here in order to insist and to dwell on this phenomenon—viz. that he does consider it an undeniable fact, that the sermon is "Romish,"—meaning by "Romish" not "savouring of Romish doctrine" merely, but "the work of a real Romanist, of a conscious Romanist." This belief it is which leads him to be so severe on me, for now calling it "Protestant." He thinks that, whether I have committed any logical self-contradiction or not, I am very well aware that, when I wrote it, I ought to have been elsewhere, that I was a conscious Romanist, teaching Romanism;—or if he does not believe this himself, he wishes others to think so, which comes to the same thing; certainly I prefer to consider that he thinks so himself, but, if he likes the other hypothesis better, he is welcome to it.
2. But whether or not he can prove that I made any logical mistake in calling my Sermon on Wisdom and Innocence a Protestant Sermon in 1864, he firmly believes that it’s a Roman Catholic sermon; and this is the point I want to emphasize. This is why I included the extract from his pamphlet—not just to respond to him, although I couldn’t overlook the attack on me that it contains. I will address his accusations one by one later; however, I included this extract here to highlight and focus on this phenomenon—namely, that he considers it an undeniable fact that the sermon is "Roman Catholic," meaning by "Roman Catholic" not just "having elements of Roman Catholic doctrine," but "the work of a real Roman Catholic, a conscious Roman Catholic." This belief is what drives him to be so harsh about me calling it "Protestant." He thinks that, regardless of whether I’ve made any logical contradictions, I’m fully aware that when I wrote it, I should have been somewhere else, that I was a conscious Roman Catholic teaching Roman Catholicism;—or if he doesn't believe this himself, he wants others to think so, which amounts to the same thing. I certainly prefer to think that he believes it himself, but if he prefers the other idea, he can have it.
He believes then so firmly that the sermon was a "Romish Sermon," that he pointedly takes it for granted, before he has adduced a syllable of proof of the matter of fact. He starts by saying that it is a fact to be "remembered." "It must be remembered always," he says, "that it is not a Protestant, but a Romish Sermon," (p. 8). Its Romish parentage is a great truth for the memory, not a thesis for inquiry. Merely to refer his readers to the sermon is, he considers, to secure them on his side. Hence it is that, in his letter of January 18, he said to me, "It seems to me, that, by referring publicly to the Sermon on which my allegations are founded, I have given every one an opportunity of judging of their injustice," that is, an opportunity of seeing that they are transparently just. The notion of there being a Via Media, held all along by a large party in the Anglican Church, and now at least not less than at any former time, is too subtle for his intellect. Accordingly, he thinks it was an allowable figure of speech—not more, I suppose, than an "hyperbole"—when referring to a sermon of the Vicar of St. Mary's in the magazine, to say that it was the writing of a Roman priest; and as to serious arguments to prove the point, why, they may indeed be necessary, as a matter of form, in an act of accusation, such as his pamphlet, but they are superfluous to the good sense of any one who will only just look into the matter himself.
He believes so strongly that the sermon was a "Catholic Sermon" that he assumes it without providing any evidence. He starts by stating that it's a fact to be "remembered." "It must be remembered always," he says, "that it is not a Protestant, but a Catholic Sermon," (p. 8). Its Catholic origins are something important to remember, not something to question. Simply mentioning the sermon is, he believes, enough to win his readers over. That's why, in his letter dated January 18, he told me, "It seems to me that by publicly referring to the Sermon on which my claims are based, I have given everyone an opportunity to judge their injustice," meaning, an opportunity to see that they are clearly just. The idea of a "Via Media," which has been held by a large group within the Anglican Church and is still relevant today, is too complex for him to grasp. Therefore, he thinks it was just a permissible figure of speech—no more than an "exaggeration"—when he referred to a sermon by the Vicar of St. Mary's in the magazine as the work of a Roman priest. As for serious arguments to support his claim, he acknowledges they might be needed as a formality in an accusation like his pamphlet, but to anyone who takes the time to really look into it, they are unnecessary.
Now, with respect to the so-called arguments which he ventures to put forward in proof that the sermon is Romish, I shall answer them, together with all his other arguments, in the latter portion of this reply; here I do but draw the attention of the reader, as I have said already, to the phenomenon itself, which he exhibits, of an unclouded confidence that the sermon is the writing of a virtual member of the Roman communion, and I do so because it has made a great impression on my own mind, and has suggested to me the course that I shall pursue in my answer to him.
Now, regarding the arguments he attempts to present as proof that the sermon is Catholic, I will address them, along with all his other points, later in my response. For now, I just want to highlight the striking confidence he shows in believing that the sermon is from someone who is effectively part of the Roman Church. This observation has left a strong impression on me and has influenced how I will respond to him.
I say, he takes it for granted that the Sermon is the writing of a virtual or actual, of a conscious Roman Catholic; and is impatient at the very notion of having to prove it. Father Newman and the Vicar of St. Mary's are one and the same: there has been no change of mind in him; what he believed then he believes now, and what he believes now he believed then. To dispute this is frivolous; to distinguish between his past self and his present is subtlety, and to ask for proof of their identity is seeking opportunity to be sophistical. This writer really thinks that he acts a straightforward honest part, when he says "A Catholic Priest informs us in his Sermon on Wisdom and Innocence preached at St. Mary's," and he thinks that I am the shuffler and quibbler when I forbid him to do so. So singular a phenomenon in a man of undoubted ability has struck me forcibly, and I shall pursue the train of thought which it opens.
I say he assumes that the Sermon is written by a virtual or actual, conscious Roman Catholic, and he’s frustrated by the idea of having to prove it. Father Newman and the Vicar of St. Mary's are the same person: he hasn’t changed his mind; what he believed then, he believes now, and what he believes now, he believed then. Disputing this is pointless; distinguishing between his past and present self is overly complex, and asking for proof of their identity is just looking for a chance to be deceptive. This writer genuinely thinks he's being straightforward and honest when he says, "A Catholic Priest informs us in his Sermon on Wisdom and Innocence preached at St. Mary's," and he believes I'm the one being evasive and argumentative when I tell him not to do that. Such a rare attitude in a man of clear ability has struck me deeply, and I want to explore the implications it raises.
It is not he alone who entertains, and has entertained, such an opinion of me and my writings. It is the impression of large classes of men; the impression twenty years ago and the impression now. There has been a general feeling that I was for years where I had no right to be; that I was a "Romanist" in Protestant livery and service; that I was doing the work of a hostile church in the bosom of the English Establishment, and knew it, or ought to have known it. There was no need of arguing about particular passages in my writings, when the fact was so patent, as men thought it to be.
It's not just him who has had this opinion about me and my work. It's a feeling shared by many people; the same feeling that existed twenty years ago still persists today. There has been a widespread belief that I spent years in a place where I didn’t belong; that I was a "Romanist" disguised in Protestant clothing and serving that cause; that I was doing the work of a competing church within the English Establishment and either knew it or should have known it. There was no need to debate specific sections of my writings when the truth seemed so obvious to people.
First it was certain, and I could not myself deny it, that I scouted the name "Protestant." It was certain again, that many of the doctrines which I professed were popularly and generally known as badges of the Roman Church, as distinguished from the faith of the Reformation. Next, how could I have come by them? Evidently, I had certain friends and advisers who did not appear; there was some underground communication between Stonyhurst or Oscott and my rooms at Oriel. Beyond a doubt, I was advocating certain doctrines, not by accident, but on an understanding with ecclesiastics of the old religion. Then men went further, and said that I had actually been received into that religion, and withal had leave given me to profess myself a Protestant still. Others went even further, and gave it out to the world, as a matter of fact, of which they themselves had the proof in their hands, that I was actually a Jesuit. And when the opinions which I advocated spread, and younger men went further than I, the feeling against me waxed stronger and took a wider range.
At first, it was clear, and I couldn’t deny it myself, that I was uncomfortable with the label "Protestant." It was also clear that many of the beliefs I held were widely viewed as characteristics of the Roman Church, contrasting with the principles of the Reformation. Then, how did I come to hold those beliefs? Clearly, I had certain friends and advisors who didn’t show themselves; there seemed to be some secret communication between Stonyhurst or Oscott and my rooms at Oriel. Without a doubt, I was promoting certain beliefs, not by chance, but as part of an agreement with figures from the old religion. Then people went further, claiming that I had actually been accepted into that religion, and was even allowed to identify as a Protestant still. Others went even further, declaring to the world, claim to have evidence in their hands, that I was actually a Jesuit. As the viewpoints I supported gained traction, and younger people took them even further than I had, the backlash against me grew stronger and spread wider.
And now indignation arose at the knavery of a conspiracy such as this:—and it became of course all the greater, in consequence of its being the received belief of the public at large, that craft and intrigue, such as they fancied they beheld with their own eyes, were the very instruments to which the Catholic Church has in these last centuries been indebted for her maintenance and extension.
And now anger grew over the deceit of a conspiracy like this:—and it naturally intensified because the general public believed that the cunning and schemes they thought they saw were exactly the tactics that the Catholic Church had relied on for its survival and growth over the past few centuries.
There was another circumstance still, which increased the irritation and aversion felt by the large classes, of whom I have been speaking, as regards the preachers of doctrines, so new to them and so unpalatable; and that was, that they developed them in so measured a way. If they were inspired by Roman theologians (and this was taken for granted), why did they not speak out at once? Why did they keep the world in such suspense and anxiety as to what was coming next, and what was to be the upshot of the whole? Why this reticence, and half-speaking, and apparent indecision? It was plain that the plan of operations had been carefully mapped out from the first, and that these men were cautiously advancing towards its accomplishment, as far as was safe at the moment; that their aim and their hope was to carry off a large body with them of the young and the ignorant; that they meant gradually to leaven the minds of the rising generation, and to open the gate of that city, of which they were the sworn defenders, to the enemy who lay in ambush outside of it. And when in spite of the many protestations of the party to the contrary, there was at length an actual movement among their disciples, and one went over to Rome, and then another, the worst anticipations and the worst judgments which had been formed of them received their justification. And, lastly, when men first had said of me, "You will see, he will go, he is only biding his time, he is waiting the word of command from Rome," and, when after all, after my arguments and denunciations of former years, at length I did leave the Anglican Church for the Roman, then they said to each other, "It is just as we said: I told you so."
There was another factor that fueled the frustration and dislike felt by the large groups I've been talking about toward the preachers of ideas that were new and unpleasant to them; that was how carefully they expressed these ideas. If they were influenced by Roman theologians (which was assumed), why didn’t they just be straightforward? Why keep everyone on edge and anxious about what would happen next and what the outcome would be? Why this secrecy, this vague speech, and apparent uncertainty? It was clear that the strategy had been carefully planned from the start, and these men were cautiously moving toward their goal as much as it was safe at the time; their aim and hope were to take a significant number of the young and uninformed with them; they intended to gradually influence the minds of the younger generation and to open the gates of that city, which they were sworn to defend, to the enemy lurking just outside. And when despite the numerous claims from their side to the contrary, a movement among their followers finally occurred, and one person switched to Rome and then another, the worst fears and judgments that people had about them were validated. Finally, when people first said about me, "You'll see, he will go, he’s just waiting for the right moment, waiting for the command from Rome," and then after all my arguments and criticisms from previous years, I finally did leave the Anglican Church for the Roman one, they turned to each other and said, "It’s just as we said: I told you so."
This was the state of mind of masses of men twenty years ago, who took no more than an external and common-sense view of what was going on. And partly the tradition, partly the effect of that feeling, remains to the present time. Certainly I consider that, in my own case, it is the great obstacle in the way of my being favourably heard, as at present, when I have to make my defence. Not only am I now a member of a most un-English communion, whose great aim is considered to be the extinction of Protestantism and the Protestant Church, and whose means of attack are popularly supposed to be unscrupulous cunning and deceit, but besides, how came I originally to have any relations with the Church of Rome at all? did I, or my opinions, drop from the sky? how came I, in Oxford, in gremio Universitatis, to present myself to the eyes of men in that full-blown investiture of Popery? How could I dare, how could I have the conscience, with warnings, with prophecies, with accusations against me, to persevere in a path which steadily advanced towards, which ended in, the religion of Rome? And how am I now to be trusted, when long ago I was trusted, and was found wanting?
This was the mindset of many people twenty years ago, who only took a straightforward, common-sense view of what was happening. Some of that tradition and feeling still lingers today. I believe that, for me personally, it is a significant barrier to being heard positively when I need to defend myself. Not only am I now part of a very un-English faith, whose main goal is seen as the eradication of Protestantism and the Protestant Church, and whose methods are thought to be ruthless and deceitful, but also, how did I ever have any ties to the Church of Rome to begin with? Did I, or my beliefs, just appear out of nowhere? How did I, at Oxford, in gremio Universitatis, end up presenting myself to others in that clear display of Catholicism? How could I dare, how could I have the nerve, despite warnings, prophecies, and accusations against me, to continue on a path that clearly led to the religion of Rome? And how can I be trusted now, when I was once trusted and fell short?
It is this which is the strength of the case of my accuser against me;—not his arguments in themselves, which I shall easily crumble into dust, but the bias of the court. It is the state of the atmosphere; it is the vibration all around which will more or less echo his assertion of my dishonesty; it is that prepossession against me, which takes it for granted that, when my reasoning is convincing it is only ingenious, and that when my statements are unanswerable, there is always something put out of sight or hidden in my sleeve; it is that plausible, but cruel conclusion to which men are so apt to jump, that when much is imputed, something must be true, and that it is more likely that one should be to blame, than that many should be mistaken in blaming him;—these are the real foes which I have to fight, and the auxiliaries to whom my accuser makes his court.
This is the real strength of my accuser's case against me—not his arguments, which I can easily dismantle, but the bias of the court. It’s the general atmosphere around us; it’s the prevailing vibe that tends to support his claim of my dishonesty. There's a prejudice against me that assumes if my reasoning is sound, it’s only clever manipulation, and if my arguments can't be countered, there must be something hidden or deceptive at play. It’s that reasonable, yet harsh, conclusion people quickly reach: that if a lot is accused, some of it must be true, and it’s more likely for one person to be at fault than for many to be wrong in blaming them. These are the real adversaries I must confront, alongside the allies my accuser is courting.
Well, I must break through this barrier of prejudice against me, if I can; and I think I shall be able to do so. When first I read the pamphlet of Accusation, I almost despaired of meeting effectively such a heap of misrepresentation and such a vehemence of animosity. What was the good of answering first one point, and then another, and going through the whole circle of its abuse; when my answer to the first point would be forgotten, as soon as I got to the second? What was the use of bringing out half a hundred separate principles or views for the refutation of the separate counts in the indictment, when rejoinders of this sort would but confuse and torment the reader by their number and their diversity? What hope was there of condensing into a pamphlet of a readable length, matter which ought freely to expand itself into half a dozen volumes? What means was there, except the expenditure of interminable pages, to set right even one of that series of "single passing hints," to use my assailant's own language, which, "as with his finger tip, he had delivered" against me?
Well, I need to push past this prejudice against me, if I can; and I think I’ll be able to. When I first read the pamphlet of Accusation, I almost lost hope in dealing with such a mountain of misrepresentation and such intense hostility. What was the point of addressing one issue after another and going through the whole list of attacks, when my response to the first issue would be forgotten by the time I got to the second? What good would it do to pull together a bunch of separate principles or views to refute each specific claim in the indictment, when those kinds of replies would just confuse and frustrate the reader because of their quantity and variety? What hope did I have of condensing into a readable pamphlet material that should really be expanded into several volumes? What other way was there, except by writing endless pages, to clarify even one of those “single passing hints,” as my attacker called them, which he had “delivered” against me with just a flick of his finger?
All those separate charges of his had their force in being illustrations of one and the same great imputation. He had a positive idea to illuminate his whole matter, and to stamp it with a form, and to quicken it with an interpretation. He called me a liar—a simple, a broad, an intelligible, to the English public a plausible arraignment; but for me, to answer in detail charge one by reason one, and charge two by reason two, and charge three by reason three, and so to proceed through the whole string both of accusations and replies, each of which was to be independent of the rest, this would be certainly labour lost as regards any effective result. What I needed was a corresponding antagonist unity in my defence, and where was that to be found? We see, in the case of commentators on the prophecies of Scripture, an exemplification of the principle on which I am insisting; viz. how much more powerful even a false interpretation of the sacred text is than none at all;—how a certain key to the visions of the Apocalypse, for instance, may cling to the mind—(I have found it so in my own case)—mainly because they are positive and objective, in spite of the fullest demonstration that they really have no claim upon our belief. The reader says, "What else can the prophecy mean?" just as my accuser asks, "What, then, does Dr. Newman mean?" ... I reflected, and I saw a way out of my perplexity.
All those separate accusations against him were just examples of one big charge. He had a clear idea to clarify his whole situation, give it some shape, and energize it with an explanation. He called me a liar—a straightforward, easy-to-understand, and believable allegation to the English public; but for me, to respond to each accusation one by one—first charge with reason one, second charge with reason two, and so on through the entire list of accusations and responses, each being separate from the others—would definitely be a wasted effort in terms of getting any real results. What I needed was a unified defense against my opponent, and where could I find that? We can see, in how people interpret biblical prophecies, an example of the principle I'm talking about; that is, how much more influential even a wrong interpretation of the sacred text is than having no interpretation at all. For instance, a certain way of understanding the visions of the Apocalypse can stick in your mind—(I know it does for me)—mainly because it's definite and concrete, even when it’s fully proven to hold no truth. The reader thinks, "What else could the prophecy mean?" just like my accuser asks, "So, what does Dr. Newman mean?" ... I thought about it, and I found a way to get out of my confusion.
Yes, I said to myself, his very question is about my meaning; "What does Dr. Newman mean?" It pointed in the very same direction as that into which my musings had turned me already. He asks what I mean; not about my words, not about my arguments, not about my actions, as his ultimate point, but about that living intelligence, by which I write, and argue, and act. He asks about my mind and its beliefs and its sentiments; and he shall be answered;—not for his own sake, but for mine, for the sake of the religion which I profess, and of the priesthood in which I am unworthily included, and of my friends and of my foes, and of that general public which consists of neither one nor the other, but of well-wishers, lovers of fair play, sceptical cross-questioners, interested inquirers, curious lookers-on, and simple strangers, unconcerned yet not careless about the issue.
Yes, I said to myself, his question is about my meaning; "What does Dr. Newman mean?" It pointed in the same direction my thoughts had already taken me. He asks what I mean; not about my words, not about my arguments, not about my actions, which is his main point, but about the living intelligence behind my writing, arguing, and acting. He’s asking about my mind, its beliefs, and its feelings; and he will get an answer—not for his sake, but for mine, for the sake of the religion I practice, the priesthood I’m unworthily a part of, my friends and foes, and for that general public that isn’t one or the other, but includes well-wishers, lovers of fair play, skeptical questioners, interested inquirers, curious bystanders, and simple strangers, who are concerned yet not indifferent about the outcome.
My perplexity did not last half an hour. I recognised what I had to do, though I shrank from both the task and the exposure which it would entail. I must, I said, give the true key to my whole life; I must show what I am that it may be seen what I am not, and that the phantom may be extinguished which gibbers instead of me. I wish to be known as a living man, and not as a scarecrow which is dressed up in my clothes. False ideas may be refuted indeed by argument, but by true ideas alone are they expelled. I will vanquish, not my accuser, but my judges. I will indeed answer his charges and criticisms on me one by one, lest any one should say that they are unanswerable, but such a work shall not be the scope nor the substance of my reply. I will draw out, as far as may be, the history of my mind; I will state the point at which I began, in what external suggestion or accident each opinion had its rise, how far and how they were developed from within, how they grew, were modified, were combined, were in collision with each other, and were changed; again how I conducted myself towards them, and how, and how far, and for how long a time, I thought I could hold them consistently with the ecclesiastical engagements which I had made and with the position which I filled. I must show—what is the very truth—that the doctrines which I held, and have held for so many years, have been taught me (speaking humanly) partly by the suggestions of Protestant friends, partly by the teaching of books, and partly by the action of my own mind: and thus I shall account for that phenomenon which to so many seems so wonderful, that I should have left "my kindred and my father's house" for a Church from which once I turned away with dread;—so wonderful to them! as if forsooth a religion which has flourished through so many ages, among so many nations, amid such varieties of social life, in such contrary classes and conditions of men, and after so many revolutions, political and civil, could not subdue the reason and overcome the heart, without the aid of fraud and the sophistries of the schools.
My confusion didn't last long. I realized what I needed to do, even though I was hesitant about both the task and the exposure it would bring. I must, I told myself, reveal the true essence of my life; I need to show who I am so that it’s clear who I’m not, and I want to put an end to the false image that speaks in my place. I want to be recognized as a real person, not a dummy dressed in my clothes. False ideas can be challenged with arguments, but only true ideas can dispel them. I will confront not my accuser, but my judges. I will respond to his accusations and critiques one by one, so no one can claim they’re unanswerable, but that won’t be the focus or purpose of my response. I will outline the journey of my thoughts; I will explain where I started, what external influences or events shaped each opinion, how far they developed from within, how they grew, changed, collided, and evolved; I will describe how I engaged with these ideas, and how, for how long, I thought I could hold them in line with the commitments I made and the position I held. I must show the straightforward truth—that the beliefs I’ve held for so many years have been shaped (from a human perspective) partly by suggestions from Protestant friends, partly by what I learned from books, and partly by my own reasoning: and through this, I’ll clarify the phenomenon that seems so astonishing to many, that I left "my kin and my father's house" for a Church I once feared;—so surprising to them! as if a faith that has thrived for so many ages, among so many people, across such diverse social contexts, in such differing classes and conditions, after so many political and civil upheavals, wouldn’t have the power to touch reason and win hearts without resorting to trickery or academic arguments.
What I had proposed to myself in the course of half an hour, I determined on at the end of ten days. However, I have many difficulties in fulfilling my design. How am I to say all that has to be said in a reasonable compass? And then as to the materials of my narrative; I have no autobiographical notes to consult, no written explanations of particular treatises or of tracts which at the time gave offence, hardly any minutes of definite transactions or conversations, and few contemporary memoranda, I fear, of the feelings or motives under which from time to time I acted. I have an abundance of letters from friends with some copies or drafts of my answers to them, but they are for the most part unsorted, and, till this process has taken place, they are even too numerous and various to be available at a moment for my purpose. Then, as to the volumes which I have published, they would in many ways serve me, were I well up in them; but though I took great pains in their composition, I have thought little about them, when they were at length out of my hands, and, for the most part, the last time I read them has been when I revised their proof sheets.
What I decided for myself in half an hour became clear to me after ten days. However, I'm facing many challenges in making it happen. How can I say everything that needs to be said in a reasonable amount of space? And then there's the problem of my narrative materials; I don't have any autobiographical notes to refer to, no written explanations of specific treatises or pieces that offended people at the time, barely any records of specific events or conversations, and very few contemporary notes on the feelings or motivations behind my actions at various points. I do have a lot of letters from friends and some drafts of my responses to them, but they're mostly unorganized, and until I sort them out, there are too many and too varied to be useful right now. As for the books I've published, they could be helpful in many ways if I were more familiar with them. But even though I worked hard on them, I didn't think much about them after they were finally out of my hands, and for the most part, the last time I read them was when I reviewed the proof sheets.
Under these circumstances my sketch will of course be incomplete. I now for the first time contemplate my course as a whole; it is a first essay, but it will contain, I trust, no serious or substantial mistake, and so far will answer the purpose for which I write it. I purpose to set nothing down in it as certain, for which I have not a clear memory, or some written memorial, or the corroboration of some friend. There are witnesses enough up and down the country to verify, or correct, or complete it; and letters moreover of my own in abundance, unless they have been destroyed.
Given these circumstances, my outline will obviously be incomplete. For the first time, I’m considering my approach as a whole; this is a first attempt, but I hope it won’t contain any serious mistakes and that it will serve the purpose for which I’m writing it. I intend to state nothing as certain unless I have a clear memory of it, some written record, or the support of a friend. There are plenty of witnesses throughout the country who can verify, correct, or add to it; plus, I have many letters of my own, unless they have been destroyed.
Moreover, I mean to be simply personal and historical: I am not expounding Catholic doctrine, I am doing no more than explaining myself, and my opinions and actions. I wish, as far as I am able, simply to state facts, whether they are ultimately determined to be for me or against me. Of course there will be room enough for contrariety of judgment among my readers, as to the necessity, or appositeness, or value, or good taste, or religious prudence of the details which I shall introduce. I may be accused of laying stress on little things, of being beside the mark, of going into impertinent or ridiculous details, of sounding my own praise, of giving scandal; but this is a case above all others, in which I am bound to follow my own lights and to speak out my own heart. It is not at all pleasant for me to be egotistical; nor to be criticised for being so. It is not pleasant to reveal to high and low, young and old, what has gone on within me from my early years. It is not pleasant to be giving to every shallow or flippant disputant the advantage over me of knowing my most private thoughts, I might even say the intercourse between myself and my Maker. But I do not like to be called to my face a liar and a knave: nor should I be doing my duty to my faith or to my name, if I were to suffer it. I know I have done nothing to deserve such an insult; and if I prove this, as I hope to do, I must not care for such incidental annoyances as are involved in the process.
Moreover, I intend to be straightforward and personal: I'm not explaining Catholic doctrine, I'm simply sharing my thoughts and actions. I want, as much as I'm able, to state facts, whether they end up being for me or against me. Of course, my readers will likely have differing opinions on the necessity, relevance, value, taste, or religious prudence of the details I include. I might be criticized for focusing on minor issues, for missing the point, for delving into unnecessary or silly details, for self-promotion, or for causing offense; but this is one situation where I feel compelled to follow my own instincts and express my true feelings. It’s not enjoyable for me to come across as self-centered, nor to be judged for it. It's uncomfortable to share with everyone—both young and old—what I've experienced internally since my early years. It’s not easy to give every casual critic the advantage of knowing my private thoughts, including my personal relationship with God. But I dislike being openly called a liar and a rogue: and I wouldn't be fulfilling my duty to my faith or my reputation if I accepted that. I know I haven't done anything to deserve such an insult; and if I can prove this, as I hope to, I must not let the minor annoyances from this process bother me.
Part III
History of My Religious Opinions
It may easily be conceived how great a trial it is to me to write the following history of myself; but I must not shrink from the task. The words, "Secretum meum mihi," keep ringing in my ears; but as men draw towards their end, they care less for disclosures. Nor is it the least part of my trial, to anticipate that my friends may, upon first reading what I have written, consider much in it irrelevant to my purpose; yet I cannot help thinking that, viewed as a whole, it will effect what I wish it to do.
It's easy to imagine how difficult it is for me to write this personal history, but I can't shy away from it. The phrase "Secretum meum mihi" keeps echoing in my mind; however, as people approach the end of their lives, they’re less concerned about sharing secrets. It’s also tough for me to think that my friends might, when they first read what I’ve written, find much of it unrelated to my main point; still, I can't help believing that, when seen as a whole, it will achieve what I want it to.
I was brought up from a child to take great delight in reading the Bible; but I had no formed religious convictions till I was fifteen. Of course I had perfect knowledge of my Catechism.
I was raised from a young age to really enjoy reading the Bible; however, I didn’t develop any solid religious beliefs until I was fifteen. Of course, I knew my Catechism inside and out.
After I was grown up, I put on paper such recollections as I had of my thoughts and feelings on religious subjects, at the time that I was a child and a boy. Out of these I select two, which are at once the most definite among them, and also have a bearing on my later convictions.
After I grew up, I wrote down the memories I had of my thoughts and feelings about religion when I was a child and a boy. From these, I choose two that are both the most clear among them and also relate to my later beliefs.
In the paper to which I have referred, written either in the long vacation of 1820, or in October, 1823, the following notices of my school days were sufficiently prominent in my memory for me to consider them worth recording:—"I used to wish the Arabian Tales were true: my imagination ran on unknown influences, on magical powers, and talismans ... I thought life might be a dream, or I an Angel, and all this world a deception, my fellow-angels by a playful device concealing themselves from me, and deceiving me with the semblance of a material world."
In the paper I mentioned, written either during the long break of 1820 or in October 1823, the following memories from my school days stood out enough for me to think they were worth noting:—"I used to wish the Arabian Nights were real: my imagination wandered to unknown forces, magical powers, and talismans... I imagined life could be a dream, or I an angel, with this world being an illusion, my fellow angels playfully hiding from me and tricking me with the appearance of a physical world."
Again, "Reading in the Spring of 1816 a sentence from [Dr. Watts's] 'Remnants of Time,' entitled 'the Saints unknown to the world,' to the effect, that 'there is nothing in their figure or countenance to distinguish them,' etc. etc., I supposed he spoke of Angels who lived in the world, as it were disguised."
Again, "While reading a sentence from [Dr. Watts's] 'Remnants of Time' in the spring of 1816, titled 'the Saints unknown to the world,' which said that 'there is nothing in their appearance or demeanor to set them apart,' I thought he was referring to angels who existed in the world, as if they were in disguise."
The other remark is this: "I was very superstitious, and for some time previous to my conversion" [when I was fifteen] "used constantly to cross myself on going into the dark."
The other remark is this: "I was very superstitious, and for some time before my conversion" [when I was fifteen] "I would constantly cross myself when entering the dark."
Of course I must have got this practice from some external source or other; but I can make no sort of conjecture whence; and certainly no one had ever spoken to me on the subject of the Catholic religion, which I only knew by name. The French master was an émigré priest, but he was simply made a butt, as French masters too commonly were in that day, and spoke English very imperfectly. There was a Catholic family in the village, old maiden ladies we used to think; but I knew nothing but their name. I have of late years heard that there were one or two Catholic boys in the school; but either we were carefully kept from knowing this, or the knowledge of it made simply no impression on our minds. My brother will bear witness how free the school was from Catholic ideas.
Of course, I must have picked up this habit from some outside source; however, I can't guess where that might be. No one ever talked to me about the Catholic religion, which I only knew by name. The French teacher was an émigré priest, but he was mostly made fun of, like French teachers often were back then, and he spoke English very poorly. There was a Catholic family in the village, which we thought were just old maids, but I only knew their name. In recent years, I've heard that there were one or two Catholic boys at the school, but either we were kept in the dark about it, or it just didn't register with us. My brother can confirm how free the school was from Catholic ideas.
I had once been into Warwick Street Chapel, with my father, who, I believe, wanted to hear some piece of music; all that I bore away from it was the recollection of a pulpit and a preacher and a boy swinging a censer.
I once visited Warwick Street Chapel with my dad, who I think wanted to hear some music; all I remember from it is a pulpit, a preacher, and a boy swinging a censer.
When I was at Littlemore, I was looking over old copy-books of my school days, and I found among them my first Latin verse-book; and in the first page of it, there was a device which almost took my breath away with surprise. I have the book before me now, and have just been showing it to others. I have written in the first page, in my school-boy hand, "John H. Newman, February 11th, 1811, Verse Book;" then follow my first verses. Between "Verse" and "Book" I have drawn the figure of a solid cross upright, and next to it is, what may indeed be meant for a necklace, but what I cannot make out to be anything else than a set of beads suspended, with a little cross attached. At this time I was not quite ten years old. I suppose I got the idea from some romance, Mrs. Radcliffe's or Miss Porter's; or from some religious picture; but the strange thing is, how, among the thousand objects which meet a boy's eyes, these in particular should so have fixed themselves in my mind, that I made them thus practically my own. I am certain there was nothing in the churches I attended, or the prayer books I read, to suggest them. It must be recollected that churches and prayer books were not decorated in those days as I believe they are now.
When I was at Littlemore, I was looking through old notebooks from my school days, and I found my first Latin verse book among them; the first page almost took my breath away with surprise. I have the book in front of me now and I've just been showing it to others. I wrote on the first page, in my schoolboy handwriting, "John H. Newman, February 11th, 1811, Verse Book;" then my first verses follow. Between "Verse" and "Book," I drew a solid upright cross, and next to it is what could be seen as a necklace, but looks more like a set of beads hanging with a little cross attached. At that time, I was not quite ten years old. I suppose I got the idea from some novel, maybe Mrs. Radcliffe's or Miss Porter's, or from some religious picture; but the strange thing is, out of the thousands of objects that catch a boy's eye, these in particular stuck in my mind so much that I made them practically my own. I’m sure there was nothing in the churches I attended or the prayer books I read to suggest them. It's important to remember that churches and prayer books weren't decorated back then like I believe they are now.
When I was fourteen, I read Paine's tracts against the Old Testament, and found pleasure in thinking of the objections which were contained in them. Also, I read some of Hume's essays; and perhaps that on Miracles. So at least I gave my father to understand; but perhaps it was a brag. Also, I recollect copying out some French verses, perhaps Voltaire's, against the immortality of the soul, and saying to myself something like "How dreadful, but how plausible!"
When I was fourteen, I read Paine's writings criticizing the Old Testament and enjoyed considering the objections he raised. I also checked out some of Hume's essays, maybe the one on Miracles. At least, that's what I led my father to believe; but maybe I was just boasting. I also remember copying some French verses, probably by Voltaire, against the immortality of the soul, and thinking to myself something like, "How terrible, yet how believable!"
When I was fifteen (in the autumn of 1816) a great change of thought took place in me. I fell under the influences of a definite creed, and received into my intellect impressions of dogma, which, through God's mercy, have never been effaced or obscured. Above and beyond the conversations and sermons of the excellent man, long dead, who was the human means of this beginning of divine faith in me, was the effect of the books which he put into my hands, all of the school of Calvin. One of the first books I read was a work of Romaine's; I neither recollect the title nor the contents, except one doctrine, which of course I do not include among those which I believe to have come from a divine source, viz. the doctrine of final perseverance. I received it at once, and believed that the inward conversion of which I was conscious (and of which I still am more certain than that I have hands and feet) would last into the next life, and that I was elected to eternal glory. I have no consciousness that this belief had any tendency whatever to lead me to be careless about pleasing God. I retained it till the age of twenty-one, when it gradually faded away; but I believe that it had some influence on my opinions, in the direction of those childish imaginations which I have already mentioned, viz. in isolating me from the objects which surrounded me, in confirming me in my mistrust of the reality of material phenomena, and making me rest in the thought of two and two only supreme and luminously self-evident beings, myself and my Creator;—for while I considered myself predestined to salvation, I thought others simply passed over, not predestined to eternal death. I only thought of the mercy to myself.
When I was fifteen (in the autumn of 1816), a significant shift in my thinking occurred. I became influenced by a specific belief system and absorbed ideas of dogma that, thanks to God's mercy, have never been erased or clouded. Beyond the conversations and sermons of a remarkable man, now long gone, who was instrumental in igniting this divine faith in me, there was the impact of the books he introduced me to, all from the Calvinist tradition. One of the first books I read was something by Romaine; I can’t recall the title or the content, except for one doctrine that I don’t consider divinely inspired: the doctrine of final perseverance. I accepted it immediately, believing that the inner transformation I experienced (and still feel more certain about than my own hands and feet) would continue into the afterlife, and that I was chosen for eternal glory. I don’t remember this belief making me careless about pleasing God. I held onto it until I was twenty-one, when it gradually faded. However, I think it influenced my views, steering me towards those childish imaginations I've mentioned, isolating me from my surroundings, reinforcing my distrust of the reality of physical phenomena, and leading me to focus on two clear and self-evident beings: myself and my Creator. While I considered myself predestined for salvation, I thought of others as simply overlooked, not predestined for eternal damnation. I was solely focused on the mercy extended to me.
The detestable doctrine last mentioned is simply denied and abjured, unless my memory strangely deceives me, by the writer who made a deeper impression on my mind than any other, and to whom (humanly speaking) I almost owe my soul—Thomas Scott of Aston Sandford. I so admired and delighted in his writings, that, when I was an undergraduate, I thought of making a visit to his parsonage, in order to see a man whom I so deeply revered. I hardly think I could have given up the idea of this expedition, even after I had taken my degree; for the news of his death in 1821 came upon me as a disappointment as well as a sorrow. I hung upon the lips of Daniel Wilson, afterwards Bishop of Calcutta, as in two sermons at St. John's Chapel he gave the history of Scott's life and death. I had been possessed of his essays from a boy; his commentary I bought when I was an undergraduate.
The awful doctrine I just mentioned is simply rejected and forsaken, unless my memory is really tricking me, by the writer who left a bigger impression on me than anyone else, and to whom (in human terms) I almost owe my soul—Thomas Scott of Aston Sandford. I admired and loved his writings so much that, when I was in college, I thought about visiting his parsonage just to meet someone I held in such high regard. I doubt I would have given up on that plan even after graduating because I was genuinely disappointed and saddened when I heard of his death in 1821. I listened intently to Daniel Wilson, who later became the Bishop of Calcutta, as he shared Scott's life and death in two sermons at St. John's Chapel. I had been reading his essays since I was a kid, and I bought his commentary when I was in college.
What, I suppose, will strike any reader of Scott's history and writings, is his bold unworldliness and vigorous independence of mind. He followed truth wherever it led him, beginning with Unitarianism, and ending in a zealous faith in the Holy Trinity. It was he who first planted deep in my mind that fundamental truth of religion. With the assistance of Scott's essays, and the admirable work of Jones of Nayland, I made a collection of Scripture texts in proof of the doctrine, with remarks (I think) of my own upon them, before I was sixteen; and a few months later I drew up a series of texts in support of each verse of the Athanasian Creed. These papers I have still.
What stands out to any reader of Scott's history and writings is his bold openness and strong independence of thought. He pursued truth wherever it took him, starting with Unitarianism and ultimately embracing a passionate belief in the Holy Trinity. He was the one who first instilled in me that fundamental truth of religion. With the help of Scott's essays and the excellent work of Jones of Nayland, I compiled a collection of Scripture verses to support the doctrine, along with some of my own remarks, before I turned sixteen; and a few months later, I created a series of verses to back each line of the Athanasian Creed. I still have those papers.
Besides his unworldliness, what I also admired in Scott was his resolute opposition to Antinomianism, and the minutely practical character of his writings. They show him to be a true Englishman, and I deeply felt his influence; and for years I used almost as proverbs what I considered to be the scope and issue of his doctrine, "Holiness before peace," and "Growth is the only evidence of life."
Besides his otherworldliness, what I also admired in Scott was his strong opposition to Antinomianism and the highly practical nature of his writings. They demonstrate that he was a true Englishman, and I felt his influence deeply; for years, I used what I saw as the essence of his teachings as sayings, "Holiness before peace," and "Growth is the only evidence of life."
Calvinists make a sharp separation between the elect and the world; there is much in this that is parallel or cognate to the Catholic doctrine; but they go on to say, as I understand them, very differently from Catholicism,—that the converted and the unconverted can be discriminated by man, that the justified are conscious of their state of justification, and that the regenerate cannot fall away. Catholics on the other hand shade and soften the awful antagonism between good and evil, which is one of their dogmas, by holding that there are different degrees of justification, that there is a great difference in point of gravity between sin and sin, that there is the possibility and the danger of falling away, and that there is no certain knowledge given to any one that he is simply in a state of grace, and much less that he is to persevere to the end:—of the Calvinistic tenets the only one which took root in my mind was the fact of heaven and hell, divine favour and divine wrath, of the justified and the unjustified. The notion that the regenerate and the justified were one and the same, and that the regenerate, as such, had the gift of perseverance, remained with me not many years, as I have said already.
Calvinists clearly distinguish between the elect and the rest of the world; there are similarities with Catholic beliefs, but they diverge significantly from Catholicism by asserting that people can identify the converted and the unconverted, that those justified are aware of their justification, and that the regenerated cannot fall away. In contrast, Catholics tend to nuance the stark divide between good and evil, one of their core beliefs, by stating that there are varying degrees of justification, that some sins are more serious than others, that it’s possible to fall away, and that no one has certain knowledge of being in a state of grace, much less that they will endure until the end. The only Calvinistic concept that really struck me was the existence of heaven and hell, divine favor and divine anger, and the distinction between the justified and the unjustified. The idea that the regenerated and the justified are the same, and that the regenerated have the gift of perseverance, did not stay with me for long, as I mentioned earlier.
This main Catholic doctrine of the warfare between the city of God and the powers of darkness was also deeply impressed upon my mind by a work of a very opposite character, Law's "Serious Call."
This main Catholic belief in the struggle between the city of God and the forces of darkness was also strongly imprinted on my mind by a work of a very different nature, Law's "Serious Call."
From this time I have given a full inward assent and belief to the doctrine of eternal punishment, as delivered by our Lord Himself, in as true a sense as I hold that of eternal happiness; though I have tried in various ways to make that truth less terrible to the reason.
From this moment, I have fully agreed with and believed in the doctrine of eternal punishment, as taught by our Lord Himself, just as firmly as I believe in eternal happiness; although I have tried different ways to make that truth seem less frightening to reason.
Now I come to two other works, which produced a deep impression on me in the same autumn of 1816, when I was fifteen years old, each contrary to each, and planting in me the seeds of an intellectual inconsistency which disabled me for a long course of years. I read Joseph Milner's Church History, and was nothing short of enamoured of the long extracts from St. Augustine and the other Fathers which I found there. I read them as being the religion of the primitive Christians: but simultaneously with Milner I read Newton on the Prophecies, and in consequence became most firmly convinced that the Pope was the Antichrist predicted by Daniel, St. Paul, and St. John. My imagination was stained by the effects of this doctrine up to the year 1843; it had been obliterated from my reason and judgment at an earlier date; but the thought remained upon me as a sort of false conscience. Hence came that conflict of mind, which so many have felt besides myself;—leading some men to make a compromise between two ideas, so inconsistent with each other—driving others to beat out the one idea or the other from their minds—and ending in my own case, after many years of intellectual unrest, in the gradual decay and extinction of one of them—I do not say in its violent death, for why should I not have murdered it sooner, if I murdered it at all?
Now I’m going to talk about two other works that left a strong impression on me that autumn of 1816 when I was fifteen. Each was completely different, and they planted the seeds of an intellectual inconsistency in me that affected me for many years. I read Joseph Milner’s Church History and was absolutely captivated by the long excerpts from St. Augustine and the other Church Fathers that I found there. I saw them as representing the beliefs of the early Christians. At the same time, I was reading Newton on the Prophecies, which led me to strongly believe that the Pope was the Antichrist mentioned by Daniel, St. Paul, and St. John. This belief haunted my imagination until 1843; it had been wiped from my reason and judgment earlier, but the idea lingered in me like a false conscience. This brought about an internal conflict that many others have also experienced—causing some to try to reconcile two totally conflicting ideas, while forcing others to eliminate one idea or the other from their minds. In my case, after many years of intellectual turmoil, it gradually led to the decline and eventual disappearance of one of those ideas. I don’t say it died a violent death, because if I truly wanted to get rid of it, I could have done so much earlier.
I am obliged to mention, though I do it with great reluctance, another deep imagination, which at this time, the autumn of 1816, took possession of me—there can be no mistake about the fact;—viz. that it was the will of God that I should lead a single life. This anticipation, which has held its ground almost continuously ever since—with the break of a month now and a month then, up to 1829, and, after that date, without any break at all—was more or less connected, in my mind, with the notion that my calling in life would require such a sacrifice as celibacy involved; as, for instance, missionary work among the heathen, to which I had a great drawing for some years. It also strengthened my feeling of separation from the visible world, of which I have spoken above.
I feel compelled to mention, even though I do so reluctantly, another strong idea that took hold of me during the autumn of 1816—there's no doubt about it;—namely, that it was God's will for me to live a single life. This expectation has persisted almost continuously since then—only interrupted by a month here and a month there—until 1829, and after that, without any interruptions at all. In my mind, it was somewhat linked to the idea that my life's purpose would require the sacrifice of celibacy, such as in missionary work among those who didn't know the faith, which I felt drawn to for several years. It also reinforced my sense of being separate from the visible world, as I've mentioned earlier.
In 1822 I came under very different influences from those to which I had hitherto been subjected. At that time, Mr. Whately, as he was then, afterwards Archbishop of Dublin, for the few months he remained in Oxford, which he was leaving for good, showed great kindness to me. He renewed it in 1825, when he became Principal of Alban Hall, making me his vice-principal and tutor. Of Dr. Whately I will speak presently, for from 1822 to 1825 I saw most of the present Provost of Oriel, Dr. Hawkins, at that time Vicar of St. Mary's; and, when I took orders in 1824 and had a curacy at Oxford, then, during the long vacations, I was especially thrown into his company. I can say with a full heart that I love him, and have never ceased to love him; and I thus preface what otherwise might sound rude, that in the course of the many years in which we were together afterwards, he provoked me very much from time to time, though I am perfectly certain that I have provoked him a great deal more. Moreover, in me such provocation was unbecoming, both because he was the head of my college, and because in the first years that I knew him, he had been in many ways of great service to my mind.
In 1822, I was influenced by very different people than I had been before. At that time, Mr. Whately, who later became Archbishop of Dublin, showed me great kindness during the few months he was in Oxford before leaving for good. He continued this kindness in 1825 when he became Principal of Alban Hall, making me his vice-principal and tutor. I’ll talk about Dr. Whately shortly, but from 1822 to 1825, I spent a lot of time with the current Provost of Oriel, Dr. Hawkins, who was then the Vicar of St. Mary's. When I took orders in 1824 and had a curacy in Oxford, I was especially in his company during the long vacations. I can say wholeheartedly that I love him and have never stopped loving him. I mention this because it might otherwise sound rude: during the many years we spent together afterward, he annoyed me quite a bit from time to time, though I’m sure I annoyed him a lot more. Additionally, my annoyance was inappropriate, both because he was the head of my college and because in the early years of knowing him, he had been very helpful to my mind in many ways.
He was the first who taught me to weigh my words, and to be cautious in my statements. He led me to that mode of limiting and clearing my sense in discussion and in controversy, and of distinguishing between cognate ideas, and of obviating mistakes by anticipation, which to my surprise has been since considered, even in quarters friendly to me, to savour of the polemics of Rome. He is a man of most exact mind himself, and he used to snub me severely, on reading, as he was kind enough to do, the first sermons that I wrote, and other compositions which I was engaged upon.
He was the first person who taught me to choose my words carefully and to be thoughtful in my statements. He guided me to a way of clarifying my thoughts during discussions and debates, helping me differentiate between related ideas and prevent misunderstandings by thinking ahead, which surprisingly, even among those who supported me, has since been seen as reminiscent of the debates in Rome. He is a very precise thinker himself, and he would critique me harshly when he read the first sermons I wrote and other pieces I was working on.
Then as to doctrine, he was the means of great additions to my belief. As I have noticed elsewhere, he gave me the "Treatise on Apostolical Preaching," by Sumner, afterwards Archbishop of Canterbury, from which I learned to give up my remaining Calvinism, and to receive the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration. In many other ways too he was of use to me, on subjects semi-religious and semi-scholastic.
Then regarding doctrine, he significantly expanded my beliefs. As I’ve mentioned before, he gave me the "Treatise on Apostolical Preaching" by Sumner, who later became Archbishop of Canterbury. From this, I learned to move away from my remaining Calvinist views and accept the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration. In many other ways, he also helped me with topics that were both semi-religious and semi-scholarly.
It was Dr. Hawkins too who taught me to anticipate that, before many years were over there would be an attack made upon the books and the canon of Scripture. I was brought to the same belief by the conversation of Mr. Blanco White, who also led me to have freer views on the subject of inspiration than were usual in the Church of England at the time.
It was Dr. Hawkins who taught me to expect that, before long, there would be an attack on the books and the canon of Scripture. I came to the same belief through conversations with Mr. Blanco White, who also encouraged me to have more open views on the topic of inspiration than what was common in the Church of England back then.
There is one other principle, which I gained from Dr. Hawkins, more directly bearing upon Catholicism, than any that I have mentioned; and that is the doctrine of Tradition. When I was an undergraduate, I heard him preach in the University pulpit his celebrated sermon on the subject, and recollect how long it appeared to me, though he was at that time a very striking preacher; but, when I read it and studied it as his gift, it made a most serious impression upon me. He does not go one step, I think, beyond the high Anglican doctrine, nay he does not reach it; but he does his work thoroughly, and his view was original with him, and his subject was a novel one at the time. He lays down a proposition, self-evident as soon as stated, to those who have at all examined the structure of Scripture, viz. that the sacred text was never intended to teach doctrine, but only to prove it, and that, if we would learn doctrine, we must have recourse to the formularies of the Church; for instance to the Catechism, and to the Creeds. He considers, that, after learning from them the doctrines of Christianity, the inquirer must verify them by Scripture. This view, most true in its outline, most fruitful in its consequences, opened upon me a large field of thought. Dr. Whately held it too. One of its effects was to strike at the root of the principle on which the Bible Society was set up. I belonged to its Oxford Association; it became a matter of time when I should withdraw my name from its subscription-list, though I did not do so at once.
There’s one more principle I picked up from Dr. Hawkins that relates more directly to Catholicism than anything else I've mentioned, and that’s the doctrine of Tradition. When I was an undergraduate, I heard him give his well-known sermon on this topic from the University pulpit, and I remember thinking it felt really long, even though he was a captivating speaker at the time. However, when I read and studied it as his work, it left a serious impact on me. I don’t think he goes beyond the high Anglican doctrine, and in fact, he doesn't quite reach it; but he does a thorough job of exploring the topic, and his perspective was unique and new back then. He presents a proposition that seems obvious once stated, to anyone who has looked into the structure of Scripture: that the sacred text wasn’t meant to teach doctrine but rather to support it. To learn doctrine, we need to turn to the Church's teachings, like the Catechism and the Creeds. He argues that after understanding the doctrines of Christianity through them, the seeker must verify them with Scripture. This idea, which is true in its essence and has many implications, opened up a lot of thought for me. Dr. Whately believed in it too. One outcome of this was that it challenged the foundation of the Bible Society's principles. I was part of its Oxford Association, and it became a matter of when I would remove my name from its subscription list, although I didn’t do it right away.
It is with pleasure that I pay here a tribute to the memory of the Rev. William James, then Fellow of Oriel; who, about the year 1823, taught me the doctrine of Apostolical Succession, in the course of a walk, I think, round Christ Church meadow: I recollect being somewhat impatient on the subject at the time.
It is with pleasure that I pay a tribute here to the memory of the Rev. William James, then Fellow of Oriel; who, around the year 1823, taught me the doctrine of Apostolic Succession during a walk, I believe, around Christ Church meadow: I remember being a bit impatient about the topic at that time.
It was at about this date, I suppose, that I read Bishop Butler's Analogy; the study of which has been to so many, as it was to me, an era in their religious opinions. Its inculcation of a visible Church, the oracle of truth and a pattern of sanctity, of the duties of external religion, and of the historical character of revelation, are characteristics of this great work which strike the reader at once; for myself, if I may attempt to determine what I most gained from it, it lay in two points, which I shall have an opportunity of dwelling on in the sequel; they are the underlying principles of a great portion of my teaching. First, the very idea of an analogy between the separate works of God leads to the conclusion that the system which is of less importance is economically or sacramentally connected with the more momentous system, and of this conclusion the theory, to which I was inclined as a boy, viz. the unreality of material phenomena, is an ultimate resolution. At this time I did not make the distinction between matter itself and its phenomena, which is so necessary and so obvious in discussing the subject. Secondly, Butler's doctrine that probability is the guide of life, led me, at least under the teaching to which a few years later I was introduced, to the question of the logical cogency of faith, on which I have written so much. Thus to Butler I trace those two principles of my teaching, which have led to a charge against me both of fancifulness and of scepticism.
It was around this time, I think, that I read Bishop Butler's Analogy; studying it has marked a significant turning point in many people's religious beliefs, just as it did for me. Its emphasis on a visible Church as the source of truth and an example of holiness, on the obligations of outward religion, and on the historical nature of revelation, are key features of this important work that grab the reader’s attention immediately. For me, if I can identify what I gained most from it, it boils down to two main ideas, which I will have the chance to elaborate on later; these are foundational to much of my teachings. First, the very concept of an analogy between God's different works leads to the conclusion that systems of lesser importance are economically or sacramentally linked to more significant systems. This conclusion aligns with a theory I was drawn to as a child: the idea that material phenomena are not truly real. At that time, I didn’t differentiate between matter itself and its appearances, which is crucial and quite clear when discussing the topic. Secondly, Butler's idea that probability guides life prompted me, especially after being introduced to certain teachings a few years later, to consider the logical basis of faith, something I’ve written extensively about. Therefore, I attribute those two principles of my teaching to Butler, which have sparked accusations against me of being fanciful and skeptical.
And now as to Dr. Whately. I owe him a great deal. He was a man of generous and warm heart. He was particularly loyal to his friends, and to use the common phrase, "all his geese were swans." While I was still awkward and timid in 1822, he took me by the hand, and acted the part to me of a gentle and encouraging instructor. He, emphatically, opened my mind, and taught me to think and to use my reason. After being first noticed by him in 1822, I became very intimate with him in 1825, when I was his Vice-Principal at Alban Hall. I gave up that office in 1826, when I became tutor of my College, and his hold upon me gradually relaxed. He had done his work towards me or nearly so, when he had taught me to see with my own eyes and to walk with my own feet. Not that I had not a good deal to learn from others still, but I influenced them as well as they me, and co-operated rather than merely concurred with them. As to Dr. Whately, his mind was too different from mine for us to remain long on one line. I recollect how dissatisfied he was with an article of mine in the London Review, which Blanco White, good-humouredly, only called platonic. When I was diverging from him (which he did not like), I thought of dedicating my first book to him, in words to the effect that he had not only taught me to think, but to think for myself. He left Oxford in 1831; after that, as far as I can recollect, I never saw him but twice—when he visited the University; once in the street, once in a room. From the time that he left, I have always felt a real affection for what I must call his memory; for thenceforward he made himself dead to me. My reason told me that it was impossible that we could have got on together longer; yet I loved him too much to bid him farewell without pain. After a few years had passed, I began to believe that his influence on me in a higher respect than intellectual advance (I will not say through his fault) had not been satisfactory. I believe that he has inserted sharp things in his later works about me. They have never come in my way, and I have not thought it necessary to seek out what would pain me so much in the reading.
And now, about Dr. Whately. I owe him a lot. He had a generous and warm heart. He was especially loyal to his friends, and to put it simply, "all his geese were swans." Back in 1822, when I was still awkward and shy, he took my hand and acted as a gentle and encouraging teacher to me. He really opened my mind and taught me to think and reason for myself. After he first noticed me in 1822, I became very close to him in 1825 when I served as his Vice-Principal at Alban Hall. I left that position in 1826 when I became a tutor at my College, and gradually his influence on me lessened. He had pretty much done his job with me by teaching me to see with my own eyes and to walk on my own. Not that I didn't have a lot to learn from others still, but I influenced them as much as they influenced me, and we worked together rather than just agreeing. As for Dr. Whately, his way of thinking was so different from mine that we couldn't stay aligned for long. I remember how unhappy he was with one of my pieces in the London Review, which Blanco White humorously dismissed as platonic. When I started to drift away from his ideas (which he didn't like), I thought about dedicating my first book to him, expressing that he not only taught me to think but to think for myself. He left Oxford in 1831; after that, as far as I remember, I only saw him twice—once on the street and once in a room when he visited the University. Since he left, I’ve always felt a genuine fondness for what I can only call his memory; from then on, he made himself distant to me. My reasoning told me it was impossible for us to have continued together much longer; still, I loved him too much to say goodbye without it hurting. After a few years went by, I began to feel that his impact on me, in terms of personal growth (though I won't blame him for it), hadn’t been satisfying. I believe he has included sharp remarks about me in his later works. They’ve never crossed my path, and I haven’t felt the need to look for something that would hurt me so much to read.
What he did for me in point of religious opinion, was first to teach me the existence of the Church, as a substantive body or corporation; next to fix in me those anti-Erastian views of Church polity, which were one of the most prominent features of the Tractarian movement. On this point, and, as far as I know, on this point alone, he and Hurrell Froude intimately sympathised, though Froude's development of opinion here was of a later date. In the year 1826, in the course of a walk he said much to me about a work then just published, called "Letters on the Church by an Episcopalian." He said that it would make my blood boil. It was certainly a most powerful composition. One of our common friends told me, that, after reading it, he could not keep still, but went on walking up and down his room. It was ascribed at once to Whately; I gave eager expression to the contrary opinion; but I found the belief of Oxford in the affirmative to be too strong for me; rightly or wrongly I yielded to the general voice; and I have never heard, then or since, of any disclaimer of authorship on the part of Dr. Whately.
What he did for me in terms of religious belief was first to teach me about the Church as a real entity; next, he instilled in me those anti-Erastian views of Church governance, which were a major part of the Tractarian movement. On this issue, and as far as I know, on this issue alone, he and Hurrell Froude shared a deep connection, although Froude's views developed later. In 1826, during a walk, he talked a lot about a newly published work called "Letters on the Church by an Episcopalian." He mentioned that it would make my blood boil. It was definitely a powerful piece. One of our mutual friends said that after reading it, he couldn't sit still and walked back and forth in his room. People immediately believed it was written by Whately; I eagerly expressed a different view, but I found that the belief at Oxford in the opposite was too strong for me. Rightly or wrongly, I gave in to the consensus, and I've never heard, then or since, of any denial of authorship from Dr. Whately.
The main positions of this able essay are these; first that Church and State should be independent of each other:—he speaks of the duty of protesting "against the profanation of Christ's kingdom, by that double usurpation, the interference of the Church in temporals, of the State in spirituals," (p. 191); and, secondly, that the Church may justly and by right retain its property, though separated from the State. "The clergy," he says p. 133, "though they ought not to be the hired servants of the Civil Magistrate, may justly retain their revenues; and the State, though it has no right of interference in spiritual concerns, not only is justly entitled to support from the ministers of religion, and from all other Christians, but would, under the system I am recommending, obtain it much more effectually." The author of this work, whoever he may be, argues out both these points with great force and ingenuity, and with a thorough-going vehemence, which perhaps we may refer to the circumstance, that he wrote, not in propriâ personâ, but in the professed character of a Scotch Episcopalian. His work had a gradual, but a deep effect on my mind.
The main points of this insightful essay are these: first, that the Church and State should operate independently from each other. He talks about the responsibility of protesting "against the profanation of Christ's kingdom, by that double usurpation, the interference of the Church in temporal matters and of the State in spiritual matters" (p. 191); and, secondly, that the Church has the right to keep its property, even if it is separate from the State. "The clergy," he says on p. 133, "though they shouldn't be the hired servants of the Civil Magistrate, can justly keep their revenues; and the State, although it has no right to interfere in spiritual matters, not only deserves support from the ministers of religion and all other Christians but would, under the system I'm proposing, receive it much more effectively." The author of this work, whoever he may be, argues these points with great strength and cleverness, and with a passionate intensity, which we might attribute to the fact that he wrote not in propriâ personâ, but as a self-identified Scotch Episcopalian. His work had a gradual but profound impact on my thinking.
I am not aware of any other religious opinion which I owe to Dr. Whately. For his special theological tenets I had no sympathy. In the next year, 1827, he told me he considered that I was Arianising. The case was this: though at that time I had not read Bishop Bull's Defensio nor the Fathers, I was just then very strong for that ante-Nicene view of the Trinitarian doctrine, which some writers, both Catholic and non-Catholic, have accused of wearing a sort of Arian exterior. This is the meaning of a passage in Froude's Remains, in which he seems to accuse me of speaking against the Athanasian Creed. I had contrasted the two aspects of the Trinitarian doctrine, which are respectively presented by the Athanasian Creed and the Nicene. My criticisms were to the effect that some of the verses of the former Creed were unnecessarily scientific. This is a specimen of a certain disdain for antiquity which had been growing on me now for several years. It showed itself in some flippant language against the Fathers in the Encyclopædia Metropolitana, about whom I knew little at the time, except what I had learnt as a boy from Joseph Milner. In writing on the Scripture Miracles in 1825-6, I had read Middleton on the Miracles of the early Church, and had imbibed a portion of his spirit.
I’m not aware of any other religious views that I attribute to Dr. Whately. I didn’t agree with his specific theological beliefs. The following year, in 1827, he told me he thought I was starting to lean towards Arianism. Here’s the thing: even though I hadn’t read Bishop Bull's *Defensio* or the Church Fathers at that time, I was really supporting that ante-Nicene perspective on the Trinitarian doctrine, which some writers, both Catholic and non-Catholic, have claimed looks somewhat Arian. This explains a part in Froude's Remains, where he seems to accuse me of being critical of the Athanasian Creed. I had pointed out the differences between the two views of the Trinitarian doctrine presented by the Athanasian Creed and the Nicene. My criticisms suggested that some lines of the former Creed were overly technical. This reflects a certain disregard for tradition that had been growing in me for several years. It came out in some dismissive comments about the Fathers in the Encyclopædia Metropolitana, of whom I knew little at the time, aside from what I had learned as a kid from Joseph Milner. While writing about the Scripture Miracles in 1825-6, I had read Middleton on the Miracles of the early Church and absorbed some of his perspective.
The truth is, I was beginning to prefer intellectual excellence to moral; I was drifting in the direction of liberalism. I was rudely awakened from my dream at the end of 1827 by two great blows—illness and bereavement.
The truth is, I was starting to value intellectual excellence more than moral integrity; I was moving towards liberalism. I was abruptly jolted out of my reverie at the end of 1827 by two major blows—illness and loss.
In the beginning of 1829, came the formal break between Dr. Whately and me; Mr. Peel's attempted re-election was the occasion of it. I think in 1828 or 1827 I had voted in the minority, when the petition to Parliament against the Catholic claims was brought into Convocation. I did so mainly on the views suggested to me by the theory of the Letters of an Episcopalian. Also I disliked the bigoted "two bottle orthodox," as they were invidiously called. I took part against Mr. Peel, on a simple academical, not at all an ecclesiastical or a political ground; and this I professed at the time. I considered that Mr. Peel had taken the University by surprise, that he had no right to call upon us to turn round on a sudden, and to expose ourselves to the imputation of time-serving, and that a great University ought not to be bullied even by a great Duke of Wellington. Also by this time I was under the influence of Keble and Froude; who, in addition to the reasons I have given, disliked the Duke's change of policy as dictated by liberalism.
At the start of 1829, I officially broke away from Dr. Whately; the trigger for this was Mr. Peel's attempt to get re-elected. I believe that in 1828 or 1827, I had voted against the majority when the petition to Parliament regarding Catholic claims was brought to Convocation. I did this mainly based on the ideas proposed in the Letters of an Episcopalian. I also had a strong dislike for the narrow-minded "two bottle orthodox," as they were derisively referred to. I opposed Mr. Peel for purely academic reasons, not for ecclesiastical or political ones, and I made that clear at the time. I felt that Mr. Peel had caught the University off guard, that he had no right to expect us to suddenly change our stance and risk being seen as opportunistic, and that a great University shouldn't be pushed around, even by a powerful Duke of Wellington. By this point, I was also influenced by Keble and Froude, who, alongside the reasons I mentioned, disapproved of the Duke's shift in policy as being driven by liberalism.
Whately was considerably annoyed at me, and he took a humourous revenge, of which he had given me due notice beforehand. As head of a house, he had duties of hospitality to men of all parties; he asked a set of the least intellectual men in Oxford to dinner, and men most fond of port; he made me one of the party; placed me between Provost this and Principal that, and then asked me if I was proud of my friends. However, he had a serious meaning in his act; he saw, more clearly than I could do, that I was separating from his own friends for good and all.
Whately was really annoyed with me, and he planned a humorous payback, which he had warned me about in advance. As the head of a house, he had to show hospitality to men from all sides; he invited a group of the least intellectual men in Oxford to dinner, all of whom loved port wine. He included me in the group, seated me between Provost this and Principal that, and then asked if I was proud of my friends. However, there was a serious side to his actions; he understood better than I did that I was permanently distancing myself from his friends.
Dr. Whately attributed my leaving his clientela to a wish on my part to be the head of a party myself. I do not think that it was deserved. My habitual feeling then and since has been, that it was not I who sought friends, but friends who sought me. Never man had kinder or more indulgent friends than I have had, but I expressed my own feeling as to the mode in which I gained them, in this very year 1829, in the course of a copy of verses. Speaking of my blessings, I said, "Blessings of friends, which to my door, unasked, unhoped, have come." They have come, they have gone; they came to my great joy, they went to my great grief. He who gave, took away. Dr. Whately's impression about me, however, admits of this explanation:—
Dr. Whately thought I left his clientela because I wanted to lead my own group. I don’t think that was fair. My consistent feeling, then and now, has been that it wasn't me looking for friends; it was friends looking for me. No one has ever had kinder or more understanding friends than I have had, but I expressed my feelings on how I gained them in a poem I wrote in 1829. Speaking of my blessings, I said, "Blessings of friends, which to my door, unasked, unhoped, have come." They came and went; they brought me great joy, and their departure brought me great sorrow. He who gives can also take away. However, Dr. Whately's impression of me can be explained this way:—
During the first years of my residence at Oriel, though proud of my college, I was not at home there. I was very much alone, and I used often to take my daily walk by myself. I recollect once meeting Dr. Copleston, then provost, with one of the fellows. He turned round, and with the kind courteousness which sat so well on him, made me a bow and said, "Nunquam minus solus, quàm cùm solus." At that time indeed (from 1823) I had the intimacy of my dear and true friend Dr. Pusey, and could not fail to admire and revere a soul so devoted to the cause of religion, so full of good works, so faithful in his affections; but he left residence when I was getting to know him well. As to Dr. Whately himself, he was too much my superior to allow of my being at my ease with him; and to no one in Oxford at this time did I open my heart fully and familiarly. But things changed in 1826. At that time I became one of the tutors of my college, and this gave me position; besides, I had written one or two essays which had been well received. I began to be known. I preached my first University Sermon. Next year I was one of the Public Examiners for the B.A. degree. It was to me like the feeling of spring weather after winter; and, if I may so speak, I came out of my shell; I remained out of it till 1841.
During the first few years of my time at Oriel, even though I was proud of my college, I didn’t feel at home there. I often felt quite lonely and would go for my daily walks by myself. I remember running into Dr. Copleston, who was the provost at the time, with one of the fellows. He turned to me, and with that friendly politeness he was known for, he bowed and said, "Never less alone than when alone." At that time (from 1823), I was close to my dear and true friend Dr. Pusey, and I couldn't help but admire and respect a person so dedicated to religion, so committed to good works, and so loyal in his friendships; but he moved away just as I was getting to know him well. As for Dr. Whately, he was far too distinguished for me to feel comfortable with him, and I didn’t really open up to anyone in Oxford at that point. But things changed in 1826. I became one of the tutors at my college, which gave me some standing; plus, I had written a couple of essays that were well received. I started to gain recognition. I preached my first University Sermon. The following year, I was one of the Public Examiners for the B.A. degree. It felt like the arrival of spring after winter; and, if I can put it that way, I came out of my shell and stayed out until 1841.
The two persons who knew me best at that time are still alive, beneficed clergymen, no longer my friends. They could tell better than any one else what I was in those years. From this time my tongue was, as it were, loosened, and I spoke spontaneously and without effort. A shrewd man, who knew me at this time, said, "Here is a man who, when he is silent, will never begin to speak; and when he once begins to speak, will never stop." It was at this time that I began to have influence, which steadily increased for a course of years. I gained upon my pupils, and was in particular intimate and affectionate with two of our probationer fellows, Robert I. Wilberforce (afterwards archdeacon) and Richard Hurrell Froude. Whately then, an acute man, perhaps saw around me the signs of an incipient party of which I was not conscious myself. And thus we discern the first elements of that movement afterwards called Tractarian.
The two people who knew me best back then are still alive, both of them clergymen with positions, but they're no longer my friends. They could better than anyone else understand who I was during those years. From that time on, I felt like my tongue was, so to speak, loosened, and I spoke freely and effortlessly. A sharp man who knew me then said, "Here's a guy who, when he's silent, will never start talking; and once he does start, he won't stop." It was during this time that I began to gain influence, which steadily grew over the years. I connected well with my students, especially two of our probationer colleagues, Robert I. Wilberforce (who later became an archdeacon) and Richard Hurrell Froude. Whately, a perceptive man, may have noticed the beginnings of a group around me that I wasn't even aware of at the time. Thus, we can see the first signs of what later became known as the Tractarian movement.
The true and primary author of it, however, as is usual with great motive-powers, was out of sight. Having carried off as a mere boy the highest honours of the University, he had turned from the admiration which haunted his steps, and sought for a better and holier satisfaction in pastoral work in the country. Need I say that I am speaking of John Keble? The first time that I was in a room with him was on occasion of my election to a fellowship at Oriel, when I was sent for into the Tower, to shake hands with the provost and fellows. How is that hour fixed in my memory after the changes of forty-two years, forty-two this very day on which I write! I have lately had a letter in my hands, which I sent at the time to my great friend, John Bowden, with whom I passed almost exclusively my Undergraduate years. "I had to hasten to the tower," I say to him, "to receive the congratulations of all the fellows. I bore it till Keble took my hand, and then felt so abashed and unworthy of the honour done me, that I seemed desirous of quite sinking into the ground." His had been the first name which I had heard spoken of, with reverence rather than admiration, when I came up to Oxford. When one day I was walking in High Street with my dear earliest friend just mentioned, with what eagerness did he cry out, "There's Keble!" and with what awe did I look at him! Then at another time I heard a master of arts of my college give an account how he had just then had occasion to introduce himself on some business to Keble, and how gentle, courteous, and unaffected Keble had been, so as almost to put him out of countenance. Then too it was reported, truly or falsely, how a rising man of brilliant reputation, the present Dean of St. Paul's, Dr. Milman, admired and loved him, adding, that somehow he was unlike any one else. However, at the time when I was elected Fellow of Oriel he was not in residence, and he was shy of me for years in consequence of the marks which I bore upon me of the evangelical and liberal schools. At least so I have ever thought. Hurrell Froude brought us together about 1828: it is one of the sayings preserved in his "Remains,"—"Do you know the story of the murderer who had done one good thing in his life? Well; if I was ever asked what good deed I had ever done, I should say that I had brought Keble and Newman to understand each other."
The true and main author of it, however, as is typical with great driving forces, was hidden from view. Having achieved the highest honors at the University as a young man, he turned away from the admiration that followed him and sought a deeper and more meaningful satisfaction in pastoral work in the countryside. Need I say that I’m talking about John Keble? The first time I found myself in a room with him was when I was elected to a fellowship at Oriel, and I was called to the Tower to shake hands with the provost and fellows. That moment is etched in my memory after forty-two years, exactly forty-two on the day I’m writing this! I recently came across a letter I sent at that time to my good friend, John Bowden, with whom I spent nearly all my Undergraduate years. "I had to rush to the tower," I told him, "to receive the congratulations from all the fellows. I managed until Keble took my hand, and then I felt so embarrassed and unworthy of the honor that I wanted to disappear into the ground." He was the first name I heard spoken of with more reverence than admiration when I arrived at Oxford. One day, while walking along High Street with my dear friend I just mentioned, how eagerly he shouted, "There’s Keble!" and how in awe I was of him! Another time, I heard a fellow from my college talk about how he had just introduced himself to Keble for some business, and how gentle, polite, and down-to-earth Keble was, making him almost feel shy. It was also reported, whether true or not, that a promising young man with a great reputation, the current Dean of St. Paul's, Dr. Milman, admired and respected him, adding that somehow he was unlike anyone else. However, at the time of my election as Fellow of Oriel, Keble wasn't in residence, and he was shy around me for years because of the marks I bore from the evangelical and liberal schools. At least, that’s what I’ve always thought. Hurrell Froude brought us together around 1828: one of the sayings preserved in his "Remains" is, "Do you know the story of the murderer who had done one good thing in his life? Well; if anyone ever asked me what good deed I had done, I would say that I had brought Keble and Newman to understand each other."
The Christian Year made its appearance in 1827. It is not necessary, and scarcely becoming, to praise a book which has already become one of the classics of the language. When the general tone of religious literature was so nerveless and impotent, as it was at that time, Keble struck an original note and woke up in the hearts of thousands a new music, the music of a school, long unknown in England. Nor can I pretend to analyse, in my own instance, the effect of religious teaching so deep, so pure, so beautiful. I have never till now tried to do so; yet I think I am not wrong in saying, that the two main intellectual truths which it brought home to me, were the same two, which I had learned from Butler, though recast in the creative mind of my new master. The first of these was what may be called, in a large sense of the word, the sacramental system; that is, the doctrine that material phenomena are both the types and the instruments of real things unseen,—a doctrine, which embraces, not only what Anglicans, as well as Catholics, believe about sacraments properly so called; but also the article of "the Communion of Saints" in its fulness; and likewise the mysteries of the faith. The connection of this philosophy of religion with what is sometimes called "Berkeleyism" has been mentioned above; I knew little of Berkeley at this time except by name; nor have I ever studied him.
The Christian Year was published in 1827. It's not really necessary, and hardly appropriate, to praise a book that has already become a classic. At a time when religious literature felt so lifeless and ineffective, Keble created an original voice and inspired thousands with a new and previously unknown perspective in England. I can’t pretend to analyze how deeply, purely, and beautifully religious teaching has impacted me. Until now, I haven’t tried to do that; however, I believe I’m right in saying that the two main intellectual truths it impressed upon me were the same two I had learned from Butler, though reinterpreted through the creative lens of my new teacher. The first of these could be broadly described as the sacramental system; this doctrine explains that material phenomena are both symbols and instruments of unseen realities—a concept that includes what both Anglicans and Catholics believe about the sacraments, the full meaning of "the Communion of Saints," and the mysteries of faith. The link between this religious philosophy and what is sometimes referred to as "Berkeleyism" has been mentioned above; at that time, I knew little of Berkeley beyond his name and have never studied him.
On the second intellectual principle which I gained from Mr. Keble, I could say a great deal; if this were the place for it. It runs through very much that I have written, and has gained for me many hard names. Butler teaches us that probability is the guide of life. The danger of this doctrine, in the case of many minds, is, its tendency to destroy in them absolute certainty, leading them to consider every conclusion as doubtful, and resolving truth into an opinion, which it is safe to obey or to profess, but not possible to embrace with full internal assent. If this were to be allowed, then the celebrated saying, "O God, if there be a God, save my soul, if I have a soul!" would be the highest measure of devotion:—but who can really pray to a being, about whose existence he is seriously in doubt?
On the second important idea I learned from Mr. Keble, I could say a lot; if this were the right time for it. It shows up in much of what I've written and has earned me a lot of harsh labels. Butler teaches us that probability guides our lives. The danger of this idea, for many people, is that it can undermine absolute certainty, making them view every conclusion as questionable, and turning truth into an opinion that it's safe to follow or claim, but impossible to fully accept with conviction. If this were allowed, then the famous saying, "O God, if there is a God, save my soul, if I have a soul!" would be the ultimate expression of devotion:—but who can genuinely pray to a being whose existence they seriously doubt?
I considered that Mr. Keble met this difficulty by ascribing the firmness of assent which we give to religious doctrine, not to the probabilities which introduced it, but to the living power of faith and love which accepted it. In matters of religion, he seemed to say, it is not merely probability which makes us intellectually certain, but probability as it is put to account by faith and love. It is faith and love which give to probability a force which it has not in itself. Faith and love are directed towards an object; in the vision of that object they live; it is that object, received in faith and love, which renders it reasonable to take probability as sufficient for internal conviction. Thus the argument about probability, in the matter of religion, became an argument from personality, which in fact is one form of the argument from authority.
I thought that Mr. Keble addressed this challenge by attributing the strong agreement we have with religious beliefs, not to the probabilities that led us there, but to the active power of faith and love that embraced them. He seemed to suggest that in religion, it’s not just probability that gives us intellectual certainty, but how that probability is interpreted through faith and love. It’s faith and love that give probability a strength it doesn’t possess on its own. Faith and love focus on something specific; they thrive in the perception of that object. It’s that object, accepted through faith and love, that makes it reasonable to consider probability adequate for inner conviction. Therefore, the discussion about probability in religion transformed into a discussion about personal experience, which is essentially a type of argument based on authority.
In illustration, Mr. Keble used to quote the words of the psalm: "I will guide thee with mine eye. Be ye not like to horse and mule, which have no understanding; whose mouths must be held with bit and bridle, lest they fall upon thee." This is the very difference, he used to say, between slaves, and friends or children. Friends do not ask for literal commands; but, from their knowledge of the speaker, they understand his half-words, and from love of him they anticipate his wishes. Hence it is, that in his poem for St. Bartholomew's Day, he speaks of the "Eye of God's word;" and in the note quotes Mr. Miller, of Worcester College, who remarks, in his Bampton Lectures, on the special power of Scripture, as having "this eye, like that of a portrait, uniformly fixed upon us, turn where we will." The view thus suggested by Mr. Keble, is brought forward in one of the earliest of the "Tracts for the Times." In No. 8 I say, "The Gospel is a Law of Liberty. We are treated as sons, not as servants; not subjected to a code of formal commandments, but addressed as those who love God, and wish to please Him."
To illustrate, Mr. Keble used to quote the words from the psalm: "I will guide you with my eye. Do not be like a horse or mule, which have no understanding; their mouths must be controlled with bits and bridles, or they will fall away from you." This is the key difference, he would say, between slaves and friends or children. Friends don’t need explicit commands; they understand what is meant by the speaker’s tone and, out of love for him, they anticipate his wishes. This is why, in his poem for St. Bartholomew's Day, he refers to the "Eye of God's word;" and in the note, he quotes Mr. Miller from Worcester College, who notes in his Bampton Lectures that Scripture has "this eye, like that of a portrait, always fixed on us, no matter where we turn." The perspective Mr. Keble suggests is presented in one of the earliest "Tracts for the Times." In No. 8, I write, "The Gospel is a Law of Liberty. We are treated as sons, not as servants; not bound by a set of formal commandments, but approached as those who love God and wish to please Him."
I did not at all dispute this view of the matter, for I made use of it myself; but I was dissatisfied, because it did not go to the root of the difficulty. It was beautiful and religious, but it did not even profess to be logical; and accordingly I tried to complete it by considerations of my own, which are implied in my University sermons, Essay on Ecclesiastical Miracles, and Essay on Development of Doctrine. My argument is in outline as follows: that that absolute certitude which we were able to possess, whether as to the truths of natural theology, or as to the fact of a revelation, was the result of an assemblage of concurring and converging probabilities, and that, both according to the constitution of the human mind and the will of its Maker; that certitude was a habit of mind, that certainty was a quality of propositions; that probabilities which did not reach to logical certainty, might create a mental certitude; that the certitude thus created might equal in measure and strength the certitude which was created by the strictest scientific demonstration; and that to have such certitude might in given cases and to given individuals be a plain duty, though not to others in other circumstances:—
I completely agreed with this perspective because I used it myself; however, I was unsatisfied since it didn't address the core issue. It was beautiful and spiritual, but it didn’t even claim to be logical. So, I tried to enhance it with my own thoughts, which are reflected in my University sermons, Essay on Ecclesiastical Miracles, and Essay on Development of Doctrine. My argument can be summarized as follows: the absolute certainty we could have, whether about the truths of natural theology or the fact of a revelation, stemmed from a collection of aligned and converging probabilities, and according to both the nature of the human mind and the intentions of its Creator; this certainty was a mindset, while certainty was a characteristic of propositions; probabilities that didn’t lead to logical certainty could still generate a mental certainty; and the certainty created this way could match in extent and strength the certainty achieved through the most rigorous scientific proof; furthermore, having such certainty could, in certain situations and for specific individuals, be a clear obligation, although not for others in different circumstances:—
Moreover, that as there were probabilities which sufficed to create certitude, so there were other probabilities which were legitimately adapted to create opinion; that it might be quite as much a matter of duty in given cases and to given persons to have about a fact an opinion of a definite strength and consistency, as in the case of greater or of more numerous probabilities it was a duty to have a certitude; that accordingly we were bound to be more or less sure, on a sort of (as it were) graduated scale of assent, viz. according as the probabilities attaching to a professed fact were brought home to us, and, as the case might be, to entertain about it a pious belief, or a pious opinion, or a religious conjecture, or at least, a tolerance of such belief, or opinion, or conjecture in others; that on the other hand, as it was a duty to have a belief, of more or less strong texture, in given cases, so in other cases it was a duty not to believe, not to opine, not to conjecture, not even to tolerate the notion that a professed fact was true, inasmuch as it would be credulity or superstition, or some other moral fault, to do so. This was the region of private judgment in religion; that is, of a private judgment, not formed arbitrarily and according to one's fancy or liking, but conscientiously, and under a sense of duty.
Moreover, just as there are probabilities that create certainty, there are also probabilities that can reasonably lead to forming an opinion. It can be just as much a duty for certain individuals in specific situations to hold a strong and consistent opinion about a fact, as it is a duty to have certainty in cases with more significant or numerous probabilities. Therefore, we are required to be more or less sure, on a sort of graded scale of agreement, depending on how the probabilities related to a stated fact resonate with us. We might need to adopt a respectful belief, or a thoughtful opinion, or a religious guess, or at the very least, have some tolerance for such beliefs, opinions, or guesses in others. On the flip side, while it is a duty to hold a belief of varying strength in certain situations, in other cases, it is equally a duty not to believe, not to express an opinion, not to speculate, and not even to tolerate the idea that a claimed fact is true, as doing so would amount to gullibility, superstition, or some other moral failing. This lays out the sphere of personal judgment in religion; that is, a personal judgment that is not made arbitrarily or simply based on preference, but rather with a sense of responsibility and conscience.
Considerations such as these throw a new light on the subject of Miracles, and they seem to have led me to re-consider the view which I took of them in my Essay in 1825-6. I do not know what was the date of this change in me, nor of the train of ideas on which it was founded. That there had been already great miracles, as those of Scripture, as the Resurrection, was a fact establishing the principle that the laws of nature had sometimes been suspended by their Divine Author; and since what had happened once might happen again, a certain probability, at least no kind of improbability, was attached to the idea, taken in itself, of miraculous intervention in later times, and miraculous accounts were to be regarded in connection with the verisimilitude, scope, instrument, character, testimony, and circumstances, with which they presented themselves to us; and, according to the final result of those various considerations, it was our duty to be sure, or to believe, or to opine, or to surmise, or to tolerate, or to reject, or to denounce. The main difference between my essay on Miracles in 1826 and my essay in 1842 is this: that in 1826 I considered that miracles were sharply divided into two classes, those which were to be received, and those which were to be rejected; whereas in 1842 I saw that they were to be regarded according to their greater or less probability, which was in some cases sufficient to create certitude about them, in other cases only belief or opinion.
Considerations like these shed new light on the topic of Miracles, and they seem to have prompted me to rethink the perspective I had on them in my Essay from 1825-6. I'm not sure when this shift happened or what thoughts led to it. The existence of great miracles, like those in Scripture and the Resurrection, supports the idea that the laws of nature have sometimes been suspended by their Divine Creator; and since what happened once could happen again, there’s at least some likelihood—if not outright expectation—attached to the idea of miraculous intervention in modern times. Miraculous accounts should be evaluated based on their credibility, scope, means, characteristics, testimony, and the context in which they are presented. Ultimately, based on these various considerations, we must decide whether to be certain, to believe, to opine, to suspect, to tolerate, to reject, or to denounce. The main difference between my essay on Miracles in 1826 and my essay in 1842 is this: in 1826 I thought miracles fell into two clear categories—those to be accepted and those to be dismissed. In 1842, I understood that they should be viewed according to their varying degrees of probability, which could sometimes be strong enough to establish certainty, while in other cases it would only lead to belief or opinion.
Moreover, the argument from analogy, on which this view of the question was founded, suggested to me something besides, in recommendation of the ecclesiastical miracles. It fastened itself upon the theory of church history which I had learned as a boy from Joseph Milner. It is Milner's doctrine, that upon the visible Church come down from above, from time to time, large and temporary Effusions of divine grace. This is the leading idea of his work. He begins by speaking of the Day of Pentecost, as marking "the first of those Effusions of the Spirit of God, which from age to age have visited the earth since the coming of Christ" (vol. i. p. 3). In a note he adds that "in the term 'Effusion' there is not here included the idea of the miraculous or extraordinary operations of the Spirit of God;" but still it was natural for me, admitting Milner's general theory, and applying to it the principle of analogy, not to stop short at his abrupt ipse dixit, but boldly to pass forward to the conclusion, on other grounds plausible, that, as miracles accompanied the first effusion of grace, so they might accompany the later. It is surely a natural and on the whole, a true anticipation (though of course there are exceptions in particular cases), that gifts and graces go together; now, according to the ancient Catholic doctrine, the gift of miracles was viewed as the attendant and shadow of transcendent sanctity: and moreover, as such sanctity was not of every day's occurrence, nay further, as one period of Church history differed widely from another, and, as Joseph Milner would say, there have been generations or centuries of degeneracy or disorder, and times of revival, and as one region might be in the mid-day of religious fervour, and another in twilight or gloom, there was no force in the popular argument, that, because we did not see miracles with our own eyes, miracles had not happened in former times, or were not now at this very time taking place in distant places:—but I must not dwell longer on a subject, to which in a few words it is impossible to do justice.
Moreover, the argument from analogy, which was the basis of this perspective, suggested to me something else that supported the church's miracles. It connected with the theory of church history that I had learned as a child from Joseph Milner. Milner’s belief is that over time, significant and temporary Effusions of divine grace have come down upon the visible Church. This is the main idea of his work. He starts by discussing the Day of Pentecost, viewing it as "the first of those Effusions of the Spirit of God, which from age to age have visited the earth since the coming of Christ" (vol. i. p. 3). In a note, he adds that "in the term 'Effusion' there is not here included the idea of the miraculous or extraordinary operations of the Spirit of God;" but naturally, accepting Milner's overall theory and applying the principle of analogy, I didn’t just take his abrupt ipse dixit at face value, but confidently moved forward to the reasonable conclusion that, just as miracles accompanied the first effusion of grace, they might also accompany later ones. It's a natural and generally true assumption (though of course there are exceptions) that gifts and graces typically go hand in hand; now, according to the ancient Catholic belief, the gift of miracles was seen as a sign and reflection of immense sanctity: and since such sanctity wasn’t something that happened every day, and since different periods of Church history varied greatly, as Joseph Milner would say, there have been generations or centuries of decline or chaos, along with times of revival. Additionally, one region might be experiencing a peak of religious fervor while another was in a state of twilight or gloom. Therefore, the common argument that because we don’t see miracles with our own eyes, they haven’t occurred in the past or aren’t occurring now in other places, is weak. But I shouldn’t spend more time on a topic that, in just a few words, is impossible to fully capture.
Hurrell Froude was a pupil of Keble's, formed by him, and in turn reacting upon him. I knew him first in 1826, and was in the closest and most affectionate friendship with him from about 1829 till his death in 1836. He was a man of the highest gifts—so truly many-sided, that it would be presumptuous in me to attempt to describe him, except under those aspects, in which he came before me. Nor have I here to speak of the gentleness and tenderness of nature, the playfulness, the free elastic force and graceful versatility of mind, and the patient winning considerateness in discussion, which endeared him to those to whom he opened his heart; for I am all along engaged upon matters of belief and opinion, and am introducing others into my narrative, not for their own sake, or because I love and have loved them, so much as because, and so far as, they have influenced my theological views. In this respect then, I speak of Hurrell Froude—in his intellectual aspect—as a man of high genius, brimful and overflowing with ideas and views, in him original, which were too many and strong even for his bodily strength, and which crowded and jostled against each other in their effort after distinct shape and expression. And he had an intellect as critical and logical as it was speculative and bold. Dying prematurely, as he did, and in the conflict and transition-state of opinion, his religious views never reached their ultimate conclusion, by the very reason of their multitude and their depth. His opinions arrested and influenced me, even when they did not gain my assent. He professed openly his admiration of the Church of Rome, and his hatred of the reformers. He delighted in the notion of an hierarchical system, or sacerdotal power and of full ecclesiastical liberty. He felt scorn of the maxim, "The Bible and the Bible only is the religion of Protestants;" and he gloried in accepting Tradition as a main instrument of religious teaching. He had a high severe idea of the intrinsic excellence of virginity; and he considered the Blessed Virgin its great pattern. He delighted in thinking of the saints; he had a keen appreciation of the idea of sanctity, its possibility and its heights; and he was more than inclined to believe a large amount of miraculous interference as occurring in the early and middle ages. He embraced the principle of penance and mortification. He had a deep devotion to the Real Presence, in which he had a firm faith. He was powerfully drawn to the medieval church, but not to the primitive.
Hurrell Froude was a student of Keble's, shaped by him, and in turn influencing him. I first got to know him in 1826 and shared a close and affectionate friendship with him from around 1829 until his death in 1836. He was a man of exceptional talents—so truly multifaceted that it would be arrogant of me to try to describe him, except in the ways he presented himself to me. I won’t discuss his gentle and caring nature, his playful spirit, his lively energy and elegant versatility of thought, or the considerate patience he showed in discussions, which endeared him to those he opened his heart to; instead, I’m focused on matters of belief and opinion, introducing others into my story, not for their own sake or because I have loved them, but because they influenced my theological views. In this respect, I speak of Hurrell Froude—in his intellectual aspect—as a man of great genius, overflowing with original ideas and viewpoints that were too abundant and intense for his physical strength, which often clashed in their quest for clarity and expression. He had a mind that was as critical and logical as it was speculative and audacious. Dying young, in a time of conflict and shifting opinions, his religious views never reached their final conclusion due to their abundance and depth. His opinions captured and influenced me, even when I didn’t agree with him. He openly expressed his admiration for the Church of Rome and his disdain for the reformers. He loved the idea of a hierarchical system or priestly authority and of complete ecclesiastical freedom. He dismissed the saying, "The Bible and the Bible only is the religion of Protestants," and took pride in embracing Tradition as a key element of religious teaching. He had a serious view of the intrinsic value of virginity, seeing the Blessed Virgin as its greatest example. He enjoyed contemplating the saints; he had a strong appreciation for the concept of holiness, its possibilities, and its heights; and he was quite inclined to believe in a significant amount of miraculous occurrences during the early and middle ages. He embraced the idea of penance and self-denial. He had a deep devotion to the Real Presence, in which he had strong faith. He was strongly attracted to the medieval church, but not to the primitive one.
He had a keen insight into abstract truth; but he was an Englishman to the backbone in his severe adherence to the real and the concrete. He had a most classical taste, and a genius for philosophy and art; and he was fond of historical inquiry, and the politics of religion. He had no turn for theology as such. He had no appreciation of the writings of the Fathers, of the detail or development of doctrine, of the definite traditions of the Church viewed in their matter, of the teaching of the ecumenical councils, or of the controversies out of which they arose. He took an eager, courageous view of things on the whole. I should say that his power of entering into the minds of others did not equal his other gifts; he could not believe, for instance, that I really held the Roman Church to be Antichristian. On many points he would not believe but that I agreed with him, when I did not. He seemed not to understand my difficulties. His were of a different kind, the contrariety between theory and fact. He was a high Tory of the cavalier stamp, and was disgusted with the Toryism of the opponents of the Reform Bill. He was smitten with the love of the theocratic church; he went abroad and was shocked by the degeneracy which he thought he saw in the Catholics of Italy.
He had a sharp understanding of abstract truth, but he was truly English in his strict focus on the real and tangible. He had a classic sense of taste and a talent for philosophy and art, along with a passion for historical research and the politics of religion. He wasn’t particularly interested in theology itself. He didn't appreciate the writings of the Church Fathers, the details or development of doctrine, the specific traditions of the Church in their essence, the teachings of the ecumenical councils, or the debates that led to them. Overall, he had an eager and bold perspective. I would say his ability to understand other people's thoughts didn't quite match his other talents; for example, he couldn't believe that I truly thought of the Roman Church as Antichristian. On many issues, he assumed I agreed with him when I didn’t. He seemed unable to grasp my challenges. His struggles were different, related to the clash between theory and reality. He was a staunch Tory from the cavalier side and was appalled by the Toryism of those opposing the Reform Bill. He was deeply in love with the idea of a theocratic church; he traveled abroad and was shocked by what he perceived as the decline among Catholics in Italy.
It is difficult to enumerate the precise additions to my theological creed which I derived from a friend to whom I owe so much. He made me look with admiration towards the Church of Rome, and in the same degree to dislike the Reformation. He fixed deep in me the idea of devotion to the Blessed Virgin, and he led me gradually to believe in the Real Presence.
It's tough to list all the specific additions to my beliefs that I got from a friend I owe so much to. He made me admire the Catholic Church and also somewhat dislike the Reformation. He instilled in me a deep sense of devotion to the Virgin Mary and gradually led me to believe in the Real Presence.
There is one remaining source of my opinions to be mentioned, and that far from the least important. In proportion as I moved out of the shadow of liberalism which had hung over my course, my early devotion towards the fathers returned; and in the long vacation of 1828 I set about to read them chronologically, beginning with St. Ignatius and St. Justin. About 1830 a proposal was made to me by Mr. Hugh Rose, who with Mr. Lyall (afterwards Dean of Canterbury) was providing writers for a theological library, to furnish them with a history of the principal councils. I accepted it, and at once set to work on the Council of Nicæa. It was launching myself on an ocean with currents innumerable; and I was drifted back first to the ante-Nicene history, and then to the Church of Alexandria. The work at last appeared under the title of "The Arians of the Fourth Century;" and of its 422 pages, the first 117 consisted of introductory matter, and the Council of Nicæa did not appear till the 254th, and then occupied at most twenty pages.
There's one last source of my opinions worth mentioning, and it's pretty important. As I moved out from under the influence of liberalism that had overshadowed my journey, my early admiration for the Church Fathers resurfaced. During the long vacation of 1828, I began reading them in chronological order, starting with St. Ignatius and St. Justin. Around 1830, Mr. Hugh Rose, along with Mr. Lyall (later Dean of Canterbury), approached me to write a history of the major councils for a theological library they were putting together. I agreed and immediately began working on the Council of Nicæa. It felt like I was embarking on an endless ocean with countless currents; I found myself drawn back first to the ante-Nicene history and then to the Church of Alexandria. Eventually, my work was published under the title "The Arians of the Fourth Century." Of its 422 pages, the first 117 were introductory material, and the Council of Nicæa didn't show up until page 254, occupying no more than twenty pages at most.
I do not know when I first learnt to consider that antiquity was the true exponent of the doctrines of Christianity and the basis of the Church of England; but I take it for granted that Bishop Bull, whose works at this time I read, was my chief introduction to this principle. The course of reading which I pursued in the composition of my work was directly adapted to develop it in my mind. What principally attracted me in the ante-Nicene period was the great Church of Alexandria, the historical centre of teaching in those times. Of Rome for some centuries comparatively little is known. The battle of Arianism was first fought in Alexandria; Athanasius, the champion of the truth, was Bishop of Alexandria; and in his writings he refers to the great religious names of an earlier date, to Origen, Dionysius, and others who were the glory of its see, or of its school. The broad philosophy of Clement and Origen carried me away; the philosophy, not the theological doctrine; and I have drawn out some features of it in my volume, with the zeal and freshness, but with the partiality of a neophyte. Some portions of their teaching, magnificent in themselves, came like music to my inward ear, as if the response to ideas, which, with little external to encourage them, I had cherished so long. These were based on the mystical or sacramental principle, and spoke of the various economies or dispensations of the eternal. I understood them to mean that the exterior world, physical and historical, was but the outward manifestation of realities greater than itself. Nature was a parable:[1] Scripture was an allegory: pagan literature, philosophy, and mythology, properly understood, were but a preparation for the Gospel. The Greek poets and sages were in a certain sense prophets; for "thoughts beyond their thought to those high bards were given." There had been a divine dispensation granted to the Jews; there had been in some sense a dispensation carried on in favour of the Gentiles. He who had taken the seed of Jacob for His elect people, had not therefore cast the rest of mankind out of His sight. In the fulness of time both Judaism and Paganism had come to nought; the outward framework, which concealed yet suggested the living truth, had never been intended to last, and it was dissolving under the beams of the sun of justice behind it and through it. The process of change had been slow; it had been done not rashly, but by rule and measure, "at sundry times and in divers manners," first one disclosure and then another, till the whole was brought into full manifestation. And thus room was made for the anticipation of further and deeper disclosures, of truths still under the veil of the letter, and in their season to be revealed. The visible world still remains without its divine interpretation; Holy Church in her sacraments and her hierarchical appointments, will remain even to the end of the world, only a symbol of those heavenly facts which fill eternity. Her mysteries are but the expressions in human language of truths to which the human mind is unequal. It is evident how much there was in all this in correspondence with the thoughts which had attracted me when I was young, and with the doctrine which I have already connected with the Analogy and the Christian Year.
I’m not sure when I first realized that ancient beliefs were the true foundation of Christianity and the basis of the Church of England, but I assume that Bishop Bull, whose works I was reading at the time, was my main introduction to this idea. The reading I did while writing my work was specifically aimed at developing this understanding in my mind. What primarily caught my interest during the ante-Nicene period was the great Church of Alexandria, the historic center of teaching back then. We know relatively little about Rome for several centuries. The debate over Arianism first occurred in Alexandria; Athanasius, the defender of the truth, was the Bishop of Alexandria, and in his writings, he references the great religious figures from earlier times, like Origen, Dionysius, and others who were the pride of its see or its school. The broad philosophy of Clement and Origen captivated me; the philosophy, not the theological doctrine. I’ve highlighted some aspects of it in my book, with the enthusiasm and freshness of someone new to the subject, but also with some bias. Certain parts of their teachings, magnificent in themselves, resonated with me like music, as if echoing ideas that I had cherished for a long time, even with little external encouragement. These teachings were rooted in the mystical or sacramental principle and talked about the various economies or dispensations of the eternal. I understood them to mean that the physical and historical world was just an outward display of deeper realities. Nature was a parable: [1] Scripture was an allegory: pagan literature, philosophy, and mythology, when understood properly, were simply a preparation for the Gospel. The Greek poets and philosophers could be considered prophets in a way; for "thoughts beyond their thought to those high bards were given." There had been a divine plan for the Jews; there had also been, in some sense, a plan for the Gentiles. He who chose the line of Jacob as His chosen people had not rejected the rest of humanity. In due time, both Judaism and Paganism had come to an end; the outward forms, which both concealed and hinted at the living truth, were never meant to last, and they were falling apart under the blazing light of justice shining behind and through them. The process of change was slow; it wasn't done hastily but followed rule and measure, "at sundry times and in divers manners," revealing one truth after another until everything was fully revealed. And thus, it made space for the expectation of further and deeper revelations of truths still hidden under the surface, which in their time would be unveiled. The visible world still lacks its divine interpretation; Holy Church, with her sacraments and hierarchical structures, will remain until the end of time, merely a symbol of those heavenly facts that fill eternity. Her mysteries are just attempts to express in human language truths that the human mind cannot fully grasp. It's clear how much this corresponded with the ideas that had drawn me in my youth, and with the doctrine I've already linked to the Analogy and the Christian Year.
I suppose it was to the Alexandrian school and to the early church that I owe in particular what I definitely held about the angels. I viewed them, not only as the ministers employed by the Creator in the Jewish and Christian dispensations, as we find on the face of Scripture, but as carrying on, as Scripture also implies, the economy of the visible world. I considered them as the real causes of motion, light, and life, and of those elementary principles of the physical universe, which, when offered in their developments to our senses, suggest to us the notion of cause and effect, and of what are called the laws of nature. I have drawn out this doctrine in my sermon for Michaelmas day, written not later than 1834. I say of the angels, "Every breath of air and ray of light and heat, every beautiful prospect, is, as it were, the skirts of their garments, the waving of the robes of those whose faces see God." Again, I ask what would be the thoughts of a man who, "when examining a flower, or a herb, or a pebble, or a ray of light, which he treats as something so beneath him in the scale of existence, suddenly discovered that he was in the presence of some powerful being who was hidden behind the visible things he was inspecting, who, though concealing his wise hand, was giving them their beauty, grace, and perfection, as being God's instrument for the purpose, nay, whose robe and ornaments those objects were, which he was so eager to analyse?" and I therefore remark that "we may say with grateful and simple hearts with the Three Holy Children, 'O all ye works of the Lord, etc., etc., bless ye the Lord, praise Him, and magnify Him for ever.'"
I guess I owe a lot of my views about angels to the Alexandrian school and the early church. I saw them not just as the servants of the Creator in the Jewish and Christian traditions, as mentioned in Scripture, but also as playing a role in the workings of the visible world. I believed they were the true sources of motion, light, and life, and of the basic principles of the physical universe, which, when we perceive them, lead us to think about cause and effect and the so-called laws of nature. I detailed this belief in my sermon for Michaelmas Day, written no later than 1834. I said about the angels, "Every breath of air, ray of light, and warmth, every beautiful view is like the fringes of their garments, the flow of the robes of those who behold God." Again, I wonder about the thoughts of someone who, "when looking at a flower, a plant, a pebble, or a ray of light, which he regards as insignificant, suddenly realizes he’s in the presence of a powerful being hidden behind the visible things he’s examining, who, while concealing their wise hand, is giving those things their beauty, grace, and perfection, acting as God's instrument for that purpose, and whose robe and adornments those objects are that he is so eager to analyze?" Thus, I note that "we can say with thankful and simple hearts with the Three Holy Children, 'O all ye works of the Lord, etc., etc., bless ye the Lord, praise Him, and magnify Him for ever.'"
Also, besides the hosts of evil spirits, I considered there was a middle race, δαιμόνια, neither in heaven, nor in hell; partially fallen, capricious, wayward; noble or crafty, benevolent or malicious, as the case might be. They gave a sort of inspiration or intelligence to races, nations, and classes of men. Hence the action of bodies politic and associations, which is so different often from that of the individuals who compose them. Hence the character and the instinct of states and governments, of religious communities and communions. I thought they were inhabited by unseen intelligences. My preference of the Personal to the Abstract would naturally lead me to this view. I thought it countenanced by the mention of "the Prince of Persia" in the Prophet Daniel; and I think I considered that it was of such intermediate beings that the Apocalypse spoke, when it introduced "the Angels of the Seven Churches."
Also, besides the numerous evil spirits, I thought there was a middle group, demons, neither in heaven nor in hell; partially fallen, unpredictable, and unreliable; noble or cunning, helpful or harmful, depending on the situation. They provided a kind of inspiration or intelligence to different races, nations, and groups of people. This explains why the actions of political bodies and organizations often differ from those of the individuals within them. Thus, the character and instinct of states and governments, as well as religious communities and denominations, are influenced by them. I believed they were inhabited by unseen intelligences. My preference for the Personal over the Abstract naturally led me to this perspective. I thought it was supported by the reference to "the Prince of Persia" in the Prophet Daniel; and I believe I considered that these intermediate beings were what the Apocalypse referred to when it mentioned "the Angels of the Seven Churches."
In 1837 I made a further development of this doctrine. I said to my great friend, Samuel Francis Wood, in a letter which came into my hands on his death, "I have an idea. The mass of the Fathers (Justin, Athenagoras, Irenæus, Clement, Tertullian, Origen, Lactantius, Sulpicius, Ambrose, Nazianzen), hold that, though Satan fell from the beginning, the Angels fell before the deluge, falling in love with the daughters of men. This has lately come across me as a remarkable solution of a notion which I cannot help holding. Daniel speaks as if each nation had its guardian Angel. I cannot but think that there are beings with a great deal of good in them, yet with great defects, who are the animating principles of certain institutions, etc., etc.... Take England, with many high virtues, and yet a low Catholicism. It seems to me that John Bull is a Spirit neither of heaven nor hell.... Has not the Christian Church, in its parts, surrendered itself to one or other of these simulations of the truth? ...How are we to avoid Scylla and Charybdis and go straight on to the very image of Christ?" etc., etc.
In 1837, I further developed this idea. I wrote to my close friend, Samuel Francis Wood, in a letter I received after his passing, "I have a thought. Many Church Fathers (Justin, Athenagoras, Irenaeus, Clement, Tertullian, Origen, Lactantius, Sulpicius, Ambrose, Nazianzen) believe that, although Satan fell from the beginning, the Angels fell before the flood, falling for the daughters of men. I find this to be an interesting solution to a belief I hold. Daniel suggests that each nation has its guardian Angel. I can’t help but think there are beings that have a lot of good in them but also significant flaws, who are the driving forces behind certain institutions, etc. Take England, which has many admirable qualities yet a weak Catholicism. To me, John Bull represents a Spirit that doesn’t fully belong to heaven or hell. Hasn't the Christian Church, in its different parts, given itself over to one of these distortions of the truth? How can we navigate between Scylla and Charybdis and move directly toward the image of Christ?" etc. etc.
I am aware that what I have been saying will, with many men, be doing credit to my imagination at the expense of my judgment—"Hippoclides doesn't care;" I am not setting myself up as a pattern of good sense or of anything else: I am but vindicating myself from the charge of dishonesty.—There is indeed another view of the economy brought out, in the course of the same dissertation on the subject, in my History of the Arians, which has afforded matter for the latter imputation; but I reserve it for the concluding portion of my reply.
I know that what I've been saying will make me seem imaginative to many people, but I don’t care. I’m not trying to present myself as a model of common sense or anything else; I’m just defending myself against the accusation of dishonesty. There is, in fact, another perspective on the economy discussed in my History of the Arians that has led to this accusation, but I’ll save that for the final part of my response.
While I was engaged in writing my work upon the Arians, great events were happening at home and abroad, which brought out into form and passionate expression the various beliefs which had so gradually been winning their way into my mind. Shortly before, there had been a revolution in France; the Bourbons had been dismissed: and I believed that it was unchristian for nations to cast off their governors, and, much more, sovereigns who had the divine right of inheritance. Again, the great Reform agitation was going on around me as I wrote. The Whigs had come into power; Lord Grey had told the Bishops to set their house in order, and some of the prelates had been insulted and threatened in the streets of London. The vital question was how were we to keep the Church from being liberalised? there was such apathy on the subject in some quarters, such imbecile alarm in others; the true principles of Churchmanship seemed so radically decayed, and there was such distraction in the councils of the clergy. The Bishop of London of the day, an active and open-hearted man, had been for years engaged in diluting the high orthodoxy of the Church by the introduction of the Evangelical body into places of influence and trust. He had deeply offended men who agreed with myself, by an off-hand saying (as it was reported) to the effect that belief in the apostolical succession had gone out with the non-jurors. "We can count you," he said to some of the gravest and most venerated persons of the old school. And the Evangelical party itself seemed, with their late successes, to have lost that simplicity and unworldliness which I admired so much in Milner and Scott. It was not that I did not venerate such men as the then Bishop of Lichfield, and others of similar sentiments, who were not yet promoted out of the ranks of the clergy, but I thought little of them as a class. I thought they played into the hands of the Liberals. With the Establishment thus divided and threatened, thus ignorant of its true strength, I compared that fresh vigorous power of which I was reading in the first centuries. In her triumphant zeal on behalf of that Primeval Mystery, to which I had had so great a devotion from my youth, I recognised the movement of my Spiritual Mother. "Incessu patuit Dea." The self-conquest of her ascetics, the patience of her martyrs, the irresistible determination of her bishops, the joyous swing of her advance, both exalted and abashed me. I said to myself, "Look on this picture and on that;" I felt affection for my own Church, but not tenderness; I felt dismay at her prospects, anger and scorn at her do-nothing perplexity. I thought that if Liberalism once got a footing within her, it was sure of the victory in the event. I saw that Reformation principles were powerless to rescue her. As to leaving her, the thought never crossed my imagination; still I ever kept before me that there was something greater than the Established Church, and that that was the Church Catholic and Apostolic, set up from the beginning, of which she was but the local presence and organ. She was nothing, unless she was this. She must be dealt with strongly, or she would be lost. There was need of a second Reformation.
While I was writing my work on the Arians, significant events were unfolding both at home and abroad that brought forth the different beliefs that had gradually taken shape in my mind. Not long before, there had been a revolution in France; the Bourbons were gone, and I believed it was unchristian for nations to overthrow their rulers, especially sovereigns who had a divine right to their positions. At the same time, the major Reform movement was happening around me as I wrote. The Whigs had come to power; Lord Grey had instructed the Bishops to get their act together, and some of the bishops had faced insults and threats on the streets of London. The crucial question was how to prevent the Church from becoming too liberal; there was such indifference in some circles and such foolish fear in others. The core principles of Churchmanship seemed to be fundamentally weakened, and there was so much disarray among the clergy. The Bishop of London, a proactive and warm-hearted man, had spent years diluting the Church's strict orthodoxy by bringing Evangelical leaders into positions of influence and responsibility. He had seriously offended those who thought like me with a casual remark (as reported) suggesting that the belief in apostolic succession had faded with the non-jurors. "We can count you," he said to some of the most respected figures of the traditional school. The Evangelical party, with their recent achievements, also appeared to have lost the simplicity and naivety I admired in Milner and Scott. It wasn't that I didn't hold men like the then Bishop of Lichfield and others with similar views in high regard, who hadn’t yet been promoted out of the clergy, but I didn't think much of them as a group. I believed they were playing into the hands of the Liberals. With the Establishment thus divided and under threat, ignorant of its true strength, I compared it to the fresh, vigorous power I was reading about in the early centuries. In her passionate zeal for that Primeval Mystery, to which I had been devoted since my youth, I recognized the movement of my Spiritual Mother. "Incessu patuit Dea." The self-discipline of her ascetics, the endurance of her martyrs, the unwavering resolve of her bishops, the joyful momentum of her progress both inspired and humbled me. I thought to myself, "Look at this picture and that one;" I felt a bond with my own Church, but not tenderness; I felt alarm at her future, anger and contempt for her indecisiveness. I believed that if Liberalism made any headway within her, victory was inevitable. I realized that Reformation principles had no power to save her. As for leaving her, that thought never crossed my mind; I always kept in mind that there was something greater than the Established Church, and that was the Catholic and Apostolic Church, established from the beginning, of which she was merely the local presence and instrument. She meant nothing unless she was this. She had to be managed firmly, or she would be lost. A second Reformation was needed.
At this time I was disengaged from college duties, and my health had suffered from the labour involved in the composition of my volume. It was ready for the press in July, 1832, though not published till the end of 1833. I was easily persuaded to join Hurrell Froude and his Father, who were going to the south of Europe for the health of the former.
At that time, I was taking a break from my college responsibilities, and my health had declined due to the effort I put into writing my book. It was ready for publication in July 1832, but it didn’t come out until the end of 1833. I was easily convinced to join Hurrell Froude and his father, who were heading to southern Europe for Hurrell's health.
We set out in December, 1832. It was during this expedition that my Verses which are in the Lyra Apostolica were written;—a few indeed before it, but not more than one or two of them after it. Exchanging, as I was, definite tutorial labours, and the literary quiet and pleasant friendships of the last six years, for foreign countries and an unknown future, I naturally was led to think that some inward changes, as well as some larger course of action, was coming upon me. At Whitchurch, while waiting for the down mail to Falmouth, I wrote the verses about my Guardian Angel, which begin with these words: "Are these the tracks of some unearthly Friend?" and go on to speak of "the vision" which haunted me:—that vision is more or less brought out in the whole series of these compositions.
We set off in December 1832. During this trip, I wrote the verses found in the Lyra Apostolica; a few were written before it, but only one or two afterward. As I was leaving my stable teaching job and the literary peace and enjoyable friendships I had developed over the last six years for foreign lands and an uncertain future, I naturally began to think that I was going through some internal changes, as well as a new direction in my life. While waiting for the mail to Falmouth in Whitchurch, I wrote the verses about my Guardian Angel, which start with the lines: "Are these the tracks of some unearthly Friend?" and continue to describe "the vision" that haunted me; that vision is reflected throughout all these compositions.
I went to various coasts of the Mediterranean, parted with my friends at Rome; went down for the second time to Sicily, at the end of April, and got back to England by Palermo in the early part of July. The strangeness of foreign life threw me back into myself; I found pleasure in historical sites and beautiful scenes, not in men and manners. We kept clear of Catholics throughout our tour. I had a conversation with the Dean of Malta, a most pleasant man, lately dead; but it was about the Fathers, and the Library of the great church. I knew the Abbate Santini, at Rome, who did no more than copy for me the Gregorian tones. Froude and I made two calls upon Monsignore (now Cardinal) Wiseman at the Collegio Inglese, shortly before we left Rome. I do not recollect being in a room with any other ecclesiastics, except a Priest at Castro-Giovanni in Sicily, who called on me when I was ill, and with whom I wished to hold a controversy. As to Church Services, we attended the Tenebræ, at the Sestine, for the sake of the Miserere; and that was all. My general feeling was, "All, save the spirit of man, is divine." I saw nothing but what was external; of the hidden life of Catholics I knew nothing. I was still more driven back into myself, and felt my isolation. England was in my thoughts solely, and the news from England came rarely and imperfectly. The Bill for the Suppression of the Irish Sees was in progress, and filled my mind. I had fierce thoughts against the Liberals.
I visited several coasts of the Mediterranean, said goodbye to my friends in Rome, and then traveled to Sicily for the second time at the end of April, returning to England from Palermo in early July. The unfamiliarity of foreign life made me turn inward; I found joy in historical sites and beautiful landscapes, not in people and their ways. Throughout our trip, we avoided Catholics. I had a conversation with the Dean of Malta, a very nice man who recently passed away; we discussed the Church Fathers and the library of the great church. I knew Abbate Santini in Rome, who only copied the Gregorian tones for me. Froude and I visited Monsignore (now Cardinal) Wiseman at the Collegio Inglese twice, just before we left Rome. I can’t remember being in a room with any other clergy, except for a priest in Castro-Giovanni, Sicily, who visited me when I was sick, and I wanted to debate with him. Regarding church services, we attended the Tenebræ at the Sestine just to hear the Miserere; that was it. My overall feeling was, "Everything except the human spirit is divine." I saw nothing beyond the surface; I knew nothing of the inner life of Catholics. I became even more introspective and acutely felt my isolation. My thoughts were solely on England, and news from there was infrequent and incomplete. The bill for the suppression of the Irish Sees was underway, and it occupied my mind. I had intense feelings against the Liberals.
It was the success of the Liberal cause which fretted me inwardly. I became fierce against its instruments and its manifestations. A French vessel was at Algiers; I would not even look at the tricolour. On my return, though forced to stop a day at Paris, I kept indoors the whole time, and all that I saw of that beautiful city, was what I saw from the Diligence. The Bishop of London had already sounded me as to my filling one of the Whitehall preacherships, which he had just then put on a new footing; but I was indignant at the line which he was taking, and from my steamer I had sent home a letter declining the appointment by anticipation, should it be offered to me. At this time I was specially annoyed with Dr. Arnold, though it did not last into later years. Some one, I think, asked in conversation at Rome, whether a certain interpretation of Scripture was Christian? it was answered that Dr. Arnold took it; I interposed, "But is he a Christian?" The subject went out of my head at once; when afterwards I was taxed with it I could say no more in explanation, than that I thought I must have been alluding to some free views of Dr. Arnold about the Old Testament:—I thought I must have meant, "But who is to answer for Arnold?" It was at Rome too that we began the Lyra Apostolica which appeared monthly in the British Magazine. The motto shows the feeling of both Froude and myself at the time: we borrowed from M. Bunsen a Homer, and Froude chose the words in which Achilles, on returning to the battle, says, "You shall know the difference, now that I am back again."
It was the success of the Liberal cause that upset me internally. I became furious against its tools and its expressions. A French ship was in Algiers; I wouldn’t even look at the tricolor. On my return, although I had to spend a day in Paris, I stayed indoors the entire time, and all I saw of that beautiful city was what I glimpsed from the coach. The Bishop of London had already approached me about taking one of the Whitehall preaching positions, which he had just restructured; but I was outraged by his approach, and from my steamer, I had sent home a letter declining the position in advance, should it be offered to me. During this time, I was particularly frustrated with Dr. Arnold, though that feeling didn’t last into later years. Someone, I think, asked in conversation in Rome whether a certain interpretation of Scripture was Christian; it was answered that Dr. Arnold accepted it; I interjected, “But is he a Christian?” The topic slipped from my mind right away; when later I was confronted about it, all I could say was that I thought I must have been referring to some liberal views of Dr. Arnold regarding the Old Testament: I thought I must have meant, “But who will defend Arnold?” It was also in Rome that we started the Lyra Apostolica, which appeared monthly in the British Magazine. The motto reflects the sentiments of both Froude and me at the time: we borrowed a Homer from M. Bunsen, and Froude selected the words where Achilles, returning to battle, says, “You’ll see the difference now that I’m back.”
Especially when I was left by myself, the thought came upon me that deliverance is wrought, not by the many but by the few, not by bodies but by persons. Now it was, I think, that I repeated to myself the words, which had ever been dear to me from my school days, "Exoriare aliquis!"—now too, that Southey's beautiful poem of Thalaba, for which I had an immense liking, came forcibly to my mind. I began to think that I had a mission. There are sentences of my letters to my friends to this effect, if they are not destroyed. When we took leave of Monsignore Wiseman, he had courteously expressed a wish that we might make a second visit to Rome; I said with great gravity, "We have a work to do in England." I went down at once to Sicily, and the presentiment grew stronger. I struck into the middle of the island, and fell ill of a fever at Leonforte. My servant thought that I was dying, and begged for my last directions. I gave them, as he wished; but I said, "I shall not die." I repeated, "I shall not die, for I have not sinned against light, I have not sinned against light." I never have been able to make out at all what I meant.
Especially when I was alone, the thought hit me that deliverance comes, not from the many but from the few, not from groups but from individuals. It was then, I think, that I repeated to myself the words that have always meant a lot to me since my school days, "Exoriare aliquis!"—and it was also then that Southey's beautiful poem, Thalaba, which I loved immensely, came to mind. I started to think that I had a mission. There are sentences in my letters to friends that reflect this, if they haven't been destroyed. When we said goodbye to Monsignore Wiseman, he kindly expressed a wish for us to visit Rome again; I replied seriously, "We have work to do in England." I went straight to Sicily, and the feeling grew stronger. I ventured into the center of the island and fell ill with a fever in Leonforte. My servant thought I was dying and asked for my last wishes. I gave them, as he wanted; but I insisted, "I shall not die." I repeated, "I shall not die, for I have not sinned against light, I have not sinned against light." I've never really understood what I meant by that.
I got to Castro-Giovanni, and was laid up there for nearly three weeks. Towards the end of May I set off for Palermo, taking three days for the journey. Before starting from my inn in the morning of May 26th or 27th, I sat down on my bed, and began to sob bitterly. My servant, who had acted as my nurse, asked what ailed me. I could only answer, "I have a work to do in England."
I arrived in Castro-Giovanni and stayed there for almost three weeks. By the end of May, I left for Palermo, taking three days to make the trip. Before I left my inn on the morning of May 26th or 27th, I sat on my bed and started crying hard. My servant, who had been taking care of me, asked what was wrong. I could only reply, "I have a task to complete in England."
I was aching to get home; yet for want of a vessel I was kept at Palermo for three weeks. I began to visit the Churches, and they calmed my impatience, though I did not attend any services. I knew nothing of the presence of the Blessed Sacrament there. At last I got off in an orange boat, bound for Marseilles. We were becalmed a whole week in the Straits of Bonifacio. Then it was that I wrote the lines, "Lead, kindly light," which have since become well known. I was writing verses the whole time of my passage. At length I got to Marseilles, and set off for England. The fatigue of travelling was too much for me, and I was laid up for several days at Lyons. At last I got off again and did not stop night or day till I reached England, and my mother's house. My brother had arrived from Persia only a few hours before. This was on the Tuesday. The following Sunday, July 14th, Mr. Keble preached the assize Sermon in the University Pulpit. It was published under the title of "National Apostasy." I have ever considered and kept the day, as the start of the religious movement of 1833.
I was desperate to get home, but without a ship, I was stuck in Palermo for three weeks. I started visiting the churches, which eased my frustration, even though I didn’t attend any services. I had no idea the Blessed Sacrament was present there. Finally, I boarded an orange boat heading to Marseilles. We were stuck without wind for a whole week in the Straits of Bonifacio. It was during this time that I wrote the lines, "Lead, kindly light," which have since become famous. I was writing poetry the entire journey. Eventually, I arrived in Marseilles and set off for England. The exhaustion from traveling took its toll, and I was laid up for several days in Lyons. Finally, I got going again and didn’t stop, day or night, until I reached England and my mother’s house. My brother had returned from Persia just a few hours earlier. This was on a Tuesday. The following Sunday, July 14th, Mr. Keble preached the assize Sermon in the University Pulpit. It was published under the title "National Apostasy." I have always regarded and observed this day as the beginning of the religious movement of 1833.
Footnote
[1] Vid. Mr. Morris's beautiful poem with this title.
[1] Vid. Mr. Morris's lovely poem with this title.
Part IV
History of My Religious Opinions—1833–1839
In spite of the foregoing pages, I have no romantic story to tell; but I wrote them, because it is my duty to tell things as they took place. I have not exaggerated the feelings with which I returned to England, and I have no desire to dress up the events which followed, so as to make them in keeping with the narrative which has gone before. I soon relapsed into the every-day life which I had hitherto led; in all things the same, except that a new object was given me. I had employed myself in my own rooms in reading and writing, and in the care of a church, before I left England, and I returned to the same occupations when I was back again. And yet perhaps those first vehement feelings which carried me on were necessary for the beginning of the movement; and afterwards, when it was once begun, the special need of me was over.
Despite what I've shared so far, I don't have a romantic story to tell. I wrote it all because it's my responsibility to recount things as they happened. I haven't exaggerated the feelings I had when I returned to England, and I don't want to embellish the events that followed to make them fit better with the earlier narrative. I quickly fell back into the daily life I had led before, with everything remaining the same except for a new purpose. Before I left England, I had spent my time in my room reading and writing, and taking care of a church, and I went back to those same activities when I returned. Yet, perhaps those intense feelings that motivated me initially were essential for starting the movement; after that, once it was underway, my specific need diminished.
When I got home from abroad, I found that already a movement had commenced in opposition to the specific danger which at that time was threatening the religion of the nation and its church. Several zealous and able men had united their counsels, and were in correspondence with each other. The principal of these were Mr. Keble, Hurrell Froude, who had reached home long before me, Mr. William Palmer of Dublin and Worcester College (not Mr. W. Palmer of Magdalen, who is now a Catholic), Mr. Arthur Perceval, and Mr. Hugh Rose.
When I got back home from abroad, I found that a movement had already started to address the specific threat that was endangering the nation's religion and its church at that time. Several passionate and capable men had come together and were communicating with one another. The main ones involved were Mr. Keble, Hurrell Froude, who had returned long before I did, Mr. William Palmer from Dublin and Worcester College (not Mr. W. Palmer from Magdalen, who is now a Catholic), Mr. Arthur Perceval, and Mr. Hugh Rose.
To mention Mr. Hugh Rose's name is to kindle in the minds of those who knew him, a host of pleasant and affectionate remembrances. He was the man above all others fitted by his cast of mind and literary powers to make a stand, if a stand could be made, against the calamity of the times. He was gifted with a high and large mind, and a true sensibility of what was great and beautiful; he wrote with warmth and energy; and he had a cool head and cautious judgment. He spent his strength and shortened his life, Pro Ecclesia Dei, as he understood that sovereign idea. Some years earlier he had been the first to give warning, I think from the university pulpit at Cambridge, of the perils to England which lay in the biblical and theological speculations of Germany. The Reform agitation followed, and the Whig government came into power; and he anticipated in their distribution of church patronage the authoritative introduction of liberal opinions into the country:—by "liberal" I mean liberalism in religion, for questions of politics, as such, do not come into this narrative at all. He feared that by the Whig party a door would be opened in England to the most grievous of heresies, which never could be closed again. In order under such grave circumstances to unite Churchmen together, and to make a front against the coming danger, he had in 1832 commenced the British Magazine, and in the same year he came to Oxford in the summer term, in order to beat up for writers for his publication; on that occasion I became known to him through Mr. Palmer. His reputation and position came in aid of his obvious fitness, in point of character and intellect, to become the centre of an ecclesiastical movement, if such a movement were to depend on the action of a party. His delicate health, his premature death, would have frustrated the expectation, even though the new school of opinion had been more exactly thrown into the shape of a party, than in fact was the case. But he zealously backed up the first efforts of those who were principals in it; and, when he went abroad to die, in 1838, he allowed me the solace of expressing my feelings of attachment and gratitude to him by addressing him, in the dedication of a volume of my Sermons, as the man, "who, when hearts were failing, bade us stir up the gift that was in us, and betake ourselves to our true Mother."
Mentioning Mr. Hugh Rose's name brings to mind a wealth of warm and loving memories for those who knew him. He was the person most equipped by his mindset and literary talents to take a stand, if a stand could be made, against the troubles of the time. He had a broad and deep intellect, along with a genuine sensitivity to what was great and beautiful; he wrote with passion and energy, and he possessed a calm demeanor and careful judgment. He dedicated his strength and shortened his life for the Church, as he understood that noble concept. Years earlier, he was the first to warn, I believe from the university pulpit at Cambridge, about the dangers that England faced from the biblical and theological speculations emerging from Germany. The Reform movement followed, leading to the Whig government taking power; he predicted that their distribution of church patronage would introduce liberal opinions into the country: by "liberal," I mean liberalism in religion, as political questions do not factor into this narrative at all. He feared that the Whig party would open a door in England to the most serious of heresies, one that could never be shut again. To unite Churchmen and create a united front against the impending danger, he started the British Magazine in 1832, and that summer he came to Oxford to seek out contributors for his publication; it was during this time that I met him through Mr. Palmer. His reputation and status highlighted his obvious suitability, in terms of character and intellect, to become the leader of an ecclesiastical movement, should such a movement depend on a party's actions. However, his fragile health and early death would have thwarted those expectations, even if the new school of thought had been more distinctly organized as a party than it actually was. Nevertheless, he vigorously supported the initial efforts of its key players; and when he went abroad to pass away in 1838, he allowed me the comfort of expressing my feelings of attachment and gratitude to him by dedicating a volume of my Sermons to him, as the man "who, when hearts were failing, encouraged us to stir up the gift that was within us and return to our true Mother."
But there were other reasons, besides Mr. Rose's state of health, which hindered those who so much admired him from availing themselves of his close co-operation in the coming fight. United as both he and they were in the general scope of the Movement, they were in discordance with each other from the first in their estimate of the means to be adopted for attaining it. Mr. Rose had a position in the church, a name, and serious responsibilities; he had direct ecclesiastical superiors; he had intimate relations with his own university, and a large clerical connection through the country. Froude and I were nobodies; with no characters to lose, and no antecedents to fetter us. Rose could not go ahead across country, as Froude had no scruples in doing. Froude was a bold rider, as on horseback, so also in his speculations. After a long conversation with him on the logical bearing of his principles, Mr. Rose said of him with quiet humour, that "he did not seem to be afraid of inferences." It was simply the truth; Froude had that strong hold of first principles, and that keen perception of their value, that he was comparatively indifferent to the revolutionary action which would attend on their application to a given state of things; whereas in the thoughts of Rose, as a practical man, existing facts had the precedence of every other idea, and the chief test of the soundness of a line of policy lay in the consideration whether it would work. This was one of the first questions, which, as it seemed to me, ever occurred to his mind. With Froude, Erastianism—that is, the union (so he viewed it) of church and state—was the parent, or if not the parent, the serviceable and sufficient tool, of liberalism. Till that union was snapped, Christian doctrine never could be safe; and, while he well knew how high and unselfish was the temper of Mr. Rose, yet he used to apply to him an epithet, reproachful in his own mouth;—Rose was a "conservative." By bad luck, I brought out this word to Mr. Rose in a letter of my own, which I wrote to him in criticism of something he had inserted into the Magazine: I got a vehement rebuke for my pains, for though Rose pursued a conservative line, he had as high a disdain, as Froude could have, of a worldly ambition, and an extreme sensitiveness of such an imputation.
But there were other reasons, besides Mr. Rose's health issues, that prevented those who admired him from taking advantage of his close help in the upcoming fight. Although both he and they shared the overall vision of the Movement, they disagreed from the start on the methods to achieve it. Mr. Rose held a position in the church, had a reputation, and serious responsibilities; he had direct church superiors, close ties with his university, and a wide clerical network across the country. Froude and I were unknowns; we had no reputations to lose and no past to hold us back. Rose couldn't take bold actions as Froude had no hesitation in doing. Froude was a bold thinker, just as he was a daring rider. After a lengthy discussion with him about the logical implications of his principles, Mr. Rose wryly remarked that "he didn't seem afraid of inferences." That was simply true; Froude had a strong grasp of fundamental principles and a sharp awareness of their significance, which made him relatively indifferent to the revolutionary consequences that would follow their application to any situation. In Rose's practical mind, however, existing facts took precedence over any other considerations, and the main test of a policy's validity was whether it would actually work. This was one of the first questions that seemed to occur to him. For Froude, Erastianism—meaning the alliance of church and state—was the origin, or at least a useful tool, of liberalism. Until that alliance was broken, Christian doctrine could never be secure; and while he recognized Mr. Rose's honorable and selfless nature, he often called him a "conservative," with a hint of reproach in his tone. Unfortunately, I used this label in a letter to Mr. Rose while criticizing something he had written for the Magazine: I received a strong rebuke for my trouble, for although Rose followed a conservative approach, he had as much disdain for worldly ambition as Froude did, and he was extremely sensitive to such an accusation.
But there was another reason still, and a more elementary one, which severed Mr. Rose from the Oxford movement. Living movements do not come of committees, nor are great ideas worked out through the post, even though it had been the penny post. This principle deeply penetrated both Froude and myself from the first, and recommended to us the course which things soon took spontaneously, and without set purpose of our own. Universities are the natural centres of intellectual movements. How could men act together, whatever was their zeal, unless they were united in a sort of individuality? Now, first, we had no unity of place. Mr. Rose was in Suffolk, Mr. Perceval in Surrey, Mr. Keble in Gloucestershire; Hurrell Froude had to go for his health to Barbados. Mr. Palmer indeed was in Oxford; this was an important advantage, and told well in the first months of the Movement;—but another condition, besides that of place, was required.
But there was another reason, a more fundamental one, that separated Mr. Rose from the Oxford movement. Living movements don’t come from committees, nor are great ideas developed through the mail, even if it was the penny postal service. This principle deeply influenced both Froude and me from the beginning, guiding us toward the direction that things soon took naturally, without any specific intention on our part. Universities are the natural hubs of intellectual movements. How could people work together, no matter how passionate they were, unless they were connected by a shared individuality? First, we had no unity of location. Mr. Rose was in Suffolk, Mr. Perceval in Surrey, Mr. Keble in Gloucestershire; Hurrell Froude had to go to Barbados for his health. Mr. Palmer was indeed in Oxford; this was a significant advantage and helped in the initial months of the Movement;—but another condition, in addition to location, was needed.
A far more essential unity was that of antecedents,—a common history, common memories, an intercourse of mind with mind in the past, and a progress and increase of that intercourse in the present. Mr. Perceval, to be sure, was a pupil of Mr. Keble's; but Keble, Rose, and Palmer, represented distinct parties, or at least tempers, in the Establishment. Mr. Palmer had many conditions of authority and influence. He was the only really learned man among us. He understood theology as a science; he was practised in the scholastic mode of controversial writing; and I believe, was as well acquainted, as he was dissatisfied, with the Catholic schools. He was as decided in his religious views, as he was cautious and even subtle in their expression, and gentle in their enforcement. But he was deficient in depth; and besides, coming from a distance, he never had really grown into an Oxford man, nor was he generally received as such; nor had he any insight into the force of personal influence and congeniality of thought in carrying out a religious theory,—a condition which Froude and I considered essential to any true success in the stand which had to be made against Liberalism. Mr. Palmer had a certain connection, as it may be called, in the Establishment, consisting of high Church dignitaries, archdeacons, London rectors, and the like, who belonged to what was commonly called the high-and-dry school. They were far more opposed than even he was to the irresponsible action of individuals. Of course their beau ideal in ecclesiastical action was a board of safe, sound, sensible men. Mr. Palmer was their organ and representative; and he wished for a Committee, an Association, with rules and meetings, to protect the interests of the Church in its existing peril. He was in some measure supported by Mr. Perceval.
A much more important unity was that of shared backgrounds—common history, shared memories, a connection of minds in the past, and a growth of that connection in the present. Mr. Perceval was certainly a student of Mr. Keble; however, Keble, Rose, and Palmer represented different factions, or at least attitudes, within the Establishment. Mr. Palmer had various sources of authority and influence. He was the only truly learned person among us. He understood theology as a science, was skilled in the scholastic approach to argumentative writing, and was, I believe, well-acquainted with and dissatisfied with the Catholic schools. He was firm in his religious beliefs but careful and even subtle in how he expressed them, and gentle in how he enforced them. However, he lacked depth; plus, coming from afar, he never really became an Oxford man, nor was he generally accepted as such; he also didn’t grasp the importance of personal influence and shared thought in promoting a religious theory—a factor that Froude and I believed was vital for any real success in the fight against Liberalism. Mr. Palmer had some connections, as it could be called, within the Establishment, which included high Church dignitaries, archdeacons, London rectors, and others who belonged to what was commonly referred to as the high-and-dry school. They were even more opposed than he was to the unaccountable actions of individuals. Naturally, their ideal in church governance was a group of safe, reliable, sensible men. Mr. Palmer served as their spokesperson and representative, and he sought a Committee, an Association, with rules and meetings to safeguard the Church's interests in its current danger. He had some support from Mr. Perceval.
I, on the other hand, had out of my own head begun the Tracts; and these, as representing the antagonist principle of personality, were looked upon by Mr. Palmer's friends with considerable alarm. The great point at the time with these good men in London,—some of them men of the highest principle, and far from influenced by what we used to call Erastianism,—was to put down the Tracts. I, as their editor, and mainly their author, was not unnaturally willing to give way. Keble and Froude advocated their continuance strongly, and were angry with me for consenting to stop them. Mr. Palmer shared the anxiety of his own friends; and, kind as were his thoughts of us, he still not unnaturally felt, for reasons of his own, some fidget and nervousness at the course which his Oriel friends were taking. Froude, for whom he had a real liking, took a high tone in his project of measures for dealing with bishops and clergy, which must have shocked and scandalised him considerably. As for me, there was matter enough in the early Tracts to give him equal disgust; and doubtless I much tasked his generosity, when he had to defend me, whether against the London dignitaries, or the country clergy. Oriel, from the time of Dr. Copleston to Dr. Hampden, had had a name far and wide for liberality of thought; it had received a formal recognition from the Edinburgh Review, if my memory serves me truly, as the school of speculative philosophy in England; and on one occasion, in 1833, when I presented myself, with some the first papers of the movement, to a country clergyman in Northamptonshire, he paused awhile, and then, eyeing me with significance, asked, "Whether Whately was at the bottom of them?"
I had started the Tracts on my own, and since they represented the opposing idea of individuality, Mr. Palmer's friends viewed them with significant concern. At that time, the priority for these good men in London—some of whom were very principled and not swayed by what we used to call Erastianism—was to get rid of the Tracts. As the editor and mostly the author, I wasn’t exactly keen on them continuing. Keble and Froude strongly supported keeping them going and were upset with me for agreeing to stop them. Mr. Palmer was understandably worried, just like his friends. Even though he had kind feelings toward us, he still felt some anxiety and tension about the direction his Oriel friends were going. Froude, whom he genuinely liked, took a strong stance on how to handle bishops and clergy, which probably shocked and unsettled him quite a bit. As for me, there was more than enough in the early Tracts to equally disgust him, and I certainly made it hard for him when he had to defend me, whether it was against the London officials or the country clergy. Oriel, from Dr. Copleston to Dr. Hampden, had gained a reputation for openness of thought; it had even been formally recognized by the Edinburgh Review, if I remember correctly, as the leading school of speculative philosophy in England. One time, in 1833, when I approached a country clergyman in Northamptonshire with some of the initial papers of the movement, he paused for a moment, looked at me pointedly, and asked, "Is Whately behind this?"
Mr. Perceval wrote to me in support of the judgment of Mr. Palmer and the dignitaries. I replied in a letter, which he afterwards published. "As to the Tracts," I said to him (I quote my own words from his pamphlet), "every one has his own taste. You object to some things, another to others. If we altered to please every one, the effect would be spoiled. They were not intended as symbols è cathedrâ, but as the expression of individual minds; and individuals, feeling strongly, while on the one hand, they are incidentally faulty in mode or language, are still peculiarly effective. No great work was done by a system; whereas systems rise out of individual exertions. Luther was an individual. The very faults of an individual excite attention; he loses, but his cause (if good and he powerful-minded) gains. This is the way of things: we promote truth by a self-sacrifice."
Mr. Perceval wrote to me in support of Mr. Palmer’s judgment and the other dignitaries. I responded in a letter that he later published. "Regarding the Tracts,” I told him (I’m quoting my own words from his pamphlet), “everyone has their own preferences. You don’t like certain things, while others dislike different ones. If we changed things to satisfy everyone, the overall effect would be lost. They weren’t meant to be official statements but rather expressions of individual thoughts; and individuals, even if they occasionally falter in style or language, can be particularly impactful. No major achievements come from a system; instead, systems emerge from individual efforts. Luther was one such individual. The very flaws of an individual grab attention; they may lose, but if their cause is just and they are strong-minded, they ultimately succeed. That’s how it works: we advance the truth through self-sacrifice."
The visit which I made to the Northamptonshire Rector was only one of a series of similar expedients, which I adopted during the year 1833. I called upon clergy in various parts of the country, whether I was acquainted with them or not, and I attended at the houses of friends where several of them were from time to time assembled. I do not think that much came of such attempts, nor were they quite in my way. Also I wrote various letters to clergymen, which fared not much better, except that they advertised the fact, that a rally in favour of the church was commencing. I did not care whether my visits were made to high church or low church; I wished to make a strong pull in union with all who were opposed to the principles of liberalism, whoever they might be. Giving my name to the editor, I commenced a series of letters in the Record newspaper: they ran to a considerable length; and were borne by him with great courtesy and patience. They were headed as being on "Church Reform." The first was on the Revival of Church Discipline; the second, on its Scripture proof; the third, on the application of the doctrine; the fourth, was an answer to objections; the fifth, was on the benefits of discipline. And then the series was abruptly brought to a termination. I had said what I really felt, and what was also in keeping with the strong teaching of the Tracts, but I suppose the Editor discovered in me some divergence from his own line of thought; for at length he sent a very civil letter, apologising for the non-appearance of my sixth communication, on the ground that it contained an attack upon "Temperance Societies," about which he did not wish a controversy in his columns. He added, however, his serious regret at the character of the Tracts. I had subscribed a small sum in 1828 towards the first start of the Record.
The visit I made to the Northamptonshire Rector was just one of a series of similar efforts I undertook during the year 1833. I reached out to clergy in different parts of the country, whether I knew them or not, and visited friends' homes where many of them gathered from time to time. I don’t think much came from these attempts, and they didn’t quite suit me. I also wrote several letters to clergymen, which didn’t go much better, except that they indicated a movement supporting the church was starting. I didn’t care if my visits were to high church or low church; I wanted to work together with anyone opposed to liberalism, no matter who they were. After giving my name to the editor, I started a series of letters in the Record newspaper: they were quite lengthy and the editor handled them with great courtesy and patience. They were titled "Church Reform." The first was about the Revival of Church Discipline; the second focused on its Biblical proof; the third discussed the application of the doctrine; the fourth responded to objections; the fifth addressed the benefits of discipline. Then the series was suddenly cut off. I had expressed what I truly believed, aligned with the strong messages of the Tracts, but I suppose the editor noticed I diverged from his own views; eventually, he sent a very polite letter apologizing for not publishing my sixth letter, stating it attacked "Temperance Societies," and he didn’t want that controversy in his columns. He added, however, that he regretted the nature of the Tracts. I had contributed a small amount in 1828 to help launch the Record.
Acts of the officious character, which I have been describing, were uncongenial to my natural temper, to the genius of the movement, and to the historical mode of its success:—they were the fruit of that exuberant and joyous energy with which I had returned from abroad, and which I never had before or since. I had the exultation of health restored, and home regained. While I was at Palermo and thought of the breadth of the Mediterranean, and the wearisome journey across France, I could not imagine how I was ever to get to England; but now I was amid familiar scenes and faces once more. And my health and strength came back to me with such a rebound, that some friends at Oxford, on seeing me, did not well know that it was I, and hesitated before they spoke to me. And I had the consciousness that I was employed in that work which I had been dreaming about, and which I felt to be so momentous and inspiring. I had a supreme confidence in our cause; we were upholding that primitive Christianity which was delivered for all time by the early teachers of the Church, and which was registered and attested in the Anglican formularies and by the Anglican divines. That ancient religion had well nigh faded away out of the land, through the political changes of the last 150 years, and it must be restored. It would be in fact a second Reformation:—a better reformation, for it would be a return not to the sixteenth century, but to the seventeenth. No time was to be lost, for the Whigs had come to do their worst, and the rescue might come too late. Bishopricks were already in course of suppression; Church property was in course of confiscation; sees would soon be receiving unsuitable occupants. We knew enough to begin preaching upon, and there was no one else to preach. I felt as on a vessel, which first gets under weigh, and then the deck is cleared out, and the luggage and live stock stored away into their proper receptacles.
The pushy actions I’ve been talking about didn't align with my natural disposition, the spirit of the movement, or the way it had historically been successful. They were the result of that vibrant and joyful energy I returned with from abroad, which I’d never felt before or since. I was filled with the excitement of restored health and coming back home. While I was in Palermo, thinking about the vastness of the Mediterranean and the tiring journey across France, I couldn’t imagine how I would get to England. But now I was surrounded by familiar sights and faces again. My health and strength bounced back so much that some friends in Oxford hardly recognized me at first and hesitated to approach me. I was aware that I was engaged in work I had long dreamed about, and I felt it was incredibly important and inspiring. I had complete confidence in our cause; we were defending that original Christianity delivered for all time by the early Church teachers, which was documented and confirmed in the Anglican teachings and by Anglican theologians. That ancient faith had nearly disappeared from the country due to the political changes over the last 150 years, and it needed to be revived. It would essentially be a second Reformation, but a better one, since it would be a return to the seventeenth century, not the sixteenth. We couldn’t waste any time because the Whigs were determined to do their worst, and the rescue might come too late. Bishoprics were already being suppressed, Church property was being confiscated, and soon sees would be occupied by unsuitable leaders. We had enough knowledge to start preaching, and there was no one else willing to do it. I felt like a ship that has set sail, with the deck cleared, and the cargo and livestock being stowed away in their proper places.
Nor was it only that I had confidence in our cause, both in itself, and in its controversial force, but besides, I despised every rival system of doctrine and its arguments. As to the high church and the low church, I thought that the one had not much more of a logical basis than the other; while I had a thorough contempt for the evangelical. I had a real respect for the character of many of the advocates of each party, but that did not give cogency to their arguments; and I thought on the other hand that the apostolical form of doctrine was essential and imperative, and its grounds of evidence impregnable. Owing to this confidence, it came to pass at that time, that there was a double aspect in my bearing towards others, which it is necessary for me to enlarge upon. My behaviour had a mixture in it both of fierceness and of sport; and on this account, I dare say, it gave offence to many; nor am I here defending it.
I didn't just believe in our cause for its own sake and its controversial impact, but I also looked down on every competing set of beliefs and their arguments. When it came to the high church and the low church, I thought neither had much of a solid logical foundation, and I had a deep disdain for evangelical beliefs. I respected the character of many advocates from each side, but that didn’t make their arguments any stronger. On the other hand, I believed that the apostolic form of doctrine was essential and necessary, and its proof was unshakeable. Because of this confidence, at that time, I had a dual attitude towards others that I need to elaborate on. My behavior was a mix of intensity and playfulness, and because of that, I probably offended many people; I'm not here to defend that.
I wished men to a agree with me, and I walked with them step by step, as far as they would go; this I did sincerely; but if they would stop, I did not much care about it, but walked on, with some satisfaction that I had brought them so far. I liked to make them preach the truth without knowing it, and encouraged them to do so. It was a satisfaction to me that the Record had allowed me to say so much in its columns, without remonstrance. I was amused to hear of one of the bishops, who, on reading an early Tract on the Apostolical Succession, could not make up his mind whether he held the doctrine or not. I was not distressed at the wonder or anger of dull and self-conceited men, at propositions which they did not understand. When a correspondent, in good faith, wrote to a newspaper, to say that the "Sacrifice of the Holy Eucharist," spoken of in the Tract, was a false print for "Sacrament," I thought the mistake too pleasant to be corrected before I was asked about it. I was not unwilling to draw an opponent on step by step to the brink of some intellectual absurdity, and to leave him to get back as he could. I was not unwilling to play with a man, who asked me impertinent questions. I think I had in my mouth the words of the wise man, "Answer a fool according to his folly," especially if he was prying or spiteful. I was reckless of the gossip which was circulated about me; and, when I might easily have set it right, did not deign to do so. Also I used irony in conversation, when matter-of-fact men would not see what I meant.
I wanted men to agree with me, so I walked alongside them as far as they were willing to go; I did this genuinely, but if they chose to stop, I didn't really mind and just continued on, satisfied that I had gotten them that far. I enjoyed making them talk about the truth without realizing it, and I encouraged them to do so. It pleased me that the Record let me express so much in its pages without objection. I found it funny to hear about one of the bishops who, after reading an early Tract on the Apostolical Succession, couldn't decide if he believed in the doctrine or not. I wasn’t bothered by the confusion or anger of dull and self-important people towards ideas they didn't understand. When a correspondent, genuinely believing it, wrote to a newspaper claiming that the "Sacrifice of the Holy Eucharist" mentioned in the Tract was a misprint for "Sacrament," I thought it was too amusing to correct before being asked about it. I didn’t mind leading an opponent step by step to the edge of some intellectual absurdity and leaving them to find their way back. I was open to engaging with someone who asked me rude questions. I think I had in mind the wise saying, "Answer a fool according to his folly," especially if he was nosy or spiteful. I didn't care about the rumors going around about me and, when I could have easily set the record straight, chose not to bother. I also used irony in conversation when practical-minded people wouldn’t understand what I meant.
This kind of behaviour was a sort of habit with me. If I have ever trifled with my subject, it was a more serious fault. I never used arguments which I saw clearly to be unsound. The nearest approach which I remember to such conduct, but which I consider was clear of it nevertheless, was in the case of Tract 15. The matter of this Tract was supplied to me by a friend, to whom I had applied for assistance, but who did not wish to be mixed up with the publication. He gave it me, that I might throw it into shape, and I took his arguments as they stood. In the chief portion of the Tract I fully agreed; for instance, as to what it says about the Council of Trent; but there were arguments, or some argument, in it which I did not follow; I do not recollect what it was. Froude, I think, was disgusted with the whole Tract, and accused me of economy in publishing it. It is principally through Mr. Froude's Remains that this word has got into our language. I think I defended myself with arguments such as these:—that, as every one knew, the Tracts were written by various persons who agreed together in their doctrine, but not always in the arguments by which it was to be proved; that we must be tolerant of difference of opinion among ourselves; that the author of the Tract had a right to his own opinion, and that the argument in question was ordinarily received; that I did not give my own name or authority, nor was asked for my personal belief, but only acted instrumentally, as one might translate a friend's book into a foreign language. I account these to be good arguments; nevertheless I feel also that such practices admit of easy abuse and are consequently dangerous; but then again, I feel also this,—that if all such mistakes were to be severely visited, not many men in public life would be left with a character for honour and honesty.
This kind of behavior was a bit of a habit for me. If I ever messed around with my subject, it was a more serious mistake. I never used arguments that I clearly saw were flawed. The closest I've come to that kind of behavior, which I still believe was not quite the case, was with Tract 15. A friend provided the material for this Tract after I asked for help, but he didn’t want to be involved in the publication. He gave it to me so I could shape it, and I accepted his arguments as they were. For the main part of the Tract, I completely agreed, especially regarding what it says about the Council of Trent; however, there was an argument, or maybe a couple of them, in it that I didn’t follow; I can’t recall what it was. I believe Froude was frustrated with the whole Tract and accused me of being thrifty in publishing it. It's mainly through Mr. Froude's Remains that this term has entered our language. I defended myself with arguments like these: as everyone knows, the Tracts were written by different people who shared the same doctrine but not always the same arguments to support it; we must be tolerant of differing opinions among ourselves; the author of the Tract had the right to his opinion, and the argument in question was generally accepted; I didn’t put down my name or authority, nor was I asked for my personal belief, but I was just acting as an intermediary, like translating a friend's book into another language. I consider these to be valid points; however, I also recognize that such practices can easily be misused and are therefore risky; yet, I also feel this—if all such mistakes were to be harshly punished, not many people in public life would remain with a reputation for integrity and honesty.
This absolute confidence in my cause, which led me to the imprudence or wantonness which I have been instancing, also laid me open, not unfairly, to the opposite charge of fierceness in certain steps which I took, or words which I published. In the Lyra Apostolica, I have said that, before learning to love, we must "learn to hate;" though I had explained my words by adding "hatred of sin." In one of my first sermons I said, "I do not shrink from uttering my firm conviction that it would be a gain to the country were it vastly more superstitious, more bigoted, more gloomy, more fierce in its religion than at present it shows itself to be." I added, of course, that it would be an absurdity to suppose such tempers of mind desirable in themselves. The corrector of the press bore these strong epithets till he got to "more fierce," and then he put in the margin a query. In the very first page of the first Tract, I said of the bishops, that, "black event though it would be for the country, yet we could not wish them a more blessed termination of their course, than the spoiling of their goods and martyrdom." In consequence of a passage in my work upon the Arian History, a Northern dignitary wrote to accuse me of wishing to re-establish the blood and torture of the Inquisition. Contrasting heretics and heresiarchs, I had said, "The latter should meet with no mercy; he assumes the office of the Tempter, and, so far forth as his error goes, must be dealt with by the competent authority, as if he were embodied evil. To spare him is a false and dangerous pity. It is to endanger the souls of thousands, and it is uncharitable towards himself." I cannot deny that this is a very fierce passage; but Arius was banished, not burned; and it is only fair to myself to say that neither at this, nor any other time of my life, not even when I was fiercest, could I have even cut off a Puritan's ears, and I think the sight of a Spanish auto-da-fé would have been the death of me. Again, when one of my friends, of liberal and evangelical opinions, wrote to expostulate with me on the course I was taking, I said that we would ride over him and his, as Othniel prevailed over Chushan-rishathaim, king of Mesopotamia. Again, I would have no dealings with my brother, and I put my conduct upon a syllogism. I said, "St. Paul bids us avoid those who cause divisions; you cause divisions: therefore I must avoid you." I dissuaded a lady from attending the marriage of a sister who had seceded from the Anglican Church. No wonder that Blanco White, who had known me under such different circumstances, now hearing the general course that I was taking, was amazed at the change which he recognised in me. He speaks bitterly and unfairly of me in his letters contemporaneously with the first years of the Movement; but in 1839, when looking back, he uses terms of me, which it would be hardly modest in me to quote, were it not that what he says of me in praise is but part of a whole account of me. He says: "In this party [the anti-Peel, in 1829] I found, to my great surprise, my dear friend, Mr. Newman of Oriel. As he had been one of the annual Petitioners to Parliament for Catholic Emancipation, his sudden union with the most violent bigots was inexplicable to me. That change was the first manifestation of the mental revolution, which has suddenly made him one of the leading persecutors of Dr. Hampden and the most active and influential member of that association, called the Puseyite party, from which we have those very strange productions, entitled, Tracts for the Times. While stating these public facts, my heart feels a pang at the recollection of the affectionate and mutual friendship between that excellent man and myself; a friendship, which his principles of orthodoxy could not allow him to continue in regard to one, whom he now regards as inevitably doomed to eternal perdition. Such is the venomous character of orthodoxy. What mischief must it create in a bad heart and narrow mind, when it can work so effectually for evil, in one of the most benevolent of bosoms, and one of the ablest of minds, in the amiable, the intellectual, the refined John Henry Newman!" (Vol. iii. p. 131.) He adds that I would have nothing to do with him, a circumstance which I do not recollect, and very much doubt.
This complete confidence in my beliefs, which led to my recklessness and the examples I've mentioned, also opened me up, not unfairly, to the opposite accusation of harshness in certain actions I took or statements I made. In the Lyra Apostolica, I stated that before we learn to love, we must "learn to hate;" although I clarified by adding "hatred of sin." In one of my first sermons, I said, "I do not hesitate to express my strong belief that it would benefit the country if it were much more superstitious, more bigoted, more gloomy, and more intense in its religion than it currently is." Of course, I also said it would be absurd to think such attitudes are desirable in themselves. The proofreader accepted these strong terms until he reached "more fierce," and then he wrote a query in the margin. On the very first page of the first Tract, I mentioned that regarding the bishops, "it would be a dark event for the country, yet we could not wish them a more blessed end to their journey than losing their possessions and being martyred." Due to a section in my work on Arian History, a northern church leader wrote to accuse me of wanting to bring back the bloodshed and torture of the Inquisition. I had noted the difference between heretics and heresiarchs, stating, "The latter should not be shown mercy; he takes on the role of the Tempter, and for as long as his error persists, he must be dealt with by the proper authority, as if he were evil personified. To show him mercy is a mistaken and dangerous kindness. It endangers the souls of many and is unkind towards him." I can't deny this is a very harsh statement; however, Arius was exiled, not executed; and it's only fair to say that at no point in my life, not even when I was at my fiercest, could I have harmed a Puritan, and I believe witnessing a Spanish auto-da-fé would have devastated me. Again, when one of my friends, who held liberal and evangelical views, reached out to argue with me about my actions, I stated that we would crush him and his followers, just as Othniel defeated Chushan-rishathaim, king of Mesopotamia. Moreover, I refused to associate with my brother and based my behavior on a syllogism. I remarked, "St. Paul tells us to avoid those who create divisions; you create divisions: therefore, I must avoid you." I discouraged a lady from attending the wedding of a sister who had left the Anglican Church. It’s no surprise that Blanco White, who had known me in such different situations, was astounded at the change he saw in me regarding my current path. He harshly and unfairly criticized me in his letters during the early years of the Movement; but in 1839, when reflecting back, he used descriptions of me that would hardly be modest for me to share, were it not that what he praised me for is just part of a broader account of my character. He said: "In this group [the anti-Peel, in 1829], I unexpectedly found my dear friend, Mr. Newman of Oriel. As he had been one of the annual petitioners to Parliament for Catholic Emancipation, his sudden alignment with the most extreme bigots was incomprehensible to me. That transformation was the first sign of the mental shift that quickly turned him into one of the leading antagonists of Dr. Hampden and the most proactive and influential member of that group called the Puseyite party, from which we got those very strange writings, titled, Tracts for the Times. While stating these public facts, I feel a pang in my heart remembering the friendly and mutual bond between that outstanding man and me; a friendship that his orthodox views could not allow him to maintain towards one whom he now sees as inevitably destined for eternal damnation. Such is the toxic nature of orthodoxy. What trouble must it stir in a corrupt heart and narrow mind when it can so effectively create evil in one of the kindest souls and best minds, in the amiable, the intellectual, the refined John Henry Newman!" (Vol. iii. p. 131.) He also noted that I would have nothing to do with him, a fact I do not remember and doubt very much.
I have spoken of my firm confidence in my position; and now let me state more definitely what the position was which I took up, and the propositions about which I was so confident. These were three:—
I have talked about my strong belief in my stance; and now let me clarify what exactly that stance was and the points I was so sure about. There were three of them:—
1. First was the principle of dogma: my battle was with liberalism; by liberalism I meant the anti-dogmatic principle and its developments. This was the first point on which I was certain. Here I make a remark: persistence in a given belief is no sufficient test of its truth; but departure from it is at least a slur upon the man who has felt so certain about it. In proportion then as I had in 1832 a strong persuasion in beliefs which I have since given up, so far a sort of guilt attaches to me, not only for that vain confidence, but for my multiform conduct in consequence of it. But here I have the satisfaction of feeling that I have nothing to retract, and nothing to repent of. The main principle of the Movement is as dear to me now as it ever was. I have changed in many things: in this I have not. From the age of fifteen, dogma has been the fundamental principle of my religion: I know no other religion; I cannot enter into the idea of any other sort of religion; religion, as a mere sentiment, is to me a dream and a mockery. As well can there be filial love without the fact of a father, as devotion without the fact of a Supreme Being. What I held in 1816, I held in 1833, and I hold in 1864. Please God, I shall hold it to the end. Even when I was under Dr. Whately's influence, I had no temptation to be less zealous for the great dogmas of the faith, and at various times I used to resist such trains of thought on his part, as seemed to me (rightly or wrongly) to obscure them. Such was the fundamental principle of the Movement of 1833.
1. First was the principle of dogma: my struggle was with liberalism; by liberalism, I meant the anti-dogmatic principle and its developments. This was the first thing I was sure of. Here’s a thought: sticking to a belief doesn’t necessarily prove it’s true; but moving away from it does reflect poorly on someone who was so convinced. So, as I had a strong belief in 1832 that I’ve since abandoned, I feel a sort of guilt, not just for that misplaced confidence, but for my varied actions as a result of it. However, I find comfort in knowing I have nothing to take back and nothing to regret. The core principle of the Movement means as much to me now as it always has. I’ve changed in many areas, but not in this one. Since I was fifteen, dogma has been the foundation of my faith: I know no other faith; I can't even grasp the idea of any other kind of religion; to me, religion as just a feeling is a fantasy and a joke. Just as there can't be a child's love without the reality of a father, there can't be devotion without the existence of a Supreme Being. What I believed in 1816, I believed in 1833, and I believe in
2. Secondly, I was confident in the truth of a certain definite religious teaching, based upon this foundation of dogma; viz. that there was a visible church with sacraments and rites which are the channels of invisible grace. I thought that this was the doctrine of Scripture, of the early Church, and of the Anglican Church. Here again, I have not changed in opinion; I am as certain now on this point as I was in 1833, and have never ceased to be certain. In 1834 and the following years I put this ecclesiastical doctrine on a broader basis, after reading Laud, Bramhall, and Stillingfleet and other Anglican divines on the one hand, and after prosecuting the study of the Fathers on the other; but the doctrine of 1833 was strengthened in me, not changed. When I began the Tracts for the Times I rested the main doctrine, of which I am speaking, upon Scripture, on St. Ignatius's Epistles, and on the Anglican Prayer Book. As to the existence of a visible church, I especially argued out the point from Scripture, in Tract 11, viz. from the Acts of the Apostles and the Epistles. As to the sacraments and sacramental rites, I stood on the Prayer Book. I appealed to the Ordination Service, in which the Bishop says, "Receive the Holy Ghost;" to the Visitation Service, which teaches confession and absolution; to the Baptismal Service, in which the Priest speaks of the child after baptism as regenerate; to the Catechism, in which Sacramental Communion is receiving "verily the Body and Blood of Christ;" to the Commination Service, in which we are told to do "works of penance;" to the Collects, Epistles, and Gospels, to the calendar and rubricks, wherein we find the festivals of the apostles, notice of certain other saints, and days of fasting and abstinence.
2. Secondly, I was confident in the truth of a specific religious teaching, based on this foundation of beliefs; namely, that there was a visible church with sacraments and rituals that serve as channels of invisible grace. I believed that this was the doctrine of Scripture, of the early Church, and of the Anglican Church. Again, I haven’t changed my mind; I am as certain now about this as I was in 1833 and have never stopped being certain. In 1834 and the years that followed, I placed this church doctrine on a broader foundation after reading Laud, Bramhall, Stillingfleet, and other Anglican theologians, while also studying the Church Fathers. However, the belief I held in 1833 was strengthened, not altered. When I began the Tracts for the Times, I based the main doctrine I’m discussing on Scripture, St. Ignatius's Epistles, and the Anglican Prayer Book. Regarding the existence of a visible church, I particularly argued this point from Scripture in Tract 11, using the Acts of the Apostles and the Epistles. For the sacraments and sacramental rituals, I relied on the Prayer Book. I referred to the Ordination Service, where the Bishop says, "Receive the Holy Ghost;" to the Visitation Service, which teaches confession and absolution; to the Baptismal Service, where the Priest refers to the child after baptism as regenerate; to the Catechism, where Sacramental Communion is described as receiving "verily the Body and Blood of Christ;" to the Commination Service, where we are told to do "works of penance;" and to the Collects, Epistles, and Gospels, along with the calendar and rubrics, which outline the festivals of the apostles, mention certain other saints, and include days of fasting and abstinence.
And further, as to the Episcopal system, I founded it upon the Epistles of St. Ignatius, which inculcated it in various ways. One passage especially impressed itself upon me: speaking of cases of disobedience to ecclesiastical authority, he says, "A man does not deceive that Bishop whom he sees, but he practises rather upon the Bishop Invisible, and so the question is not with flesh, but with God, who knows the secret heart." I wished to act on this principle to the letter, and I may say with confidence that I never consciously transgressed it. I loved to act in the sight of my bishop, as if I was, as it were, in the sight of God. It was one of my special safeguards against myself and of my supports; I could not go very wrong while I had reason to believe that I was in no respect displeasing him. It was not a mere formal obedience to rule that I put before me, but I desired to please him personally, as I considered him set over me by the Divine Hand. I was strict in observing my clerical engagements, not only because they were engagements, but because I considered myself simply as the servant and instrument of my bishop. I did not care much for the bench of bishops, except as they might be the voice of my Church: nor should I have cared much for a Provincial Council; nor for a Diocesan Synod presided over by my Bishop; all these matters seemed to me to be jure ecclesiastico, but what to me was jure divino was the voice of my bishop in his own person. My own bishop was my pope; I knew no other; the successor of the apostles, the vicar of Christ. This was but a practical exhibition of the Anglican theory of Church Government, as I had already drawn it out myself. This continued all through my course; when at length in 1845 I wrote to Bishop Wiseman, in whose Vicariate I found myself, to announce my conversion, I could find nothing better to say to him, than that I would obey the Pope as I had obeyed my own Bishop in the Anglican Church. My duty to him was my point of honour; his disapprobation was the one thing which I could not bear. I believe it to have been a generous and honest feeling; and in consequence I was rewarded by having all my time for ecclesiastical superior a man, whom had I had a choice, I should have preferred, out and out, to any other Bishop on the Bench, and for whose memory I have a special affection, Dr. Bagot—a man of noble mind, and as kind-hearted and as considerate as he was noble. He ever sympathised with me in my trials which followed; it was my own fault, that I was not brought into more familiar personal relations with him than it was my happiness to be. May his name be ever blessed!
And further, regarding the Episcopal system, I based it on the letters of St. Ignatius, which emphasized it in various ways. One passage, in particular, stood out to me: when discussing cases of disobedience to church authority, he says, "A man does not deceive the Bishop he sees, but rather plays games with the Invisible Bishop, so the issue is not with flesh, but with God, who knows the secret heart." I wanted to follow this principle closely, and I can confidently say that I never actively went against it. I preferred to act in the presence of my bishop, as if I were, in a sense, in the presence of God. It served as one of my main safeguards against myself and provided support; I couldn’t stray too far while I believed I was not displeasing him in any way. It wasn't just about following rules; I genuinely wanted to please him, as I believed he was placed over me by Divine authority. I was diligent in fulfilling my clerical duties, not only because they were commitments, but because I saw myself simply as the servant and instrument of my bishop. I didn’t care much for the assembly of bishops, except as they might represent the voice of my Church; I wouldn’t have cared much for a Provincial Council or for a Diocesan Synod led by my Bishop; all these matters seemed to me to be jure ecclesiastico, but what mattered to me jure divino was the voice of my bishop in his own person. My own bishop was my pope; I recognized no other; he was a successor of the apostles, the vicar of Christ. This was just a practical demonstration of the Anglican theory of Church governance, as I had already outlined it. This mindset continued throughout my journey; when I eventually wrote to Bishop Wiseman in 1845 to announce my conversion, I could find no better way to express it than to say that I would obey the Pope as I had obeyed my own Bishop in the Anglican Church. My duty to him was my point of pride; his disapproval was the one thing I couldn’t handle. I believe this feeling was genuine and honest; as a result, I was fortunate to have all my time for an ecclesiastical superior who, had I been given a choice, I would have chosen above any other Bishop on the Bench, and for whom I have a special fondness, Dr. Bagot—a man of noble character, as kind-hearted and considerate as he was noble. He always sympathized with me during the trials that followed; it was my own fault that I did not have a closer personal relationship with him than what I was able to experience. May his name always be blessed!
And now in concluding my remarks on the second point on which my confidence rested, I observe that here again I have no retractation to announce as to its main outline. While I am now as clear in my acceptance of the principle of dogma, as I was in 1833 and 1816, so again I am now as firm in my belief of a visible church, of the authority of bishops, of the grace of the sacraments, of the religious worth of works of penance, as I was in 1833. I have added Articles to my creed; but the old ones, which I then held with a divine faith, remain.
And now to wrap up my thoughts on the second point that gave me confidence, I want to say that I still stand by the main idea without any changes. I am just as certain about the principle of dogma now as I was in 1833 and 1816. Similarly, I am just as firm in my belief in a visible church, the authority of bishops, the grace of the sacraments, and the religious value of acts of penance as I was back in 1833. I've added some articles to my beliefs, but the original ones I held with strong faith back then still stand.
3. But now, as to the third point on which I stood in 1833, and which I have utterly renounced and trampled upon since—my then view of the Church of Rome;—I will speak about it as exactly as I can. When I was young, as I have said already, and after I was grown up, I thought the Pope to be Antichrist. At Christmas 1824-5 I preached a sermon to that effect. In 1827 I accepted eagerly the stanza in the Christian Year, which many people thought too charitable, "Speak gently of thy sister's fall." From the time that I knew Froude I got less and less bitter on the subject. I spoke (successively, but I cannot tell in what order or at what dates) of the Roman Church as being bound up with "the cause of Antichrist," as being one of the "many antichrists" foretold by St. John, as being influenced by "the spirit of Antichrist," and as having something "very Antichristian" or "unchristian" about her. From my boyhood and in 1824 I considered, after Protestant authorities, that St. Gregory I. about A.D. 600 was the first Pope that was Antichrist, and again that he was also a great and holy man; in 1832-3 I thought the Church of Rome was bound up with the cause of Antichrist by the Council of Trent. When it was that in my deliberate judgment I gave up the notion altogether in any shape, that some special reproach was attached to her name, I cannot tell; but I had a shrinking from renouncing it, even when my reason so ordered me, from a sort of conscience or prejudice, I think up to 1843. Moreover, at least during the Tract Movement, I thought the essence of her offence to consist in the honours which she paid to the Blessed Virgin and the saints; and the more I grew in devotion, both to the saints and to Our Lady, the more impatient was I at the Roman practices, as if those glorified creations of God must be gravely shocked, if pain could be theirs, at the undue veneration of which they were the objects.
3. Now, regarding the third point I made in 1833, which I've completely rejected since then—my view of the Church of Rome—I'll explain it as clearly as I can. When I was younger, as I've already mentioned, and even after I grew up, I believed the Pope was Antichrist. At Christmas in 1824-5, I preached a sermon about this. In 1827, I eagerly accepted the line from the Christian Year that many thought was too forgiving: "Speak gently of thy sister's fall." After I met Froude, I became less and less harsh on the subject. I referred to the Roman Church as being linked to "the cause of Antichrist," as one of the "many antichrists" mentioned by St. John, as being influenced by "the spirit of Antichrist," and as having something "very Antichristian" or "unchristian" about it. From my childhood and in 1824, I believed, following Protestant views, that St. Gregory I, around A.D. 600, was the first Pope who was Antichrist, and I also recognized that he was a great and holy man; in 1832-3, I thought the Church of Rome was connected to the cause of Antichrist due to the Council of Trent. I can't pinpoint when I entirely gave up the notion that her name carried some special reproach, but I hesitated to renounce it, even when my reasoning led me to do so, due to some sense of conscience or prejudice, which I think lasted until 1843. Furthermore, at least during the Tract Movement, I believed her main offense was the honor she gave to the Blessed Virgin and the saints; and as my devotion to both the saints and Our Lady grew, I became more frustrated with Roman practices, as if those glorified creations of God must be deeply hurt if they experienced pain over the excessive veneration directed at them.
On the other hand, Hurrell Froude in his familiar conversations was always tending to rub the idea out of my mind. In a passage of one of his letters from abroad, alluding, I suppose, to what I used to say in opposition to him, he observes: "I think people are injudicious who talk against the Roman Catholics for worshipping Saints, and honouring the Virgin and images, etc. These things may perhaps be idolatrous; I cannot make up my mind about it; but to my mind it is the Carnival that is real practical idolatry, as it is written, 'the people sat down to eat and drink, and rose up to play.'" The carnival, I observe in passing, is, in fact, one of those very excesses, to which, for at least three centuries, religious Catholics have ever opposed themselves, as we see in the life of St. Philip, to say nothing of the present day; but this he did not know. Moreover, from Froude I learned to admire the great medieval Pontiffs; and, of course, when I had come to consider the Council of Trent to be the turning-point of the history of Christian Rome, I found myself as free, as I was rejoiced, to speak in their praise. Then, when I was abroad, the sight of so many great places, venerable shrines, and noble churches, much impressed my imagination. And my heart was touched also. Making an expedition on foot across some wild country in Sicily, at six in the morning I came upon a small church; I heard voices, and I looked in. It was crowded, and the congregation was singing. Of course it was the Mass, though I did not know it at the time. And, in my weary days at Palermo, I was not ungrateful for the comfort which I had received in frequenting the Churches, nor did I ever forget it. Then, again, her zealous maintenance of the doctrine and the rule of celibacy, which I recognised as apostolic, and her faithful agreement with Antiquity in so many points besides, which were dear to me, was an argument as well as a plea in favour of the great Church of Rome. Thus I learned to have tender feelings towards her; but still my reason was not affected at all. My judgment was against her, when viewed as an institution, as truly as it ever had been.
On the other hand, Hurrell Froude, in our regular conversations, often tried to erase certain ideas from my mind. In a letter he sent from abroad, probably referring to my opposing views, he wrote: "I think people are unwise who criticize Roman Catholics for worshiping Saints and honoring the Virgin and images, etc. These practices might be idolatrous; I'm uncertain about that; but to me, the Carnival represents real idolatry, as it says, 'the people sat down to eat and drink, and rose up to play.'" I note in passing that the carnival is actually one of those excesses that religious Catholics have opposed for at least three centuries, as seen in the life of St. Philip, not to mention today; but he didn’t know that. Moreover, I learned from Froude to admire the great medieval Popes; and of course, when I came to see the Council of Trent as a turning point in the history of Christian Rome, I felt free and actually pleased to praise them. While traveling abroad, the sight of numerous magnificent places, ancient shrines, and grand churches deeply impressed me. My heart was also moved. During a hike across some rugged countryside in Sicily, I stumbled upon a small church at six in the morning; I heard voices and looked inside. It was packed, and the congregation was singing. It was the Mass, although I didn’t know that at the time. During my tiring days in Palermo, I was grateful for the comfort I found in visiting the Churches, and I never forgot it. Additionally, the Church's steadfast commitment to the doctrine and rule of celibacy, which I recognized as apostolic, along with her faithful adherence to many other ancient traditions that were important to me, served as both an argument and a plea in favor of the great Church of Rome. Thus, I developed warm feelings toward her; however, my reason remained unaffected. My judgment against her as an institution was just as strong as it had always been.
This conflict between reason and affection I expressed in one of the early Tracts, published July, 1834. "Considering the high gifts and the strong claims of the Church of Rome and its dependencies on our admiration, reverence, love, and gratitude; how could we withstand it, as we do, how could we refrain from being melted into tenderness, and rushing into communion with it, but for the words of Truth itself, which bid us prefer It to the whole world? 'He that loveth father or mother more than Me, is not worthy of Me.' How could 'we learn to be severe, and execute judgment,' but for the warning of Moses against even a divinely-gifted teacher, who should preach new gods; and the anathema of St. Paul even against Angels and Apostles, who should bring in a new doctrine?"—Records, No. 24. My feeling was something like that of a man, who is obliged in a court of justice to bear witness against a friend; or like my own now, when I have said, and shall say, so many things on which I had rather be silent.
This conflict between reason and emotion was something I expressed in one of the early Tracts, published in July 1834. "Considering the profound gifts and significant claims of the Church of Rome and its reliance on our admiration, respect, love, and gratitude; how could we resist it, as we do? How could we avoid being moved to tenderness and rushing into connection with it, if not for the words of Truth itself, which urge us to prefer It over everything else? 'Anyone who loves their father or mother more than Me is not worthy of Me.' How could we 'learn to be strict and enforce judgment,' except for Moses' warning against even a divinely-gifted teacher who would preach new gods; and St. Paul’s condemnation of Angels and Apostles who would introduce new teachings?"—Records, No. 24. My feeling was similar to that of someone who has to testify against a friend in court; or like my own now, as I have said and will continue to say, many things on which I would rather remain silent.
As a matter, then, of simple conscience, though it went against my feelings, I felt it to be a duty to protest against the Church of Rome. But besides this, it was a duty, because the prescription of such a protest was a living principle of my own church, as expressed in not simply a catena, but a consensus of her divines, and the voice of her people. Moreover, such a protest was necessary as an integral portion of her controversial basis; for I adopted the argument of Bernard Gilpin, that Protestants "were not able to give any firm and solid reason of the separation besides this, to wit, that the Pope is Antichrist." But while I thus thought such a protest to be based upon truth, and to be a religious duty, and a rule of Anglicanism, and a necessity of the case, I did not at all like the work. Hurrell Froude attacked me for doing it; and, besides, I felt that my language had a vulgar and rhetorical look about it. I believed, and really measured, my words, when I used them; but I knew that I had a temptation, on the other hand, to say against Rome as much as ever I could, in order to protect myself against the charge of Popery.
So, on a matter of simple conscience, even though it went against my feelings, I felt it was my duty to speak out against the Church of Rome. But beyond that, it was a duty because voicing that protest was a core principle of my own church, reflected not just in a catena, but in a consensus of its theologians and the voice of its followers. Additionally, such a protest was necessary as a key part of its controversial stance; I took up the argument of Bernard Gilpin, who said that Protestants "were not able to give any firm and solid reason for the separation other than this: that the Pope is Antichrist." However, while I believed this protest was based on truth, a religious duty, a guideline of Anglicanism, and necessary for the situation, I didn't particularly like the task. Hurrell Froude criticized me for it; plus, I felt my language came off as somewhat crude and overly theatrical. I was aware of my words and really measured them when I spoke; still, I recognized that I had a temptation to say as much as I could against Rome to shield myself from accusations of Popery.
And now I come to the very point, for which I have introduced the subject of my feelings about Rome. I felt such confidence in the substantial justice of the charges which I advanced against her, that I considered them to be a safeguard and an assurance that no harm could ever arise from the freest exposition of what I used to call Anglican principles. All the world was astounded at what Froude and I were saying: men said that it was sheer Popery. I answered, "True, we seem to be making straight for it; but go on awhile, and you will come to a deep chasm across the path, which makes real approximation impossible." And I urged in addition, that many Anglican divines had been accused of Popery, yet had died in their Anglicanism;—now, the ecclesiastical principles which I professed, they had professed also; and the judgment against Rome which they had formed, I had formed also. Whatever faults then the Anglican system might have, and however boldly I might point them out, anyhow that system was not vulnerable on the side of Rome, and might be mended in spite of her. In that very agreement of the two forms of faith, close as it might seem, would really be found, on examination, the elements and principles of an essential discordance.
And now I get to the main point for which I've brought up my feelings about Rome. I felt so confident in the strong validity of the accusations I made against her that I saw them as a protection and a guarantee that no harm could come from openly discussing what I used to call Anglican principles. Everyone was shocked by what Froude and I were saying; people claimed it was outright Popery. I replied, "True, it seems like we're heading that way; but if you stick around for a bit longer, you'll find a big gap in the road that makes any real closeness impossible." I also pointed out that many Anglican theologians had been accused of Popery but had still died holding onto their Anglican beliefs. The ecclesiastical principles I held were the same as theirs, and the judgment I had formed against Rome was also one they had made. So, whatever flaws the Anglican system might have, and no matter how boldly I might highlight them, that system would not be weak against Rome and could still improve despite her influence. In that very similarity between the two faiths, as close as it might seem, would actually be found, upon closer inspection, the elements and principles of a fundamental disagreement.
It was with this supreme persuasion on my mind that I fancied that there could be no rashness in giving to the world in fullest measure the teaching and the writings of the Fathers. I thought that the Church of England was substantially founded upon them. I did not know all that the Fathers had said, but I felt that, even when their tenets happened to differ from the Anglican, no harm could come of reporting them. I said out what I was clear they had said; I spoke vaguely and imperfectly, of what I thought they said, or what some of them had said. Anyhow, no harm could come of bending the crooked stick the other way, in the process of straightening it; it was impossible to break it. If there was anything in the Fathers of a startling character, it would be only for a time; it would admit of explanation; it could not lead to Rome. I express this view of the matter in a passage of the preface to the first volume, which I edited, of the Library of the Fathers. Speaking of the strangeness at first sight, presented to the Anglican mind, of some of their principles and opinions, I bid the reader go forward hopefully, and not indulge his criticism till he knows more about them, than he will learn at the outset. "Since the evil," I say, "is in the nature of the case itself, we can do no more than have patience, and recommend patience to others, and, with the racer in the Tragedy, look forward steadily and hopefully to the event, τῷ τέλει πίστιν φέρων, when, as we trust, all that is inharmonious and anomalous in the details, will at length be practically smoothed."
It was with this strong belief in my mind that I thought there was no risk in openly sharing the teachings and writings of the Church Fathers. I believed that the Church of England was largely based on their work. I didn’t know everything the Fathers had said, but I felt that even when their ideas conflicted with Anglican ones, there would be no harm in sharing their views. I clearly stated what I believed they had said; I spoke vaguely and incompletely about what I thought they might have said or what some of them had said. In any case, there was no harm in trying to correct things by shifting perspectives; it was impossible to break it. If there was anything surprising in the Fathers' teachings, it would only be temporary; it could be explained and wouldn’t lead to converting to Catholicism. I express this view in a part of the preface to the first volume I edited of the Library of the Fathers. Noting how strange some of their principles may seem at first to an Anglican, I encourage the reader to proceed with an open mind and to hold off on criticism until they understand them better than what they will first learn. "Since the problem," I say, "is inherent to the matter itself, we can only practice patience and suggest it to others, and, like the racer in the Tragedy, look forward steadily and hopefully to the event, the ultimate bringing faith, when, as we hope, all that is discordant and unusual will eventually be smoothed out."
Such was the position, such the defences, such the tactics, by which I thought that it was both incumbent on us, and possible to us, to meet that onset of liberal principles, of which we were all in immediate anticipation, whether in the Church or in the University. And during the first year of the Tracts, the attack upon the University began. In November 1834 was sent to me by the author the second edition of a pamphlet entitled, "Observations on Religious Dissent, with particular reference to the use of religious tests in the University." In this pamphlet it was maintained, that "Religion is distinct from Theological Opinion" (pp. 1, 28, 30, etc.); that it is but a common prejudice to identify theological propositions methodically deduced and stated, with the simple religion of Christ (p. 1); that under Theological Opinion were to be placed the Trinitarian doctrine (p. 27), and the Unitarian (p. 19); that a dogma was a theological opinion insisted on (pp. 20, 21); that speculation always left an opening for improvement (p. 22); that the Church of England was not dogmatic in its spirit, though the wording of its formularies may often carry the sound of dogmatism (p. 23).
This was the situation, the defenses, and the strategies that led me to believe it was both our duty and within our capability to confront the liberal principles that we all expected to arise soon, whether in the Church or in the University. During the first year of the Tracts, the attack on the University began. In November 1834, I received from the author the second edition of a pamphlet titled, "Observations on Religious Dissent, with Particular Reference to the Use of Religious Tests in the University." In this pamphlet, it was argued that "Religion is distinct from Theological Opinion" (pp. 1, 28, 30, etc.); that it is merely a common misunderstanding to equate methodically deduced and stated theological propositions with the simple religion of Christ (p. 1); that the Trinitarian doctrine (p. 27) and the Unitarian view (p. 19) fall under Theological Opinion; that a dogma is a theological opinion that is insisted upon (pp. 20, 21); that speculation always leaves room for improvement (p. 22); and that the Church of England is not dogmatic in its essence, even though the phrasing of its formal statements may often sound dogmatic (p. 23).
I acknowledged the receipt of this work in the following letter:—
I confirmed that I received this work in the following letter:—
"The kindness which has led to your presenting me with your late pamphlet, encourages me to hope that you will forgive me, if I take the opportunity it affords of expressing to you my very sincere and deep regret that it has been published. Such an opportunity I could not let slip without being unfaithful to my own serious thoughts on the subject.
"The kindness that prompted you to share your recent pamphlet encourages me to hope that you'll forgive me for taking this chance to express my sincere and deep regret that it has been published. I couldn't let this opportunity pass without being true to my own serious thoughts on the topic."
"While I respect the tone of piety which the pamphlet displays, I dare not trust myself to put on paper my feelings about the principles contained in it; tending, as they do, in my opinion, altogether to make shipwreck of Christian faith. I also lament, that, by its appearance, the first step has been taken towards interrupting that peace and mutual good understanding which has prevailed so long in this place, and which, if once seriously disturbed, will be succeeded by dissensions the more intractable, because justified in the minds of those who resist innovation by a feeling of imperative duty."
"While I appreciate the pious tone of the pamphlet, I can't bring myself to express my thoughts about its principles in writing; I believe they ultimately threaten the foundation of Christian faith. I also regret that its publication marks the first step toward disrupting the peace and mutual understanding that has existed here for so long, and if that peace is seriously disturbed, it will lead to conflicts that are even harder to resolve because those who oppose change will feel an overwhelming sense of duty."
Since that time Phaeton has got into the chariot of the sun; we, alas! can only look on, and watch him down the steep of heaven. Meanwhile, the lands, which he is passing over, suffer from his driving.
Since then, Phaeton has taken the sun's chariot; we, unfortunately, can only watch as he descends from the heights of heaven. In the meantime, the lands he’s passing over are suffering from his reckless driving.
Such was the commencement of the assault of liberalism upon the old orthodoxy of Oxford and England; and it could not have been broken, as it was, for so long a time, had not a great change taken place in the circumstances of that counter-movement which had already started with the view of resisting it. For myself, I was not the person to take the lead of a party; I never was, from first to last, more than a leading author of a school; nor did I ever wish to be anything else. This is my own account of the matter, and I say it, neither as intending to disown the responsibility of what was done, nor as if ungrateful to those who at that time made more of me than I deserved, and did more for my sake and at my bidding than I realised myself. I am giving my history from my own point of sight, and it is as follows:—I had lived for ten years among my personal friends; the greater part of the time, I had been influenced, not influencing; and at no time have I acted on others, without their acting upon me. As is the custom of a university, I had lived with my private, nay, with some of my public, pupils, and with the junior fellows of my college, without form or distance, on a footing of equality. Thus it was through friends, younger, for the most part, than myself, that my principles were spreading. They heard what I said in conversation, and told it to others. Undergraduates in due time took their degree, and became private tutors themselves. In this new status, in turn, they preached the opinions which they had already learned themselves. Others went down to the country, and became curates of parishes. Then they had down from London parcels of the Tracts, and other publications. They placed them in the shops of local booksellers, got them into newspapers, introduced them to clerical meetings, and converted more or less their rectors and their brother curates. Thus the Movement, viewed with relation to myself, was but a floating opinion; it was not a power. It never would have been a power, if it had remained in my hands. Years after, a friend, writing to me in remonstrance at the excesses, as he thought them, of my disciples, applied to me my own verse about St. Gregory Nazianzen, "Thou couldst a people raise, but couldst not rule." At the time that he wrote to me, I had special impediments in the way of such an exercise of power; but at no time could I exercise over others that authority, which under the circumstances was imperatively required. My great principle ever was, live and let live. I never had the staidness or dignity necessary for a leader. To the last I never recognised the hold I had over young men. Of late years I have read and heard that they even imitated me in various ways. I was quite unconscious of it, and I think my immediate friends knew too well how disgusted I should be at the news, to have the heart to tell me. I felt great impatience at our being called a party, and would not allow that we were. I had a lounging, free-and-easy way of carrying things on. I exercised no sufficient censorship upon the Tracts. I did not confine them to the writings of such persons as agreed in all things with myself; and, as to my own Tracts, I printed on them a notice to the effect, that any one who pleased, might make what use he would of them, and reprint them with alterations if he chose, under the conviction that their main scope could not be damaged by such a process. It was the same afterwards, as regards other publications. For two years I furnished a certain number of sheets for the British Critic from myself and my friends, while a gentleman was editor, a man of splendid talent, who, however, was scarcely an acquaintance of mine, and had no sympathy with the Tracts. When I was Editor myself, from 1838 to 1841, in my very first number, I suffered to appear a critique unfavourable to my work on Justification, which had been published a few months before, from a feeling of propriety, because I had put the book into the hands of the writer who so handled it. Afterwards I suffered an article against the Jesuits to appear in it, of which I did not like the tone. When I had to provide a curate for my new church at Littlemore, I engaged a friend, by no fault of his, who, before he entered into his charge, preached a sermon, either in depreciation of baptismal regeneration, or of Dr. Pusey's view of it. I showed a similar easiness as to the editors who helped me in the separate volumes of Fleury's Church History; they were able, learned, and excellent men, but their after history has shown, how little my choice of them was influenced by any notion I could have had of any intimate agreement of opinion between them and myself. I shall have to make the same remark in its place concerning the Lives of the English Saints, which subsequently appeared. All this may seem inconsistent with what I have said of my fierceness. I am not bound to account for it; but there have been men before me, fierce in act, yet tolerant and moderate in their reasonings; at least, so I read history. However, such was the case, and such its effect upon the Tracts. These at first starting were short, hasty, and some of them ineffective; and at the end of the year, when collected into a volume, they had a slovenly appearance.
This marked the beginning of the attack of liberalism on the old traditions of Oxford and England; and it couldn't have lasted as long as it did if a significant change hadn't occurred in the circumstances of the counter-movement that had already begun to resist it. As for me, I was never the type to lead a party; I was always just a prominent writer for a particular group and never wanted to be anything more. This is my personal account of the situation, and I say this not to deny the responsibility for what happened, nor to express ingratitude to those who, at that time, valued me more than I deserved and did more for me than I realized. I’m sharing my history from my own perspective, and it goes like this: I had spent ten years among my personal friends; most of that time, I had been influenced by them rather than influencing them; and at no point did I act on others without them impacting me first. Like anyone at a university, I lived alongside my private, and even some of my public, students and the junior fellows of my college, in an equal and casual manner. It was through friends, mostly younger than me, that my ideas began to spread. They heard what I said in conversations and passed it along. Eventually, undergraduates graduated and became private tutors themselves. In this new role, they shared the opinions they had learned. Others went to various places and became parish curates. They would get bundles of Tracts and other publications sent down from London. They placed them in local bookstores, got them into newspapers, introduced them at clerical meetings, and influenced their rectors and fellow curates to varying degrees. Thus, the Movement, as it related to me, was merely a floating opinion; it was not a power. It would never have become a power if it had stayed in my hands. Years later, a friend, writing to me in response to what he saw as the excesses of my followers, quoted my own verse about St. Gregory Nazianzen, “You could raise a people, but could not govern.” At the time he wrote to me, I had specific obstacles that prevented me from exercising that kind of power; but at no time could I command the authority over others that was desperately needed under those circumstances. My main principle was always to live and let live. I never had the seriousness or dignity required for leadership. Even until the end, I never recognized the influence I had over young men. Recently, I’ve read and heard that they even tried to copy me in various ways. I was completely unaware of it, and I think my close friends understood how upset I would be to hear such news, so they hesitated to tell me. I felt a lot of frustration when we were called a party; I refused to accept that we were. I had a relaxed, casual way of doing things. I didn’t impose enough oversight on the Tracts. I didn’t limit them to writings from people who agreed with me completely; and regarding my own Tracts, I indicated that anyone could use them as they wished, and even reprint them with changes if they wanted, since I believed their main message wouldn’t be harmed by such an action. The same went for other publications later on. For two years, I provided a certain number of articles for the British Critic from myself and my friends, while a gentleman, a talented editor who was not much of an acquaintance and had no sympathy for the Tracts, oversaw it. When I was editor myself, from 1838 to 1841, in my very first issue, I allowed a critique that was unfavorable to my work on Justification, published a few months earlier, to appear, out of a sense of propriety, since I had given the book to the writer who critiqued it. Later, I allowed an article against the Jesuits to be published in it that I didn’t appreciate the tone of. When I had to find a curate for my new church at Littlemore, I enlisted a friend who, through no fault of his own, preached a sermon that criticized either baptismal regeneration or Dr. Pusey’s view on it before taking up his position. I showed similar freedom with the editors who assisted me in the separate volumes of Fleury's Church History; they were capable, learned, and excellent individuals, but their later actions demonstrated how little my choice of them was based on any belief that we shared close opinions. I will remark the same about the Lives of the English Saints, which came out later. All this may seem contradictory to my earlier statements about my passion. I’m not required to explain myself, but there have been people before me who were fierce in action yet tolerant and moderate in their reasoning; at least, that’s how I interpret history. However, that was how it was, and that was its impact on the Tracts. Those began as brief, rushed, and some ended up being ineffective; by the end of the year, when they were gathered into a volume, they looked rather sloppy.
It was under these circumstances, that Dr. Pusey joined us. I had known him well since 1827–8, and had felt for him an enthusiastic admiration. I used to call him ὡ μέγας. His great learning, his immense diligence, his scholarlike mind, his simple devotion to the cause of religion, overcame me; and great of course was my joy, when in the last days of 1833 he showed a disposition to make common cause with us. His tract on Fasting appeared as one of the series with the date of December 21. He was not, however, I think fully associated in the Movement till 1835 and 1836, when he published his tract on Baptism, and started the Library of the Fathers. He at once gave to us a position and a name. Without him we should have had no chance, especially at the early date of 1834, of making any serious resistance to the liberal aggression. But Dr. Pusey was a Professor and Canon of Christ Church; he had a vast influence in consequence of his deep religious seriousness, the munificence of his charities, his Professorship, his family connections, and his easy relations with university authorities. He was to the Movement all that Mr. Rose might have been, with that indispensable addition, which was wanting to Mr. Rose, the intimate friendship and the familiar daily society of the persons who had commenced it. And he had that special claim on their attachment, which lies in the living presence of a faithful and loyal affectionateness. There was henceforth a man who could be the head and centre of the zealous people in every part of the country, who were adopting the new opinions; and not only so, but there was one who furnished the Movement with a front to the world, and gained for it a recognition from other parties in the University. In 1829 Mr. Froude, or Mr. R. Wilberforce, or Mr. Newman were but individuals; and, when they ranged themselves in the contest of that year on the side of Sir Robert Inglis, men on either side only asked with surprise how they got there, and attached no significancy to the fact; but Dr. Pusey was, to use the common expression, a host in himself; he was able to give a name, a form, and a personality to what was without him a sort of mob; and when various parties had to meet together in order to resist the liberal acts of the Government, we of the Movement took our place by right among them.
It was in this situation that Dr. Pusey joined us. I had known him well since 1827–8 and had felt a deep admiration for him. I used to call him the great. His vast knowledge, incredible work ethic, scholarly intellect, and genuine devotion to religion impressed me; I was thrilled when, in the last days of 1833, he showed interest in joining our cause. His pamphlet on Fasting was published as part of the series on December 21. However, I don't think he was fully involved in the Movement until 1835 and 1836, when he released his pamphlet on Baptism and started the Library of the Fathers. He immediately gave us both a position and a name. Without him, we wouldn’t have had much chance, especially as early as 1834, to mount any serious resistance to the liberal push. But Dr. Pusey was a Professor and Canon of Christ Church; he had significant influence due to his deep religious commitment, generous charitable contributions, his role as a professor, family connections, and good relations with university authorities. He was to the Movement what Mr. Rose could have been, plus the crucial addition that Mr. Rose lacked: close friendship and daily camaraderie with those who had started it. He also had a unique bond with them based on his genuine and loyal affection. From that point on, there was someone who could lead and unite the passionate people across the country who were adopting new ideas; not only that, but he also provided the Movement with a public face and earned it recognition from other groups within the University. In 1829, Mr. Froude, Mr. R. Wilberforce, or Mr. Newman were just individuals; when they aligned themselves with Sir Robert Inglis in that year's conflict, people on both sides were surprised by their presence and didn’t see it as significant. But Dr. Pusey was, as people often say, a power unto himself; he could give a name, structure, and identity to what would have otherwise been just a crowd. And when different groups had to come together to oppose the government's liberal actions, we in the Movement rightfully took our place among them.
Such was the benefit which he conferred on the Movement externally; nor was the internal advantage at all inferior to it. He was a man of large designs; he had a hopeful, sanguine mind; he had no fear of others; he was haunted by no intellectual perplexities. People are apt to say that he was once nearer to the Catholic Church than he is now; I pray God that he may be one day far nearer to the Catholic Church than he was then; for I believe that, in his reason and judgment, all the time that I knew him, he never was near to it at all. When I became a Catholic, I was often asked, "What of Dr. Pusey?" when I said that I did not see symptoms of his doing as I had done, I was sometimes thought uncharitable. If confidence in his position is (as it is), a first essential in the leader of a party, Dr. Pusey had it. The most remarkable instance of this, was his statement, in one of his subsequent defences of the Movement, when too it had advanced a considerable way in the direction of Rome, that among its hopeful peculiarities was its "stationariness." He made it in good faith; it was his subjective view of it.
He played a significant role in benefiting the Movement externally; the internal advantage was just as noteworthy. He was a man with grand ambitions; he had a positive, optimistic mindset; he wasn’t afraid of others; he wasn’t weighed down by intellectual doubts. People like to say that he was once closer to the Catholic Church than he is now; I hope that one day he will be much closer to the Catholic Church than he was back then; because I believe that, in his reasoning and judgment, during the time I knew him, he was never actually close to it at all. When I became a Catholic, people often asked me, "What about Dr. Pusey?" When I said I didn't see any signs of him doing what I did, some thought I was being uncharitable. If confidence in his position is (which it is) a key requirement for a leader of a party, Dr. Pusey certainly had it. One striking example of this was his statement in one of his later defenses of the Movement, which by then had progressed quite a bit toward Rome, that among its promising characteristics was its "stationariness." He genuinely believed it; that was his personal perspective on it.
Dr. Pusey's influence was felt at once. He saw that there ought to be more sobriety, more gravity, more careful pains, more sense of responsibility in the Tracts and in the whole Movement. It was through him that the character of the Tracts was changed. When he gave to us his Tract on Fasting, he put his initials to it. In 1835 he published his elaborate treatise on Baptism, which was followed by other Tracts from different authors, if not of equal learning, yet of equal power and appositeness. The Catenas of Anglican divines which occur in the series, though projected, I think, by me, were executed with a like aim at greater accuracy and method. In 1836 he advertised his great project for a Translation of the Fathers:—but I must return to myself. I am not writing the history either of Dr. Pusey or of the Movement; but it is a pleasure to me to have been able to introduce here reminiscences of the place which he held in it, which have so direct a bearing on myself, that they are no digression from my narrative.
Dr. Pusey's influence was immediately noticeable. He realized that there needed to be more seriousness, more gravity, more careful attention, and a stronger sense of responsibility in the Tracts and the whole Movement. It was through him that the character of the Tracts changed. When he contributed his Tract on Fasting, he signed it with his initials. In 1835, he published his detailed work on Baptism, followed by other Tracts from various authors that, while not necessarily as scholarly, were equally powerful and relevant. The Catenas of Anglican theologians that appear in the series, although I believe I initially proposed them, were created with the same goal of achieving greater accuracy and organization. In 1836, he announced his ambitious project for a Translation of the Fathers; however, I need to return to my own story. I am not writing the history of Dr. Pusey or the Movement, but I take pleasure in including here memories of his role in it, which are so closely connected to my own experience that they are not a digression from my narrative.
I suspect it was Dr. Pusey's influence and example which set me, and made me set others, on the larger and more careful works in defence of the principles of the Movement which followed in a course of years,—some of them demanding and receiving from their authors, such elaborate treatment that they did not make their appearance till both its temper and its fortunes had changed. I set about a work at once; one in which was brought out with precision the relation in which we stood to the Church of Rome. We could not move a step in comfort till this was done. It was of absolute necessity and a plain duty, to provide as soon as possible a large statement, which would encourage and re-assure our friends, and repel the attacks of our opponents. A cry was heard on all sides of us, that the Tracts and the writings of the Fathers would lead us to become Catholics, before we were aware of it. This was loudly expressed by members of the Evangelical party, who in 1836 had joined us in making a protest in Convocation against a memorable appointment of the Prime Minister. These clergymen even then avowed their desire, that the next time they were brought up to Oxford to give a vote, it might be in order to put down the popery of the Movement. There was another reason still, and quite as important. Monsignore Wiseman, with the acuteness and zeal which might be expected from that great prelate, had anticipated what was coming, had returned to England in 1836, had delivered lectures in London on the doctrines of Catholicism, and created an impression through the country, shared in by ourselves, that we had for our opponents in controversy, not only our brethren, but our hereditary foes. These were the circumstances, which led to my publication of "The Prophetical office of the Church viewed relatively to Romanism and Popular Protestantism."
I believe it was Dr. Pusey's influence and example that motivated me, and inspired me to motivate others, to undertake the more comprehensive and thoughtful efforts to defend the principles of the Movement over the years. Some of these efforts were so detailed that they didn’t appear until the mood and situation had shifted. I immediately started working on a project that clearly outlined our relationship with the Church of Rome. We couldn’t move forward comfortably until this was accomplished. It was essential and necessary to provide a substantial statement as soon as possible to reassure our friends and counter our opponents' attacks. There was a widespread concern that the Tracts and the writings of the Fathers would lead us to embrace Catholicism without realizing it. This was particularly voiced by members of the Evangelical party, who in 1836 had joined us in protesting a significant appointment by the Prime Minister. Even then, these clergymen expressed their hope that next time they were called to Oxford to vote, it would be to oppose the “popery” of the Movement. There was another equally important reason. Monsignore Wiseman, with the keen insight and enthusiasm expected from such a prominent figure, had foreseen what was ahead, returned to England in 1836, gave lectures in London on Catholic doctrine, and made an impression across the country, shared by us, that our opponents were not only our fellow believers but also our traditional adversaries. These circumstances led to my publication of "The Prophetical office of the Church viewed relatively to Romanism and Popular Protestantism."
This work employed me for three years, from the beginning of 1834 to the end of 1836. It was composed, after a careful consideration and comparison of the principal Anglican divines of the seventeenth century. It was first written in the shape of controversial correspondence with a learned French Priest; then it was re-cast, and delivered in Lectures at St. Mary's: lastly, with considerable retrenchments and additions, it was re-written for publication.
This project took me three years, from early 1834 to late 1836. It was created after thoroughly considering and comparing the main Anglican theologians of the seventeenth century. Initially, it was written as a series of debates with an educated French priest; then it was reshaped and presented as lectures at St. Mary's. Finally, after significant cuts and additions, it was rewritten for publication.
It attempts to trace out the rudimental lines on which Christian faith and teaching proceed, and to use them as means of determining the relation of the Roman and Anglican systems to each other. In this way it shows that to confuse the two together is impossible, and that the Anglican can be as little said to tend to the Roman, as the Roman to the Anglican. The spirit of the volume is not so gentle to the Church of Rome, as Tract 71 published the year before; on the contrary, it is very fierce; and this I attribute to the circumstance that the volume is theological and didactic, whereas the Tract, being controversial, assumes as little and grants as much as possible on the points in dispute, and insists on points of agreement as well as of difference. A further and more direct reason is, that in my volume I deal with "Romanism" (as I call it), not so much in its formal decrees and in the substance of its creed, as in its traditional action and its authorised teaching as represented by its prominent writers;—whereas the Tract is written as if discussing the differences of the Churches with a view to a reconciliation between them. There is a further reason too, which I will state presently.
It tries to outline the basic principles that form the foundation of Christian faith and teaching, using them to establish the relationship between the Roman and Anglican systems. In doing so, it shows that it's impossible to confuse the two; the Anglican Church doesn’t lead towards the Roman Church, just as the Roman doesn’t lead towards the Anglican. The tone of this volume is harsher towards the Church of Rome compared to Tract 71 published the previous year; in fact, it's quite intense. I believe this is because the volume is theological and instructional, while the Tract, being more controversial, assumes very little and concedes as much as it can on the disputed points, emphasizing both areas of agreement and disagreement. Another key reason is that in my volume, I address "Romanism" (as I refer to it) more in terms of its traditional practices and official teachings as conveyed by its key writers, rather than solely focusing on its formal decrees and core beliefs. In contrast, the Tract is written as if discussing the differences between the Churches with the aim of finding common ground. There is also another reason that I will explain shortly.
But this volume had a larger scope than that of opposing the Roman system. It was an attempt at commencing a system of theology on the Anglican idea, and based upon Anglican authorities. Mr. Palmer, about the same time, was projecting a work of a similar nature in his own way. It was published, I think, under the title, "A Treatise on the Christian Church." As was to be expected from the author, it was a most learned, most careful composition; and in its form, I should say, polemical. So happily at least did he follow the logical method of the Roman Schools, that Father Perrone in his treatise on dogmatic theology, recognised in him a combatant of the true cast, and saluted him as a foe worthy of being vanquished. Other soldiers in that field he seems to have thought little better than the lanzknechts of the middle ages, and, I dare say, with very good reason. When I knew that excellent and kind-hearted man at Rome at a later time, he allowed me to put him to ample penance for those light thoughts of me, which he had once had, by encroaching on his valuable time with my theological questions. As to Mr. Palmer's book, it was one which no Anglican could write but himself,—in no sense, if I recollect aright, a tentative work. The ground of controversy was cut into squares, and then every objection had its answer. This is the proper method to adopt in teaching authoritatively young men; and the work in fact was intended for students in theology. My own book, on the other hand, was of a directly tentative and empirical character. I wished to build up an Anglican theology out of the stores which already lay cut and hewn upon the ground, the past toil of great divines. To do this could not be the work of one man; much less, could it be at once received into Anglican theology, however well it was done. I fully trusted that my statements of doctrine would turn out true and important; yet I wrote, to use the common phrase, "under correction."
But this volume aimed to do more than just oppose the Roman system. It was an attempt to start a system of theology based on the Anglican perspective and grounded in Anglican authorities. Around the same time, Mr. Palmer was working on a similar project in his own way. If I recall correctly, it was published under the title "A Treatise on the Christian Church." True to form, it was a highly learned and thorough piece; I would describe it as polemical. He followed the logical methods of the Roman Schools so well that Father Perrone, in his treatise on dogmatic theology, recognized him as a worthy opponent and acknowledged him as a challenger deserving of defeat. Other figures in that arena seemed to him to be little better than the mercenaries of the Middle Ages, and I dare say he had good reasons for that view. When I later got to know that kind-hearted man in Rome, he let me occupy his valuable time with my theological questions to atone for his earlier fleeting opinions of me. As for Mr. Palmer's book, it was one that could only have been written by him—definitely not a tentative work. The issues at stake were clearly outlined, with each objection thoroughly addressed. This is the right approach to take when teaching young men authoritatively, and the work was indeed intended for theology students. My own book, on the other hand, was more exploratory and empirical in nature. I aimed to build an Anglican theology from the existing resources that had already been laid out by great theologians of the past. Achieving this couldn't be the work of just one person; even if it was done well, it wouldn’t instantly be accepted into Anglican theology. I fully believed that my statements of doctrine would prove to be true and significant, yet I wrote, as the saying goes, "under correction."
There was another motive for my publishing, of a personal nature, which I think I should mention. I felt then, and all along felt, that there was an intellectual cowardice in not having a basis in reason for my belief, and a moral cowardice in not avowing that basis. I should have felt myself less than a man, if I did not bring it out, whatever it was. This is one principal reason why I wrote and published the "Prophetical Office." It was on the same feeling, that in the spring of 1836, at a meeting of residents on the subject of the struggle then proceeding some one wanted us all merely to act on college and conservative grounds (as I understood him), with as few published statements as possible: I answered, that the person whom we were resisting had committed himself in writing, and that we ought to commit ourselves too. This again was a main reason for the publication of Tract 90. Alas! it was my portion for whole years to remain without any satisfactory basis for my religious profession, in a state of moral sickness, neither able to acquiesce in Anglicanism, nor able to go to Rome. But I bore it, till in course of time my way was made clear to me. If here it be objected to me, that as time went on, I often in my writings hinted at things which I did not fully bring out, I submit for consideration whether this occurred except when I was in great difficulties, how to speak, or how to be silent, with due regard for the position of mind or the feelings of others. However, I may have an opportunity to say more on this subject. But to return to the "Prophetical Office."
There was another reason for my publishing, which was personal, and I think I should mention it. I felt then, and have always felt, that there was an intellectual cowardice in not having a rational basis for my beliefs, and a moral cowardice in not acknowledging that basis. I would have felt less than a man if I didn't express it, whatever it was. This is one main reason why I wrote and published the "Prophetical Office." In the spring of 1836, at a meeting of residents about the ongoing struggle, someone suggested we should just act on college and conservative grounds (as I understood it), with as few public statements as possible. I replied that the person we were opposing had committed himself in writing, and that we should do the same. This was another key reason for the publication of Tract 90. Unfortunately, for many years, I had to live without a satisfactory basis for my religious beliefs, stuck in a state of moral uncertainty, unable to accept Anglicanism or go to Rome. But I endured it until eventually my path became clear. If it is suggested that over time I hinted at things in my writings without fully expressing them, I ask whether this happened only when I faced great challenges in deciding whether to speak or remain silent, considering the state of mind or feelings of others. However, I may have a chance to elaborate on this topic. But now, back to the "Prophetical Office."
I thus speak in the Introduction to my volume:—
I am therefore speaking in the Introduction to my book:—
"It is proposed," I say, "to offer helps towards the formation of a recognised Anglican theology in one of its departments. The present state of our divinity is as follows: the most vigorous, the clearest, the most fertile minds, have through God's mercy been employed in the service of our Church: minds too as reverential and holy, and as fully imbued with Ancient Truth, and as well versed in the writings of the Fathers, as they were intellectually gifted. This is God's great mercy indeed, for which we must ever be thankful. Primitive doctrine has been explored for us in every direction, and the original principles of the Gospel and the Church patiently brought to light. But one thing is still wanting: our champions and teachers have lived in stormy times: political and other influences have acted upon them variously in their day, and have since obstructed a careful consolidation of their judgments. We have a vast inheritance, but no inventory of our treasures. All is given us in profusion; it remains for us to catalogue, sort, distribute, select, harmonise, and complete. We have more than we know how to use; stores of learning, but little that is precise and serviceable; Catholic truth and individual opinion, first principles and the guesses of genius, all mingled in the same works, and requiring to be discriminated. We meet with truths overstated or misdirected, matters of detail variously taken, facts incompletely proved or applied, and rules inconsistently urged or discordantly interpreted. Such indeed is the state of every deep philosophy in its first stages, and therefore of theological knowledge. What we need at present for our Church's well-being, is not invention, nor originality, nor sagacity, nor even learning in our divines, at least in the first place, though all gifts of God are in a measure needed, and never can be unseasonable when used religiously, but we need peculiarly a sound judgment, patient thought, discrimination, a comprehensive mind, an abstinence from all private fancies and caprices and personal tastes,—in a word, Divine Wisdom."
"I suggest," I say, "that we should work towards establishing a recognized Anglican theology in one of its areas. Here's the current state of our theology: the most vibrant, clear-thinking, and creative minds have, through God's grace, dedicated themselves to serving our Church. These minds are not only deeply reverent and holy, and well-versed in the Ancient Truth and the writings of the Fathers, but they're also intellectually gifted. This is indeed a great mercy from God, for which we must always be grateful. The foundational doctrines have been thoroughly examined from every angle, and the core principles of the Gospel and the Church have been painstakingly uncovered. However, one thing is still missing: our leaders and teachers have lived through tumultuous times; political and other influences have impacted them in various ways, which has hindered a careful consolidation of their insights. We have a rich heritage, but no inventory of our treasures. Everything is available to us in abundance; it falls to us to catalog, organize, distribute, choose, harmonize, and complete. We possess more than we know how to apply; we have vast stores of knowledge, but little that is precise and practical; Catholic truth and personal opinion, fundamental principles and speculative insights, are all mixed together in the same works and need to be distinguished. We encounter truths that are overstated or misguided, details that are interpreted in various ways, facts that are either incompletely proven or misapplied, and guidelines that are expressed inconsistently or interpreted discordantly. This is indeed the situation with every profound philosophy in its early stages, and the same goes for theological knowledge. What we currently need for our Church's health is not invention, originality, cleverness, or even scholarly knowledge from our theologians, at least initially, although all of God's gifts are somewhat necessary and can never be untimely when used sincerely. What we particularly need is sound judgment, thoughtful patience, discernment, a broad perspective, and a departure from all personal biases, whims, and tastes—in short, Divine Wisdom."
The subject of the volume is the doctrine of the Via Media, a name which had already been applied to the Anglican system by writers of name. It is an expressive title, but not altogether satisfactory, because it is at first sight negative. This had been the reason of my dislike to the word "Protestant;" in the idea which it conveyed, it was not the profession of any religion at all, and was compatible with infidelity. A Via Media was but a receding from extremes, therefore I had to draw it out into a shape, and a character; before it had claims on our respect, it must first be shown to be one, intelligible, and consistent. This was the first condition of any reasonable treatise on the Via Media. The second condition, and necessary too, was not in my power. I could only hope that it would one day be fulfilled. Even if the Via Media were ever so positive a religious system, it was not as yet objective and real; it had no original anywhere of which it was the representative. It was at present a paper religion. This I confess in my Introduction; I say, "Protestantism and Popery are real religions ... but the Via Media, viewed as an integral system, has scarcely had existence except on paper." I grant the objection and proceed to lessen it. There I say, "It still remains to be tried, whether what is called Anglo-Catholicism, the religion of Andrewes, Laud, Hammond, Butler, and Wilson, is capable of being professed, acted on, and maintained on a large sphere of action, or whether it be a mere modification or transition-state of either Romanism or popular Protestantism." I trusted that some day it would prove to be a substantive religion.
The focus of this book is the idea of the Via Media, a term that has already been used by well-known writers to describe the Anglican system. It's a meaningful title, but it can be somewhat unsatisfactory because it seems negative at first glance. This was why I had reservations about the term "Protestant;" it suggested a lack of commitment to any religion, which could even align with unbelief. A Via Media simply represents a move away from extremes, so I needed to give it form and character; before it could earn our respect, it had to be presented as clear and consistent. This was the first requirement for any thoughtful discussion on the Via Media. The second requirement, which was also essential, was beyond my control. I could only hope it would be fulfilled one day. Even if the Via Media were a positive religious system, it still wasn't tangible or real; there was no authentic example it represented. It was, for now, a theoretical religion. I acknowledge this in my Introduction, stating, "Protestantism and Popery are real religions ... but the Via Media, seen as a complete system, barely exists except on paper." I accept this criticism and aim to address it. I suggest, "It remains to be seen whether what we call Anglo-Catholicism, the faith of Andrewes, Laud, Hammond, Butler, and Wilson, can be practiced, upheld, and lived out on a broad scale, or if it's simply a variation or transitional phase between Romanism and popular Protestantism." I hoped that one day it would prove to be a distinct religion.
Lest I should be misunderstood, let me observe that this hesitation about the validity of the theory of the Via Media implied no doubt of the three fundamental points on which it was based, as I have described above, dogma, the sacramental system, and opposition to the Church of Rome.
To avoid any misunderstanding, I want to point out that my uncertainty regarding the validity of the theory of the Via Media does not mean I doubt the three core points it relies on, which I have described above: dogma, the sacramental system, and opposition to the Church of Rome.
Other investigations which followed gave a still more tentative character to what I wrote or got written. The basis of the Via Media, consisting of the three elementary points, which I have just mentioned, was clear enough; but, not only had the house to be built upon them, but it had also to be furnished, and it is not wonderful if both I and others erred in detail in determining what that furniture should be, what was consistent with the style of building, and what was in itself desirable. I will explain what I mean.
Other investigations that came after made my writing even more tentative. The foundation of the Via Media, made up of the three basic points I just mentioned, was pretty clear; but not only did we have to build on them, we also had to furnish the place. It's not surprising that both I and others made mistakes in figuring out what that furniture should be, what matched the style of the building, and what was actually desirable. Let me clarify what I mean.
I had brought out in the "Prophetical Office" in what the Roman and the Anglican systems differed from each other, but less distinctly in what they agreed. I had indeed enumerated the Fundamentals, common to both, in the following passage:—"In both systems the same Creeds are acknowledged. Besides other points in common we both hold, that certain doctrines are necessary to be believed for salvation; we both believe in the doctrines of the Trinity, Incarnation, and Atonement; in original sin; in the necessity of regeneration; in the supernatural grace of the Sacraments; in the apostolical succession; in the obligation of faith and obedience, and in the eternity of future punishment" (Pp. 55, 56). So much I had said, but I had not said enough. This enumeration implied a great many more points of agreement than were found in those very Articles which were fundamental. If the two Churches were thus the same in fundamentals, they were also one and the same in such plain consequences as are contained in those fundamentals or as outwardly represented them. It was an Anglican principle that "the abuse of a thing doth not take away the lawful use of it;" and an Anglican Canon in 1603 had declared that the English Church had no purpose to forsake all that was held in the Churches of Italy, France, and Spain, and reverenced those ceremonies and particular points which were apostolic. Excepting then such exceptional matters, as are implied in this avowal, whether they were many or few, all these Churches were evidently to be considered as one with the Anglican. The Catholic Church in all lands had been one from the first for many centuries; then, various portions had followed their own way to the injury, but not to the destruction, whether of truth or of charity. These portions or branches were mainly three:—the Greek, Latin, and Anglican. Each of these inherited the early undivided Church in solido as its own possession. Each branch was identical with that early undivided Church, and in the unity of that Church it had unity with the other branches. The three branches agreed together in all but their later accidental errors. Some branches had retained in detail portions of apostolical truth and usage, which the others had not; and these portions might be and should be appropriated again by the others which had let them slip. Thus, the middle age belonged to the Anglican Church, and much more did the middle age of England. The Church of the twelfth century was the Church of the nineteenth. Dr. Howley sat in the seat of St. Thomas the Martyr; Oxford was a medieval University. Saving our engagements to Prayer Book and Articles, we might breathe and live and act and speak, in the atmosphere and climate of Henry III.'s day, or the Confessor's, or of Alfred's. And we ought to be indulgent of all that Rome taught now, as of what Rome taught then, saving our protest. We might boldly welcome, even what we did not ourselves think right to adopt. And, when we were obliged on the contrary boldly to denounce, we should do so with pain, not with exultation. By very reason of our protest, which we had made, and made ex animo, we could agree to differ. What the members of the Bible Society did on the basis of Scripture, we could do on the basis of the Church; Trinitarian and Unitarian were further apart than Roman and Anglican. Thus we had a real wish to co-operate with Rome in all lawful things, if she would let us, and the rules of our own Church let us; and we thought there was no better way towards the restoration of doctrinal purity and unity. And we thought that Rome was not committed by her formal decrees to all that she actually taught; and again, if her disputants had been unfair to us, or her rulers tyrannical, that on our side too there had been rancour and slander in our controversy with her, and violence in our political measures. As to ourselves being instruments in improving the belief or practice of Rome directly, I used to say, "Look at home; let us first, or at least let us the while, supply our own short-comings, before we attempt to be physicians to any one else." This is very much the spirit of Tract 71, to which I referred just now. I am well aware that there is a paragraph contrary to it in the prospectus to the Library of the Fathers; but I never concurred in it. Indeed, I have no intention whatever of implying that Dr. Pusey concurred in the ecclesiastical theory, which I have been drawing out; nor that I took it up myself except by degrees in the course of ten years. It was necessarily the growth of time. In fact, hardly any two persons, who took part in the Movement, agreed in their view of the limit to which our general principles might religiously be carried.
I had explained in the "Prophetical Office" how the Roman and Anglican systems differed, but not enough about their agreements. I had listed the core beliefs that both shared in the following passage:—"Both systems acknowledge the same Creeds. In addition to these shared beliefs, we both hold that certain doctrines are essential for salvation; we both believe in the Trinity, Incarnation, and Atonement; in original sin; in the need for regeneration; in the divine grace of the Sacraments; in apostolic succession; in the obligation of faith and obedience, and in the eternal punishment of the wicked" (Pp. 55, 56). I had said all this, but I had not said enough. This list suggested many more areas of agreement than those found in the essential Articles. If the two Churches were the same in fundamentals, they were also unified in the straightforward consequences of those fundamentals as they were outwardly represented. An Anglican principle held that "the abuse of something does not negate its lawful use;" and an Anglican Canon from 1603 stated that the English Church had no intention of abandoning what was upheld in the Churches of Italy, France, and Spain, and respected those ceremonies and teachings that were apostolic. Aside from exceptional matters, as mentioned in this affirmation, whether numerous or few, all these Churches should clearly be regarded as one with the Anglican Church. The Catholic Church around the world had been united from the beginning for many centuries; then, various branches went their own ways to the detriment, but not the destruction, of either truth or charity. Those branches were primarily three:—the Greek, Latin, and Anglican. Each inherited the early undivided Church in solido as its own possession. Each branch was identical to that early undivided Church, and through that Church’s unity, it had unity with the other branches. The three branches were aligned in all but their later accidental errors. Some branches had retained specific aspects of apostolic truth and practice that others had not, and these aspects could and should be reclaimed by those who had lost them. Thus, the middle ages belonged to the Anglican Church, and even more so, the middle ages of England. The Church of the twelfth century was the Church of the nineteenth. Dr. Howley occupied the seat of St. Thomas the Martyr; Oxford remained a medieval University. Aside from our commitments to the Prayer Book and Articles, we could exist, thrive, act, and speak in the atmosphere and context of Henry III's time, the Confessor's, or Alfred's. We should also be tolerant of everything Rome teaches now as well as what it taught then, aside from our protest. We could willingly accept even what we thought was wrong to adopt ourselves. And when we had to denounce, we should do so with regret, not joy. Because of our heartfelt protest, we could agree to disagree. What the members of the Bible Society did based on Scripture, we could do based on the Church; Trinitarians and Unitarians were more distant than Roman and Anglican. Thus, we genuinely wanted to cooperate with Rome in all lawful matters, if she allowed it, and if our own Church’s rules permitted it; we believed that was the best path toward restoring doctrinal purity and unity. We thought that Rome was not fully bound by her official decrees to everything she was teaching; and if her advocates had treated us unfairly, or her leaders were tyrannical, we also exhibited bitterness and slander in our responses to her, along with aggression in our political actions. Regarding our roles in directly improving the beliefs or practices of Rome, I often said, "Look at home; let’s first, or at least for now, address our own shortcomings before we try to be healers for others." This captures much of the spirit of Tract 71, which I just mentioned. I am aware that there is a contradictory paragraph in the prospectus for the Library of the Fathers; however, I never agreed with it. In fact, I do not intend to suggest that Dr. Pusey agreed with the ecclesiastical theory I have outlined; nor that I embraced it quickly, but rather gradually over ten years. It was a development over time. In reality, hardly any two individuals involved in the Movement had the same perspective on how far our general principles could be stretched in a religious context.
And now I have said enough on what I consider to have been the general objects of the various works which I wrote, edited, or prompted in the years which I am reviewing; I wanted to bring out in a substantive form, a living Church of England in a position proper to herself, and founded on distinct principles; as far as paper could do it, and as earnestly preaching it and influencing others towards it, could tend to make it a fact;—a living Church, made of flesh and blood, with voice, complexion, and motion and action, and a will of its own. I believe I had no private motive, and no personal aim. Nor did I ask for more than "a fair stage and no favour," nor expect the work would be done in my days; but I thought that enough would be secured to continue it in the future under, perhaps, more hopeful circumstances and prospects than the present.
And now I've said enough about what I believe to be the main goals of the various works I wrote, edited, or initiated during the years I'm reflecting on. I wanted to establish a vibrant Church of England that truly represents itself and is based on clear principles. As much as paper could convey this, and as passionately as I preached it and encouraged others to embrace it, I aimed to make it a reality—a living Church, made of flesh and blood, with its own voice, complexion, movement, and will. I believe I had no personal agenda or self-interest. I didn't ask for anything more than "a fair stage and no favor," nor did I expect the work to be completed in my lifetime; however, I thought that enough would be achieved to sustain it in the future under what might be more promising circumstances and opportunities than we have now.
I will mention in illustration some of the principal works, doctrinal and historical, which originated in the object which I have stated.
I will mention some of the main works, both doctrinal and historical, that arose from the purpose I’ve outlined.
I wrote my essay on Justification in 1837; it was aimed at the Lutheran dictum that justification by faith only was the cardinal doctrine of Christianity. I considered that this doctrine was either a paradox or a truism—a paradox in Luther's mouth, a truism in Melanchthon. I thought that the Anglican Church followed Melanchthon, and that in consequence between Rome and Anglicanism, between high Church and low Church, there was no real intellectual difference on the point. I wished to fill up a ditch, the work of man. In this volume again, I express my desire to build up a system of theology out of the Anglican divines, and imply that my dissertation was a tentative inquiry. I speak in the Preface of "offering suggestions towards a work, which must be uppermost in the mind of every true son of the English Church at this day,—the consolidation of a theological system, which, built upon those formularies, to which all clergymen are bound, may tend to inform, persuade, and absorb into itself religious minds, which hitherto have fancied, that, on the peculiar Protestant questions, they were seriously opposed to each other."—P. vii.
I wrote my essay on Justification in 1837; it focused on the Lutheran belief that justification by faith alone is the core principle of Christianity. I viewed this belief as either a contradiction or a self-evident truth—contradictory when stated by Luther, but self-evident when expressed by Melanchthon. I believed that the Anglican Church aligned more with Melanchthon, meaning there wasn't really any significant intellectual difference between Rome and Anglicanism, or between high Church and low Church, on this issue. I aimed to bridge a gap created by human actions. In this book, I again express my desire to create a system of theology based on the insights of Anglican theologians, suggesting that my dissertation was an exploratory attempt. In the Preface, I talk about "offering suggestions towards a work that should be at the forefront of every true follower of the English Church today—the establishment of a theological system, grounded in the formularies to which all clergy are committed, that can help enlighten, persuade, and unite religious thinkers who previously believed they were fundamentally at odds on specific Protestant issues."—P. vii.
In my University Sermons there is a series of discussions upon the subject of Faith and Reason; these again were the tentative commencement of a grave and necessary work; it was an inquiry into the ultimate basis of religious faith, prior to the distinction into creeds.
In my University Sermons, there's a series of discussions on the topic of Faith and Reason; these were the initial steps of a serious and necessary project; it was an exploration into the fundamental basis of religious faith, before the division into different creeds.
In like manner in a pamphlet which I published in the summer of 1838 is an attempt at placing the doctrine of the Real Presence on an intellectual basis. The fundamental idea is consonant to that to which I had been so long attached; it is the denial of the existence of space except as a subjective idea of our minds.
In a similar way, in a pamphlet I published in the summer of 1838, I tried to put the doctrine of the Real Presence on an intellectual foundation. The main idea aligns with what I had been so committed to for a long time; it's the rejection of the existence of space, viewing it only as a subjective concept of our minds.
The Church of the Fathers is one of the earliest productions of the Movement, and appeared in numbers in the British Magazine, and was written with the aim of introducing the religious sentiments, views, and customs of the first ages into the modern Church of England.
The Church of the Fathers is one of the earliest works of the Movement, and it was published in issues of the British Magazine. It was written to bring the religious feelings, beliefs, and practices of the early ages into the contemporary Church of England.
The translation of Fleury's Church History was commenced under these circumstances:—I was fond of Fleury for a reason which I express in the advertisement; because it presented a sort of photograph of ecclesiastical history without any comment upon it. In the event, that simple representation of the early centuries had a good deal to do with unsettling me; but how little I could anticipate this, will be seen in the fact that the publication was a favourite scheme of Mr. Rose's. He proposed it to me twice, between the years 1834 and 1837; and I mention it as one out of many particulars curiously illustrating how truly my change of opinion arose, not from foreign influences, but from the working of my own mind, and the accidents around me. The date at which the portion actually translated began was determined by the publisher on reasons with which we were not concerned.
The translation of Fleury's Church History started under these circumstances: I liked Fleury for the reason I mention in the advertisement; it provided a kind of snapshot of church history without any commentary. In the end, that straightforward depiction of the early centuries played a significant role in shaking my beliefs; but how little I could have predicted this is illustrated by the fact that publishing it was a favorite idea of Mr. Rose's. He suggested it to me twice, between 1834 and 1837; and I bring it up as one of many details that curiously show how my change of opinion came not from outside influences but from my own thoughts and the situations around me. The date when the actual translation began was determined by the publisher for reasons we weren’t involved with.
Another historical work, but drawn from original sources, was given to the world by my old friend Mr. Bowden, being a Life of Pope Gregory VII. I need scarcely recall to those who have read it, the power and the liveliness of the narrative. This composition was the author's relaxation on evenings and in his summer vacations, from his ordinary engagements in London. It had been suggested to him originally by me, at the instance of Hurrell Froude.
Another historical work, based on original sources, was published by my old friend Mr. Bowden, titled The Life of Pope Gregory VII. I hardly need to remind those who have read it about the strength and energy of the storytelling. This piece was the author's way to unwind in the evenings and during his summer breaks from his regular work in London. I originally suggested it to him at the request of Hurrell Froude.
The series of the Lives of the English Saints was projected at a later period, under circumstances which I shall have in the sequel to describe. Those beautiful compositions have nothing in them, as far as I recollect, simply inconsistent with the general objects which I have been assigning to my labours in these years, though the immediate occasion of them and their tone could not in the exercise of the largest indulgence be said to have an Anglican direction.
The series of the Lives of the English Saints was planned later, under circumstances that I will describe later. Those beautiful works don’t contain anything, as far as I remember, that is inconsistent with the overall goals I’ve been pursuing in these years, although the immediate inspiration for them and their tone could, even with the most generous interpretation, not be considered to have an Anglican focus.
At a comparatively early date I drew up the Tract on the Roman Breviary. It frightened my own friends on its first appearance, and, several years afterwards, when younger men began to translate for publication the four volumes in extenso, they were dissuaded from doing so by advice to which from a sense of duty they listened. It was an apparent accident which introduced me to the knowledge of that most wonderful and most attractive monument of the devotion of saints. On Hurrell Froude's death, in 1836, I was asked to select one of his books as a keepsake. I selected Butler's Analogy; finding that it had been already chosen, I looked with some perplexity along the shelves as they stood before me, when an intimate friend at my elbow said, "Take that." It was the Breviary which Hurrell had had with him at Barbados. Accordingly I took it, studied it, wrote my Tract from it, and have it on my table in constant use till this day.
At a relatively early stage, I put together the Tract on the Roman Breviary. Its release initially startled my friends, and several years later, when younger individuals wanted to translate the four volumes in extenso for publication, they were advised against it and chose to follow that advice out of a sense of duty. It was quite a twist of fate that led me to discover that amazing and captivating testament to the devotion of saints. After Hurrell Froude passed away in 1836, I was asked to pick one of his books as a keepsake. I chose Butler's Analogy, but when I found out it had already been selected, I looked around the shelves in confusion. An close friend next to me suggested, "Take that." It was the Breviary Hurrell had with him in Barbados. So, I took it, studied it, wrote my Tract based on it, and I still keep it on my table for regular use to this day.
That dear and familiar companion, who thus put the Breviary into my hands, is still in the Anglican Church. So too is that early venerated long-loved friend, together with whom I edited a work which, more perhaps than any other, caused disturbance and annoyance in the Anglican world, Froude's Remains; yet, however judgment might run as to the prudence of publishing it, I never heard any one impute to Mr. Keble the very shadow of dishonesty or treachery towards his Church in so acting.
That dear and familiar companion, who handed me the Breviary, is still part of the Anglican Church. So is my long-time respected friend, with whom I edited a work that, more than any other, stirred up controversy and irritation in the Anglican world, Froude's Remains; yet, regardless of opinions on the wisdom of publishing it, I never heard anyone accuse Mr. Keble of even a hint of dishonesty or betrayal toward his Church by doing so.
The annotated translation of the treatise of St. Athanasius was of course in no sense a tentative work; it belongs to another order of thought. This historico-dogmatic work employed me for years. I had made preparations for following it up with a doctrinal history of the heresies which succeeded to the Arian.
The annotated translation of St. Athanasius's treatise was definitely not a preliminary work; it belongs to a different realm of thought. This historical and doctrinal work occupied me for years. I had planned to follow it up with a doctrinal history of the heresies that came after Arianism.
I should make mention also of the British Critic. I was editor of it for three years, from July 1838 to July 1841. My writers belonged to various schools, some to none at all. The subjects are various,—classical, academical, political, critical, and artistic, as well as theological, and upon the Movement none are to be found which do not keep quite clear of advocating the cause of Rome.
I should also mention the British Critic. I was its editor for three years, from July 1838 to July 1841. My contributors came from different backgrounds, some from none at all. The topics cover a wide range—classical, academic, political, critical, artistic, and theological. None of them support the Movement or advocate for the cause of Rome.
So I went on for years, up to 1841. It was, in a human point of view, the happiest time of my life. I was truly at home. I had in one of my volumes appropriated to myself the words of Bramhall, "Bees, by the instinct of nature, do love their hives, and birds their nests." I did not suppose that such sunshine would last, though I knew not what would be its termination. It was the time of plenty, and, during its seven years, I tried to lay up as much as I could for the dearth which was to follow it. We prospered and spread. I have spoken of the doings of these years, since I was a Catholic, in a passage, part of which I will quote, though there is a sentence in it that requires some limitation:
So I went on for years, until 1841. From a human perspective, it was the happiest time of my life. I truly felt at home. In one of my books, I took the words of Bramhall: "Bees, by the instinct of nature, do love their hives, and birds their nests." I didn’t think such happiness would last, even though I didn’t know how it would end. It was a time of abundance, and during those seven years, I tried to save as much as I could for the scarcity that would come after. We thrived and expanded. I’ve talked about what happened during those years, since I became a Catholic, in a passage that I will quote, although there is a sentence in it that needs some clarification:
"From beginnings so small," I said, "from elements of thought so fortuitous, with prospects so unpromising, the Anglo-Catholic party suddenly became a power in the National Church, and an object of alarm to her rulers and friends. Its originators would have found it difficult to say what they aimed at of a practical kind: rather, they put forth views and principles, for their own sake, because they were true, as if they were obliged to say them; and, as they might be themselves surprised at their earnestness in uttering them, they had as great cause to be surprised at the success which attended their propagation. And, in fact, they could only say that those doctrines were in the air; that to assert was to prove, and that to explain was to persuade; and that the Movement in which they were taking part was the birth of a crisis rather than of a place. In a very few years a school of opinion was formed, fixed in its principles, indefinite and progressive in their range; and it extended itself into every part of the country. If we inquire what the world thought of it, we have still more to raise our wonder; for, not to mention the excitement it caused in England, the Movement and its party-names were known to the police of Italy and to the back-woodmen of America. And so it proceeded, getting stronger and stronger every year, till it came into collision with the Nation, and that Church of the Nation, which it began by professing especially to serve."
"From such small beginnings," I said, "from thoughts that seemed so random and with prospects that looked so bleak, the Anglo-Catholic party suddenly became a significant force in the National Church, alarming its leaders and supporters. Its founders would have struggled to articulate what they were aiming for in practical terms: instead, they presented ideas and principles simply because they believed in them, as if they had to say them; and, while they might have been surprised by their own passion in expressing those ideas, they had just as much reason to be surprised by the success that followed. In reality, they could only say that those ideas were in the air; that asserting something was equivalent to proving it, and that explaining it meant persuading others; and that the Movement they were part of marked the start of a crisis rather than a specific place. Within just a few years, a school of thought was established, grounded in its principles yet open and evolving in its scope, spreading throughout the country. If we consider what the world thought of it, we find even more to be amazed by; for, aside from the stir it caused in England, the Movement and its associated names reached the attention of the police in Italy and the pioneers in America. And so it continued, growing stronger each year, until it came into conflict with the Nation and that Church of the Nation, which it initially claimed to be especially devoted to serving."
The greater its success, the nearer was that collision at hand. The first threatenings of the crisis were heard in 1838. At that time, my bishop in a charge made some light animadversions, but they were animadversions, on the Tracts for the Times. At once I offered to stop them. What took place on the occasion I prefer to state in the words, in which I related it in a pamphlet addressed to him in a later year, when the blow actually came down upon me.
The greater its success, the closer that collision was approaching. The first signs of the crisis appeared in 1838. At that time, my bishop made some light comments in a charge, but they were comments on the Tracts for the Times. Immediately, I offered to stop them. What happened on that occasion I prefer to describe in the words I used in a pamphlet I addressed to him in a later year when the blow actually fell on me.
"In your Lordship's Charge for 1838," I said, "an allusion was made to the Tracts for the Times. Some opponents of the Tracts said that you treated them with undue indulgence ... I wrote to the Archdeacon on the subject, submitting the Tracts entirely to your Lordship's disposal. What I thought about your Charge will appear from the words I then used to him. I said, 'A Bishop's lightest word ex cathedra is heavy. His judgment on a book cannot be light. It is a rare occurrence.' And I offered to withdraw any of the Tracts over which I had control, if I were informed which were those to which your Lordship had objections. I afterwards wrote to your Lordship to this effect, that 'I trusted I might say sincerely, that I should feel a more lively pleasure in knowing that I was submitting myself to your Lordship's expressed judgment in a matter of that kind, than I could have even in the widest circulation of the volumes in question.' Your Lordship did not think it necessary to proceed to such a measure, but I felt, and always have felt, that, if ever you determined on it, I was bound to obey."
"In your Lordship's Charge for 1838," I said, "there was a reference to the Tracts for the Times. Some critics of the Tracts argued that you were too lenient with them... I wrote to the Archdeacon about this, completely leaving the Tracts at your Lordship's discretion. My feelings about your Charge will be clear from what I told him at the time. I said, 'A Bishop's slightest word ex cathedra carries weight. His opinion on a book cannot be taken lightly. It's a rare instance.' I also offered to pull back any of the Tracts I oversaw if you could tell me which ones you had concerns about. Later, I wrote to you, expressing that 'I sincerely hoped I could say that I would take greater pleasure in knowing I was adhering to your Lordship's explicit judgment on such matters than I could have in the wide distribution of the volumes in question.' Your Lordship didn't feel it was necessary to take that step, but I always felt—and continue to feel—that if you ever decided to, I would be obliged to comply."
That day at length came, and I conclude this portion of my narrative, with relating the circumstances of it.
That day finally arrived, and I wrap up this part of my story by sharing what happened.
From the time that I had entered upon the duties of public tutor at my College, when my doctrinal views were very different from what they were in 1841, I had meditated a comment upon the Articles. Then, when the Movement was in its swing, friends had said to me, "What will you make of the Articles?" but I did not share the apprehension which their question implied. Whether, as time went on, I should have been forced, by the necessities of the original theory of the Movement, to put on paper the speculations which I had about them, I am not able to conjecture. The actual cause of my doing so, in the beginning of 1841, was the restlessness, actual and prospective, of those who neither liked the Via Media, nor my strong judgment against Rome. I had been enjoined, I think by my Bishop, to keep these men straight, and wished so to do: but their tangible difficulty was subscription to the Articles; and thus the question of the articles came before me. It was thrown in our teeth; "How can you manage to sign the Articles? they are directly against Rome." "Against Rome?" I made answer, "What do you mean by 'Rome'?" and then proceeded to make distinctions, of which I shall now give an account.
From the time I began my role as a public tutor at my College, when my beliefs were very different from what they were in 1841, I had thought about commenting on the Articles. Back then, when the Movement was gaining momentum, friends would ask me, "What are you going to do with the Articles?" but I didn't share their concerns. Whether, as time passed, I would have been compelled to write down my thoughts on them due to the demands of the original theory of the Movement, I can't say. The real reason I started doing so at the beginning of 1841 was the unease, both actual and anticipated, of those who didn’t agree with the Via Media or my strong stance against Rome. I had been asked, I believe by my Bishop, to keep these individuals grounded, and I wanted to do that: but their main issue was subscribing to the Articles; and so the question of the Articles came to my attention. It was thrown at us: "How can you sign the Articles? They are directly against Rome." I replied, "Against Rome? What do you mean by 'Rome'?" and then I went on to explain the distinctions that I will now detail.
By "Roman doctrine" might be meant one of three things: 1, the Catholic teaching of the early centuries; or 2, the formal dogmas of Rome as contained in the later Councils, especially the Council of Trent, and as condensed in the Creed of Pope Pius IV.; 3, the actual popular beliefs and usages sanctioned by Rome in the countries in communion with it, over and above the dogmas; and these I called "dominant errors." Now Protestants commonly thought that in all three senses, "Roman doctrine" was condemned in the Articles: I thought that the Catholic teaching was not condemned; that the dominant errors were; and as to the formal dogmas, that some were, some were not, and that the line had to be drawn between them. Thus, 1, the use of prayers for the dead was a Catholic doctrine—not condemned; 2, the prison of purgatory was a Roman dogma—which was condemned; but the infallibility of ecumenical councils was a Roman dogma—not condemned; and 3, the fire of Purgatory was an authorised and popular error, not a dogma—which was condemned.
By "Roman doctrine," three things might be referred to: 1, the Catholic teaching from the early centuries; or 2, the formal dogmas of Rome as defined in the later Councils, especially the Council of Trent, and summarized in the Creed of Pope Pius IV.; 3, the actual popular beliefs and practices approved by Rome in countries that are in communion with it, beyond the dogmas; and I called these "dominant errors." Protestants typically believed that "Roman doctrine" was condemned in all three senses in the Articles: I believed that the Catholic teaching was not condemned; that the dominant errors were condemned; and regarding the formal dogmas, some were condemned, some were not, and a distinction needed to be made between them. Thus, 1, praying for the dead was a Catholic doctrine—not condemned; 2, the prison of purgatory was a Roman dogma—which was condemned; but the infallibility of ecumenical councils was a Roman dogma—not condemned; and 3, the fire of Purgatory was an approved and popular error, not a dogma—which was condemned.
Further, I considered that the difficulties, felt by the persons whom I have mentioned, mainly lay in their mistaking, 1, Catholic teaching, which was not condemned in the Articles, for Roman dogma which was condemned; and 2, Roman dogma, which was not condemned in the Articles, for dominant error which was. If they went further than this, I had nothing more to say to them.
Further, I thought that the issues faced by the individuals I mentioned mainly stemmed from them confusing, 1, Catholic teaching, which wasn't condemned in the Articles, with Roman dogma, which was condemned; and 2, Roman dogma, which wasn't condemned in the Articles, with dominant error, which was. If they went beyond this, I had nothing more to say to them.
A further motive which I had for my attempt, was the desire to ascertain the ultimate points of contrariety between the Roman and Anglican creeds, and to make them as few as possible. I thought that each creed was obscured and misrepresented by a dominant circumambient "Popery" and "Protestantism."
A further reason for my attempt was the desire to find out the main differences between the Roman and Anglican beliefs and to minimize them. I believed that each belief was clouded and misrepresented by an overwhelming surrounding influence of "Popery" and "Protestantism."
The main thesis then of my essay was this:—the Articles do not oppose Catholic teaching; they but partially oppose Roman dogma; they for the most part oppose the dominant errors of Rome. And the problem was to draw the line as to what they allowed and what they condemned.
The main point of my essay was this: the Articles don't go against Catholic teaching; they only partially challenge Roman dogma; they mainly counter the major errors of Rome. The challenge was to figure out what they accepted and what they rejected.
Such being the object which I had in view, what were my prospects of widening and defining their meaning? The prospect was encouraging; there was no doubt at all of the elasticity of the Articles: to take a palmary instance, the seventeenth was assumed by one party to be Lutheran, by another Calvinistic, though the two interpretations were contradictory to each other; why then should not other Articles be drawn up with a vagueness of an equally intense character? I wanted to ascertain what was the limit of that elasticity in the direction of Roman dogma. But next, I had a way of inquiry of my own, which I state without defending. I instanced it afterwards in my Essay on Doctrinal Development. That work, I believe, I have not read since I published it, and I doubt not at all that I have made many mistakes in it;—partly, from my ignorance of the details of doctrine, as the Church of Rome holds them, but partly from my impatience to clear as large a range for the principle of doctrinal development (waiving the question of historical fact) as was consistent with the strict apostolicity and identity of the Catholic Creed. In like manner, as regards the 39 Articles, my method of inquiry was to leap in medias res. I wished to institute an inquiry how far, in critical fairness, the text could be opened; I was aiming far more at ascertaining what a man who subscribed it might hold than what he must, so that my conclusions were negative rather than positive. It was but a first essay. And I made it with the full recognition and consciousness, which I had already expressed in my Prophetical Office, as regards the Via Media, that I was making only "a first approximation to a required solution;"—"a series of illustrations supplying hints in the removal" of a difficulty, and with full acknowledgment "that in minor points, whether in question of fact or of judgment, there was room for difference or error of opinion," and that I "should not be ashamed to own a mistake, if it were proved against me, nor reluctant to bear the just blame of it."—P. 31.
With that goal in mind, what were my chances of expanding and clarifying their meaning? The outlook was promising; there was no doubt about the flexibility of the Articles: for example, the seventeenth was interpreted by one group as Lutheran and by another as Calvinistic, even though those interpretations contradicted each other. So why couldn’t other Articles be drafted with a similar level of ambiguity? I wanted to determine how far that flexibility extended in the direction of Roman doctrine. Additionally, I had my own method of inquiry, which I present without justification. I later referenced it in my Essay on Doctrinal Development. I believe I haven’t read that work since I published it, and I’m sure I made many mistakes in it; partly due to my lack of knowledge about the details of doctrine, as understood by the Church of Rome, but also from my eagerness to allow as broad a scope for the principle of doctrinal development (setting aside the question of historical fact) as was consistent with the strict apostolic nature and identity of the Catholic Creed. Similarly, regarding the 39 Articles, my method of inquiry was to dive in medias res. I wanted to investigate how far, in the spirit of critical fairness, the text could be interpreted; my goal was more about understanding what someone who subscribed to it could believe rather than what they had to believe, so my conclusions tended to be negative rather than affirmative. It was just a first attempt. And I undertook it fully aware, as I had already stated in my Prophetical Office about the Via Media, that I was only making "a first approximation to a required solution;"—"a series of illustrations supplying hints to help" in addressing a difficulty, and with full acknowledgment that "in minor points, whether concerning fact or judgment, there was room for differing opinions or errors" and that I "would not be ashamed to admit a mistake if it were proven against me, nor reluctant to accept just criticism for it."—P. 31.
In addition, I was embarrassed in consequence of my wish to go as far as was possible, in interpreting the Articles in the direction of Roman dogma, without disclosing what I was doing to the parties whose doubts I was meeting, who might be thereby encouraged to go still further than at present they found in themselves any call to do.
In addition, I felt embarrassed because I wanted to interpret the Articles in a way that aligned with Roman beliefs, without revealing my intentions to the people whose doubts I was addressing. I was worried that my approach might encourage them to go even further than they currently felt inclined to.
1. But in the way of such an attempt comes the prompt objection that the Articles were actually drawn up against "Popery," and therefore it was transcendently absurd and dishonest to suppose that Popery, in any shape—patristic belief, Tridentine dogma, or popular corruption authoritatively sanctioned—would be able to take refuge under their text. This premiss I denied. Not any religious doctrine at all, but a political principle, was the primary English idea at that time of "Popery." And what was that political principle, and how could it best be kept out of England? What was the great question in the days of Henry and Elizabeth? The Supremacy;—now, was I saying one single word in favour of the supremacy of the holy see, of the foreign jurisdiction? No; I did not believe in it myself. Did Henry VIII. religiously hold justification by faith only? did he disbelieve Purgatory? Was Elizabeth zealous for the marriage of the Clergy? or had she a conscience against the Mass? The supremacy of the Pope was the essence of the "Popery" to which, at the time of the Articles, the supreme head or governor of the English Church was so violently hostile.
1. But in trying to make that argument, the immediate pushback is that the Articles were actually created against "Popery," and so it was completely absurd and dishonest to think that Popery, in any form—whether it was ancient beliefs, the doctrines from the Council of Trent, or popular corruptions that were officially approved—could find shelter under their text. I rejected this premise. It wasn't any religious belief at all, but a political idea that was the main English concept of "Popery" at that time. What was that political principle, and how could it be prevented from taking root in England? What was the critical issue during the reigns of Henry and Elizabeth? The Supremacy;—now, was I saying even one word in support of the supremacy of the holy see, or of a foreign authority? No; I didn't believe in it myself. Did Henry VIII. genuinely hold that justification was only through faith? Did he disbelieve in Purgatory? Was Elizabeth passionate about clergy being allowed to marry? Or did she have any objections to the Mass? The Pope's supremacy was at the core of the "Popery" that, at the time of the Articles, the supreme head or leader of the English Church was fiercely against.
2. But again I said this;—let "Popery" mean what it would in the mouths of the compilers of the Articles, let it even, for argument's sake, include the doctrines of that Tridentine Council, which was not yet over when the Articles were drawn up, and against which they could not be simply directed, yet, consider, what was the religious object of the Government in their imposition? merely to disown "Popery"? No; it had the further object of gaining the "Papists." What then was the best way to induce reluctant or wavering minds, and these, I supposed, were the majority, to give in their adhesion to the new symbol? how had the Arians drawn up their creeds? Was it not on the principle of using vague ambiguous language, which to the subscribers would seem to bear a Catholic sense, but which, when worked out in the long run, would prove to be heterodox? Accordingly, there was great antecedent probability, that, fierce as the Articles might look at first sight, their bark would prove worse than their bite. I say antecedent probability, for to what extent that surmise might be true, could only be ascertained by investigation.
2. But again I said this;—let "Popery" mean whatever it does in the mouths of those who wrote the Articles, and let it even include the doctrines from the Council of Trent, which wasn't finished when the Articles were created, and against which they couldn't be directly aimed. Still, consider what the government's religious goal was in imposing them. Was it just to reject "Popery"? No; it also aimed to win over the "Papists." So what was the best way to persuade hesitant or undecided people—who I assumed were the majority—to accept the new symbol? How did the Arians create their creeds? Wasn't it by using vague, ambiguous language that seemed to have a Catholic meaning to the signers, but ultimately turned out to be unorthodox? Therefore, there was a strong likelihood that, no matter how aggressive the Articles appeared at first glance, their bark would be worse than their bite. I mention this likelihood because the extent to which that suspicion might be correct could only be determined through further investigation.
3. But a consideration came up at once, which threw light on this surmise:—what if it should turn out that the very men who drew up the Articles, in the very act of doing so, had avowed, or rather in one of those very Articles themselves had imposed on subscribers, a number of those very "Papistical" doctrines, which they were now thought to deny, as part and parcel of that very Protestantism, which they were now thought to consider divine? and this was the fact, and I showed it in my Essay.
3. But immediately, a thought arose that clarified this suspicion: what if it turned out that the very people who created the Articles had, while doing so, openly stated—or rather, in one of those very Articles themselves, required subscribers to accept—a number of those so-called "Papistical" doctrines that they were now believed to reject, as part of the same Protestantism they were thought to regard as divine? And this was indeed the case, which I demonstrated in my Essay.
Let the reader observe:—the 35th Article says: "The second Book of Homilies doth contain a godly and wholesome doctrine, and necessary for these times, as doth the former Book of Homilies." Here the doctrine of the Homilies is recognised as godly and wholesome, and subscription to that proposition is imposed on all subscribers of the Articles. Let us then turn to the Homilies, and see what this godly doctrine is: I quoted from them to the following effect:
Let the reader note:—the 35th Article states: "The second Book of Homilies contains a godly and wholesome doctrine, and necessary for these times, just like the first Book of Homilies." Here, the doctrine of the Homilies is acknowledged as godly and healthy, and all subscribers of the Articles are required to agree with that statement. Now, let’s look at the Homilies to understand what this godly doctrine is: I quoted from them to the following effect:
1. They declare that the so-called "apocryphal" book of Tobit is the teaching of the Holy Ghost, and is Scripture.
1. They state that the so-called "apocryphal" book of Tobit is inspired by the Holy Spirit and is considered Scripture.
2. That the so-called "apocryphal" book of Wisdom is Scripture, and the infallible and undeceivable word of God.
2. That the so-called "apocryphal" book of Wisdom is Scripture, and the infallible and undeniable word of God.
3. That the Primitive Church, next to the apostles' time, and, as they imply, for almost 700 years, is no doubt most pure.
3. The early Church, following the time of the apostles and for nearly 700 years as they suggest, is undoubtedly very pure.
4. That the Primitive Church is specially to be followed.
4. That the early Church should be specifically followed.
5. That the four first general councils belong to the Primitive Church.
5. That the first four general councils are part of the Primitive Church.
6. That there are six councils which are allowed and received by all men.
6. There are six councils that are accepted and acknowledged by everyone.
7. Again, they speak of a certain truth which they are enforcing, as declared by God's word, the sentences of the ancient doctors, and judgment of the Primitive Church.
7. Again, they talk about a specific truth that they are upholding, as stated by God's word, the teachings of the early doctors, and the judgment of the Early Church.
8. Of the learned and holy Bishops and doctors of the first eight centuries being of good authority and credit with the people.
8. Of the knowledgeable and holy Bishops and scholars from the first eight centuries, who were held in high regard and trust by the people.
9. Of the declaration of Christ and His apostles and all the rest of the Holy Fathers.
9. About the teachings of Christ and His apostles, along with all the other Holy Fathers.
10. Of the authority of both Scripture and also of Augustine.
10. On the authority of both Scripture and Augustine.
11. Of Augustine, Chrysostom, Ambrose, Jerome, and about thirty other Fathers, to some of whom they give the title of "Saint," to others of ancient Catholic Fathers and doctors.
11. Of Augustine, Chrysostom, Ambrose, Jerome, and about thirty other Fathers, to some of whom they give the title of "Saint," to others of ancient Catholic Fathers and scholars.
12. They declare that, not only the holy apostles and disciples of Christ, but the godly Fathers also before and since Christ were endued without doubt with the Holy Ghost.
12. They state that not only the holy apostles and disciples of Christ, but also the righteous Fathers both before and after Christ were undoubtedly filled with the Holy Spirit.
13. That the ancient Catholic Fathers say that the "Lord's Supper" is the salve of immortality, the sovereign preservative against death, the food of immortality, the healthful grace.
13. The early Catholic Fathers say that the "Lord's Supper" is the remedy for immortality, the ultimate protection against death, the food of eternal life, and a source of healing grace.
14. That the Lord's Blessed Body and Blood are received under the form of bread and wine.
14. That the Lord's Blessed Body and Blood are received in the form of bread and wine.
15. That the meat in the Sacrament is an invisible meat and a ghostly substance.
15. That the meat in the Sacrament is an invisible food and a spiritual substance.
16. That the holy Body and Blood ought to be touched with the mind.
16. That the holy Body and Blood should be understood with the mind.
17. That Ordination is a Sacrament.
17. Ordination is a sacrament.
18. That Matrimony is a Sacrament.
Marriage is a sacrament.
19. That there are other Sacraments besides "Baptism and the Lord's Supper."
19. That there are other Sacraments besides "Baptism and Communion."
20. That the souls of the Saints are reigning in joy and in heaven with God.
20. The souls of the Saints are joyfully reigning in heaven with God.
21. That alms-deeds purge the soul from the infection and filthy spots of sin, and are a precious medicine, an inestimable jewel.
21. Acts of charity cleanse the soul from the stains and dirt of sin, and are a valuable remedy, a priceless treasure.
22. That mercifulness wipes out and washes away infirmity and weakness as salves and remedies to heal sores and grievous diseases.
22. That compassion eliminates and washes away illness and weakness like ointments and treatments that heal wounds and serious diseases.
23. That the duty of fasting is a truth more manifest than it should need to be proved.
23. The obligation to fast is a truth that's more obvious than it really needs to be proven.
24. That fasting, used with prayer, is of great efficacy and weigheth much with God; so the angel Raphael told Tobias.
24. Fasting, especially when combined with prayer, is very powerful and carries a lot of weight with God; that’s what the angel Raphael told Tobias.
25. That the puissant and mighty Emperor Theodosius was, in the Primitive Church which was most holy and godly, excommunicated by St. Ambrose.
25. The powerful and mighty Emperor Theodosius was excommunicated by St. Ambrose in the early and sacred Church.
26. That Constantine, Bishop of Rome, did condemn Philippicus, the Emperor, not without a cause indeed, but most justly.
26. Constantine, the Bishop of Rome, condemned Philippicus, the Emperor, and he did so for good reason, truly.
Putting altogether aside the question how far these separate theses came under the matter to which subscription was to be made, it was quite plain, that the men who wrote the Homilies, and who thus incorporated them into the Anglican system of doctrine, could not have possessed that exact discrimination between the Catholic and Protestant faith, or have made that clear recognition of formal Protestant principles and tenets, or have accepted that definition of "Roman doctrine," which is received at this day:—hence great probability accrued to my presentiment, that the Articles were tolerant, not only of what I called "Catholic teaching," but of much that was "Roman."
Setting aside the question of how much these individual statements fell under the topics that required subscription, it was clear that the people who wrote the Homilies and included them in the Anglican doctrine couldn't have had a clear distinction between Catholic and Protestant beliefs, nor could they have fully recognized formal Protestant principles and tenets, or accepted the definition of "Roman doctrine" that is acknowledged today. This leads me to believe that the Articles were accepting not only of what I referred to as "Catholic teaching," but also of much that was "Roman."
4. And here was another reason against the notion that the Articles directly attacked the Roman dogmas as declared at Trent and as promulgated by Pius the Fourth:—the Council of Trent was not over, nor its decrees promulgated at the date when the Articles were drawn up, so that those Articles must be aiming at something else. What was that something else? The Homilies tell us: the Homilies are the best comment upon the Articles. Let us turn to the Homilies, and we shall find from first to last that, not only is not the Catholic teaching of the first centuries, but neither again are the dogmas of Rome, the objects of the protest of the compilers of the Articles, but the dominant errors, the popular corruptions, authorised or suffered by the high name of Rome. As to Catholic teaching, nay as to Roman dogma, those Homilies, as I have shown, contained no small portion of it themselves.
4. And here’s another reason against the idea that the Articles were directly opposing the Roman teachings established at Trent and promoted by Pius IV: the Council of Trent wasn't finished, nor were its decrees announced by the time the Articles were created, so those Articles must be directed at something different. What was that something different? The Homilies provide the answer: they are the best explanation of the Articles. If we look at the Homilies, we’ll see that, from start to finish, neither the Catholic teachings of the early centuries nor the doctrines of Rome were the targets of the protest by those who created the Articles; rather, it was the prevailing errors and the widespread corruptions that were allowed or tolerated under the prominent name of Rome. Regarding Catholic teachings, and even Roman doctrines, as I have pointed out, the Homilies actually included a significant amount of them.
5. So much for the writers of the Articles and Homilies;—they were witnesses, not authorities, and I used them as such; but in the next place, who were the actual authorities imposing them? I considered the imponens to be the Convocation of 1571; but here again, it would be found that the very Convocation, which received and confirmed the 39 Articles, also enjoined by Canon that "preachers should be careful, that they should never teach aught in a sermon, to be religiously held and believed by the people, except that which is agreeable to the doctrine of the Old and New Testament, and which the Catholic Fathers and ancient Bishops have collected from that very doctrine." Here, let it be observed, an appeal is made by the Convocation imponens to the very same ancient authorities, as had been mentioned with such profound veneration by the writers of the Homilies and of the Articles, and thus, if the Homilies contained views of doctrine which now would be called Roman, there seemed to me to be an extreme probability that the Convocation of 1571 also countenanced and received, or at least did not reject, those doctrines.
5. That takes care of the writers of the Articles and Homilies; they were witnesses, not authorities, and I used them as such. But next, who were the actual authorities enforcing them? I considered the imponens to be the Convocation of 1571. However, it turns out that the same Convocation that received and confirmed the 39 Articles also mandated by Canon that "preachers should be careful not to teach anything in a sermon that should be religiously held and believed by the people, except what aligns with the doctrine of the Old and New Testament, and which the Catholic Fathers and ancient Bishops have gathered from that very doctrine." Here, it's important to note that the Convocation imponens appeals to the same ancient authorities that the writers of the Homilies and Articles held in such high regard. Therefore, if the Homilies included doctrinal views that would now be considered Roman, it seems highly likely that the Convocation of 1571 also supported and accepted, or at least did not reject, those doctrines.
6. And further, when at length I came actually to look into the text of the Articles, I saw in many cases a patent fulfilment of all that I had surmised as to their vagueness and indecisiveness, and that, not only on questions which lay between Lutherans, Calvinists, and Zuinglians, but on Catholic questions also; and I have noticed them in my Tract. In the conclusion of my Tract I observe: They are "evidently framed on the principle of leaving open large questions on which the controversy hinges. They state broadly extreme truths, and are silent about their adjustment. For instance, they say that all necessary faith must be proved from Scripture; but do not say who is to prove it. They say, that the Church has authority in controversies; they do not say what authority. They say that it may enforce nothing beyond Scripture, but do not say where the remedy lies when it does. They say that works before grace and justification are worthless and worse, and that works after grace and justification are acceptable, but they do not speak at all of works with God's aid before justification. They say that men are lawfully called and sent to minister and preach, who are chosen and called by men who have public authority given them in the Congregation; but they do not add by whom the authority is to be given. They say that Councils called by princes may err; they do not determine whether Councils called in the name of Christ may err."
6. And later, when I finally took a close look at the text of the Articles, I saw in many cases a clear fulfillment of everything I had suspected about their vagueness and indecisiveness, and not just on issues between Lutherans, Calvinists, and Zuinglians, but also on Catholic matters; I've noted these in my Tract. In the conclusion of my Tract, I point out: They are "clearly designed to leave big questions open that are central to the controversy. They state extreme truths in broad terms and don’t explain how they fit together. For example, they say that all necessary faith must be proven from Scripture but don’t say who is supposed to prove it. They say that the Church has authority in controversies but don’t say what that authority is. They say it can’t enforce anything beyond Scripture, but don’t say where the solution lies when it does. They say that works before grace and justification are worthless and worse, and that works after grace and justification are acceptable, but they don’t mention works with God’s help before justification at all. They say that people are lawfully called and sent to minister and preach, chosen by individuals with public authority given to them in the Congregation; but they don’t specify by whom the authority should be given. They say that Councils called by princes may err; they do not clarify whether Councils called in the name of Christ may err."
Such were the considerations which weighed with me in my inquiry how far the Articles were tolerant of a Catholic, or even a Roman interpretation; and such was the defence which I made in my Tract for having attempted it. From what I have already said, it will appear that I have no need or intention at this day to maintain every particular interpretation which I suggested in the course of my Tract, nor indeed had I then. Whether it was prudent or not, whether it was sensible or not, anyhow I attempted only a first essay of a necessary work, an essay which, as I was quite prepared to find, would require revision and modification by means of the lights which I should gain from the criticism of others. I should have gladly withdrawn any statement, which could be proved to me to be erroneous; I considered my work to be faulty and objectionable in the same sense in which I now consider my Anglican interpretations of Scripture to be erroneous, but in no other sense. I am surprised that men do not apply to the interpreters of Scripture generally the hard names which they apply to the author of Tract 90. He held a large system of theology, and applied it to the Articles: Episcopalians, or Lutherans, or Presbyterians, or Unitarians, hold a large system of theology and apply it to Scripture. Every theology has its difficulties; Protestants hold justification by faith only, though there is no text in St. Paul which enunciates it, and though St. James expressly denies it; do we therefore call Protestants dishonest? they deny that the Church has a divine mission, though St. Paul says that it is "the Pillar and ground of Truth;" they keep the Sabbath, though St. Paul says, "Let no man judge you in meat or drink or in respect of ... the sabbath days." Every creed has texts in its favour, and again texts which run counter to it: and this is generally confessed. And this is what I felt keenly:—how had I done worse in Tract 90 than Anglicans, Wesleyans, and Calvinists did daily in their Sermons and their publications? How had I done worse, than the Evangelical party in their ex animo reception of the Services for Baptism and Visitation of the Sick?[2] Why was I to be dishonest and they immaculate? There was an occasion on which our Lord gave an answer, which seemed to be appropriate to my own case, when the tumult broke out against my Tract:—"He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone at him." I could have fancied that a sense of their own difficulties of interpretation would have persuaded the great party I have mentioned to some prudence, or at least moderation, in opposing a teacher of an opposite school. But I suppose their alarm and their anger overcame their sense of justice.
Such were the reasons I considered in my exploration of how tolerant the Articles were of a Catholic or even a Roman interpretation; and that was the defense I made in my Tract for attempting it. From what I’ve already said, it’s clear that I have no need or intention today to uphold every specific interpretation I suggested in my Tract, nor did I at the time. Whether it was wise or not, sensible or not, I merely attempted a first draft of a necessary work, a draft that I was fully prepared to find would require revision and modification based on insights gained from others' critiques. I would have happily withdrawn any statement shown to be incorrect; I viewed my work as flawed and problematic in the same way I now see my Anglican interpretations of Scripture as incorrect, but not in any other way. I’m surprised that people don’t apply to Scripture interpreters in general the harsh labels they apply to the author of Tract 90. He possessed a broad system of theology and applied it to the Articles: Episcopalians, Lutherans, Presbyterians, and Unitarians all have their own broad theological systems and apply them to Scripture. Every theology has its challenges; Protestants assert justification by faith alone, despite there being no text in St. Paul that states this, and although St. James explicitly contradicts it; do we then call Protestants dishonest? They deny that the Church has a divine mission, even though St. Paul states that it is “the Pillar and ground of Truth;” they observe the Sabbath, although St. Paul says, “Let no man judge you in meat or drink or in respect of... the sabbath days.” Every creed has supportive texts and others that oppose it, which is generally acknowledged. And this is what I felt strongly: how had I done worse in Tract 90 than Anglicans, Wesleyans, and Calvinists do daily in their sermons and publications? How had I done worse than the Evangelical party in their ex animo acceptance of the Services for Baptism and Visitation of the Sick? [2] Why was I to be seen as dishonest while they were considered perfect? There was a moment when our Lord gave an answer that seemed fitting for my situation when the uproar arose against my Tract: “He that is without sin among you, let him first cast a stone at him.” I would have thought that awareness of their own interpretive challenges would have encouraged the large group I mentioned to exercise some caution, or at least moderation, in opposing a teacher from a differing perspective. But I suppose their fear and anger overshadowed their sense of justice.
In the universal storm of indignation with which the Tract was received on its appearance, I recognise much of real religious feeling, much of honest and true principle, much of straightforward ignorant common sense. In Oxford there was genuine feeling too; but there had been a smouldering stern energetic animosity, not at all unnatural, partly rational, against its author. A false step had been made; now was the time for action. I am told that, even before the publication of the Tract, rumours of its contents had got into the hostile camp in an exaggerated form; and not a moment was lost in proceeding to action, when I was actually in the hands of the Philistines. I was quite unprepared for the outbreak, and was startled at its violence. I do not think I had any fear. Nay, I will add I am not sure that it was not in one point of view a relief to me.
In the widespread uproar of anger that followed the release of the Tract, I see a lot of genuine religious sentiment, a lot of honest and true principles, and a good amount of straightforward, albeit uninformed, common sense. There was real feeling in Oxford too, but there was also a simmering, intense hostility—something that wasn’t completely surprising, and was partly justified—against its author. A mistake had been made; now it was time for action. I've heard that even before the Tract was published, rumors about its contents had reached the opposing side in an exaggerated form; and without wasting a moment, they went into action when I was literally in the grasp of the enemy. I was completely unprepared for the outburst and was shocked by its intensity. I don’t think I was scared. In fact, I’ll add that from one perspective, it might have even felt like a relief to me.
I saw indeed clearly that my place in the Movement was lost; public confidence was at an end; my occupation was gone. It was simply an impossibility that I could say anything henceforth to good effect, when I had been posted up by the marshal on the buttery hatch of every College of my University, after the manner of discommoned pastry-cooks, and when in every part of the country and every class of society, through every organ and occasion of opinion, in newspapers, in periodicals, at meetings, in pulpits, at dinner-tables, in coffee-rooms, in railway carriages, I was denounced as a traitor who had laid his train and was detected in the very act of firing it against the time-honoured Establishment. There were indeed men, besides my own friends, men of name and position, who gallantly took my part, as Dr. Hook, Mr. Palmer, and Mr. Perceval: it must have been a grievous trial for themselves; yet what after all could they do for me? Confidence in me was lost;—but I had already lost full confidence in myself. Thoughts had passed over me a year and a half before which for the time had profoundly troubled me. They had gone: I had not less confidence in the power and the prospects of the apostolical movement than before; not less confidence than before in the grievousness of what I called the "dominant errors" of Rome: but how was I any more to have absolute confidence in myself? how was I to have confidence in my present confidence? how was I to be sure that I should always think as I thought now? I felt that by this event a kind Providence had saved me from an impossible position in the future.
I clearly saw that my place in the Movement was gone; public trust had vanished, and my role was over. It was simply impossible for me to say anything effective from now on, especially after being publicly shamed by the marshal and posted at the buttery hatch of every College in my University, like a disgraced pastry chef. Across the country and in every social class, in every medium and at every opportunity—newspapers, magazines, meetings, sermons, dinner conversations, coffee shops, and train carriages—I was branded a traitor, caught in the act of undermining the long-standing Establishment. There were indeed people, besides my own friends, including well-known figures like Dr. Hook, Mr. Palmer, and Mr. Perceval, who bravely supported me. It must have been a heavy burden for them; yet what could they ultimately do for me? Trust in me was shattered; and I had already lost complete trust in myself. Thoughts had troubled me deeply a year and a half ago. They were gone now: I still believed in the strength and potential of the apostolic movement and in the severity of what I called the "dominant errors" of Rome; but how could I have complete confidence in myself? How could I trust my current beliefs? How could I be sure that I would always think the way I do now? I felt that, through this event, a kind Providence had spared me from an impossible future.
First, if I remember right, they wished me to withdraw the Tract. This I refused to do: I would not do so for the sake of those who were unsettled or in danger of unsettlement. I would not do so for my own sake; for how could I acquiesce in a mere Protestant interpretation of the Articles? how could I range myself among the professors of a theology, of which it put my teeth on edge, even to hear the sound?
First, if I remember correctly, they wanted me to take back the Tract. I refused to do that: I wouldn’t for the sake of those who were uncertain or at risk of becoming uncertain. I wouldn’t do it for my own sake either; how could I accept just a Protestant interpretation of the Articles? How could I align myself with the teachers of a theology that made my teeth grind just to hear it?
Next they said, "Keep silence; do not defend the Tract;" I answered, "Yes, if you will not condemn it—if you will allow it to continue on sale." They pressed on me whenever I gave way; they fell back when they saw me obstinate. Their line of action was to get out of me as much as they could; but upon the point of their tolerating the Tract I was obstinate. So they let me continue it on sale; and they said they would not condemn it. But they said that this was on condition that I did not defend it, that I stopped the series, and that I myself published my own condemnation in a letter to the Bishop of Oxford. I impute nothing whatever to him, he was ever most kind to me. Also, they said they could not answer for what individual Bishops might perhaps say about the Tract in their own charges. I agreed to their conditions. My one point was to save the Tract.
Next they said, "Be quiet; don't defend the Tract." I replied, "Sure, if you won't condemn it—if you let it stay on sale." They pressured me whenever I backed down; they held back when I stood my ground. Their approach was to get as much out of me as possible; but on the issue of tolerating the Tract, I was stubborn. So they let me keep it on sale and said they wouldn't condemn it. But they added that this was on the condition that I didn't defend it, that I stopped the series, and that I published my own condemnation in a letter to the Bishop of Oxford. I hold nothing against him; he was always very kind to me. They also mentioned that they couldn't guarantee what individual Bishops might say about the Tract in their own charges. I agreed to their conditions. My main goal was to save the Tract.
Not a scrap of writing was given me, as a pledge of the performance on their side of the engagement. Parts of letters from them were read to me, without being put into my hands. It was an "understanding." A clever man had warned me against "understandings" some six years before: I have hated them ever since.
Not a single piece of writing was given to me as proof of their commitment to the agreement. Parts of their letters were read to me, but they weren't handed over. It was just an "understanding." A smart person had advised me against "understandings" about six years prior: I've disliked them ever since.
In the last words of my letter to the Bishop of Oxford I thus resigned my place in the Movement:—
In the final words of my letter to the Bishop of Oxford, I formally stepped down from my position in the Movement:—
"I have nothing to be sorry for," I say to him, "except having made your Lordship anxious, and others whom I am bound to revere. I have nothing to be sorry for, but everything to rejoice in and be thankful for. I have never taken pleasure in seeming to be able to move a party, and whatever influence I have had, has been found, not sought after. I have acted because others did not act, and have sacrificed a quiet which I prized. May God be with me in time to come, as He has been hitherto! and He will be, if I can but keep my hand clean and my heart pure. I think I can bear, or at least will try to bear, any personal humiliation, so that I am preserved from betraying sacred interests, which the Lord of grace and power has given into my charge."
"I have nothing to apologize for," I tell him, "except for making your Lordship and those I respect anxious. I have nothing to regret but everything to celebrate and be grateful for. I've never enjoyed pretending I could sway a group, and any influence I've had came naturally, not by seeking it out. I've acted because others didn't, and I've given up a peace I valued. May God be with me going forward, as He has been so far! And He will be, as long as I can keep my hands clean and my heart pure. I think I can handle, or at least I’ll try to handle, any personal embarrassment, as long as I’m not compromising sacred responsibilities that the Lord of grace and power has entrusted to me."
Footnote
[2] For instance, let candid men consider the form of Absolution contained in that Prayer Book, of which all clergymen, Evangelical and Liberal as well as high Church, and (I think) all persons in University office declare that "it containeth nothing contrary to the Word of God."
[2] For example, let honest people think about the way Absolution is presented in that Prayer Book, which all clergymen, whether Evangelical, Liberal, or high Church, and (I believe) all those in University positions state that "it contains nothing contrary to the Word of God."
I challenge, in the sight of all England, Evangelical clergymen generally, to put on paper an interpretation of this form of words, consistent with their sentiments, which shall be less forced than the most objectionable of the interpretations which Tract 90 puts upon any passage in the Articles.
I challenge, in front of all England, Evangelical clergymen in general, to write down an interpretation of this wording that aligns with their beliefs and is less strained than the most controversial interpretations that Tract 90 gives for any section in the Articles.
"Our Lord Jesus Christ, who hath left power to His Church to absolve all sinners who truly repent and believe in Him, of His great mercy forgive thee thine offences; and by His authority committed to me, I absolve thee from all thy sins, in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Ghost. Amen."
"Our Lord Jesus Christ, who has given power to His Church to forgive all sinners who genuinely repent and believe in Him, may in His great mercy forgive you your offenses; and by His authority entrusted to me, I forgive you from all your sins, in the Name of the Father, and of the Son, and of the Holy Spirit. Amen."
I subjoin the Roman form, as used in England and elsewhere "Dominus noster Jesus Christus te absolvat; et ego auctoritate ipsius te absolvo, ab omni vinculo excommunicationis et interdicti, in quantum possum et tu indiges. Deinde ego te absolvo à peccatis tuis, in nomine Patris et Filii et Spiritûs Sancti. Amen."
I’m including the Roman form used in England and elsewhere: "Our Lord Jesus Christ absolve you; and I, by His authority, absolve you from all the bonds of excommunication and interdict, as far as I can and as you need. Then I absolve you from your sins, in the name of the Father, the Son, and the Holy Spirit. Amen."
Part V
History of My Religious Opinions—1839–1841
And now that I am about to trace, as far as I can, the course of that great revolution of mind, which led me to leave my own home, to which I was bound by so many strong and tender ties, I feel overcome with the difficulty of satisfying myself in my account of it, and have recoiled from doing so, till the near approach of the day, on which these lines must be given to the world, forces me to set about the task. For who can know himself, and the multitude of subtle influences which act upon him? and who can recollect, at the distance of twenty-five years, all that he once knew about his thoughts and his deeds, and that, during a portion of his life, when even at the time his observation, whether of himself or of the external world, was less than before or after, by very reason of the perplexity and dismay which weighed upon him,—when, though it would be most unthankful to seem to imply that he had not all-sufficient light amid his darkness, yet a darkness it emphatically was? And who can gird himself suddenly to a new and anxious undertaking, which he might be able indeed to perform well, had he full and calm leisure to look through everything that he has written, whether in published works or private letters? but, on the other hand, as to that calm contemplation of the past, in itself so desirable, who can afford to be leisurely and deliberate, while he practises on himself a cruel operation, the ripping up of old griefs, and the venturing again upon the "infandum dolorem" of years, in which the stars of this lower heaven were one by one going out? I could not in cool blood, nor except upon the imperious call of duty, attempt what I have set myself to do. It is both to head and heart an extreme trial, thus to analyse what has so long gone by, and to bring out the results of that examination. I have done various bold things in my life: this is the boldest: and, were I not sure I should after all succeed in my object, it would be madness to set about it.
And now that I’m about to outline, as best as I can, the journey of that major shift in thinking that led me to leave my own home, which I was tied to by so many strong and tender connections, I feel overwhelmed by the challenge of explaining it to myself, and I've hesitated to do so until the impending deadline for sharing these lines with the world forces me to get started. Who can truly know themselves and the countless subtle influences acting upon them? And who can remember, after twenty-five years, everything they once knew about their thoughts and actions, especially during a time in their life when their ability to observe, whether it’s about themselves or the outside world, was less than before or after, simply because of the confusion and fear weighing upon them—when, while it would be ungrateful to suggest that they didn’t have enough understanding amid their struggles, it was definitely a dark time? And who can suddenly throw themselves into a new and daunting task, which they might handle well if they had the time to thoroughly review everything they’ve written, whether in published works or private letters? But, when it comes to that calm reflection of the past, which is so desirable, who can take it easy and be thoughtful while they subject themselves to the painful process of revisiting old wounds and confronting the "infandum dolorem" of years when the lights of this earthly realm were slowly going out? I couldn’t approach this rationally, nor would I attempt it at all if it weren’t for the urgent call of duty. It’s an extreme test for both my mind and heart to analyze what’s long gone and to reveal the results of that examination. I’ve done various daring things in my life; this is the boldest. Were I not confident that I would ultimately achieve my goal, it would be crazy to even start it.
In the spring of 1839 my position in the Anglican Church was at its height. I had supreme confidence in my controversial status, and I had a great and still growing success, in recommending it to others. I had in the foregoing autumn been somewhat sore at the bishop's charge, but I have a letter which shows that all annoyance had passed from my mind. In January, if I recollect aright, in order to meet the popular clamour against myself and others, and to satisfy the bishop, I had collected into one all the strong things which they, and especially I, had said against the Church of Rome, in order to their insertion among the advertisements appended to our publications. Conscious as I was that my opinions in religion were not gained, as the world said, from Roman sources, but were, on the contrary, the birth of my own mind and of the circumstances in which I had been placed, I had a scorn of the imputations which were heaped upon me. It was true that I held a large bold system of religion, very unlike the Protestantism of the day, but it was the concentration and adjustment of the statements of great Anglican authorities, and I had as much right to do so as the Evangelical party had, and more right than the Liberal, to hold their own respective doctrines. As I spoke on occasion of Tract 90, I claimed, in behalf of who would, that he might hold in the Anglican Church a comprecation with the saints with Bramhall, and the Mass all but transubstantiation with Andrewes, or with Hooker that transubstantiation itself is not a point for Churches to part communion upon, or with Hammond that a general council, truly such, never did, never shall err in a matter of faith, or with Bull that man lost inward grace by the fall, or with Thorndike that penance is a propitiation for post-baptismal sin, or with Pearson that the all-powerful name of Jesus is no otherwise given than in the Catholic Church. "Two can play at that," was often in my mouth, when men of Protestant sentiments appealed to the Articles, Homilies, or Reformers; in the sense that, if they had a right to speak loud, I had both the liberty and the means of giving them tit for tat. I thought that the Anglican Church had been tyrannised over by a party, and I aimed at bringing into effect the promise contained in the motto to the Lyra, "They shall know the difference now." I only asked to be allowed to show them the difference.
In the spring of 1839, my position in the Anglican Church was at its peak. I was extremely confident in my controversial standing, and I had a significant and still growing success in promoting it to others. Last autumn, I had been somewhat irritated by the bishop's charge, but I have a letter that shows that all my annoyance had faded. In January, if I remember correctly, to address the public outcry against myself and others, and to satisfy the bishop, I compiled all the strong criticisms that they, especially I, had made against the Church of Rome for inclusion in the advertisements attached to our publications. As I was aware that my religious views weren't influenced, as people said, by Roman sources, but were instead the result of my own thoughts and the circumstances I had found myself in, I looked down upon the accusations thrown at me. It was true that I held a bold and extensive system of religion, very different from the Protestantism of the time, but it was the focused and refined interpretation of great Anglican authorities, and I had just as much right to do so as the Evangelical party did, and more right than the Liberal faction, to advocate their own beliefs. When I discussed Tract 90, I argued that anyone could hold, within the Anglican Church, a belief in intercession with saints alongside Bramhall or the Mass without transubstantiation alongside Andrewes, or reject transubstantiation as a point of division in communion as Hooker stated, or believe with Hammond that a genuinely convened general council would never err in matters of faith, or agree with Bull that humanity lost inward grace through the fall, or with Thorndike that penance serves as a remedy for post-baptismal sin, or with Pearson that the all-powerful name of Jesus is recognized only in the Catholic Church. "Two can play at that," was something I often said when Protestant individuals referenced the Articles, Homilies, or Reformers; implying that if they had the right to raise their voices boldly, I had both the freedom and the means to respond in kind. I believed that the Anglican Church had been oppressed by a faction, and I aimed to fulfill the promise in the motto of the Lyra, "They shall know the difference now." I simply wanted to be allowed to demonstrate that difference.
What will best describe my state of mind at the early part of 1839, is an article in the British Critic for that April. I have looked over it now, for the first time since it was published; and have been struck by it for this reason:—it contains the last words which I ever spoke as an Anglican to Anglicans. It may now be read as my parting address and valediction, made to my friends. I little knew it at the time. It reviews the actual state of things, and it ends by looking towards the future. It is not altogether mine; for my memory goes to this,—that I had asked a friend to do the work; that then, the thought came on me, that I would do it myself: and that he was good enough to put into my hands what he had with great appositeness written, and I embodied it into my article. Every one, I think, will recognise the greater part of it as mine. It was published two years before the affair of Tract 90, and was entitled "The State of Religious Parties."
What best describes my state of mind at the beginning of 1839 is an article in the British Critic from that April. I’ve just looked it over for the first time since it was published, and I've been struck by it for this reason: it contains the last words I ever spoke as an Anglican to Anglicans. It can now be read as my farewell address to my friends. I had no idea at the time. It reviews the current state of affairs and ends by looking toward the future. It’s not entirely my work; I remember that I had asked a friend to write it, but then I decided to do it myself. He was kind enough to share what he had written, which I incorporated into my article. I believe everyone will recognize most of it as mine. It was published two years before the Tract 90 incident and was titled "The State of Religious Parties."
In this article, I begin by bringing together testimonies from our enemies to the remarkable success of our exertions. One writer said: "Opinions and views of a theology of a very marked and peculiar kind have been extensively adopted and strenuously upheld, and are daily gaining ground among a considerable and influential portion of the members, as well as ministers of the Established Church." Another: The Movement has manifested itself "with the most rapid growth of the hot-bed of these evil days." Another: "The Via Media is crowded with young enthusiasts, who never presume to argue, except against the propriety of arguing at all." Another: "Were I to give you a full list of the works, which they have produced within the short space of five years, I should surprise you. You would see what a task it would be to make yourself complete master of their system, even in its present probably immature state. The writers have adopted the motto, 'In quietness and confidence shall be your strength.' With regard to confidence, they have justified their adopting it; but as to quietness, it is not very quiet to pour forth such a succession of controversial publications." Another: "The spread of these doctrines is in fact now having the effect of rendering all other distinctions obsolete, and of severing the religious community into two portions, fundamentally and vehemently opposed one to the other. Soon there will be no middle ground left; and every man, and especially every clergyman, will be compelled to make his choice between the two." Another: "The time has gone by, when those unfortunate and deeply regretted publications can be passed over without notice, and the hope that their influence would fail is now dead." Another: "These doctrines had already made fearful progress. One of the largest churches in Brighton is crowded to hear them; so is the church at Leeds. There are few towns of note, to which they have not extended. They are preached in small towns in Scotland. They obtain in Elginshire, 600 miles north of London. I found them myself in the heart of the highlands of Scotland. They are advocated in the newspaper and periodical press. They have even insinuated themselves into the House of Commons." And, lastly, a bishop in a charge:—It "is daily assuming a more serious and alarming aspect. Under the specious pretence of deference to Antiquity and respect for primitive models, the foundations of the Protestant Church are undermined by men, who dwell within her walls, and those who sit in the Reformers' seat are traducing the Reformation."
In this article, I start by gathering testimonies from our enemies about the notable success of our efforts. One writer said: "Opinions and views of a distinctly unique theology have been widely adopted and vigorously defended, gaining traction among a significant and influential group of members and ministers of the Established Church." Another noted: "The Movement has shown itself through the fastest growth of the hot-bed of these troubled times." Another remarked: "The Via Media is filled with young enthusiasts who never think to argue, except against the idea of arguing at all." Another stated: "If I were to give you a complete list of the works they've produced in just five short years, it would surprise you. You'd realize what a challenge it would be to fully understand their system, even in its likely still-developing state. The writers have taken as their motto, 'In quietness and confidence shall be your strength.' Regarding confidence, they've justified that choice; but in terms of quietness, it doesn’t seem too quiet to produce such a flood of controversial publications." Another added: "The spread of these doctrines is essentially rendering all other distinctions meaningless and splitting the religious community into two groups that are fundamentally and strongly opposed to each other. Soon there will be no middle ground left; every person, especially every clergyman, will be forced to choose between the two." Another commented: "The time has passed when those unfortunate and deeply regretted publications could be overlooked, and the hope that their impact would fade is now dead." Another said: "These doctrines had already made alarming strides. One of the largest churches in Brighton is packed with people eager to hear them; so is the church in Leeds. There are few notable towns where they haven't spread. They are preached in small towns across Scotland. They’ve made their way to Elginshire, 600 miles north of London. I encountered them myself in the heart of the Scottish highlands. They are promoted in newspapers and magazines. They've even crept into the House of Commons." And finally, a bishop in a statement:—It "is now taking on a more serious and concerning nature daily. Under the misleading guise of respect for Antiquity and admiration for primitive models, the foundations of the Protestant Church are being undermined by people who reside within her walls, and those in the Reformers' seats are disparaging the Reformation."
After thus stating the phenomenon of the time, as it presented itself to those who did not sympathise in it, the Article proceeds to account for it; and this it does by considering it as a reaction from the dry and superficial character of the religious teaching and the literature of the last generation, or century, and as a result of the need which was felt both by the hearts and the intellects of the nation for a deeper philosophy, and as the evidence and as the partial fulfilment of that need, to which even the chief authors of the then generation had borne witness. First, I mentioned the literary influence of Walter Scott, who turned men's minds to the direction of the middle ages. "The general need," I said, "of something deeper and more attractive, than what had offered itself elsewhere, may be considered to have led to his popularity; and by means of his popularity he reacted on his readers, stimulating their mental thirst, feeding their hopes, setting before them visions, which, when once seen, are not easily forgotten, and silently indoctrinating them with nobler ideas, which might afterwards be appealed to as first principles."
After explaining the phenomenon of the time from the perspective of those who didn’t relate to it, the Article goes on to make sense of it. It does this by viewing it as a response to the dry and shallow nature of the religious teachings and literature from the previous generation or century, and as a consequence of the need felt by both the hearts and minds of the nation for a deeper philosophy. This need is evidenced as a partial fulfillment of that longing, which even the major authors of that era acknowledged. First, I pointed out the literary influence of Walter Scott, who directed people's attention towards the Middle Ages. "The widespread need," I said, "for something deeper and more engaging than what had been available elsewhere likely contributed to his popularity; and through his popularity, he influenced his readers, igniting their intellectual curiosity, nurturing their aspirations, and presenting them with visions that, once experienced, are hard to forget, subtly instilling in them nobler ideas that could later be referenced as fundamental principles."
Then I spoke of Coleridge, thus: "While history in prose and verse was thus made the instrument of Church feelings and opinions, a philosophical basis for the same was laid in England by a very original thinker, who, while he indulged a liberty of speculation, which no Christian can tolerate, and advocated conclusions which were often heathen rather than Christian, yet after all instilled a higher philosophy into inquiring minds, than they had hitherto been accustomed to accept. In this way he made trial of his age, and succeeded in interesting its genius in the cause of Catholic truth."
Then I talked about Coleridge like this: "While history in prose and verse became a tool for Church sentiments and beliefs, a philosophical foundation was established in England by a very original thinker. He embraced a freedom of thought that no Christian can accept and promoted ideas that were often more pagan than Christian. Still, he managed to introduce a deeper philosophy to curious minds than they had previously been used to. In this way, he tested his era and managed to engage its spirit in the pursuit of Catholic truth."
Then come Southey and Wordsworth, "two living poets, one of whom in the department of fantastic fiction, the other in that of philosophical meditation, have addressed themselves to the same high principles and feelings, and carried forward their readers in the same direction."
Then come Southey and Wordsworth, "two contemporary poets, one of whom focuses on imaginative fiction, while the other delves into philosophical reflection, and both have engaged with the same profound principles and emotions, guiding their readers in the same direction."
Then comes the prediction of this reaction hazarded by "a sagacious observer withdrawn from the world, and surveying its movements from a distance," Mr. Alexander Knox. He had said twenty years before the date of my writing: "No Church on earth has more intrinsic excellence than the English Church, yet no Church probably has less practical influence ... The rich provision, made by the grace and providence of God, for habits of a noble kind, is evidence that men shall arise, fitted both by nature and ability, to discover for themselves, and to display to others, whatever yet remains undiscovered, whether in the words or works of God." Also I referred to "a much venerated clergyman of the last generation," who said shortly before his death, "Depend on it, the day will come, when those great doctrines, now buried, will be brought out to the light of day, and then the effect will be fearful." I remarked upon this, that they who "now blame the impetuosity of the current, should rather turn their animadversions upon those who have dammed up a majestic river, till it had become a flood."
Then comes the prediction of this reaction made by "a wise observer removed from the world, watching its movements from afar," Mr. Alexander Knox. He stated twenty years before I wrote this: "No church on earth has more intrinsic excellence than the English Church, yet no church probably has less practical influence... The rich provision, made by the grace and providence of God, for habits of a noble kind, is evidence that people shall arise, equipped by nature and ability, to discover for themselves, and to reveal to others, whatever still remains undiscovered, whether in the words or works of God." I also referred to "a highly respected clergyman of the last generation," who said shortly before his death, "Count on it, the day will come when those great doctrines, now hidden, will be brought to light, and then the impact will be devastating." I noted that those who "now criticize the force of the current should rather direct their criticisms at those who have dammed up a majestic river, until it has become a flood."
These being the circumstances under which the Movement began and progressed, it was absurd to refer it to the act of two or three individuals. It was not so much a movement as a "spirit afloat;" it was within us, "rising up in hearts where it was least suspected, and working itself, though not in secret, yet so subtly and impalpably, as hardly to admit of precaution or encounter on any ordinary human rules of opposition. It is," I continued, "an adversary in the air, a something one and entire, a whole wherever it is, unapproachable and incapable of being grasped, as being the result of causes far deeper than political or other visible agencies, the spiritual awakening of spiritual wants."
Given the circumstances surrounding the Movement's beginnings and development, it was ridiculous to attribute it to just a couple of individuals. It wasn’t just a movement; it was a "spirit in the air." It was within us, "rising up in hearts where it was least expected, and manifesting itself, albeit not secretly, in such a subtle and intangible way that it hardly allowed for any ordinary human strategies of resistance or confrontation. It is," I continued, "an unseen opponent, something unified and whole wherever it exists, unreachable and impossible to grasp, as it stems from causes much deeper than just political or other visible factors—it's the spiritual awakening of our inner needs."
To make this clear, I proceed to refer to the chief preachers of the revived doctrines at that moment, and to draw attention to the variety of their respective antecedents. Dr. Hook and Mr. Churton represented the high Church dignitaries of the last century; Mr. Perceval, the tory aristocracy; Mr. Keble came from a country parsonage; Mr. Palmer from Ireland; Dr. Pusey from the Universities of Germany, and the study of Arabic MSS.; Mr. Dodsworth from the study of Prophecy; Mr. Oakeley had gained his views, as he himself expressed it, "partly by study, partly by reflection, partly by conversation with one or two friends, inquirers like himself;" while I speak of myself as being "much indebted to the friendship of Archbishop Whately." And thus I am led on to ask, "What head of a sect is there? What march of opinions can be traced from mind to mind among preachers such as these? They are one and all in their degree the organs of one Sentiment, which has risen up simultaneously in many places very mysteriously."
To clarify, I want to mention the main preachers of the revived doctrines at that time and highlight the diversity of their backgrounds. Dr. Hook and Mr. Churton represented the high Church leaders of the last century; Mr. Perceval came from the Tory aristocracy; Mr. Keble was from a rural parsonage; Mr. Palmer hailed from Ireland; Dr. Pusey studied at German universities and focused on Arabic manuscripts; Mr. Dodsworth was knowledgeable about Prophecy; Mr. Oakeley developed his views, as he put it, "partly through study, partly through reflection, and partly through conversations with a couple of friends who were also inquirers like him;" and I consider myself "greatly indebted to the friendship of Archbishop Whately." This leads me to ask, "Is there any leader of a sect? What connection of ideas can be traced from one mind to another among preachers like these? They all represent, in their own way, a single sentiment that has emerged mysteriously in many places at once."
My train of thought next led me to speak of the disciples of the Movement, and I freely acknowledged and lamented that they needed to be kept in order. It is very much to the purpose to draw attention to this point now, when such extravagances as then occurred, whatever they were, are simply laid to my door, or to the charge of the doctrines which I advocated. A man cannot do more than freely confess what is wrong, say that it need not be, that it ought not to be, and that he is very sorry that it should be. Now I said in the Article, which I am reviewing, that the great truths themselves, which we were preaching, must not be condemned on account of such abuse of them. "Aberrations there must ever be, whatever the doctrine is, while the human heart is sensitive, capricious, and wayward. A mixed multitude went out of Egypt with the Israelites." "There will ever be a number of persons," I continued, "professing the opinions of a movement party, who talk loudly and strangely, do odd or fierce things, display themselves unnecessarily, and disgust other people; persons, too young to be wise, too generous to be cautious, too warm to be sober, or too intellectual to be humble. Such persons will be very apt to attach themselves to particular persons, to use particular names, to say things merely because others do, and to act in a party-spirited way."
My thoughts moved on to the supporters of the Movement, and I openly admitted and regretted that they needed discipline. It's important to highlight this now, especially since any craziness that happened then seems to be blamed on me or the beliefs I promoted. A person can only sincerely acknowledge what’s wrong, say it doesn’t have to be that way, shouldn’t be that way, and express remorse that it is. In the Article I’m reviewing, I stated that the core truths we were preaching shouldn't be judged based on such misuse. "There will always be deviations, no matter the doctrine, as long as the human heart is sensitive, unpredictable, and fickle. A mixed crowd left Egypt with the Israelites." "There will always be people," I added, "who follow the opinions of a movement, who speak loudly and oddly, do strange or extreme things, show off unnecessarily, and alienate others; people who are too young to be wise, too generous to be cautious, too passionate to be level-headed, or too intellectual to be humble. These individuals are likely to latch onto specific people, use particular names, say things just because others do, and act in a factional manner."
While I thus republish what I then said about such extravagances as occurred in these years, at the same time I have a very strong conviction that they furnished quite as much the welcome excuse for those who were jealous or shy of us, as the stumbling-blocks of those who were well inclined to our doctrines. This too we felt at the time; but it was our duty to see that our good should not be evil-spoken of; and accordingly, two or three of the writers of the Tracts for the Times had commenced a Series of what they called "Plain Sermons" with the avowed purpose of discouraging and correcting whatever was uppish or extreme in our followers: to this series I contributed a volume myself.
While I'm reissuing what I said about the excesses that happened during those years, I also strongly believe that they provided a convenient excuse for those who were envious or hesitant about us, just as much as they were obstacles for those who were supportive of our beliefs. We were aware of this at the time; however, it was our responsibility to ensure that our good wouldn't be misrepresented. As a result, a few of the authors from the Tracts for the Times started a series of what they called "Plain Sermons" with the stated goal of discouraging and correcting any pretentious or extreme behavior among our followers. I personally contributed a volume to this series.
Its conductors say in their Preface: "If therefore as time goes on, there shall be found persons, who admiring the innate beauty and majesty of the fuller system of Primitive Christianity, and seeing the transcendent strength of its principles, shall become loud and voluble advocates in their behalf, speaking the more freely, because they do not feel them deeply as founded in divine and eternal truth, of such persons it is our duty to declare plainly, that, as we should contemplate their condition with serious misgiving, so would they be the last persons from whom we should seek support.
Its conductors say in their Preface: "If, as time goes on, there are people who admire the inherent beauty and greatness of the fuller system of Primitive Christianity and recognize the extraordinary strength of its principles, they will become enthusiastic and vocal supporters of it, speaking more freely, because they do not feel them deeply rooted in divine and eternal truth, to such individuals we must clearly state that, while we would look at their situation with serious concern, they would be the last people from whom we would seek support."
"But if, on the other hand, there shall be any, who, in the silent humility of their lives, and in their unaffected reverence for holy things, show that they in truth accept these principles as real and substantial, and by habitual purity of heart and serenity of temper, give proof of their deep veneration for sacraments and sacramental ordinances, those persons, whether our professed adherents or not, best exemplify the kind of character which the writers of the Tracts for the Times have wished to form."
"But if, on the other hand, there are those who, in the quiet humility of their lives, and in their genuine respect for sacred things, demonstrate that they truly accept these principles as real and substantial, and through consistent purity of heart and calm demeanor, show their deep reverence for sacraments and sacra mental practices, those individuals, whether they are our declared supporters or not, best represent the kind of character that the authors of the Tracts for the Times aimed to inspire."
These clergymen had the best of claims to use these beautiful words, for they were themselves, all of them, important writers in the Tracts, the two Mr. Kebles, and Mr. Isaac Williams. And this passage, with which they ushered their Series into the world, I quoted in the Article, of which I am giving an account, and I added, "What more can be required of the preachers of neglected truth, than that they should admit that some, who do not assent to their preaching, are holier and better men than some who do?" They were not answerable for the intemperance of those who dishonoured a true doctrine, provided they protested, as they did, against such intemperance. "They were not answerable for the dust and din which attends any great moral movement. The truer doctrines are, the more liable they are to be perverted."
These clergymen had every right to use these beautiful words, since they were all notable writers in the Tracts, including the two Mr. Kebles and Mr. Isaac Williams. I quoted this passage, which they used to introduce their Series to the world, in the Article I’m discussing, and I added, “What more can be asked of those preaching overlooked truths than to acknowledge that some who do not agree with their preaching are more virtuous and better individuals than some who do?” They were not responsible for the excesses of those who tarnished a true doctrine, as long as they spoke out against such excesses, which they did. “They were not responsible for the noise and chaos that come with any significant moral movement. The truer the doctrines are, the more likely they are to be distorted.”
The notice of these incidental faults of opinion or temper in adherents of the Movement, led on to a discussion of the secondary causes, by means of which a system of doctrine may be embraced, modified, or developed, of the variety of schools which may all be in the One Church, and of the succession of one phase of doctrine to another, while it is ever one and the same. Thus I was brought on to the subject of Antiquity, which was the basis of the doctrine of the Via Media, and by which was not implied a servile imitation of the past, but such a reproduction of it as is really young, while it is old. "We have good hope," I say, "that a system will be rising up, superior to the age, yet harmonising with, and carrying out its higher points, which will attract to itself those who are willing to make a venture and to face difficulties, for the sake of something higher in prospect. On this, as on other subjects, the proverb will apply, 'Fortes fortuna adjuvat.'"
The notice of these incidental faults in the opinions or temper of supporters of the Movement led to a discussion about the secondary reasons through which a system of doctrine can be accepted, changed, or developed, the different schools that can exist within the One Church, and how one phase of doctrine succeeds another while remaining fundamentally the same. This brought me to the topic of Antiquity, which forms the foundation of the doctrine of the Via Media. This did not mean blindly copying the past, but rather reproducing it in a way that feels fresh even though it is rooted in history. "We have good hope," I say, "that a system will emerge that is superior to its time while still aligning with and enhancing its better aspects, attracting those willing to take a risk and face challenges for the sake of something greater ahead. For this, as with other matters, the saying holds true: 'Fortes fortuna adjuvat.'"
Lastly, I proceeded to the question of that future of the Anglican Church, which was to be a new birth of the Ancient Religion. And I did not venture to pronounce upon it. "About the future, we have no prospect before our minds whatever, good or bad. Ever since that great luminary, Augustine, proved to be the last bishop of Hippo, Christians have had a lesson against attempting to foretell, how Providence will prosper and" [or?] "bring to an end, what it begins." Perhaps the lately-revived principles would prevail in the Anglican Church; perhaps they would be lost in "some miserable schism, or some more miserable compromise; but there was nothing rash in venturing to predict that "neither Puritanism nor Liberalism had any permanent inheritance within her." I suppose I meant to say that in the present age, without the aid of apostolic principles, the Anglican Church would, in the event, cease to exist.
Lastly, I turned to the question of the future of the Anglican Church, which was meant to be a new beginning for the Ancient Religion. And I didn't feel confident in making any predictions about it. "Concerning the future, we have no clear vision in our minds, whether good or bad. Ever since that great figure, Augustine, became the last bishop of Hippo, Christians have learned a lesson about trying to predict how Providence will guide and conclude what it starts." Perhaps the recently revived principles would take hold in the Anglican Church; perhaps they would be lost in "some miserable division or some even worse compromise; but it’s not rash to suggest that neither Puritanism nor Liberalism has any lasting place within it." I suppose I meant to imply that in today's age, without the support of apostolic principles, the Anglican Church would eventually cease to exist.
"As to Liberalism, we think the formularies of the Church will ever, with the aid of a good Providence, keep it from making any serious inroads upon the Clergy. Besides, it is too cold a principle to prevail with the multitude." But as regarded what was called Evangelical Religion or Puritanism, there was more to cause alarm. I observed upon its organisation; but on the other hand it had no intellectual basis; no internal idea, no principle of unity, no theology. "Its adherents," I said, "are already separating from each other; they will melt away like a snow-drift. It has no straightforward view on any one point, on which it professes to teach; and to hide its poverty, it has dressed itself out in a maze of words. We have no dread of it at all; we only fear what it may lead to. It does not stand on intrenched ground, or make any pretence to a position; it does but occupy the space between contending powers, Catholic Truth and Rationalism. Then indeed will be the stern encounter, when two real and living principles, simple, entire, and consistent, one in the Church, the other out of it, at length rush upon each other, contending not for names and words, or half-views, but for elementary notions and distinctive moral characters."
"As for Liberalism, we believe the Church's teachings will always, with the help of a good Providence, prevent it from seriously affecting the Clergy. Besides, it's too weak a principle to resonate with the masses." However, regarding what's called Evangelical Religion or Puritanism, there was more cause for concern. I remarked on its organization; yet, on the other hand, it lacked an intellectual foundation, no central idea, no unity, no theology. "Its followers," I said, "are already drifting apart; they'll disappear like a snowdrift. It doesn’t have a clear stance on any point it claims to teach, and to mask its emptiness, it's wrapped itself in a tangle of words. We're not afraid of it at all; we only worry about where it might lead. It doesn’t hold a solid position or pretend to be grounded; it simply occupies the space between two opposing forces: Catholic Truth and Rationalism. That will truly be the fierce clash when two genuine and living principles, straightforward, complete, and consistent—one within the Church and the other outside of it—finally confront each other, not fighting over names or vague ideas, but over fundamental concepts and distinct moral values."
Whether the ideas of the coming age upon religion were true or false, they would be real. "In the present day," I said, "mistiness is the mother of wisdom. A man who can set down half-a-dozen general propositions, which escape from destroying one another only by being diluted into truisms, who can hold the balance between opposites so skilfully as to do without fulcrum or beam, who never enunciates a truth without guarding himself against being supposed to exclude the contradictory—who holds that Scripture is the only authority, yet that the Church is to be deferred to, that faith only justifies, yet that it does not justify without works, that grace does not depend on the sacraments, yet is not given without them, that bishops are a divine ordinance, yet those who have them not are in the same religious condition as those who have—this is your safe man and the hope of the Church; this is what the Church is said to want, not party men, but sensible, temperate, sober, well-judging persons, to guide it through the channel of no-meaning, between the Scylla and Charybdis of Aye and No."
Whether the ideas of the upcoming era regarding religion are true or false, they would still be valid. "Nowadays," I said, "confusion is the source of wisdom. A person who can articulate a handful of general statements that only avoid contradicting each other by being watered down into common truths, who can balance opposing views so expertly that they don't need a lever or a beam, who never states a truth without making sure it doesn't imply the exclusion of the opposite—who believes that Scripture is the only authority, yet acknowledges that the Church should be respected, that faith alone justifies, yet does not justify without good works, that grace isn't dependent on sacraments, yet isn't given without them, that bishops are a divine institution, yet those without them are in the same religious state as those with them—this is your reliable individual and the Church's hope; this is what the Church supposedly desires, not party loyalists, but wise, moderate, level-headed, and discerning people to navigate it through the sea of meaninglessness, between the Scylla and Charybdis of Yes and No."
This state of things, however, I said, could not last, if men were to read and think. They "will not keep standing in that very attitude which you call sound Church-of-Englandism or orthodox Protestantism. They cannot go on for ever standing on one leg, or sitting without a chair, or walking with their feet tied, or grazing like Tityrus's stags in the air. They will take one view or another, but it will be a consistent view. It may be Liberalism, or Erastianism, or Popery, or Catholicity; but it will be real."
This situation, I said, couldn’t go on forever if people were to read and think. They "won’t just stay in that position you call traditional Church-of-Englandism or orthodox Protestantism. They can’t keep standing on one leg, sitting without a chair, walking with their feet tied, or grazing like Tityrus's stags in midair. They will adopt one perspective or another, but it will be a consistent one. It could be Liberalism, Erastianism, Catholicism, or something else; but it will be genuine."
I concluded the article by saying, that all who did not wish to be "democratic, or pantheistic, or popish," must "look out for some Via Media which will preserve us from what threatens, though it cannot restore the dead. The spirit of Luther is dead; but Hildebrand and Loyola are alive. Is it sensible, sober, judicious, to be so very angry with those writers of the day, who point to the fact, that our divines of the seventeenth century have occupied a ground which is the true and intelligible mean between extremes? Is it wise to quarrel with this ground, because it is not exactly what we should choose, had we the power of choice? Is it true moderation, instead of trying to fortify a middle doctrine, to fling stones at those who do? ... Would you rather have your sons and daughters members of the Church of England or of the Church of Rome?"
I ended the article by saying that anyone who doesn't want to be "democratic, or pantheistic, or popish" needs to "find a some Via Media that will protect us from what threatens us, even though it can't bring the dead back to life. The spirit of Luther is gone; but Hildebrand and Loyola are still around. Is it reasonable, sensible, and wise to be so upset with those contemporary writers who point out that our theologians from the seventeenth century found a true and understandable middle ground between extremes? Is it smart to argue against this middle ground just because it isn't exactly what we would pick if we had the choice? Is real moderation about bashing those who are trying to strengthen a middle doctrine? ... Would you prefer your sons and daughters to be members of the Church of England or the Church of Rome?"
And thus I left the matter. But, while I was thus speaking of the future of the Movement, I was in truth winding up my accounts with it, little dreaming that it was so to be;—while I was still, in some way or other, feeling about for an available Via Media, I was soon to receive a shock which was to cast out of my imagination all middle courses and compromises for ever. As I have said, this article appeared in the April number of the British Critic; in the July number, I cannot tell why, there is no article of mine; before the number for October, the event had happened to which I have alluded.
And so I dropped the subject. But while I was talking about the future of the Movement, I was actually wrapping up my involvement with it, not realizing how things would turn out;—while I was still, in one way or another, searching for a suitable Via Media, I was about to experience a shock that would completely eliminate any thoughts of middle ground and compromises for good. As I mentioned, this article was published in the April issue of the British Critic; in the July issue, for some reason, there’s no article from me; and before the October issue, the event I hinted at had taken place.
But before I proceed to describe what happened to me in the summer of 1839, I must detain the reader for a while, in order to describe the issue of the controversy between Rome and the Anglican Church, as I viewed it. This will involve some dry discussion; but it is as necessary for my narrative, as plans of buildings and homesteads are often found to be in the proceedings of our law courts.
But before I explain what happened to me in the summer of 1839, I need to take a moment to discuss the issue in the argument between Rome and the Anglican Church, from my perspective. This will involve some tedious details; however, it’s just as essential for my story as architectural plans and property layouts are often included in legal proceedings.
I have said already that, though the object of the Movement was to withstand the liberalism of the day, I found and felt this could not be done by mere negatives. It was necessary for us to have a positive Church theory erected on a definite basis. This took me to the great Anglican divines; and then of course I found at once that it was impossible to form any such theory, without cutting across the teaching of the Church of Rome. Thus came in the Roman controversy.
I’ve already mentioned that, although the goal of the Movement was to resist the liberalism of the time, I realized that we couldn't do this with just negatives. We needed a solid and positive Church theory based on a clear foundation. This led me to study the great Anglican theologians; and I quickly discovered that it was impossible to develop such a theory without conflicting with the teachings of the Roman Catholic Church. This is how the Roman controversy arose.
When I first turned myself to it, I had neither doubt on the subject, nor suspicion that doubt would ever come upon me. It was in this state of mind that I began to read up Bellarmine on the one hand, and numberless Anglican writers on the other. But I soon found, as others had found before me, that it was a tangled and manifold controversy, difficult to master, more difficult to put out of hand with neatness and precision. It was easy to make points, not easy to sum up and settle. It was not easy to find a clear issue for the dispute, and still less by a logical process to decide it in favour of Anglicanism. This difficulty, however, had no tendency whatever to harass or perplex me: it was a matter, not of convictions, but of proofs.
When I first started looking into it, I had no doubts about the topic and didn't think doubts would ever arise. It was with this mindset that I began to read Bellarmine on one side and countless Anglican writers on the other. But I quickly discovered, just like many before me, that it was a complex and multifaceted debate, hard to grasp, and even harder to resolve neatly and precisely. Making points was easy, but summarizing and settling the matter was not. Finding a clear issue for the dispute was challenging, and even more so to logically decide it in favor of Anglicanism. However, this difficulty didn’t bother or confuse me; it was a matter of evidence, not convictions.
First I saw, as all see who study the subject, that a broad distinction had to be drawn between the actual state of belief and of usage in the countries which were in communion with the Roman Church, and her formal dogmas; the latter did not cover the former. Sensible pain, for instance, is not implied in the Tridentine decree upon purgatory; but it was the tradition of the Latin Church, and I had seen the pictures of souls in flames in the streets of Naples. Bishop Lloyd had brought this distinction out strongly in an Article in the British Critic in 1825; indeed, it was one of the most common objections made to the Church of Rome, that she dared not commit herself by formal decree, to what nevertheless she sanctioned and allowed. Accordingly, in my Prophetical Office, I view as simply separate ideas, Rome quiescent, and Rome in action. I contrasted her creed on the one hand, with her ordinary teaching, her controversial tone, her political and social bearing, and her popular beliefs and practices on the other.
First, I realized, as everyone does who studies this topic, that there needs to be a clear distinction between the actual beliefs and practices in the countries that are part of the Roman Church and its official doctrines; the latter does not encompass the former. For example, real suffering is not mentioned in the Tridentine decree about purgatory, but it was part of the tradition of the Latin Church, and I had seen images of souls in flames in the streets of Naples. Bishop Lloyd highlighted this distinction in an article in the British Critic in 1825; indeed, one of the most common criticisms of the Church of Rome was that it was unwilling to formally declare what it nonetheless endorsed and permitted. Therefore, in my Prophetical Office, I see as two distinct ideas: Rome at rest and Rome in action. I compared her official beliefs on one side with her usual teachings, her debating style, her political and social attitudes, and her popular beliefs and practices on the other.
While I made this distinction between the decrees and the traditions of Rome, I drew a parallel distinction between Anglicanism quiescent, and Anglicanism in action. In its formal creed Anglicanism was not at a great distance from Rome: far otherwise, when viewed in its insular spirit, the traditions of its establishment, its historical characteristics, its controversial rancour, and its private judgment. I disavowed and condemned those excesses, and called them "Protestantism" or "Ultra-Protestantism:" I wished to find a parallel disclaimer, on the part of Roman controversialists, of that popular system of beliefs and usages in their own Church, which I called "Popery." When that hope was a dream, I saw that the controversy lay between the book-theology of Anglicanism on the one side, and the living system of what I called Roman corruption on the other. I could not get further than this; with this result I was forced to content myself.
While I made this distinction between the decrees and the traditions of Rome, I also differentiated between Anglicanism as a passive faith and Anglicanism in action. In its formal beliefs, Anglicanism wasn't that far off from Rome; however, when viewed through its insular attitude, the traditions of its establishment, its historical traits, its contentious nature, and its emphasis on personal interpretation told a different story. I rejected and criticized those extremes, labeling them "Protestantism" or "Ultra-Protestantism." I wanted to find a similar rejection from Roman debaters regarding the popular beliefs and practices in their Church, which I referred to as "Popery." When that hope proved to be unrealistic, I realized that the debate was between the book-based theology of Anglicanism on one side and what I termed Roman corruption on the other. I couldn't go beyond this point; I had to settle for this conclusion.
These then were the parties in the controversy:—the Anglican Via Media and the popular religion of Rome. And next, as to the issue, to which the controversy between them was to be brought, it was this:—the Anglican disputant took his stand upon Antiquity or apostolicity, the Roman upon Catholicity. The Anglican said to the Roman: "There is but One Faith, the Ancient, and you have not kept to it;" the Roman retorted: "There is but One Church, the Catholic, and you are out of it." The Anglican urged: "Your special beliefs, practices, modes of action, are nowhere in Antiquity;" the Roman objected: "You do not communicate with any one Church besides your own and its offshoots, and you have discarded principles, doctrines, sacraments, and usages, which are and ever have been received in the East and the West." The true Church, as defined in the Creeds, was both Catholic and Apostolic; now, as I viewed the controversy in which I was engaged, England and Rome had divided these notes or prerogatives between them: the cause lay thus, Apostolicity versus Catholicity.
These were the parties in the debate: the Anglican Via Media and the popular religion of Rome. As for the issue at the heart of their disagreement, it was this: the Anglican argued based on Antiquity or apostolicity, while the Roman based his stance on Catholicity. The Anglican told the Roman, "There is only One Faith, the Ancient, and you haven't adhered to it;" the Roman responded, "There is only One Church, the Catholic, and you are not part of it." The Anglican insisted, "Your specific beliefs, practices, and ways of acting are nowhere found in Antiquity;" the Roman countered, "You don't connect with any Church other than your own and its branches, and you have rejected principles, doctrines, sacraments, and customs that have always been accepted in the East and the West." The true Church, as stated in the Creeds, was both Catholic and Apostolic; now, as I saw the debate I was involved in, England and Rome had split these attributes or privileges between them: the issue was Apostolicity versus Catholicity.
However, in thus stating the matter, of course I do not wish it supposed, that I considered the note of Catholicity really to belong to Rome, to the disparagement of the Anglican Church; but that the special point or plea of Rome in the controversy was Catholicity, as the Anglican plea was Antiquity. Of course I contended that the Roman idea of Catholicity was not ancient and apostolic. It was in my judgment at the utmost only natural, becoming, expedient, that the whole of Christendom should be united in one visible body; while such a unity might be, on the other hand, a mere heartless and political combination. For myself, I held with the Anglican divines, that, in the Primitive Church, there was a very real mutual independence between its separate parts, though, from a dictate of charity, there was in fact a close union between them. I considered that each see and diocese might be compared to a crystal, and that each was similar to the rest, and that the sum total of them all was only a collection of crystals. The unity of the Church lay, not in its being a polity, but in its being a family, a race, coming down by apostolical descent from its first founders and bishops. And I considered this truth brought out, beyond the possibility of dispute, in the Epistles of St. Ignatius, in which the bishop is represented as the one supreme authority in the Church, that is, in his own place, with no one above him, except as, for the sake of ecclesiastical order and expedience, arrangements had been made by which one was put over or under another. So much for our own claim to Catholicity, which was so perversely appropriated by our opponents to themselves:—on the other hand, as to our special strong point, Antiquity, while of course, by means of it, we were able to condemn most emphatically the novel claim of Rome to domineer over other Churches, which were in truth her equals, further than that, we thereby especially convicted her of the intolerable offence of having added to the Faith. This was the critical head of accusation urged against her by the Anglican disputant, and, as he referred to St. Ignatius in proof that he himself was a true Catholic, in spite of being separated from Rome, so he triumphantly referred to the Treatise of Vincentius of Lerins upon the "Quod semper, quod ubique, quod ab omnibus," in proof that the controversialists of Rome were separated in their creed from the apostolical and primitive faith.
However, in saying this, I don’t want anyone to think that I believe the idea of Catholicity belongs solely to Rome, or to undermine the Anglican Church. Rather, I meant that Rome’s main argument in the debate was Catholicity, just as the Anglican position centered on Antiquity. I argued that the Roman view of Catholicity isn’t ancient or apostolic. In my opinion, it’s only natural, fitting, and practical for all of Christendom to unite as one visible body; however, such unity could also just be a soulless and political alliance. Personally, I agreed with the Anglican theologians that, in the Primitive Church, there was a very real mutual independence among its parts, although there was also a true close connection among them out of charity. I believed that each see and diocese could be compared to a crystal—each similar to the others, and the totality of them all was just a collection of crystals. The unity of the Church is found not in it being a political structure, but in it being a family, a lineage that traces its apostolic descent from its original founders and bishops. I thought this truth was clearly shown in the Epistles of St. Ignatius, where the bishop is described as the one supreme authority in the Church, in his own position, with no one above him, except where arrangements were made for ecclesiastical order and convenience to place someone over or under another. This was our claim to Catholicity, which our opponents so wrongly claimed for themselves. On the other hand, regarding our strong point, Antiquity, we were able to strongly denounce Rome's recent claim to dominate over other Churches, which were actually her equals. Furthermore, this especially highlighted her serious offense of adding to the Faith. This was the main accusation brought against her by the Anglican debater, and just as he referenced St. Ignatius to prove that he was a true Catholic despite being separated from Rome, he confidently cited the Treatise of Vincentius of Lerins about the "Quod semper, quod ubique, quod ab omnibus" to show that the Roman debaters had diverged in their beliefs from the apostolic and primitive faith.
Of course those controversialists had their own answer to him, with which I am not concerned in this place; here I am only concerned with the issue itself, between the one party and the other—Antiquity versus Catholicity.
Of course, those debaters had their own response to him, but that's not my focus here; I'm only interested in the issue itself, between the two sides—Antiquity versus Catholicity.
Now I will proceed to illustrate what I have been saying of the status of the controversy, as it presented itself to my mind, by extracts from my writings of the dates of 1836, 1840, and 1841. And I introduce them with a remark, which especially applies to the paper, from which I shall quote first, of the date of 1836. That paper appeared in the March and April numbers of the British Magazine of that year, and was entitled "Home Thoughts Abroad." Now it will be found, that, in the discussion which it contains, as in various other writings of mine, when I was in the Anglican Church, the argument in behalf of Rome is stated with considerable perspicuity and force. And at the time my friends and supporters cried out "How imprudent!" and both at the time, and especially at a later date, my enemies have cried out, "How insidious!" Friends and foes virtually agreed in their criticism; I had set out the cause which I was combating to the best advantage: this was an offence; it might be from imprudence, it might be with a traitorous design. It was from neither the one nor the other; but for the following reasons. First, I had a great impatience, whatever was the subject, of not bringing out the whole of it, as clearly as I could; next I wished to be as fair to my adversaries as possible; and thirdly I thought that there was a great deal of shallowness among our own friends, and that they undervalued the strength of the argument in behalf of Rome, and that they ought to be roused to a more exact apprehension of the position of the controversy. At a later date (1841), when I really felt the force of the Roman side of the question myself, as a difficulty which had to be met, I had a fourth reason for such frankness in argument, and that was, because a number of persons were unsettled far more than I was, as to the Catholicity of the Anglican Church. It was quite plain, that, unless I was perfectly candid in stating what could be said against it, there was no chance that any representations, which I felt to be in its favour, or at least to be adverse to Rome, would have had their real weight duly acknowledged. At all times I had a deep conviction, to put the matter on the lowest ground, that "honesty was the best policy." Accordingly, in 1841, I expressed myself thus on the Anglican difficulty: "This is an objection which we must honestly say is deeply felt by many people, and not inconsiderable ones; and the more it is openly avowed to be a difficulty, the better; for there is then the chance of its being acknowledged, and in the course of time obviated, as far as may be, by those who have the power. Flagrant evils cure themselves by being flagrant; and we are sanguine that the time is come when so great an evil as this is, cannot stand its ground against the good feeling and common sense of religious persons. It is the very strength of Romanism against us; and, unless the proper persons take it into their serious consideration, they may look for certain to undergo the loss, as time goes on, of some whom they would least like to be lost to our Church." The measure which I had especially in view in this passage, was the project of a Jerusalem Bishopric, which the then Archbishop of Canterbury was at that time concocting with M. Bunsen, and of which I shall speak more in the sequel. And now to return to the Home Thoughts Abroad of the spring of 1836:—
Now I will illustrate what I've been saying about the status of the controversy as it appeared to me, using excerpts from my writings dated 1836, 1840, and 1841. I’d like to start with a comment specifically related to the paper I’ll quote first, from 1836. That paper was published in the March and April issues of the British Magazine that year and was titled "Home Thoughts Abroad." In the discussions within it, as in many of my other writings while I was in the Anglican Church, the case for Rome is presented with significant clarity and force. At the time, my friends and supporters exclaimed, "How imprudent!" and both then and especially later, my enemies declared, "How insidious!" Friends and foes essentially agreed in their criticism: I had laid out the opposing argument too well; this was considered offensive—it might have come from foolishness or from a traitorous purpose. It was neither; here’s why. First, I was very eager, regardless of the topic, to express everything as clearly as I could. Second, I wanted to be as fair as possible to my opponents. Third, I believed there was a lot of superficiality among our supporters, that they underestimated the strength of the argument for Rome, and that they needed to be awakened to a clearer understanding of the controversy's context. Later on (1841), when I truly grasped the strength of the Roman position as a challenge I had to address, I had a fourth reason for being so straightforward in my arguments. That was because many people were more uncertain than I was about the Catholicity of the Anglican Church. It was clear that unless I was completely honest in stating what could be said against it, any points I believed favored it—or at least were critical of Rome—would not be given their proper value. All along, I felt strongly that, at the very least, "honesty was the best policy." Therefore, in 1841, I stated my thoughts on the Anglican difficulty like this: "This is an objection we must honestly admit is deeply felt by many, and not just minor individuals; and the more it is openly acknowledged as a difficulty, the better it is, because then there’s a chance it will be recognized and, over time, resolved by those in charge. Obvious problems tend to fix themselves precisely because they are obvious; and we are hopeful that the time has come when such a significant issue cannot persist against the goodwill and common sense of religious people. This is the very strength of Romanism against us; and unless the right people seriously consider it, they will certainly face the loss of some members they would least like to see leave our Church." The specific situation I had in mind with this statement was the proposed Jerusalem Bishopric that the then Archbishop of Canterbury was planning with M. Bunsen, which I’ll discuss more later. Now, back to Home Thoughts Abroad from the spring of 1836:—
The discussion contained in this composition runs in the form of a dialogue. One of the disputants says: "You say to me that the Church of Rome is corrupt. What then? to cut off a limb is a strange way of saving it from the influence of some constitutional ailment. Indigestion may cause cramp in the extremities; yet we spare our poor feet notwithstanding. Surely there is such a religious fact as the existence of a great Catholic body, union with which is a Christian privilege and duty. Now, we English are separate from it."
The conversation in this piece takes the form of a dialogue. One of the speakers says: "You tell me that the Church of Rome is corrupt. So what? Cutting off a limb is a strange way to save it from a problem. Indigestion might cause cramps in our limbs, but we still take care of our poor feet. There is definitely a religious fact in the existence of a large Catholic community, and being part of it is a Christian privilege and responsibility. Now, we English are separated from it."
The other answers: "The present is an unsatisfactory, miserable state of things, yet I can grant no more. The Church is founded on a doctrine,—on the gospel of Truth; it is a means to an end. Perish the Church (though, blessed be the promise! this cannot be), yet let it perish rather than the Truth should fail. Purity of faith is more precious to the Christian than unity itself. If Rome has erred grievously in doctrine, then it is a duty to separate even from Rome."
The other answers: "Right now, things are in an unsatisfactory and miserable condition, but that's all I can accept. The Church is based on a doctrine—on the gospel of Truth; it's just a way to achieve something greater. If the Church were to vanish (though, thank goodness, that won’t happen), I'd rather see it go than let the Truth be lost. To a Christian, having pure faith is more valuable than unity itself. If Rome has made serious mistakes in its teachings, then it's necessary to break away from Rome even."
His friend, who takes the Roman side of the argument, refers to the image of the Vine and its branches, which is found, I think, in St. Cyprian, as if a branch cut from the Catholic Vine must necessarily die. Also he quotes a passage from St. Augustine in controversy with the Donatists to the same effect; viz. that, as being separated from the body of the Church, they were ipso facto cut off from the heritage of Christ. And he quotes St. Cyril's argument drawn from the very title Catholic, which no body or communion of men has ever dared or been able to appropriate, besides one. He adds, "Now, I am only contending for the fact, that the communion of Rome constitutes the main body of the Church Catholic, and that we are split off from it, and in the condition of the Donatists."
His friend, who sides with the Romans, references the image of the Vine and its branches, which I believe is from St. Cyprian, as if a branch cut from the Catholic Vine must inevitably wither. He also cites a passage from St. Augustine in his debate with the Donatists to the same effect; that is, by being separated from the body of the Church, they were ipso facto cut off from Christ's heritage. Additionally, he mentions St. Cyril's argument about the title Catholic, which no group or communion of people has ever dared or been able to claim, except for one. He adds, "Now, I’m just arguing for the fact that the communion of Rome is the main body of the Catholic Church, and that we are separated from it, in the same situation as the Donatists."
The other replies, by denying the fact that the present Roman communion is like St. Augustine's Catholic Church, inasmuch as there are to be taken into account the large Anglican and Greek communions. Presently he takes the offensive, naming distinctly the points, in which Rome has departed from Primitive Christianity, viz. "the practical idolatry, the virtual worship of the Virgin and Saints, which are the offence of the Latin Church, and the degradation of moral truth and duty, which follows from these." And again: "We cannot join a Church, did we wish it ever so much, which does not acknowledge our orders, refuses us the Cup, demands our acquiescence in image-worship, and excommunicates us, if we do not receive it and all the decisions of the Tridentine Council."
The other responses deny that the current Roman communion is like St. Augustine's Catholic Church, since we also need to consider the large Anglican and Greek churches. Right now, he takes the initiative, clearly listing the ways in which Rome has strayed from Primitive Christianity, specifically: "the practical idolatry, the virtual worship of the Virgin and Saints, which are the issues of the Latin Church, and the lowering of moral truth and duty that results from these." And again: "We cannot join a Church, no matter how much we might want to, that does not recognize our orders, denies us the Cup, demands that we accept image-worship, and excommunicates us if we do not accept it and all the decisions of the Tridentine Council."
His opponent answers these objections by referring to the doctrine of "developments of gospel truth." Besides, "The Anglican system itself is not found complete in those early centuries; so that the [Anglican] principle [of Antiquity] is self-destructive." "When a man takes up this Via Media, he is a mere doctrinaire;" he is like those, "who, in some matter of business, start up to suggest their own little crotchet, and are ever measuring mountains with a pocket ruler, or improving the planetary courses." "The Via Media has slept in libraries; it is a substitute of infancy for manhood."
His opponent responds to these objections by referencing the idea of "developments of gospel truth." Moreover, "The Anglican system itself isn't fully formed in those early centuries; therefore, the [Anglican] principle [of Antiquity] is self-defeating." "When someone embraces this Via Media, they are merely a doctrinaire;" they resemble those "who, in some business matter, jump in to suggest their own little idea and are always measuring mountains with a pocket ruler, or trying to improve on planetary movements." "The Via Media has been dormant in libraries; it is a childish substitute for adulthood."
It is plain, then, that at the end of 1835 or beginning of 1836, I had the whole state of the question before me, on which, to my mind, the decision between the Churches depended. It is observable that the question of the position of the Pope, whether as the centre of unity, or as the source of jurisdiction, did not come into my thoughts at all; nor did it, I think I may say, to the end. I doubt whether I ever distinctly held any of his powers to be de jure divino, while I was in the Anglican Church;—not that I saw any difficulty in the doctrine; not that, together with the story of St. Leo, of which I shall speak by and by, the idea of his infallibility did not cross my mind, for it did—but after all, in my view the controversy did not turn upon it; it turned upon the Faith and the Church. This was my issue of the controversy from the beginning to the end. There was a contrariety of claims between the Roman and Anglican religions, and the history of my conversion is simply the process of working it out to a solution. In 1838 I illustrated it by the contrast presented to us between the Madonna and Child, and a Calvary. I said that the peculiarity of the Anglican theology was this—that it "supposed the Truth to be entirely objective and detached, not" (as the Roman) "lying hid in the bosom of the Church as if one with her, clinging to and (as it were) lost her embrace, but as being sole and unapproachable, as on the Cross or at the Resurrection, with the Church close by, but in the background."
It’s clear, then, that by the end of 1835 or the start of 1836, I had the entire situation laid out before me, which, to me, the decision between the Churches relied on. It’s worth noting that the question of the Pope's role—whether as the center of unity or as the source of authority—never really crossed my mind, nor do I think it did throughout the entire process. I doubt I ever truly believed any of his powers were de jure divino while I was part of the Anglican Church; not because I found the doctrine problematic, and certainly not because the idea of his infallibility, alongside the story of St. Leo, didn’t occur to me—it did. However, ultimately, in my eyes, the debate wasn’t about that; it was about Faith and the Church. This has been the focus of the debate from start to finish. There was a conflict of claims between the Roman and Anglican faiths, and the story of my conversion is simply the journey of working it out to a resolution. In 1838, I illustrated this by contrasting the Madonna and Child with a Calvary. I mentioned that the distinctiveness of Anglican theology was that it "assumed the Truth to be entirely objective and separate, not" (as the Roman view suggests) "hidden within the Church as if it were one with her, clinging to and (so to speak) lost in her embrace, but as being singular and unreachable, as on the Cross or at the Resurrection, with the Church nearby, but in the background."
As I viewed the controversy in 1836 and 1838, so I viewed it in 1840 and 1841. In the British Critic of January 1840, after gradually investigating how the matter lies between the Churches by means of a dialogue, I end thus: "It would seem, that, in the above discussion, each disputant has a strong point: our strong point is the argument from Primitiveness, that of Romanists from Universality. It is a fact, however it is to be accounted for, that Rome has added to the Creed; and it is a fact, however we justify ourselves, that we are estranged from the great body of Christians over the world. And each of these two facts is at first sight a grave difficulty in the respective systems to which they belong." Again, "While Rome, though not deferring to the Fathers, recognises them, and England, not deferring to the large body of the Church, recognises it, both Rome and England have a point to clear up."
As I looked at the controversy in 1836 and 1838, I saw it the same way in 1840 and 1841. In the British Critic of January 1840, after gradually exploring how the situation stands between the Churches through a dialogue, I concluded: "It seems that in the discussion above, each side has a strong argument: ours is based on the idea of being original, while that of the Roman Catholics is based on being universal. It’s a fact, regardless of how we explain it, that Rome has added to the Creed; and it's also a fact, no matter how we justify ourselves, that we are separated from the majority of Christians around the world. Each of these facts poses a significant challenge to the respective systems they belong to." Again, "While Rome, without fully adhering to the Church Fathers, acknowledges them, and England, without fully recognizing the large body of the Church, acknowledges it instead, both Rome and England have issues they need to address."
And still more strongly in July, 1841:
And even more strongly in July 1841:
"If the Note of schism, on the one hand, lies against England, an antagonist disgrace lies upon Rome, the Note of idolatry. Let us not be mistaken here; we are neither accusing Rome of idolatry, nor ourselves of schism; we think neither charge tenable; but still the Roman Church practises what is so like idolatry, and the English Church makes much of what is so very like schism, that without deciding what is the duty of a Roman Catholic towards the Church of England in her present state, we do seriously think that members of the English Church have a providential direction given them, how to comport themselves towards the Church of Rome, while she is what she is."
"If the issue of schism is directed at England, then the problem of idolatry falls on Rome. Let's be clear; we're not accusing Rome of idolatry or ourselves of schism; we don’t believe either accusation holds water. However, the Roman Church practices things that closely resemble idolatry, and the English Church emphasizes aspects that are very similar to schism. Without determining what a Roman Catholic's responsibilities are towards the Church of England in its current situation, we genuinely believe that members of the English Church have a divine guidance on how to approach the Church of Rome as it is now."
One remark more about Antiquity and the Via Media. As time went on, without doubting the strength of the Anglican argument from Antiquity, I felt also that it was not merely our special plea, but our only one. Also I felt that the Via Media, which was to represent it, was to be a sort of remodelled and adapted Antiquity. This I observe both in Home Thoughts Abroad, and in the Article of the British Critic which I have analysed above. But this circumstance, that after all we must use private judgment upon Antiquity, created a sort of distrust of my theory altogether, which in the conclusion of my volume on the Prophetical Office I express thus: "Now that our discussions draw to a close, the thought, with which we entered on the subject, is apt to recur, when the excitement of the inquiry has subsided, and weariness has succeeded, that what has been said is but a dream, the wanton exercise, rather than the practical conclusions of the intellect." And I conclude the paragraph by anticipating a line of thought into which I was, in the event, almost obliged to take refuge: "After all," I say, "the Church is ever invisible in its day, and faith only apprehends it." What was this, but to give up the Notes of a visible Church altogether, whether the Catholic Note or the Apostolic?
One more thing to say about Antiquity and the Via Media. As time passed, while I recognized the strength of the Anglican argument from Antiquity, I also realized that it wasn't just our unique argument, but our only one. I believed that the Via Media, which was meant to represent it, would be a kind of reworked and adapted version of Antiquity. I noticed this in both Home Thoughts Abroad and in the article from the British Critic that I discussed earlier. However, the fact that we ultimately have to rely on our personal judgment regarding Antiquity made me doubt my theory overall, which I express at the end of my book on the Prophetical Office: "Now that our discussions are coming to an end, the thought with which we began often comes back to me when the excitement of the inquiry fades and fatigue sets in, that what has been discussed is just a dream, more of an idle exercise than practical conclusions of the mind." I wrap up the paragraph by looking ahead to a line of thought I felt almost forced to adopt: "After all," I say, "the Church is always invisible in its time, and only faith can perceive it." What was this, if not a complete abandonment of the signs of a visible Church, be it the Catholic Note or the Apostolic?
The Long Vacation of 1839 began early. There had been a great many visitors to Oxford from Easter to Commemoration; and Dr. Pusey and myself had attracted attention, more, I think, than any former year. I had put away from me the controversy with Rome for more than two years. In my Parochial Sermons the subject had never been introduced: there had been nothing for two years, either in my Tracts or in the British Critic, of a polemical character. I was returning, for the vacation, to the course of reading which I had many years before chosen as especially my own. I have no reason to suppose that the thoughts of Rome came across my mind at all. About the middle of June I began to study and master the history of the Monophysites. I was absorbed in the doctrinal question. This was from about June 13th to August 30th. It was during this course of reading that for the first time a doubt came upon me of the tenableness of Anglicanism. I recollect on the 30th of July mentioning to a friend, whom I had accidentally met, how remarkable the history was; but by the end of August I was seriously alarmed.
The Long Vacation of 1839 started early. There were a lot of visitors to Oxford from Easter until Commemoration, and Dr. Pusey and I drew more attention than I think we ever had before. I had set aside the debates with Rome for over two years. In my Parochial Sermons, I hadn't brought up the subject at all; there had been nothing for two years in either my Tracts or in the British Critic that was argumentative. I was going back for the vacation to the reading plan I had chosen as my own many years ago. I have no reason to believe that thoughts of Rome crossed my mind at all. Around the middle of June, I began to study and understand the history of the Monophysites. I was deeply focused on the doctrinal issue. This was from about June 13th to August 30th. It was during this reading that I first began to doubt the validity of Anglicanism. I remember on July 30th mentioning to a friend I ran into how remarkable the history was; but by the end of August, I was genuinely concerned.
I have described in a former work, how the history affected me. My stronghold was Antiquity; now here, in the middle of the fifth century, I found, as it seemed to me, Christendom of the sixteenth and the nineteenth centuries reflected. I saw my face in that mirror, and I was a Monophysite. The Church of the Via Media was in the position of the Oriental communion, Rome was, where she now is; and the Protestants were the Eutychians. Of all passages of history, since history has been, who would have thought of going to the sayings and doings of old Eutyches, that delirus senex, as (I think) Petavius calls him, and to the enormities of the unprincipled Dioscorus, in order to be converted to Rome!
I’ve explained in a previous work how history impacted me. My stronghold was Antiquity; now, here in the mid-fifth century, I saw what seemed to be the reflection of Christendom from the sixteenth and nineteenth centuries. I looked into that mirror and identified as a Monophysite. The Church of the Via Media was positioned like the Oriental communion, Rome was where she is today; and the Protestants were the Eutychians. Of all the moments in history, since history began, who would have thought to look at the words and actions of old Eutyches, that delirus senex, as (I think) Petavius calls him, and the outrageous deeds of the unscrupulous Dioscorus, to be drawn to Rome!
Now let it be simply understood that I am not writing controversially, but with the one object of relating things as they happened to me in the course of my conversion. With this view I will quote a passage from the account, which I gave in 1850, of my reasonings and feelings in 1839:
Now, I want it to be clear that I'm not writing to stir up controversy, but rather to share my experiences as they occurred during my conversion. With that in mind, I'll quote a section from the account I provided in 1850 about my thoughts and emotions in 1839:
"It was difficult to make out how the Eutychians or Monophysites were heretics, unless Protestants and Anglicans were heretics also; difficult to find arguments against the Tridentine Fathers, which did not tell against the Fathers of Chalcedon; difficult to condemn the Popes of the sixteenth century, without condemning the Popes of the fifth. The drama of religion, and the combat of truth and error, were ever one and the same. The principles and proceedings of the Church now, were those of the Church then; the principles and proceedings of heretics then, were those of Protestants now. I found it so,—almost fearfully; there was an awful similitude, more awful, because so silent and unimpassioned, between the dead records of the past and the feverish chronicle of the present. The shadow of the fifth century was on the sixteenth. It was like a spirit rising from the troubled waters of the old world, with the shape and lineaments of the new. The Church then, as now, might be called peremptory and stern, resolute, overbearing, and relentless; and heretics were shifting, changeable, reserved, and deceitful, ever courting civil power, and never agreeing together, except by its aid; and the civil power was ever aiming at comprehensions, trying to put the invisible out of view, and substituting expediency for faith. What was the use of continuing the controversy, or defending my position, if, after all, I was forging arguments for Arius or Eutyches, and turning devil's advocate against the much-enduring Athanasius and the majestic Leo? Be my soul with the Saints! and shall I lift up my hand against them? Sooner may my right hand forget her cunning, and wither outright, as his who once stretched it out against a prophet of God! anathema to a whole tribe of Cranmers, Ridleys, Latimers, and Jewels! perish the names of Bramhall, Ussher, Taylor, Stillingfleet, and Barrow from the face of the earth, ere I should do aught but fall at their feet in love and in worship, whose image was continually before my eyes, and whose musical words were ever in my ears and on my tongue!"
"It was hard to understand how the Eutychians or Monophysites were considered heretics, unless Protestants and Anglicans were also seen as heretics; it was tough to find arguments against the Tridentine Fathers that didn’t also apply to the Fathers of Chalcedon; and it was challenging to condemn the Popes of the sixteenth century without also condemning the Popes of the fifth. The story of religion, and the struggle between truth and error, were always the same. The principles and actions of the Church now mirrored those of the Church then; the principles and actions of the heretics then mirrored those of Protestants today. I realized this — almost scarily; there was a dreadful similarity, even more frightening because it was so silent and unemotional, between the dead records of the past and the frantic accounts of the present. The shadow of the fifth century hung over the sixteenth. It was like a spirit rising from the troubled waters of the old world, taking on the shape and features of the new. The Church then, just like now, could be described as authoritative and rigid, determined, overpowering, and unforgiving; and heretics were fickle, unpredictable, secretive, and dishonest, constantly seeking approval from civil authorities, and never agreeing with each other unless through their support; and the civil authorities were always aiming for compromises, trying to obscure the invisible, and replacing faith with practicality. What was the point of continuing the debate or defending my stance, if in the end, I was providing arguments for Arius or Eutyches, and acting as the devil's advocate against the enduring Athanasius and the noble Leo? God help me! Should I raise my hand against them? Sooner may my right hand forget its skill and wither completely, like his who once reached out against a prophet of God! A curse on a whole tribe of Cranmers, Ridleys, Latimers, and Jewels! May the names of Bramhall, Ussher, Taylor, Stillingfleet, and Barrow vanish from the earth, before I would do anything but fall at their feet in love and reverence, whose image was always before my eyes, and whose beautiful words were always in my ears and on my tongue!"
Hardly had I brought my course of reading to a close, when the Dublin Review of that same August was put into my hands, by friends who were more favourable to the cause of Rome than I was myself. There was an Article in it on the "Anglican Claim" by Bishop Wiseman. This was about the middle of September. It was on the Donatists, with an application to Anglicanism. I read it, and did not see much in it. The Donatist controversy was known to me for some years, as I have instanced above. The case was not parallel to that of the Anglican Church. St. Augustine in Africa wrote against the Donatists in Africa. They were a furious party who made a schism within the African Church, and not beyond its limits. It was a case of altar against altar, of two occupants of the same see, as that between the non-jurors in England and the Established Church; not the case of one Church against another, as Rome against the Oriental Monophysites. But my friend, an anxiously religious man, now, as then, very dear to me, a Protestant still, pointed out the palmary words of St. Augustine, which were contained in one of the extracts made in the Review, and which had escaped my observation. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum." He repeated these words again and again, and, when he was gone, they kept ringing in my ears. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum;" they were words which went beyond the occasion of the Donatists: they applied to that of the Monophysites. They gave a cogency to the Article, which had escaped me at first. They decided ecclesiastical questions on a simpler rule than that of Antiquity; nay, St. Augustine was one of the prime oracles of Antiquity; here then Antiquity was deciding against itself. What a light was hereby thrown upon every controversy in the Church! not that, for the moment, the multitude may not falter in their judgment,—not that, in the Arian hurricane, Sees more than can be numbered did not bend before its fury, and fall off from St. Athanasius,—not that the crowd of Oriental Bishops did not need to be sustained during the contest by the voice and the eye of St. Leo; but that the deliberate judgment, in which the whole Church at length rests and acquiesces, is an infallible prescription and a final sentence against such portions of it as protest and secede. Who can account for the impressions which are made on him? For a mere sentence, the words of St. Augustine, struck me with a power which I never had felt from any words before. To take a familiar instance, they were like the "Turn again Whittington" of the chime; or, to take a more serious one, they were like the "Tolle, lege,—Tolle, lege," of the child, which converted St. Augustine himself. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum!" By those great words of the ancient Father, the theory of the Via Media was absolutely pulverised.
As soon as I finished my reading, a friend who supported the Roman cause more than I did handed me the Dublin Review from that August. It had an article on the "Anglican Claim" by Bishop Wiseman. This was around mid-September. The piece discussed the Donatists and related it to Anglicanism. I read it but didn’t find it very impressive. I had been aware of the Donatist controversy for several years, as I mentioned earlier. The situation wasn’t the same as that of the Anglican Church. St. Augustine wrote against the Donatists in Africa. They were a passionate group that caused a split within the African Church, not outside of it. It was a conflict of altar against altar, similar to the non-jurors in England versus the Established Church; it wasn’t one church against another, like Rome versus the Oriental Monophysites. However, my friend, who is still very dear to me and deeply religious, pointed out a key phrase of St. Augustine from one of the excerpts in the Review that I had missed. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum." He repeated it again and again, and after he left, it kept echoing in my mind. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum;" these words were significant beyond the context of the Donatists: they applied to the Monophysites as well. They gave a new weight to the article that I hadn’t noticed initially. They resolved ecclesiastical issues based on a simpler principle than that of Antiquity; in fact, St. Augustine was one of the leading authorities of Antiquity; so here Antiquity seemed to be judging itself. What clarity this brought to every church controversy! Not that the mass of people might not struggle in their judgment at times — not that during the Arian crisis many Sees didn’t yield to its force and turn away from St. Athanasius — not that the crowd of Eastern Bishops didn’t need St. Leo’s support through his words and presence during the conflict; but ultimately, the settled judgment, where the entire Church comes together and agrees, is an infallible guideline and a final verdict against any parts of it that protest and separate themselves. Who can explain the impressions that words leave on someone? Those few words of St. Augustine struck me with a power I had never felt from any other words. To use a common example, they were like the "Turn again Whittington" of the bell; or, in a more serious context, they were similar to the "Tolle, lege,—Tolle, lege" that converted St. Augustine himself. "Securus judicat orbis terrarum!" With those powerful words from the ancient Father, the theory of the Via Media was completely shattered.
I became excited at the view thus opened upon me. I was just starting on a round of visits; and I mentioned my state of mind to two most intimate friends: I think to no others. After a while, I got calm, and at length the vivid impression upon my imagination faded away. What I thought about it on reflection, I will attempt to describe presently. I had to determine its logical value, and its bearing upon my duty. Meanwhile, so far as this was certain,—I had seen the shadow of a hand upon the wall. It was clear that I had a good deal to learn on the question of the Churches, and that perhaps some new light was coming upon me. He who has seen a ghost, cannot be as if he had never seen it. The heavens had opened and closed again. The thought for the moment had been, "The Church of Rome will be found right after all;" and then it had vanished. My old convictions remained as before.
I was thrilled by the view that opened up before me. I had just started visiting people, and I shared my feelings with two close friends—definitely not anyone else. After a bit, I calmed down, and eventually the strong impression began to fade. What I thought about it later, I will try to explain soon. I needed to figure out its logical significance and how it related to my responsibilities. For now, what was clear was that I had seen the shadow of a hand on the wall. It was obvious that I had a lot to learn about the Churches, and maybe some new insights were coming my way. Once you’ve seen a ghost, you can't just pretend you never did. The skies had opened and closed again. For a moment, I had thought, "The Church of Rome will be found right after all," but then that thought disappeared. My old beliefs stayed the same as before.
At this time, I wrote my Sermon on Divine Calls, which I published in my volume of Plain Sermons. It ends thus:—
At that time, I wrote my Sermon on Divine Calls, which I published in my collection of Plain Sermons. It concludes like this:—
"O that we could take that simple view of things, as to feel that the one thing which lies before us is to please God! What gain is it to please the world, to please the great, nay even to please those whom we love, compared with this? What gain is it to be applauded, admired, courted, followed,—compared with this one aim, of 'not being disobedient to a heavenly vision'? What can this world offer comparable with that insight into spiritual things, that keen faith, that heavenly peace, that high sanctity, that everlasting righteousness, that hope of glory, which they have, who in sincerity love and follow our Lord Jesus Christ? Let us beg and pray Him day by day to reveal Himself to our souls more fully, to quicken our senses, to give us sight and hearing, taste and touch of the world to come; so to work within us, that we may sincerely say, 'Thou shalt guide me with Thy counsel, and after that receive me with glory. Whom have I in heaven but Thee? and there is none upon earth that I desire in comparison of Thee. My flesh and my heart faileth, but God is the strength of my heart, and my portion for ever.'"
"Oh, if only we could look at things simply and realize that our main goal is to please God! What does it matter to please the world, to impress the powerful, or even to satisfy those we love, compared to this? What does it gain us to be applauded, admired, pursued, and followed—compared to the single focus of 'not being disobedient to a heavenly vision'? What can this world offer that matches the understanding of spiritual things, that strong faith, that heavenly peace, that high sanctity, that everlasting righteousness, that hope of glory, which belong to those who sincerely love and follow our Lord Jesus Christ? Let’s pray every day for Him to reveal Himself to us more fully, to awaken our senses and give us a taste of the world to come; so that we can truly say, 'You will guide me with Your counsel, and afterward receive me into glory. Whom have I in heaven but You? And there is nothing on earth that I desire compared to You. My flesh and my heart may fail, but God is the strength of my heart and my portion forever.'"
Now to trace the succession of thoughts, and the conclusions, and the consequent innovations on my previous belief, and the general conduct, to which I was led, upon this sudden visitation. And first, I will say, whatever comes of saying it, for I leave inferences to others, that for years I must have had something of an habitual notion, though it was latent, and had never led me to distrust my own convictions, that my mind had not found its ultimate rest, and that in some sense or other I was on journey. During the same passage across the Mediterranean in which I wrote "Lead kindly light," I also wrote the verses, which are found in the Lyra under the head of "Providences," beginning, "When I look back." This was in 1833; and, since I have begun this narrative, I have found a memorandum under the date of September 7, 1829, in which I speak of myself, as "now in my rooms in Oriel College, slowly advancing etc. and led on by God's hand blindly, not knowing whither He is taking me." But, whatever this presentiment be worth, it was no protection against the dismay and disgust, which I felt, in consequence of the dreadful misgiving, of which I have been relating the history. The one question was, what was I to do? I had to make up my mind for myself, and others could not help me. I determined to be guided, not by my imagination, but by my reason. And this I said over and over again in the years which followed, both in conversation and in private letters. Had it not been for this severe resolve, I should have been a Catholic sooner than I was. Moreover, I felt on consideration a positive doubt, on the other hand, whether the suggestion did not come from below. Then I said to myself, Time alone can solve that question. It was my business to go on as usual, to obey those convictions to which I had so long surrendered myself, which still had possession of me, and on which my new thoughts had no direct bearing. That new conception of things should only so far influence me, as it had a logical claim to do so. If it came from above, it would come again;—so I trusted,—and with more definite outlines. I thought of Samuel, before "he knew the word of the Lord;" and therefore I went, and lay down to sleep again. This was my broad view of the matter, and my prima facie conclusion.
Now let me trace the flow of my thoughts, the conclusions I reached, and the changes in my previous beliefs and general behavior that resulted from this sudden experience. First, I’ll state this, regardless of how it might be interpreted by others: for years, I must have held a kind of underlying feeling, though it was not fully conscious, that my mind hadn’t truly found its ultimate peace and that I was, in some way, on a journey. During the same crossing of the Mediterranean in which I wrote "Lead, kindly Light," I also penned the verses found in the Lyra under the title "Providences," starting with, "When I look back." This was in 1833; and since I began this narrative, I’ve discovered a note dated September 7, 1829, where I describe myself as "now in my rooms in Oriel College, slowly advancing, etc., led on by God's hand blindly, not knowing where He is taking me." But regardless of whatever significance this intuition might have, it did nothing to shield me from the dread and frustration I felt due to the terrible uncertainties I've been recounting. The main question was, what was I supposed to do? I had to figure this out for myself, and no one else could assist me. I decided to be guided not by my imagination but by my reasoning. I repeated this over and over in the years that followed, both in conversation and in private letters. If it hadn’t been for this firm determination, I would have become a Catholic sooner than I did. Moreover, I had genuine doubts about whether the suggestion originated from a higher place. So I told myself, Time will reveal the answer to that question. I needed to continue as usual, to follow those convictions I had long embraced, which still held me, and on which my new thoughts did not directly impact. That fresh perspective should influence me only as much as it logically warranted. If it was divinely inspired, it would return, so I hoped, with clearer direction. I thought of Samuel before "he knew the word of the Lord"; so I went ahead and lay down to sleep again. This was my overall perspective, my prima facie conclusion.
However, my new historical fact had to a certain point a logical force. Down had come the Via Media as a definite theory or scheme, under the blows of St. Leo. My "Prophetical Office" had come to pieces; not indeed as an argument against "Roman errors," nor as against Protestantism, but as in behalf of England. I had no more a distinctive plea for Anglicanism, unless I would be a Monophysite. I had, most painfully, to fall back upon my three original points of belief, which I have spoken so much of in a former passage,—the principle of dogma, the sacramental system, and anti-Romanism. Of these three, the first two were better secured in Rome than in the Anglican Church. The Apostolical Succession, the two prominent sacraments, and the primitive Creeds, belonged, indeed, to the latter, but there had been and was far less strictness on matters of dogma and ritual in the Anglican system than in the Roman: in consequence, my main argument for the Anglican claims lay in the positive and special charges, which I could bring against Rome. I had no positive Anglican theory. I was very nearly a pure Protestant. Lutherans had a sort of theology, so had Calvinists; I had none.
However, my new historical fact had a logical force to a certain extent. The Via Media had collapsed as a clear theory or plan, under the criticisms of St. Leo. My "Prophetical Office" had fallen apart; not as an argument against "Roman errors," nor against Protestantism, but in defense of England. I no longer had a distinct argument for Anglicanism unless I wanted to be a Monophysite. I had to painfully revert to my three original beliefs, which I discussed in a previous section—the principle of dogma, the sacramental system, and anti-Romanism. Of these three, the first two were more secure in Rome than in the Anglican Church. The Apostolic Succession, the two key sacraments, and the early Creeds certainly belonged to the latter, but there was much less rigor regarding dogma and ritual in the Anglican system compared to the Roman one: as a result, my main argument for Anglican claims rested on the specific criticisms I could raise about Rome. I had no concrete Anglican theory. I was very nearly a pure Protestant. Lutherans had a sort of theology, as did Calvinists; I had none.
However, this pure Protestantism, to which I was gradually left, was really a practical principle. It was a strong, though it was only a negative ground, and it still had great hold on me. As a boy of fifteen, I had so fully imbibed it, that I had actually erased in my Gradus ad Parnassum, such titles, under the word "Papa," as "Christi Vicarius," "sacer interpres," and "sceptra gerens," and substituted epithets so vile that I cannot bring myself to write them down here. The effect of this early persuasion remained as, what I have already called it, a "stain upon my imagination." As regards my reason, I began in 1833 to form theories on the subject, which tended to obliterate it. In the first part of Home Thoughts Abroad, written in that year, after speaking of Rome as "undeniably the most exalted Church in the whole world," and manifesting, "in all the truth and beauty of the Spirit, that side of high mental excellence, which Pagan Rome attempted but could not realise,—high-mindedness, majesty, and the calm consciousness of power,"—I proceed to say, "Alas! ...the old spirit has revived, and the monster of Daniel's vision, untamed by its former judgments, has seized upon Christianity as the new instrument of its impieties, and awaits a second and final woe from God's hand. Surely the doctrine of the Genius Loci is not without foundation, and explains to us how the blessing or the curse attaches to cities and countries, not to generations. Michael is represented [in the book of Daniel] as opposed to the Prince of the kingdom of Persia. Old Rome is still alive. The Sorceress upon the Seven Hills, in the book of Revelation, is not the Church of Rome, but Rome itself, the bad spirit, which, in its former shape, was the animating spirit of the Fourth Monarchy." Then I refer to St. Malachi's Prophecy which "makes a like distinction between the City and the Church of Rome. 'In the last persecution,' it says, 'of the Holy Roman Church, Peter of Rome shall be on the throne, who shall feed his flock in many tribulations. When these are past, the City upon the Seven Hills shall be destroyed, and the awful Judge shall judge the people.'" Then I append my moral. "I deny that the distinction is unmeaning; Is it nothing to be able to look on our Mother, to whom we owe the blessing of Christianity, with affection instead of hatred? with pity indeed, aye, and fear, but not with horror? Is it nothing to rescue her from the hard names, which interpreters of prophecy have put upon her, as an idolatress and an enemy of God, when she is deceived rather than a deceiver? Nothing to be able to account her priests as ordained of God, and anointed for their spiritual functions by the Holy Spirit, instead of considering her communion the bond of Satan?" This was my first advance in rescuing, on an intelligible, intellectual basis, the Roman Church from the designation of Antichrist; it was not the Church, but the old dethroned Pagan monster, still living in the ruined city, that was Antichrist.
However, the pure Protestantism that I gradually embraced was really just a practical principle. It was a strong, even if it was only a negative foundation, and it still held a significant influence over me. At fifteen, I had absorbed it so completely that I had actually deleted titles in my Gradus ad Parnassum, such as "Christi Vicarius," "sacer interpres," and "sceptra gerens," replacing them with such terrible words that I can't bring myself to write them here. The impact of this early influence lingered as what I've described before as a "stain upon my imagination." As for my reasoning, I started to form theories on the subject in 1833 that aimed to erase it. In the first part of Home Thoughts Abroad, written that year, I referred to Rome as "undeniably the most exalted Church in the whole world" and discussed "the truth and beauty of the Spirit that reflects a high mental excellence, which Pagan Rome attempted but could not realize—high-mindedness, majesty, and the calm consciousness of power." I then stated, "Alas!...the old spirit has come back, and the monster from Daniel's vision, unscathed by its previous judgments, has taken hold of Christianity as a new tool for its wrongdoings, awaiting a second and final reckoning from God. Surely the doctrine of the Genius Loci has some basis and explains how blessings or curses attach to cities and nations rather than generations. Michael is depicted [in the book of Daniel] as being against the Prince of the kingdom of Persia. Old Rome is still alive. The Sorceress on the Seven Hills from the book of Revelation is not the Church of Rome but Rome itself, the evil spirit that, in its earlier form, was the driving force behind the Fourth Monarchy." Then I pointed out St. Malachi's Prophecy, which "makes a similar distinction between the City and the Church of Rome. 'In the last persecution,' it states, 'of the Holy Roman Church, Peter of Rome shall be on the throne, who shall tend his flock through many trials. When these are over, the City on the Seven Hills shall be destroyed, and the dreadful Judge shall pass judgment on the people.'" Then I added my moral. "I argue that this distinction is meaningful; is it not significant to view our Mother, to whom we owe the blessing of Christianity, with affection instead of hatred? With pity, yes, and fear, but not with horror? Is it not important to free her from the harsh labels that interpreters of prophecy have assigned her as an idolater and enemy of God, when she is more often deceived than a deceiver? Is it not valuable to regard her priests as ordained by God and anointed by the Holy Spirit for their spiritual roles instead of seeing her communion as the bond of Satan?" This was my first step in rescuing, on a clear intellectual foundation, the Roman Church from the label of Antichrist; it was not the Church but the old dethroned Pagan monster, still alive in the ruined city, that was the real Antichrist.
In a Tract in 1838, I profess to give the opinions of the Fathers on the subject, and the conclusions to which I come, are still less violent against the Roman Church, though on the same basis as before. I say that the local Christian Church of Rome has been the means of shielding the pagan city from the fulness of those judgments, which are due to it; and that, in consequence of this, though Babylon has been utterly swept from the earth, Rome remains to this day. The reason seemed to be simply this, that, when the barbarians came down, God had a people in that city. Babylon was a mere prison of the Church; Rome had received her as a guest. "That vengeance has never fallen: it is still suspended; nor can reason be given why Rome has not fallen under the rule of God's general dealings with His rebellious creatures, except that a Christian Church is still in that city, sanctifying it, interceding for it, saving it." I add in a note, "No opinion, one way or the other, is here expressed as to the question, how far, as the local Church has saved Rome, so Rome has corrupted the local Church; or whether the local Church in consequence, or again whether other Churches elsewhere, may or may not be types of Antichrist." I quote all this in order to show how Bishop Newton was still upon my mind even in 1838; and how I was feeling after some other interpretation of prophecy instead of his, and not without a good deal of hesitation.
In a tract from 1838, I aim to share the views of early Church Fathers on the topic, and my conclusions are even less harsh toward the Roman Church, though based on the same reasoning as before. I assert that the local Christian Church of Rome has protected the pagan city from the full extent of the judgments it deserves, and as a result, even though Babylon has been completely destroyed, Rome still exists today. The reason seems to be simply this: when the barbarians came, God had a people in that city. Babylon was just a prison for the Church; Rome welcomed it as a guest. "That vengeance has never occurred: it is still on hold; and there is no rational explanation for why Rome has not faced the consequences of God's general dealings with His rebellious creations, except that a Christian Church still exists in that city, sanctifying it, interceding for it, and saving it." I note, "No opinion is expressed here regarding whether the local Church saved Rome, how much Rome has corrupted the local Church, or whether the local Church or other Churches elsewhere might be embodiments of Antichrist." I include all this to demonstrate how Bishop Newton was still on my mind even in 1838, and how I was reflecting on a different interpretation of prophecy instead of his, and not without considerable hesitation.
However, I have found notes written in March, 1839, which anticipate my article in the British Critic of October, 1840, in which I contended that the Churches of Rome and England were both one, and also the one true Church, for the very reason that they had both been stigmatised by the name of Antichrist, proving my point from the text, "If they have called the Master of the House Beelzebub, how much more them of His household," and quoting largely from Puritans and Independents to show that, in their mouths, the Anglican Church is Antichrist and Anti-christian as well as the Roman. I urged in that article that the calumny of being Antichrist is almost "one of the notes of the true Church;" and that "there is no medium between a Vice-Christ and Anti-Christ;" for "it is not the acts that make the difference between them, but the authority for those acts." This of course was a new mode of viewing the question; but we cannot unmake ourselves or change our habits in a moment. It is quite clear, that, if I dared not commit myself in 1838, to the belief that the Church of Rome was not a type of Antichrist, I could not have thrown off the unreasoning prejudice and suspicion, which I cherished about her, for some time after, at least by fits and starts, in spite of the conviction of my reason. I cannot prove this, but I believe it to have been the case from what I recollect of myself. Nor was there anything in the history of St. Leo and the Monophysites to undo the firm belief I had in the existence of what I called the practical abuses and excesses of Rome.
However, I found notes written in March 1839 that anticipated my article in the British Critic from October 1840, where I argued that the Churches of Rome and England are both one and the same true Church, specifically because they have both been branded with the name of Antichrist. I supported my argument with the text, "If they have called the Master of the House Beelzebub, how much more them of His household," and quoted extensively from Puritans and Independents to show that they consider the Anglican Church to be Antichrist and Anti-christian, just like the Roman Church. In that article, I claimed that the accusation of being Antichrist is almost "one of the notes of the true Church;" and that "there is no medium between a Vice-Christ and Anti-Christ;" because "it is not the acts that make the difference between them, but the authority for those acts." This was certainly a new way of looking at the issue; but we can’t change our views or habits overnight. It’s clear that if I didn’t have the courage to accept in 1838 that the Church of Rome wasn’t a representation of Antichrist, I wouldn’t have been able to shake off the unreasoned prejudice and suspicion I held against her for a while after, at least not consistently, despite what my reason told me. I can’t prove this, but I believe it’s how I felt based on my memories. Also, nothing in the history of St. Leo and the Monophysites changed my firm belief in the existence of what I referred to as the practical abuses and excesses of Rome.
To the inconsistencies then, to the ambition and intrigue, to the sophistries of Rome (as I considered them to be) I had recourse in my opposition to her, both public and personal. I did so by way of a relief. I had a great and growing dislike, after the summer of 1839, to speak against the Roman Church herself or her formal doctrines. I was very averse to speak against doctrines, which might possibly turn out to be true, though at the time I had no reason for thinking they were, or against the Church, which had preserved them. I began to have misgivings, that, strong as my own feelings had been against her, yet in some things which I had said, I had taken the statements of Anglican divines for granted without weighing them for myself. I said to a friend in 1840, in a letter, which I shall use presently, "I am troubled by doubts whether as it is, I have not, in what I have published, spoken too strongly against Rome, though I think I did it in a kind of faith, being determined to put myself into the English system, and say all that our divines said, whether I had fully weighed it or not." I was sore about the great Anglican divines, as if they had taken me in, and made me say strong things, which facts did not justify. Yet I did still hold in substance all that I had said against the Church of Rome in my Prophetical Office. I felt the force of the usual Protestant objections against her; I believed that we had the apostolical succession in the Anglican Church, and the grace of the sacraments; I was not sure that the difficulty of its isolation might not be overcome, though I was far from sure that it could. I did not see any clear proof that it had committed itself to any heresy, or had taken part against the truth; and I was not sure that it would not revive into full apostolic purity and strength, and grow into union with Rome herself (Rome explaining her doctrines and guarding against their abuse), that is, if we were but patient and hopeful. I wished for union between the Anglican Church and Rome, if, and when, it was possible; and I did what I could to gain weekly prayers for that object. The ground which I felt good against her was the moral ground: I felt I could not be wrong in striking at her political and social line of action. The alliance of a dogmatic religion with liberals, high or low, seemed to me a providential direction against moving towards it, and a better "Preservative against Popery," than the three volumes of folio, in which, I think, that prophylactic is to be found. However, on occasions which demanded it, I felt it a duty to give out plainly all that I thought, though I did not like to do so. One such instance occurred, when I had to publish a letter about Tract 90. In that letter I said, "Instead of setting before the soul the Holy Trinity, and heaven and hell, the Church of Rome does seem to me, as a popular system, to preach the Blessed Virgin and the Saints, and purgatory." On this occasion I recollect expressing to a friend the distress it gave me thus to speak; but, I said, "How can I help saying it, if I think it? and I do think it; my Bishop calls on me to say out what I think; and that is the long and the short of it." But I recollected Hurrell Froude's words to me, almost his dying words, "I must enter another protest against your cursing and swearing. What good can it do? and I call it uncharitable to an excess. How mistaken we may ourselves be, on many points that are only gradually opening on us!"
To the inconsistencies, ambition, and intrigue of Rome (as I saw them) I turned in my opposition to her, both publicly and personally. It was a way for me to cope. After the summer of 1839, I developed a strong dislike for openly criticizing the Roman Church or its formal doctrines. I was reluctant to challenge beliefs that might actually be true, even if I didn't think so at the time, or the Church that preserved them. I started to have doubts; despite my strong feelings against Rome, I realized that in what I had said, I had accepted the statements of Anglican theologians without critically examining them myself. In a letter to a friend in 1840, which I’ll reference soon, I wrote, "I’m troubled by doubts about whether I have been too harsh against Rome in what I have published, although I did it with a kind of faith, determined to align myself with the English system and echo what our theologians said, whether or not I had fully considered it." I felt frustrated with the prominent Anglican theologians, as if they had influenced me to say things that the facts didn't support. Yet I still fundamentally held onto all that I had said against the Church of Rome in my Prophetical Office. I acknowledged the usual Protestant objections against her; I believed that the Anglican Church had apostolic succession and the grace of the sacraments; I wasn't sure whether its isolation could be resolved, though I was uncertain if it could be. I didn't have clear evidence that it had committed any heresy or opposed the truth, and I wasn't convinced that it couldn't return to full apostolic purity and strength, potentially uniting with Rome (Rome clarifying its doctrines and guarding against their abuse), if we were just patient and hopeful. I desired unity between the Anglican Church and Rome, if and when it became possible; I did what I could to encourage weekly prayers for that goal. My opposition to her was primarily moral: I felt justified in criticizing her political and social actions. The alliance of a dogmatic religion with liberals, regardless of their stance, seemed to me a divine hint against moving toward it, and a better “Preservative against Popery” than the three bulky volumes I believe contain that argument. Still, when the situation called for it, I felt it was my duty to express my thoughts clearly, even if I didn't want to. One instance was when I had to issue a letter regarding Tract 90. In that letter, I stated, "Instead of presenting the Holy Trinity, heaven, and hell to the soul, the Church of Rome seems to preach the Blessed Virgin, the Saints, and purgatory." I remember sharing with a friend how distressed it made me to speak this way; I said, "How can I not say it if I believe it? And I do believe it; my Bishop urges me to express my thoughts; that’s just how it is." But I recalled Hurrell Froude's words to me, almost his last words: "I must protest again against your cursing and swearing. What good does it do? I find it excessively uncharitable. How mistaken we might be on many points that only gradually reveal themselves!"
Instead then of speaking of errors in doctrine, I was driven, by my state of mind, to insist upon the political conduct, the controversial bearing, and the social methods and manifestations of Rome. And here I found a matter close at hand, which affected me most sensibly too, because it was before my eyes. I can hardly describe too strongly my feeling upon it. I had an unspeakable aversion to the policy and acts of Mr. O'Connell, because, as I thought, he associated himself with men of all religions and no religion against the Anglican Church, and advanced Catholicism by violence and intrigue. When then I found him taken up by the English Catholics, and, as I supposed, at Rome, I considered I had a fulfilment before my eyes how the Court of Rome played fast and loose, and fulfilled the bad points which I had seen put down in books against it. Here we saw what Rome was in action, whatever she might be when quiescent. Her conduct was simply secular and political.
Instead of discussing errors in doctrine, I was motivated by my mindset to focus on the political actions, controversial stance, and social methods and behaviors of Rome. I found an issue nearby that affected me deeply because it was right in front of me. I can hardly express how strongly I felt about it. I had an intense dislike for Mr. O'Connell's policies and actions because I believed he teamed up with people of all religions and none against the Anglican Church, promoting Catholicism through violence and manipulation. So, when I saw the English Catholics embrace him, and I assumed he was backed by Rome, I felt I witnessed how the Court of Rome played tricks and confirmed the negative aspects that I had read about in books. This was a clear example of what Rome was doing in practice, regardless of how it appeared in calmer times. Her actions were simply secular and political.
This feeling led me into the excess of being very rude to that zealous and most charitable man, Mr. Spencer, when he came to Oxford in January, 1840, to get Anglicans to set about praying for unity. I myself then, or soon after, drew up such prayers; it was one of the first thoughts which came upon me after my shock, but I was too much annoyed with the political action of the members of the Roman Church in England to wish to have anything to do with them personally. So glad in my heart was I to see him when he came to my rooms, whither Mr. Palmer of Magdalen brought him, that I could have laughed for joy; I think I did; but I was very rude to him, I would not meet him at dinner, and that (though I did not say so) because I considered him "in loco apostatæ" from the Anglican Church, and I hereby beg his pardon for it. I wrote afterwards with a view to apologise, but I dare say he must have thought that I made the matter worse, for these were my words to him:—
This feeling made me very rude to that devoted and generous man, Mr. Spencer, when he came to Oxford in January 1840 to encourage Anglicans to start praying for unity. I actually wrote some of those prayers myself shortly after my shock; it was one of the first things I thought of. However, I was too frustrated with the Roman Church's political actions in England to want to get involved with them personally. I was genuinely happy to see him when he came to my rooms, where Mr. Palmer from Magdalen brought him; I could have laughed with joy—I think I did—but I was really rude to him. I didn’t join him at dinner because I saw him as "in loco apostatæ" from the Anglican Church, and I apologize for that. I later wrote to try to say sorry, but I bet he thought I made things worse because these were my words to him:—
"The news that you are praying for us is most touching, and raises a variety of indescribable emotions. May their prayers return abundantly into their own bosoms! Why then do I not meet you in a manner conformable with these first feelings? For this single reason, if I may say it, that your acts are contrary to your words. You invite us to a union of hearts, at the same time that you are doing all you can, not to restore, not to reform, not to reunite, but to destroy our Church. You go further than your principles require. You are leagued with our enemies. 'The voice is Jacob's voice, but the hands are the hands of Esau.' This is what especially distresses us; this is what we cannot understand, how Christians, like yourselves, with the clear view you have that a warfare is ever waging in the world between good and evil, should, in the present state of England, ally yourselves with the side of evil against the side of good.... Of parties now in the country, you cannot but allow, that next to yourselves we are nearest to revealed truth. We maintain great and holy principles; we profess Catholic doctrines.... So near are we as a body to yourselves in modes of thinking, as even to have been taunted with the nicknames which belong to you; and, on the other hand, if there are professed infidels, scoffers, sceptics, unprincipled men, rebels, they are found among our opponents. And yet you take part with them against us.... You consent to act hand in hand [with these and others] for our overthrow. Alas! all this it is that impresses us irresistibly with the notion that you are a political, not a religious party; that, in order to gain an end on which you set your hearts,—an open stage for yourselves in England—you ally yourselves with those who hold nothing against those who hold something. This is what distresses my own mind so greatly, to speak of myself, that, with limitations which need not now be mentioned, I cannot meet familiarly any leading persons of the Roman Communion, and least of all when they come on a religious errand. Break off, I would say, with Mr. O'Connell in Ireland and the liberal party in England, or come not to us with overtures for mutual prayer and religious sympathy."
"The news that you’re praying for us is really touching and brings up a mix of emotions that are hard to describe. May your prayers come back to you in abundance! So why don’t I greet you in a way that matches these initial feelings? Simply put, it’s because your actions don’t match your words. You invite us to unite in heart, but at the same time, you’re doing everything possible not to restore, not to reform, not to reunite, but to destroy our Church. You’re going beyond what your principles call for. You’re siding with our enemies. 'The voice is Jacob’s voice, but the hands are the hands of Esau.' This is what troubles us most; we can’t understand how Christians like you, knowing there's a constant battle between good and evil in the world, can choose to ally with evil against good in the current state of England. Among the parties in this country, you must admit that after yourselves, we are closest to the truth revealed in faith. We uphold significant and holy principles; we profess Catholic teachings. We are so similar in our ways of thinking that we’ve even been mocked with the names you’re called; and on the flip side, if there are professed infidels, scoffers, skeptics, and unprincipled rebels, they are among our opponents. And still, you choose to stand with them against us. You agree to work hand in hand with these and others for our downfall. Sadly, this is what leads us to believe that you are a political party rather than a religious one; that, to achieve your goal of having an open platform in England, you align yourselves with those who believe nothing against those who believe something. This is what weighs heavily on my mind; speaking for myself, there’s no way I can comfortably meet any key figures from the Roman Communion, especially when they come with a religious intent. I would suggest breaking ties with Mr. O'Connell in Ireland and the liberal party in England, or don’t come to us with proposals for mutual prayer and religious support."
And here came in another feeling, of a personal nature, which had little to do with the argument against Rome, except that, in my prejudice, I connected it with my own ideas of the usual conduct of her advocates and instruments. I was very stern upon any interference in our Oxford matters on the part of charitable Catholics, and on any attempt to do me good personally. There was nothing, indeed, at the time more likely to throw me back. "Why do you meddle? why cannot you let me alone? You can do me no good; you know nothing on earth about me; you may actually do me harm; I am in better hands than yours. I know my own sincerity of purpose; and I am determined upon taking my time." Since I have been a Catholic, people have sometimes accused me of backwardness in making converts; and Protestants have argued from it that I have no great eagerness to do so. It would be against my nature to act otherwise than I do; but besides, it would be to forget the lessons which I gained in the experience of my own history in the past.
And here came in another feeling, a personal one, that had little to do with the argument against Rome, except that, in my bias, I linked it to my thoughts on the usual behavior of her supporters and representatives. I was very firm about any interference in our Oxford matters by charitable Catholics, and any attempt to help me personally. There was nothing more likely to push me away at the time. "Why are you meddling? Why can't you just leave me alone? You can't help me; you know nothing about me; you could actually do me harm; I'm in better hands than yours. I know my own sincerity; and I'm determined to take my time." Since becoming a Catholic, some people have accused me of being slow in making converts; and Protestants have argued from that that I lack enthusiasm for it. It would be against my nature to behave differently than I do; but also, it would mean ignoring the lessons I've learned from my own past experiences.
This is the account which I have to give of some savage and ungrateful words in the British Critic of 1840 against the controversialists of Rome: "By their fruits ye shall know them.... We see it attempting to gain converts among us by unreal representations of its doctrines, plausible statements, bold assertions, appeals to the weaknesses of human nature, to our fancies, our eccentricities, our fears, our frivolities, our false philosophies. We see its agents, smiling and nodding and ducking to attract attention, as gipsies make up to truant boys, holding out tales for the nursery, and pretty pictures, and gilt gingerbread, and physic concealed in jam, and sugar-plums for good children. Who can but feel shame when the religion of Ximenes, Borromeo, and Pascal, is so overlaid? Who can but feel sorrow, when its devout and earnest defenders so mistake its genius and its capabilities? We Englishmen like manliness, openness, consistency, truth. Rome will never gain on us, till she learns these virtues, and uses them; and then she may gain us, but it will be by ceasing to be what we now mean by Rome, by having a right, not to 'have dominion over our faith,' but to gain and possess our affections in the bonds of the gospel. Till she ceases to be what she practically is, a union is impossible between her and England; but, if she does reform (and who can presume to say that so large a part of Christendom never can?) then it will be our Church's duty at once to join in communion with the continental Churches, whatever politicians at home may say to it, and whatever steps the civil power may take in consequence. And though we may not live to see that day, at least we are bound to pray for it; we are bound to pray for our brethren that they and we may be led together into the pure light of the gospel, and be one as we once were one. It was most touching news to be told, as we were lately, that Christians on the Continent were praying together for the spiritual well-being of England. May they gain light, while they aim at unity, and grow in faith while they manifest their love! We too have our duties to them; not of reviling, not of slandering, not of hating, though political interests require it; but the duty of loving brethren still more abundantly in spirit, whose faces, for our sins and their sins, we are not allowed to see in the flesh."
This is my account of some harsh and ungrateful words in the British Critic of 1840 against the controversialists in Rome: "You will know them by their actions.... We see them trying to gain followers among us with misleading portrayals of their beliefs, clever arguments, bold claims, and appeals to our human weaknesses, our fantasies, our quirks, our fears, our trivialities, and our flawed philosophies. We see their representatives, smiling and nodding to grab attention, just like gypsies approach wandering boys, offering nursery tales, pretty pictures, decorated treats, and medicine hidden in jam, plus sweets for well-behaved kids. Who wouldn’t feel ashamed when the religion of Ximenes, Borromeo, and Pascal is so obscured? Who wouldn’t feel sad when its devoted and sincere supporters misinterpret its essence and potential? We English value manliness, transparency, consistency, and truth. Rome will never appeal to us until she embraces these virtues and puts them into practice; only then might she win us over, but it will require her to stop being what we currently associate with Rome, to earn our affections through the bonds of the gospel rather than having dominance over our faith. Until she changes from what she practically is, a union is impossible between her and England; however, if she does reform (and who can claim that such a large part of Christendom can never change?), then it will be our Church’s duty to join in communion with the continental Churches, regardless of what politicians at home may say or what actions the civil authorities may take as a result. And even if we may not live to witness that day, we are still obligated to pray for it; we are bound to pray for our brothers and sisters that they and we may be led together into the pure light of the gospel, and be united as we once were. It was incredibly moving to hear recently that Christians on the Continent were praying together for the spiritual well-being of England. May they gain clarity as they strive for unity, and grow in faith as they show their love! We also have our responsibilities toward them; not to insult, not to slander, not to hate, even if political interests call for it; but rather the responsibility to love our brothers and sisters even more deeply in spirit, whose faces, due to our sins and theirs, we are not allowed to see in person."
No one ought to indulge in insinuations; it certainly diminishes my right to complain of slanders uttered against myself, when, as in this passage, I had already spoken in condemnation of that class of controversialists to which I myself now belong.
No one should make insinuations; it definitely weakens my right to complain about the slanders directed at me when, as in this passage, I had already criticized that group of debaters to which I now belong.
I have thus put together, as well as I could, what has to be said about my general state of mind from the autumn of 1839 to the summer of 1841; and, having done so, I go on to narrate how my new misgivings affected my conduct, and my relations towards the Anglican Church.
I have put together, to the best of my ability, what I need to say about my mental state from the autumn of 1839 to the summer of 1841; and, having done that, I will continue to explain how my new doubts influenced my behavior and my relationship with the Anglican Church.
When I got back to Oxford in October, 1839, after the visits which I had been paying, it so happened, there had been, in my absence, occurrences of an awkward character, bringing me into collision both with my Bishop and also with the University authorities; and this drew my attention at once to the state of what would be considered the Movement party there, and made me very anxious for the future. In the spring of the year, as has been seen in the Article analysed above, I had spoken of the excesses which were to be found among persons commonly included in it; at that time I thought little of such an evil, but the new thoughts, which had come on me during the long vacation, on the one hand made me comprehend it, and on the other took away my power of effectually meeting it. A firm and powerful control was necessary to keep men straight; I never had a strong wrist, but at the very time, when it was most needed, the reins had broken in my hands. With an anxious presentiment on my mind of the upshot of the whole inquiry, which it was almost impossible for me to conceal from men who saw me day by day, who heard my familiar conversation, who came perhaps for the express purpose of pumping me, and having a categorical yes or no to their questions—how could I expect to say anything about my actual, positive, present belief, which would be sustaining or consoling to such persons as were haunted already by doubts of their own? Nay, how could I, with satisfaction to myself, analyse my own mind, and say what I held and what I did not? or say with what limitations, shades of difference, or degrees of belief, I held that body of opinions which I had openly professed and taught? how could I deny or assert this point or that, without injustice to the new view, in which the whole evidence for those old opinions presented itself to my mind?
When I returned to Oxford in October 1839 after my recent visits, I found that some awkward incidents had occurred in my absence, putting me at odds with both my Bishop and the University authorities. This immediately drew my attention to the state of the Movement party there and made me quite anxious about its future. In the spring, as noted in the article discussed above, I had mentioned the excesses found among people generally included in that group; at that time, I didn't think much of such an issue, but the new thoughts I had during the long vacation made me realize its significance, while also leaving me feeling powerless to address it effectively. Strong guidance was essential to keep people on the right path; I had never been very decisive, and at the very moment it was most needed, I felt like I had lost control. With a heavy sense of worry about how everything would play out, which was almost impossible to hide from those who saw me daily, who listened to my casual conversations, and perhaps came specifically to grill me for a straightforward “yes” or “no” to their questions—how could I expect to share anything about my current beliefs that would offer support or comfort to those already plagued by their own doubts? Moreover, how could I, to my own satisfaction, dissect my own thoughts and state what I believed and what I did not? Or articulate the limitations, subtle differences, or varying degrees of belief in the set of opinions I had openly embraced and taught? How could I deny or affirm specific points without doing injustice to the new perspective that reshaped all the evidence of those old beliefs in my mind?
However, I had to do what I could, and what was best, under the circumstances; I found a general talk on the subject of the article in the Dublin Review; and, if it had affected me, it was not wonderful, that it affected others also. As to myself, I felt no kind of certainty that the argument in it was conclusive. Taking it at the worst, granting that the Anglican Church had not the note of Catholicity; yet there were many notes of the Church. Some belonged to one age or place, some to another. Bellarmine had reckoned Temporal Prosperity among the notes of the Church; but the Roman Church had not any great popularity, wealth, glory, power, or prospects, in the nineteenth century. It was not at all certain yet, even that we had not the note of Catholicity; but, if not we had others. My first business then, was to examine this question carefully, and see, if a great deal could not be said after all for the Anglican Church, in spite of its acknowledged shortcomings. This I did in an Article "on the Catholicity of the English Church," which appeared in the British Critic of January, 1840. As to my personal distress on the point, I think it had gone by February 21st in that year, for I wrote then to Mr. Bowden about the important Article in the Dublin, thus: "It made a great impression here [Oxford]; and, I say what of course I would only say to such as yourself, it made me for a while very uncomfortable in my own mind. The great speciousness of his argument is one of the things which have made me despond so much," that is, as to its effect upon others.
However, I had to do what I could and what was best under the circumstances; I found a general discussion on the topic in the Dublin Review; and if it affected me, it’s not surprising that it affected others too. As for me, I felt no real certainty that the arguments in it were definitive. Even in the worst case, assuming that the Anglican Church didn’t have the mark of Catholicity, there are still many marks of the Church. Some belong to one era or place, while others belong to another. Bellarmine considered Temporal Prosperity a mark of the Church; however, the Roman Church didn’t have much popularity, wealth, glory, power, or prospects in the nineteenth century. It wasn’t even certain that we didn’t possess the mark of Catholicity; but if we didn’t, we had others. My first task then was to carefully examine this question and see if there was a lot to be said for the Anglican Church, despite its acknowledged shortcomings. I addressed this in an article "on the Catholicity of the English Church," which was published in the British Critic in January 1840. As for my personal distress about this matter, I think it had passed by February 21st of that year, as I then wrote to Mr. Bowden about the significant article in the Dublin, saying: "It made a big impression here [Oxford]; and I say this, of course, only to someone like you, it made me quite uncomfortable for a time. The persuasive nature of his argument is one of the reasons I’ve felt so despondent," meaning in terms of its effect on others.
But, secondly, the great stumbling-block lay in the 39 Articles. It was urged that here was a positive Note against Anglicanism:—Anglicanism claimed to hold that the Church of England was nothing else than a continuation in this country (as the Church of Rome might be in France or Spain) of that one Church of which in old times Athanasius and Augustine were members. But, if so, the doctrine must be the same; the doctrine of the Old Church must live and speak in Anglican formularies, in the 39 Articles. Did it? Yes, it did; that is what I maintained; it did in substance, in a true sense. Man had done his worst to disfigure, to mutilate, the old Catholic Truth, but there it was, in spite of them, in the Articles still. It was there, but this must be shown. It was a matter of life and death to us to show it. And I believed that it could be shown; I considered that those grounds of justification, which I gave above, when I was speaking of Tract 90, were sufficient for the purpose; and therefore I set about showing it at once. This was in March, 1840, when I went up to Littlemore. And, as it was a matter of life and death with us, all risks must be run to show it. When the attempt was actually made, I had got reconciled to the prospect of it, and had no apprehensions as to the experiment; but in 1840, while my purpose was honest, and my grounds of reason satisfactory, I did nevertheless recognise that I was engaged in an experimentum crucis. I have no doubt that then I acknowledged to myself that it would be a trial of the Anglican Church, which it had never undergone before—not that the Catholic sense of the Articles had not been held or at least suffered by their framers and promulgators, and was not implied in the teaching of Andrewes or Beveridge, but that it had never been publicly recognised, while the interpretation of the day was Protestant and exclusive. I observe also, that, though my Tract was an experiment, it was, as I said at the time, "no feeler," the event showed it; for, when my principle was not granted, I did not draw back, but gave up. I would not hold office in a Church which would not allow my sense of the Articles. My tone was, "This is necessary for us, and have it we must and will, and, if it tends to bring men to look less bitterly on the Church of Rome, so much the better."
But, secondly, the major obstacle was the 39 Articles. It was argued that this was a clear point against Anglicanism: Anglicanism claimed that the Church of England was just a continuation of that one Church, like the Church of Rome might be in France or Spain, of which Athanasius and Augustine were members in the past. But if that's the case, the doctrine must be the same; the teachings of the Old Church must exist and be reflected in the Anglican formularies, in the 39 Articles. Did it? Yes, it did; that's what I maintained; it did so in substance, in a true sense. People had done their best to distort and damage the old Catholic Truth, but it was still there, despite their attempts, in the Articles. It was there, but this needed to be demonstrated. It was crucial for us to prove it. I believed that it could be proved; I thought that the reasons I provided earlier, when discussing Tract 90, were sufficient for this purpose; and so I set out to demonstrate it right away. This was in March 1840 when I went to Littlemore. And since it was critical for us, we needed to take all risks to prove it. When the attempt was actually made, I had come to terms with the prospect and had no fears about the experiment; but in 1840, even though my intentions were honest and my reasoning solid, I did recognize that I was engaged in an experimentum crucis. I had no doubt that I acknowledged to myself at that time that it would be a test of the Anglican Church, which it had never faced before—not that the Catholic interpretation of the Articles hadn't been held or at least tolerated by their creators and promoters, or that it wasn't implied in the teachings of Andrewes or Beveridge, but rather that it had never been publicly recognized, while the prevailing interpretation was Protestant and exclusive. I also note that although my Tract was an experiment, it was, as I mentioned at the time, "no feeler," as later events demonstrated; for when my principle was not accepted, I didn’t hesitate, but I stepped away. I wouldn’t hold a position in a Church that wouldn’t accept my interpretation of the Articles. My stance was, "This is necessary for us, and we must and will have it, and if it encourages people to look more kindly on the Church of Rome, all the better."
This then was the second work to which I set myself; though when I got to Littlemore, other things came in the way of accomplishing it at the moment. I had in mind to remove all such obstacles as were in the way of holding the Apostolic and Catholic character of the Anglican teaching; to assert the right of all who chose to say in the face of day, "Our Church teaches the Primitive Ancient faith." I did not conceal this: in Tract 90, it is put forward as the first principle of all, "It is a duty which we owe both to the Catholic Church, and to our own, to take our reformed confessions in the most Catholic sense they will admit: we have no duties towards their framers." And still more pointedly in my letter, explanatory of the Tract, addressed to Dr. Jelf, I say: "The only peculiarity of the view I advocate, if I must so call it, is this—that whereas it is usual at this day to make the particular belief of their writers their true interpretation, I would make the belief of the Catholic Church such. That is, as it is often said that infants are regenerated in Baptism, not on the faith of their parents, but of the Church, so in like manner I would say that the Articles are received, not in the sense of their framers, but (as far as the wording will admit or any ambiguity requires it) in the one Catholic sense."
This was the second task I set out to accomplish; however, when I reached Littlemore, other things prevented me from doing it right away. I intended to remove all obstacles to maintaining the Apostolic and Catholic character of Anglican teaching; to assert the right of anyone who wanted to confidently declare, "Our Church teaches the Primitive Ancient faith." I was open about this: in Tract 90, I put forth as the first principle, "It is our duty to both the Catholic Church and to our own to interpret our reformed confessions in the most Catholic way they allow: we owe nothing to their creators." In a more direct way in my letter, which explains the Tract and is addressed to Dr. Jelf, I state: "The only unique aspect of the view I support, if I can call it that, is this—that while it is common nowadays to interpret according to the specific beliefs of their authors, I would interpret according to the belief of the Catholic Church. That is, just as it is often said that infants are regenerated in Baptism, not based on their parents' faith, but on the Church's, I would similarly argue that the Articles are accepted, not in the sense of their framers, but (to the extent that the wording allows or any ambiguity needs clarification) in the single Catholic sense."
A third measure which I distinctly contemplated, was the resignation of St. Mary's, whatever became of the question of the Articles; and as a first step I meditated a retirement to Littlemore. I had built a Church there several years before; and I went there to pass the Lent of 1840, and gave myself up to teaching in the poor schools, and practising the choir. At the same time, I contemplated a monastic house there. I bought ten acres of ground and began planting; but this great design was never carried out. I mention it, because it shows how little I had really the idea then of ever leaving the Anglican Church. That I also contemplated even the further step of giving up St. Mary's itself as early as 1839, appears from a letter which I wrote in October, 1840, to the friend whom it was most natural for me to consult on such a point. It ran as follows:—
A third option I seriously considered was resigning from St. Mary's, no matter what happened with the Articles; and as a first step, I thought about retreating to Littlemore. I had built a church there several years earlier, and I went there to spend Lent in 1840, dedicating myself to teaching in the poor schools and practicing with the choir. At the same time, I was thinking about starting a monastic house there. I bought ten acres of land and began planting, but this ambitious plan was never realized. I mention it because it shows how little I actually considered leaving the Anglican Church at that time. The fact that I even thought about the possibility of giving up St. Mary's itself as early as 1839 is evident from a letter I wrote in October 1840 to the friend I felt most comfortable consulting about such matters. It went like this:—
"For a year past a feeling has been growing on me that I ought to give up St. Mary's, but I am no fit judge in the matter. I cannot ascertain accurately my own impressions and convictions, which are the basis of the difficulty, and though you cannot of course do this for me, yet you may help me generally, and perhaps supersede the necessity of my going by them at all.
"For the past year, I've been feeling like I should leave St. Mary's, but I'm not really in a position to make that judgment. I can't accurately figure out my own thoughts and feelings, which are the root of the issue. While you can't exactly do this for me, you might be able to help me out in a broader sense and maybe even make it unnecessary for me to rely on my own impressions."
"First, it is certain that I do not know my Oxford parishioners; I am not conscious of influencing them, and certainly I have no insight into their spiritual state. I have no personal, no pastoral acquaintance with them. To very few have I any opportunity of saying a religious word. Whatever influence I exert on them is precisely that which I may be exerting on persons out of my parish. In my excuse I am accustomed to say to myself that I am not adapted to get on with them, while others are. On the other hand, I am conscious that by means of my position at St. Mary's I do exert a considerable influence on the University, whether on Undergraduates or Graduates. It seems, then, on the whole that I am using St. Mary's, to the neglect of its direct duties, for objects not belonging to it; I am converting a parochial charge into a sort of University office.
"First, it's clear that I don’t really know my Oxford parishioners; I’m not aware of having any influence over them, and I definitely have no understanding of their spiritual condition. I have no personal or pastoral connection with them. I rarely get the chance to say anything remotely religious. Any influence I have over them is similar to what I might have on people outside my parish. I often tell myself that I just don’t connect with them in the way that others do. On the other hand, I am aware that my position at St. Mary's gives me significant influence over the University, whether it’s with Undergraduates or Graduates. It seems, then, that I am using St. Mary's for purposes that stray from its main responsibilities; I’m turning a parish role into something more like a University role."
"I think I may say truly that I have begun scarcely any plan but for the sake of my parish, but every one has turned, independently of me, into the direction of the University. I began Saints'-days Services, daily Services, and Lectures in Adam de Brome's Chapel, for my parishioners; but they have not come to them. In consequence I dropped the last mentioned, having, while it lasted, been naturally led to direct it to the instruction of those who did come, instead of those who did not. The Weekly Communion, I believe, I did begin for the sake of the University.
"I can honestly say that I’ve started almost every plan solely for my parish, but somehow they’ve all ended up leaning towards the University. I initiated Saints' Day Services, daily Services, and Lectures in Adam de Brome's Chapel for my parishioners, but hardly anyone showed up. As a result, I stopped the last one, as I found myself naturally focusing on the few who did come rather than those who stayed away. I believe I started the Weekly Communion primarily for the University."
"Added to this the authorities of the University, the appointed guardians of those who form great part of the attendants on my Sermons, have shown a dislike of my preaching. One dissuades men from coming;—the late Vice-Chancellor threatens to take his own children away from the Church; and the present, having an opportunity last spring of preaching in my parish pulpit, gets up and preaches against doctrine with which I am in good measure identified. No plainer proof can be given of the feeling in these quarters, than the absurd myth, now a second time put forward, that 'Vice-Chancellors cannot be got to take the office on account of Puseyism.'
"On top of this, the university officials, who are supposed to look after many of those who frequently attend my sermons, have shown a clear disapproval of my preaching. One person tries to discourage others from attending; the former Vice-Chancellor even threatens to pull his own kids out of the Church; and the current Vice-Chancellor, who had the chance to preach in my parish last spring, stood up and spoke against the beliefs that I largely support. Nothing demonstrates the sentiment in this area more clearly than the ridiculous idea, now being circulated for the second time, that 'Vice-Chancellors won't take the job because of Puseyism.'"
"But further than this, I cannot disguise from myself that my preaching is not calculated to defend that system of religion which has been received for 300 years, and of which the Heads of Houses are the legitimate maintainers in this place. They exclude me, as far as may be, from the University Pulpit; and, though I never have preached strong doctrine in it, they do so rightly, so far as this, that they understand that my sermons are calculated to undermine things established. I cannot disguise from myself that they are. No one will deny that most of my sermons are on moral subjects, not doctrinal; still I am leading my hearers to the Primitive Church, if you will, but not to the Church of England. Now, ought one to be disgusting the minds of young men with the received religion, in the exercise of a sacred office, yet without a commission, against the wish of their guides and governors?
"But beyond this, I can't pretend to myself that my preaching isn't meant to challenge the religious system that's been in place for 300 years, which the Heads of Houses are expected to uphold here. They keep me out of the University Pulpit as much as they can; and even though I've never preached strict doctrine there, they have a point, because they realize that my sermons are meant to shake up what's been established. I can't deny that they are. No one can argue that most of my sermons focus on moral topics, not doctrines; still, I'm guiding my audience back to the Primitive Church, if you will, but not to the Church of England. Now, should we be troubling young minds with the accepted religion while performing a sacred duty, without proper authority, and against the wishes of their leaders?"
"But this is not all. I fear I must allow that, whether I will or no, I am disposing them towards Rome. First, because Rome is the only representative of the Primitive Church besides ourselves; in proportion then as they are loosened from the one, they will go to the other. Next, because many doctrines which I have held, have far greater, or their only scope, in the Roman system. And, moreover, if, as is not unlikely, we have in process of time heretical Bishops or teachers among us, an evil which ipso facto infects the whole community to which they belong, and if, again (what there are at this moment symptoms of), there be a movement in the English Roman Catholics to break the alliance of O'Connell and of Exeter Hall, strong temptations will be placed in the way of individuals, already imbued with a tone of thought congenial to Rome, to join her Communion.
"But that's not all. I have to admit that, whether I like it or not, I'm leading them towards Rome. First, because Rome is the only representative of the Early Church besides us; as they distance themselves from one, they will gravitate towards the other. Additionally, many beliefs I've held find much greater significance, or even their only purpose, within the Roman framework. Furthermore, if we eventually have heretical bishops or teachers among us—a problem that, by its very nature, corrupts the entire community they belong to—and if, as seems to be happening now, there's a movement among English Roman Catholics to break the ties with O'Connell and Exeter Hall, people who are already leaning towards Roman ideas will feel strong temptations to join her Communion."
"People tell me, on the other hand, that I am, whether by sermons or otherwise, exerting at St. Mary's a beneficial influence on our prospective clergy; but what if I take to myself the credit of seeing further than they, and of having in the course of the last year discovered that what they approve so much is very likely to end in Romanism?
"People tell me, however, that I am, whether through sermons or other means, having a positive impact on our future clergy at St. Mary's; but what if I take credit for seeing things more clearly than they do and have, over the past year, realized that what they support so much is likely to lead to Romanism?"
"The arguments which I have published against Romanism seem to myself as cogent as ever, but men go by their sympathies, not by argument; and if I feel the force of this influence myself, who bow to the arguments, why may not others still more who never have in the same degree admitted the arguments?
"The arguments that I've published against Romanism still seem really strong to me, but people tend to rely on their emotions rather than on reason; and if I can feel the weight of this influence myself, as someone who acknowledges the arguments, why wouldn't others—who have never accepted the arguments to the same extent—feel it even more?"
"Nor can I counteract the danger by preaching or writing against Rome. I seem to myself almost to have shot my last arrow in the Article on English Catholicity. It must be added, that the very circumstance that I have committed myself against Rome has the effect of setting to sleep people suspicious about me, which is painful now that I begin to have suspicions about myself. I mentioned my general difficulty to A. B. a year since, than whom I know no one of a more fine and accurate conscience, and it was his spontaneous idea that I should give up St. Mary's, if my feelings continued. I mentioned it again to him lately, and he did not reverse his opinion, only expressed great reluctance to believe it must be so."
"Nor can I tackle the danger by preaching or writing against Rome. I feel like I've almost used my last shot in the Article on English Catholicity. It's worth noting that the fact that I've taken a stand against Rome makes those who are suspicious of me quiet down, which is tough now that I'm starting to have doubts about myself. I brought up my general struggle to A. B. a year ago, and I know no one with a more sensitive and precise conscience than him. He spontaneously suggested that I should leave St. Mary's if my feelings persisted. I brought it up to him again recently, and he didn't change his mind, only expressed great hesitation to believe it had to be that way."
My friend's judgment was in favour of my retaining my living; at least for the present; what weighed with me most was his saying, "You must consider, whether your retiring either from the Pastoral Care only, or from writing and printing and editing in the cause, would not be a sort of scandalous thing, unless it were done very warily. It would be said, 'You see he can go on no longer with the Church of England, except in mere Lay Communion;' or people might say you repented of the cause altogether. Till you see [your way to mitigate, if not remove this evil] I certainly should advise you to stay." I answered as follows:—
My friend's judgment was that I should keep my position for now. What mattered most to me was his comment: "You have to think about whether stepping away from the pastoral work, or from writing, publishing, and editing for the cause, would come off as scandalous, unless done very carefully. People would say, 'Look, he can't continue with the Church of England except as a lay member,' or they might think you're completely against the cause. Until you find a way to address this issue, I definitely recommend that you stay." I responded as follows:—
"Since you think I may go on, it seems to follow that, under the circumstances, I ought to do so. There are plenty of reasons for it, directly it is allowed to be lawful. The following considerations have much reconciled my feelings to your conclusion.
"Since you think I might go on, it seems logical that, given the situation, I should do so. There are plenty of reasons for it, especially since it is considered lawful. The following points have helped me come to terms with your conclusion."
"1. I do not think that we have yet made fair trial how much the English Church will bear. I know it is a hazardous experiment—like proving cannon. Yet we must not take it for granted, that the metal will burst in the operation. It has borne at various times, not to say at this time, a great infusion of Catholic truth without damage. As to the result, viz. whether this process will not approximate the whole English Church, as a body to Rome, that is nothing to us. For what we know, it may be the providential means of uniting the whole Church in one, without fresh schismatising or use of private judgment."
"1. I don't think we've really tested how much the English Church can handle. I know it's a risky experiment—kind of like testing cannons. But we can’t assume that the metal will break during the process. It has successfully absorbed a significant amount of Catholic truth at various points in time, including now, without any harm. As for the outcome, meaning whether this process will bring the entire English Church closer to Rome, that's not our concern. For all we know, it could be a providential way to unite the whole Church without creating new splits or relying on personal interpretations."
Here I observe, that, what was contemplated was the bursting of the Catholicity of the Anglican Church, that is, my subjective idea of that Church. Its bursting would not hurt her with the world, but would be a discovery that she was purely and essentially Protestant, and would be really the "hoisting of the engineer with his own petard." And this was the result. I continue:—
Here I see that what was considered was the collapse of the Catholicity of the Anglican Church, specifically my subjective idea of that Church. Its collapse wouldn’t harm her in the eyes of the world but would reveal that she was purely and essentially Protestant, effectively "hoisting the engineer with his own petard." And this was the result. I continue:—
"2. Say, that I move sympathies for Rome: in the same sense does Hooker, Taylor, Bull, etc. Their arguments may be against Rome, but the sympathies they raise must be towards Rome, so far as Rome maintains truths which our Church does not teach or enforce. Thus it is a question of degree between our divines and me. I may, if so be, go further; I may raise sympathies more; but I am but urging minds in the same direction as they do. I am doing just the very thing which all our doctors have ever been doing. In short, would not Hooker, if Vicar of St. Mary's, be in my difficulty?"—Here it may be said, that Hooker could preach against Rome, and I could not; but I doubt whether he could have preached effectively against transubstantiation better than I, though neither he nor I held it.
"2. Let’s say that I have feelings of sympathy for Rome: in the same way as Hooker, Taylor, Bull, and others do. Their arguments might oppose Rome, but the sympathies they evoke must be directed toward Rome, as long as Rome upholds truths that our Church does not teach or enforce. So, it’s a matter of degree between my views and those of our theologians. I might, if that’s the case, express stronger sympathies more; but I am simply influencing minds in the same way they do. I’m doing exactly what all our scholars have always done. In short, wouldn’t Hooker, if he were the Vicar of St. Mary’s, be facing my dilemma?”—It might be argued that Hooker could preach against Rome, while I could not; but I doubt he would have been more effective in preaching against transubstantiation than I would be, even though neither he nor I believed in it.
"3. Rationalism is the great evil of the day. May not I consider my post at St. Mary's as a place of protest against it? I am more certain that the Protestant [spirit], which I oppose, leads to infidelity, than that which I recommend, leads to Rome. Who knows what the state of the University may be, as regards Divinity Professors in a few years hence? Anyhow, a great battle may be coming on, of which C. D.'s book is a sort of earnest. The whole of our day may be a battle with this spirit. May we not leave to another age its own evil—to settle the question of Romanism?"
"3. Rationalism is the biggest problem of our time. Can I not view my position at St. Mary's as a stance against it? I am more convinced that the Protestant mindset I oppose leads to disbelief than that the one I advocate leads to Rome. Who knows what the University might look like in a few years regarding Divinity Professors? Either way, a significant conflict may be on the horizon, with C. D.'s book serving as a kind of warning. The entirety of our time might be a struggle against this spirit. Should we not allow another generation to deal with its own issues regarding Romanism?"
I may add that from this time I had a Curate at St. Mary's, who gradually took more and more of my work.
I should mention that from this point on, I had a Curate at St. Mary's who gradually took on more and more of my responsibilities.
Also, this same year, 1840, I made arrangements for giving up the British Critic, in the following July, which were carried into effect at that date.
Also, this same year, 1840, I made plans to leave the British Critic the following July, which were put into action at that time.
Such was about my state of mind, on the publication of Tract 90 in February, 1841. The immense commotion consequent upon the publication of the Tract did not unsettle me again; for I had weathered the storm: the Tract had not been condemned: that was the great point; I made much of it.
Such was my state of mind when Tract 90 was published in February 1841. The huge uproar following the release of the Tract didn't shake me again; I had already gotten through the chaos: the Tract hadn't been condemned; that was the main thing; I took it to heart.
To illustrate my feelings during this trial, I will make extracts from my letters to a friend, which have come into my possession. The dates are respectively March 25, April 1, and May 9.
To express how I felt during this trial, I'll share excerpts from my letters to a friend that I've managed to get a hold of. The dates are March 25, April 1, and May 9.
1. "I do trust I shall make no false step, and hope my friends will pray for me to this effect. If, as you say, a destiny hangs over us, a single false step may ruin all. I am very well and comfortable; but we are not yet out of the wood."
1. "I really hope I won’t make any mistakes, and I trust my friends will pray for me about this. If, as you say, fate is looming over us, one wrong move could mess everything up. I'm doing well and feeling comfortable, but we're not out of the woods yet."
2. "The Bishop sent me word on Sunday to write a letter to him 'instanter.' So I wrote it on Monday: on Tuesday it passed through the press: on Wednesday it was out: and to-day [Thursday] it is in London.
2. "The Bishop told me on Sunday to write a letter to him 'immediately.' So I wrote it on Monday: on Tuesday it went to print: on Wednesday it was released: and today [Thursday] it is in London.
"I trust that things are smoothing now; and that we have made a great step is certain. It is not right to boast, till I am clear out of the wood, i.e. till I know how the letter is received in London. You know, I suppose, that I am to stop the Tracts; but you will see in the Letter, though I speak quite what I feel, yet I have managed to take out on my side my snubbing's worth. And this makes me anxious how it will be received in London.
I hope things are getting better now; and it’s clear that we’ve made a great step. It’s not right to brag until I’m completely out of the woods, i.e. until I find out how the letter is received in London. You probably know that I’m going to stop the Tracts, but you’ll see in the Letter that even though I’m expressing exactly what I feel, I’ve managed to remove some of my frustrations. This makes me anxious about how it will be received in London.
"I have not had a misgiving for five minutes from the first: but I do not like to boast, lest some harm come."
"I haven't had any doubts for even five minutes since the beginning, but I don't want to brag in case it brings some trouble."
3. "The Bishops are very desirous of hushing the matter up: and I certainly have done my utmost to co-operate with them, on the understanding that the Tract is not to be withdrawn or condemned."
3. "The Bishops really want to keep this quiet: and I have definitely done my best to work with them, on the condition that the Tract won't be taken down or condemned."
And to my friend, Mr. Bowden, under date of March 15, "The Heads, I believe, have just done a violent act: they have said that my interpretation of the Articles is an evasion. Do not think that this will pain me. You see, no doctrine is censured, and my shoulders shall manage to bear the charge. If you knew all, or were here, you would see that I have asserted a great principle, and I ought to suffer for it:—that the Articles are to be interpreted, not according to the meaning of the writers, but (as far as the wording will admit) according to the sense of the Catholic Church."
And to my friend, Mr. Bowden, on March 15, "I believe the leaders have just taken a drastic action: they have claimed that my interpretation of the Articles is an evasion. Don’t think that this will upset me. You see, no doctrine has been criticized, and I can handle the accusation. If you knew everything, or were here, you would realize that I have upheld a significant principle, and I should face consequences for it:—that the Articles should be interpreted, not based on the intentions of the writers, but (as much as the wording allows) according to the understanding of the Catholic Church."
Upon occasion of Tract 90 several Catholics wrote to me; I answered one of my correspondents thus:—
Upon the occasion of Tract 90, several Catholics wrote to me; I replied to one of my correspondents like this:—
"April 8.—You have no cause to be surprised at the discontinuance of the Tracts. We feel no misgivings about it whatever, as if the cause of what we hold to be Catholic truth would suffer thereby. My letter to my Bishop has, I trust, had the effect of bringing the preponderating authority of the Church on our side. No stopping of the Tracts can, humanly speaking, stop the spread of the opinions which they have inculcated.
"April 8.—You shouldn’t be surprised that the Tracts have been discontinued. We have no doubts about it at all, as if the cause of what we believe to be Catholic truth would be affected by this. I hope my letter to my Bishop has helped to bring the majority authority of the Church to our side. Stopping the Tracts can't, from a human perspective, stop the spread of the ideas they have taught."
"The Tracts are not suppressed. No doctrine or principle has been conceded by us, or condemned by authority. The Bishop has but said that a certain Tract is 'objectionable,' no reason being stated. I have no intention whatever of yielding any one point which I hold on conviction; and that the authorities of the Church know full well."
"The Tracts are not suppressed. We haven't given up any beliefs or principles, nor have we been condemned by anyone in authority. The Bishop has only stated that a particular Tract is 'objectionable,' without providing any reasons. I have no intention of giving up any point I strongly believe in; and the Church authorities are fully aware of that."
In the summer of 1841, I found myself at Littlemore without any harass or anxiety on my mind. I had determined to put aside all controversy, and I set myself down to my translation of St. Athanasius; but, between July and November, I received three blows which broke me.
In the summer of 1841, I was in Littlemore, feeling relaxed and without any stress or worries. I had decided to set aside all arguments, and I got to work on my translation of St. Athanasius; however, between July and November, I faced three setbacks that knocked me down.
1. I had got but a little way in my work, when my trouble returned on me. The ghost had come a second time. In the Arian History I found the very same phenomenon, in a far bolder shape, which I had found in the Monophysite. I had not observed it in 1832. Wonderful that this should come upon me! I had not sought it out; I was reading and writing in my own line of study, far from the controversies of the day, on what is called a "metaphysical" subject; but I saw clearly, that in the history of Arianism, the pure Arians were the Protestants, the semi-Arians were the Anglicans, and that Rome now was what it was. The truth lay, not with the Via Media, but in what was called "the extreme party." As I am not writing a work of controversy, I need not enlarge upon the argument; I have said something on the subject in a volume which I published fourteen years ago.
1. I had barely started my work when my troubles returned. The ghost had appeared a second time. In the Arian History, I found the same phenomenon, presented in a much bolder way, as I had seen in the Monophysite. I hadn't noticed it back in 1832. It's amazing that this should happen to me! I hadn’t sought it out; I was reading and writing on my own academic interests, far from the debates of the time, on what is considered a "metaphysical" topic; but I clearly saw that in the history of Arianism, the pure Arians were the Protestants, the semi-Arians were the Anglicans, and that Rome was what it was. The truth was not found with the Via Media, but with what was referred to as "the extreme party." Since I’m not writing a controversial work, I don’t need to elaborate on the argument; I have discussed this topic in a book I published fourteen years ago.
2. I was in the misery of this new unsettlement, when a second blow came upon me. The bishops one after another began to charge against me. It was a formal, determinate movement. This was the real "understanding;" that, on which I had acted on occasion of Tract 90, had come to nought. I think the words, which had then been used to me, were, that "perhaps two or three might think it necessary to say something in their charges;" but by this time they had tided over the difficulty of the Tract, and there was no one to enforce the "understanding." They went on in this way, directing charges at me, for three whole years. I recognised it as a condemnation; it was the only one that was in their power. At first I intended to protest; but I gave up the thought in despair.
2. I was struggling with this new turmoil when a second blow hit me. One by one, the bishops started to come after me. It was a deliberate and definite move. This was the real "understanding"; the one I had relied on during the Tract 90 situation had fallen apart. I remember being told that "maybe two or three might feel the need to mention something in their charges"; but by now they had moved past the Tract issue, and no one was around to uphold the "understanding." They continued this way, leveling charges at me, for three complete years. I saw it as a condemnation; it was the only power they had over me. At first, I thought about protesting, but I eventually let that idea go in despair.
On October 17th, I wrote thus to a friend: "I suppose it will be necessary in some shape or other to reassert Tract 90; else, it will seem, after these Bishops' Charges, as if it were silenced, which it has not been, nor do I intend it should be. I wish to keep quiet; but if Bishops speak, I will speak too. If the view were silenced, I could not remain in the Church, nor could many others; and therefore, since it is not silenced, I shall take care to show that it isn't."
On October 17th, I wrote to a friend: "I think we need to reaffirm Tract 90 in some way; otherwise, it will look like it was silenced after these Bishops' Charges, which it hasn't been, and I don't plan for it to be. I want to stay out of it; but if the Bishops speak, I will too. If this perspective were silenced, I couldn't stay in the Church, nor could many others; so since it is not silenced, I will make sure to demonstrate that it isn't."
A day or two after, Oct. 22, a stranger wrote to me to say, that the Tracts for the Times had made a young friend of his a Catholic, and to ask, "would I be so good as to convert him back;" I made answer:
A day or two later, on Oct. 22, a stranger wrote to me saying that the Tracts for the Times had converted a young friend of his to Catholicism and asked, "Would you be so kind as to convert him back?" I replied:
"If conversions to Rome take place in consequence of the Tracts for the Times, I do not impute blame to them, but to those who, instead of acknowledging such Anglican principles of theology and ecclesiastical polity as they contain, set themselves to oppose them. Whatever be the influence of the Tracts, great or small, they may become just as powerful for Rome, if our Church refuses them, as they would be for our Church if she accepted them. If our rulers speak either against the Tracts, or not at all, if any number of them, not only do not favour, but even do not suffer the principles contained in them, it is plain that our members may easily be persuaded either to give up those principles, or to give up the Church. If this state of things goes on, I mournfully prophesy, not one or two, but many secessions to the Church of Rome."
"If people convert to Catholicism because of the Tracts for the Times, I don't blame them, but rather those who refuse to recognize the Anglican principles of theology and church governance that they express. No matter the influence of the Tracts, whether significant or minimal, they can equally sway people towards Catholicism if our Church rejects them, just as they could benefit our Church if she accepted them. If our leaders speak out against the Tracts or remain silent, and if a number of them not only disregard but actively oppose the principles in those Tracts, it's clear that our members can easily be convinced to abandon those principles or leave the Church altogether. If this situation continues, I sadly predict that not just one or two, but many will leave for the Catholic Church."
Two years afterwards, looking back on what had passed, I said, "There were no converts to Rome, till after the condemnation of No. 90."
Two years later, reflecting on what had happened, I said, "There were no converts to Rome until after the condemnation of No. 90."
3. As if all this were not enough, there came the affair of the Jerusalem Bishopric; and, with a brief mention of it, I shall conclude.
3. As if all this wasn’t enough, there came the issue of the Jerusalem Bishopric; and with a quick mention of it, I'll wrap things up.
I think I am right in saying that it had been long a desire with the Prussian Court to introduce Episcopacy into the Evangelical Religion, which was intended in that country to embrace both the Lutheran and Calvinistic bodies. I almost think I heard of the project, when I was at Rome in 1833, at the hotel of the Prussian Minister, M. Bunsen, who was most hospitable and kind, as to other English visitors, so also to my friends and myself. I suppose that the idea of Episcopacy, as the Prussian king understood it, was very different from that taught in the Tractarian School; but still, I suppose also, that the chief authors of that school would have gladly seen such a measure carried out in Prussia, had it been done without compromising those principles which were necessary to the being of a Church. About the time of the publication of Tract 90, M. Bunsen and the then Archbishop of Canterbury were taking steps for its execution, by appointing and consecrating a Bishop for Jerusalem. Jerusalem, it would seem, was considered a safe place for the experiment; it was too far from Prussia to awaken the susceptibilities of any party at home; if the project failed, it failed without harm to any one; and, if it succeeded, it gave Protestantism a status in the East, which in association with the Monophysite or Jacobite and the Nestorian bodies, formed a political instrument for England, parallel to that which Russia had in the Greek Church and France in the Latin.
I believe it's safe to say that the Prussian Court had long wanted to introduce Episcopacy into Evangelical Religion, which was meant to include both the Lutheran and Calvinistic groups in the country. I nearly heard about this idea while I was in Rome in 1833, at the hotel of the Prussian Minister, M. Bunsen, who was extremely hospitable and kind not just to me but to other English visitors and my friends as well. I think the concept of Episcopacy, as the Prussian king saw it, was very different from what was taught in the Tractarian School; however, I also believe that the main figures from that school would have eagerly supported such a measure in Prussia, provided it didn't compromise the principles essential to maintaining a Church. Around the time of the release of Tract 90, M. Bunsen and the then Archbishop of Canterbury were making arrangements for this idea by appointing and consecrating a Bishop for Jerusalem. It seems Jerusalem was seen as a suitable place for this experiment; it was far enough from Prussia to avoid stirring any concerns among groups back home. If the project failed, it wouldn't harm anyone, and if it succeeded, it would establish a presence for Protestantism in the East, which, in connection with the Monophysite or Jacobite and the Nestorian communities, would serve as a political tool for England, similar to what Russia had with the Greek Church and France with the Latin Church.
Accordingly, in July 1841, full of the Anglican difficulty on the question of Catholicity, I thus spoke of the Jerusalem scheme in an Article in the British Critic: "When our thoughts turn to the East, instead of recollecting that there are Christian Churches there, we leave it to the Russians to take care of the Greeks, and the French to take care of the Romans, and we content ourselves with erecting a Protestant Church at Jerusalem, or with helping the Jews to rebuild their Temple there, or with becoming the august protectors of Nestorians, Monophysites, and all the heretics we can hear of, or with forming a league with the Mussulman against Greeks and Romans together."
Accordingly, in July 1841, grappling with the Anglican issues surrounding Catholicity, I wrote about the Jerusalem plan in an article for the British Critic: "When we think about the East, rather than remembering that there are Christian Churches there, we allow the Russians to look after the Greeks, the French to care for the Romans, and we settle for establishing a Protestant Church in Jerusalem, or assisting the Jews in rebuilding their Temple there, or becoming the proud protectors of Nestorians, Monophysites, and all the heretics we can find, or even forming an alliance with Muslims against both Greeks and Romans."
I do not pretend so long after the time to give a full or exact account of this measure in detail. I will but say that in the Act of Parliament, under date of October 5, 1841 (if the copy, from which I quote, contains the measure as it passed the Houses), provision is made for the consecration of "British subjects, or the subjects or citizens of any foreign state, to be Bishops in any foreign country, whether such foreign subjects or citizens be or be not subjects or citizens of the country in which they are to act, and ... without requiring such of them as may be subjects or citizens of any foreign kingdom or state to take the oaths of allegiance and supremacy, and the oath of due obedience to the Archbishop for the time being" ... also "that such Bishop or Bishops, so consecrated, may exercise, within such limits, as may from time to time be assigned for that purpose in such foreign countries by her Majesty, spiritual jurisdiction over the ministers of British congregations of the United Church of England and Ireland, and over such other Protestant Congregations, as may be desirous of placing themselves under his or their authority."
I don't intend to give a complete or detailed account of this matter long after the fact. I will simply say that in the Act of Parliament dated October 5, 1841 (if the copy I'm quoting from includes the measure as it was approved by the Houses), it provides for the consecration of "British subjects, or the subjects or citizens of any foreign state, to be Bishops in any foreign country, whether these foreign subjects or citizens are or are not subjects or citizens of the country where they will serve, and ... without requiring those among them who may be subjects or citizens of any foreign kingdom or state to take the oaths of allegiance and supremacy, and the oath of due obedience to the Archbishop for the time being" ... also "that such Bishop or Bishops, so consecrated, may exercise, within such limits as may from time to time be assigned for that purpose in such foreign countries by her Majesty, spiritual jurisdiction over the ministers of British congregations of the United Church of England and Ireland, and over such other Protestant Congregations, as may wish to place themselves under his or their authority."
Now here, at the very time that the Anglican Bishops were directing their censure upon me for avowing an approach to the Catholic Church not closer than I believed the Anglican formularies would allow, they were on the other hand fraternising, by their act or by their sufferance, with Protestant bodies, and allowing them to put themselves under an Anglican Bishop, without any renunciation of their errors or regard to the due reception of baptism and confirmation; while there was great reason to suppose that the said Bishop was intended to make converts from the orthodox Greeks, and the schismatical Oriental bodies, by means of the influence of England. This was the third blow, which finally shattered my faith in the Anglican Church. That Church was not only forbidding any sympathy or concurrence with the Church of Rome, but it actually was courting an intercommunion with Protestant Prussia and the heresy of the Orientals. The Anglican Church might have the apostolical succession, as had the Monophysites; but such acts as were in progress led me to the gravest suspicion, not that it would soon cease to be a Church, but that it had never been a Church all along.
Now, at the very moment when the Anglican Bishops were criticizing me for expressing an inclination towards the Catholic Church that I believed was consistent with Anglican teachings, they were simultaneously engaging, either by their actions or their tolerance, with Protestant groups, allowing them to come under an Anglican Bishop without renouncing their mistakes or properly receiving baptism and confirmation. Meanwhile, there was significant reason to believe that this Bishop aimed to convert orthodox Greeks and the schismatic Oriental groups through England's influence. This was the third blow that finally shattered my faith in the Anglican Church. That Church was not only prohibiting any sympathy or collaboration with the Church of Rome, but it was actively seeking communion with Protestant Prussia and the heresies of the Orientals. The Anglican Church might have the apostolic succession, as did the Monophysites; however, the actions taking place led me to the gravest suspicion, not that it would soon stop being a Church, but that it had never truly been a Church from the beginning.
On October 12th I thus wrote to a friend:—"We have not a single Anglican in Jerusalem, so we are sending a Bishop to make a communion, not to govern our own people. Next, the excuse is, that there are converted Anglican Jews there who require a Bishop; I am told there are not half-a-dozen. But for them the Bishop is sent out, and for them he is a Bishop of the circumcision" (I think he was a converted Jew, who boasted of his Jewish descent), "against the Epistle to the Galatians pretty nearly. Thirdly, for the sake of Prussia, he is to take under him all the foreign Protestants who will come; and the political advantages will be so great, from the influence of England, that there is no doubt they will come. They are to sign the Confession of Augsburg, and there is nothing to show that they hold the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration.
On October 12th, I wrote to a friend: “We don’t have a single Anglican in Jerusalem, so we’re sending a Bishop to create a communion, not to lead our own people. Next, the excuse is that there are converted Anglican Jews there who need a Bishop; I’ve been told there aren’t even half a dozen. But the Bishop is being sent for them, and to them, he is a Bishop of the circumcision” (I think he was a converted Jew who bragged about his Jewish roots), “which somewhat contradicts the Epistle to the Galatians. Lastly, for the sake of Prussia, he’s supposed to oversee all the foreign Protestants who will come; and the political benefits will be so significant, due to England's influence, that there’s no doubt they will arrive. They’re expected to sign the Confession of Augsburg, and there’s nothing to indicate that they believe in the doctrine of Baptismal Regeneration.”
"As to myself, I shall do nothing whatever publicly, unless indeed it were to give my signature to a Protest; but I think it would be out of place in me to agitate, having been in a way silenced; but the Archbishop is really doing most grave work, of which we cannot see the end."
"As for me, I won’t do anything publicly, except maybe sign a protest; but I feel it would be inappropriate for me to stir things up since I've kind of been silenced. The Archbishop is doing some serious work, and we can't see where it leads."
I did make a solemn Protest, and sent it to the Archbishop of Canterbury, and also sent it to my own Bishop, with the following letter:—
I made a formal protest and sent it to the Archbishop of Canterbury, as well as to my own Bishop, along with the following letter:—
"It seems as if I were never to write to your Lordship, without giving you pain, and I know that my present subject does not specially concern your Lordship; yet, after a great deal of anxious thought, I lay before you the enclosed Protest.
"It feels like I can never write to you without causing some discomfort, and I know that what I'm discussing right now doesn't really concern you. Still, after much worrying, I am presenting the enclosed Protest to you."
"Your Lordship will observe that I am not asking for any notice of it, unless you think that I ought to receive one. I do this very serious act, in obedience to my sense of duty.
"Your Lordship will see that I'm not asking for any notice of it, unless you think I should get one. I'm doing this serious act out of a sense of duty."
"If the English Church is to enter on a new course, and assume a new aspect, it will be more pleasant to me hereafter to think, that I did not suffer so grievous an event to happen, without bearing witness against it.
"If the English Church is about to take a new direction and take on a new appearance, it will be nicer for me to know that I didn’t just stand by and let such a serious event happen without speaking out against it."
"May I be allowed to say, that I augur nothing but evil, if we in any respect prejudice our title to be a branch of the Apostolic Church? That Article of the Creed, I need hardly observe to your Lordship, is of such constraining power, that, if we will not claim it, and use it for ourselves, others will use it in their own behalf against us. Men who learn, whether by means of documents or measures, whether from the statements or the acts of persons in authority, that our communion is not a branch of the one Church, I foresee with much grief, will be tempted to look out for that Church elsewhere.
"Can I just say that I expect nothing but trouble if we undermine our claim to be part of the Apostolic Church? That part of the Creed, as I’m sure you’re aware, is so powerful that if we don’t assert it and use it for ourselves, others will claim it against us. People who find out, whether through documents or actions, or from what those in authority say or do, that our community isn’t a part of the one Church will, I fear, be inclined to look for that Church somewhere else."
"It is to me a subject of great dismay, that, as far as the Church has lately spoken out, on the subject of the opinions which I and others hold, those opinions are, not merely not sanctioned (for that I do not ask), but not even suffered.
"It really disturbs me that, as far as the Church has recently expressed itself regarding the views that I and others hold, those views are not just not sanctioned (which I’m not asking for), but not even suffered.
"I earnestly hope that your Lordship will excuse my freedom in thus
speaking to you of some members of your Most Rev. and Right Rev.
Body. With every feeling of reverent attachment to your Lordship,
I am, etc."
"I sincerely hope that you will forgive me for speaking so openly about some members of your esteemed group. With the utmost respect for you,
I am, etc."
PROTEST
"Whereas the Church of England has a claim on the allegiance of Catholic believers only on the ground of her own claim to be considered a branch of the Catholic Church:
"While the Church of England can only claim the loyalty of Catholic believers based on its own assertion that it is a branch of the Catholic Church:"
"And whereas the recognition of heresy, indirect as well as direct, goes far to destroy such claim in the case of any religious body advancing it:
"And the acknowledgment of heresy, both indirect and direct, significantly undermines that claim for any religious group making it:
"And whereas to admit maintainers of heresy to communion, without formal renunciation of their errors, goes far towards recognising the same:
"And letting those who support heresy take part in communion without them formally rejecting their mistakes comes pretty close to accepting those mistakes:"
"And whereas Lutheranism and Calvinism are heresies, repugnant to Scripture, springing up three centuries since, and anathematised by East as well as West:
"And while Lutheranism and Calvinism are heresies that go against Scripture, emerging three centuries ago, and condemned by both East and West:"
"And whereas it is reported that the Most Reverend Primate and other Right Reverend Rulers of our Church have consecrated a Bishop with a view to exercising spiritual jurisdiction over Protestant, that is, Lutheran and Calvinist congregations in the East (under the provisions of an Act made in the last session of Parliament to amend an Act made in the 26th year of the reign of his Majesty King George the Third, intituled, 'An Act to empower the Archbishop of Canterbury, or the Archbishop of York for the time being, to consecrate to the office of Bishop persons being subjects or citizens of countries out of his Majesty's dominions'), dispensing at the same time, not in particular cases and accidentally, but as if on principle and universally, with any abjuration of error on the part of such congregations, and with any reconciliation to the Church on the part of the presiding Bishop; thereby giving some sort of formal recognition to the doctrines which such congregations maintain:
"And it has been reported that the Most Reverend Primate and other Right Reverend leaders of our Church have consecrated a Bishop to oversee Protestant congregations, specifically Lutheran and Calvinist, in the East (under the provisions of an Act made in the last session of Parliament to amend an Act from the 26th year of King George the Third's reign, titled 'An Act to empower the Archbishop of Canterbury, or the Archbishop of York at that time, to consecrate Bishop positions for individuals who are subjects or citizens of countries outside of His Majesty's dominions'), while at the same time, not just in specific cases or by chance, but as if it were a general principle, allowing a dismissal of any renouncement of error from those congregations and any need for reconciliation to the Church from the presiding Bishop; thus providing some form of official acknowledgment of the beliefs upheld by those congregations:"
"And whereas the dioceses in England are connected together by so close an intercommunion, that what is done by authority in one, immediately affects the rest:
"And since the dioceses in England are so closely connected that what is done by authority in one immediately impacts the others:
"On these grounds, I in my place, being a priest of the English Church and Vicar of St. Mary the Virgin's, Oxford, by way of relieving my conscience, do hereby solemnly protest against the measure aforesaid, and disown it, as removing our Church from her present ground and tending to her disorganisation.
"On these grounds, I, as a priest of the English Church and Vicar of St. Mary the Virgin's in Oxford, am hereby expressing my strong opposition to the aforementioned measure and rejecting it, as it takes our Church away from its current foundation and risks causing its disorganization."
"JOHN HENRY NEWMAN.
JOHN HENRY NEWMAN.
"November 11, 1841."
"November 11, 1841."
Looking back two years afterwards on the above-mentioned and other acts, on the part of Anglican Ecclesiastical authorities, I observe: "Many a man might have held an abstract theory about the Catholic Church, to which it was difficult to adjust the Anglican—might have admitted a suspicion, or even painful doubts about the latter—yet never have been impelled onwards, had our Rulers preserved the quiescence of former years; but it is the corroboration of a present, living, and energetic heterodoxy, which realises and makes them practical; it has been the recent speeches and acts of authorities, who had so long been tolerant of Protestant error, which have given to inquiry and to theory its force and its edge."
Looking back two years later on the actions of the Anglican Church authorities mentioned above and others, I observe: "Many people might have held an abstract theory about the Catholic Church, which was hard to reconcile with the Anglican Church—might have felt some suspicion, or even painful doubts about the latter—but would never have been pushed to act if our leaders had kept the silence of previous years; however, it is the confirmation of a present, lively, and active dissent that makes those doubts real and actionable. It has been the recent speeches and actions of authorities, who had long tolerated Protestant errors, that have given inquiry and theory their power and urgency."
As to the project of a Jerusalem Bishopric, I never heard of any good or harm it has ever done, except what it has done for me; which many think a great misfortune, and I one of the greatest of mercies. It brought me on to the beginning of the end.
As for the idea of a Jerusalem Bishopric, I’ve never heard of any good or bad it’s done, except for what it has done for me; which many see as a huge misfortune, while I consider it one of the greatest blessings. It led me to the beginning of the end.
Part VI
History of My Religious Opinions—1841–1845
From the end of 1841, I was on my death-bed, as regards my membership with the Anglican Church, though at the time I became aware of it only by degrees. I introduce what I have to say with this remark, by way of accounting for the character of this remaining portion of my narrative. A death-bed has scarcely a history; it is a tedious decline, with seasons of rallying and seasons of falling back; and since the end is foreseen, or what is called a matter of time, it has little interest for the reader, especially if he has a kind heart. Moreover, it is a season when doors are closed and curtains drawn, and when the sick man neither cares nor is able to record the stages of his malady. I was in these circumstances, except so far as I was not allowed to die in peace,—except so far as friends, who had still a full right to come in upon me, and the public world which had not, have given a sort of history to those last four years. But in consequence, my narrative must be in great measure documentary. Letters of mine to friends have come to me since their deaths; others have been kindly lent me for the occasion; and I have some drafts of letters, and notes of my own, though I have no strictly personal or continuous memoranda to consult, and have unluckily mislaid some valuable papers.
From late 1841, I was on my deathbed regarding my membership with the Anglican Church, though I only gradually became aware of it. I start with this comment to explain the nature of this remaining part of my story. A deathbed rarely has much of a story; it’s a slow decline, with moments of recovery and moments of setback. Since the end is anticipated, or what people call a matter of time, it holds little interest for readers, especially if they have a kind heart. Furthermore, it’s a time when doors are shut and curtains drawn, and when the sick person cares neither to document nor can note the progress of their illness. I was in this situation, except that I wasn’t allowed to die in peace—other than that friends, who still had every right to visit me, and the wider public, who didn’t, provided a sort of narrative for those last four years. Because of this, my story is largely based on documents. Letters I wrote to friends have reached me since their deaths; others have been kindly lent to me for this purpose; and I have some drafts of letters and notes of my own, even though I don’t have any strictly personal or continuous records to refer to, and I’ve unfortunately lost some important papers.
And first as to my position in the view of duty; it was this:—1. I had given up my place in the Movement in my letter to the Bishop of Oxford in the spring of 1841; but 2. I could not give up my duties towards the many and various minds who had more or less been brought into it by me; 3. I expected or intended gradually to fall back into Lay Communion; 4. I never contemplated leaving the Church of England; 5. I could not hold office in her, if I were not allowed to hold the Catholic sense of the Articles; 6. I could not go to Rome, while she suffered honours to be paid to the Blessed Virgin and the Saints which I thought incompatible with the Supreme, Incommunicable Glory of the One Infinite and Eternal; 7. I desired a union with Rome under conditions, Church with Church; 8. I called Littlemore my Torres Vedras, and thought that some day we might advance again within the Anglican Church, as we had been forced to retire; 9. I kept back all persons who were disposed to go to Rome with all my might.
And first, regarding my duty, it was this: 1. I had stepped away from my role in the Movement in my letter to the Bishop of Oxford in the spring of 1841; 2. However, I couldn't abandon my responsibilities towards the many different people who had been influenced by me; 3. I planned to gradually return to Lay Communion; 4. I never thought about leaving the Church of England; 5. I couldn't hold a position in it if I wasn't permitted to maintain the Catholic interpretation of the Articles; 6. I couldn't go to Rome while it allowed honors to be given to the Blessed Virgin and the Saints, which I believed conflicted with the Supreme, Unique Glory of the One Infinite and Eternal; 7. I wanted unity with Rome under certain conditions, Church with Church; 8. I referred to Littlemore as my Torres Vedras, and thought that someday we might move forward again within the Anglican Church, as we had been compelled to retreat; 9. I did everything I could to dissuade anyone who wanted to go to Rome.
And I kept them back for three or four reasons; 1, because what I could not in conscience do myself, I could not suffer them to do; 2, because I thought that in various cases they were acting under excitement; 3, while I held St. Mary's, because I had duties to my Bishop and to the Anglican Church; and 4, in some cases, because I had received from their Anglican parents or superiors direct charge of them.
And I held them back for three or four reasons: 1, because what I couldn’t morally do myself, I couldn’t let them do; 2, because I thought they were acting out of excitement in various situations; 3, while I was at St. Mary's, because I had responsibilities to my Bishop and to the Anglican Church; and 4, in some instances, because I had received direct instructions about them from their Anglican parents or superiors.
This was my view of my duty from the end of 1841, to my resignation of St. Mary's in the autumn of 1843. And now I shall relate my view, during that time, of the state of the controversy between the Churches.
This was my perspective on my duty from the end of 1841 until I resigned from St. Mary's in the fall of 1843. Now, I will share my perspective during that time on the state of the controversy between the Churches.
As soon as I saw the hitch in the Anglican argument, during my course of reading in the summer of 1839, I began to look about, as I have said, for some ground which might supply a controversial basis for my need. The difficulty in question had affected my view both of Antiquity and Catholicity; for, while the history of St. Leo showed me that the deliberate and eventual consent of the great body of the Church ratified a doctrinal decision, it also showed that the rule of Antiquity was not infringed, though a doctrine had not been publicly recognised as a portion of the dogmatic foundation of the Church, till centuries after the time of the apostles. Thus, whereas the Creeds tell us that the Church is One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic, I could not prove that the Anglican communion was an integral part of the One Church, on the ground of its being Apostolic or Catholic, without reasoning in favour of what are commonly called the Roman corruptions; and I could not defend our separation from Rome without using arguments prejudicial to those great doctrines concerning our Lord, which are the very foundation of the Christian religion. The Via Media was an impossible idea; it was what I had called "standing on one leg;" and it was necessary, if my old issue of the controversy was to be retained, to go further either one way or the other.
As soon as I noticed the flaw in the Anglican argument during my reading in the summer of 1839, I started to search, as I mentioned before, for some foundation that could serve as a controversial basis for what I needed. This difficulty had changed how I viewed both Antiquity and Catholicity; while the history of St. Leo showed that the collective consent of the Church confirmed a doctrinal decision, it also demonstrated that the rule of Antiquity wasn’t violated, even if a doctrine wasn't publicly acknowledged as part of the Church's dogmatic foundation until centuries after the apostles' time. Therefore, even though the Creeds indicate that the Church is One, Holy, Catholic, and Apostolic, I couldn’t prove that the Anglican communion was an essential part of the One Church based on it being Apostolic or Catholic, without supporting what are commonly referred to as the Roman corruptions; and I couldn't justify our separation from Rome without using arguments that could undermine the key doctrines concerning our Lord, which are fundamental to the Christian faith. The Via Media was an unworkable concept; it was what I had called "standing on one leg;" and if I wanted to maintain my previous stance in the controversy, I had to choose a more definitive path, either way.
Accordingly, I abandoned that old ground and took another. I deliberately quitted the old Anglican ground as untenable; but I did not do so all at once, but as I became more and more convinced of the state of the case. The Jerusalem bishopric was the ultimate condemnation of the old theory of the Via Media; from that time the Anglican Church was, in my mind, either not a normal portion of that One Church to which the promises were made, or at least in an abnormal state, and from that time I said boldly, as I did in my Protest, and as indeed I had even intimated in my letter to the Bishop of Oxford, that the Church in which I found myself had no claim on me, except on condition of its being a portion of the One Catholic Communion, and that that condition must ever be borne in mind as a practical matter, and had to be distinctly proved. All this was not inconsistent with my saying that, at this time, I had no thought of leaving that Church because I felt some of my old objections against Rome as strongly as ever. I had no right, I had no leave, to act against my conscience. That was a higher rule than any argument about the notes of the Church.
So, I left that old ground and moved on to another. I intentionally left the old Anglican perspective because I found it unsustainable; however, I didn’t do it abruptly, but rather as I became increasingly aware of the situation. The Jerusalem bishopric ultimately disproved the old idea of the Via Media; from then on, I saw the Anglican Church as either not really part of that One Church to which the promises were made, or at the very least, in a problematic state. At that point, I stated clearly, as I did in my Protest, and even hinted at in my letter to the Bishop of Oxford, that the Church I found myself in had no claim on me unless it was part of the One Catholic Communion, and that this condition needed to be acknowledged practically and clearly established. None of this contradicted my feeling that, at that time, I had no desire to leave that Church because I still felt strongly about some of my past objections to Rome. I didn’t have the right or permission to act against my conscience. That was a higher principle than any argument regarding the characteristics of the Church.
Under these circumstances I turned for protection to the note of sanctity, with a view of showing that we had at least one of the necessary notes, as fully as the Church of Rome; or, at least, without entering into comparisons, that we had it in such a sufficient sense as to reconcile us to our position, and to supply full evidence, and a clear direction, on the point of practical duty. We had the note of life,—not any sort of life, not such only as can come of nature, but a supernatural Christian life, which could only come directly from above. In my article in the British Critic, to which I have so often referred, in January, 1840 (before the time of Tract 90), I said of the Anglican Church that "she has the note of possession, the note of freedom from party titles, the note of life,—a tough life and a vigorous; she has ancient descent, unbroken continuance, agreement in doctrine with the Ancient Church." Presently I go on to speak of sanctity: "Much as Roman Catholics may denounce us at present as schismatical, they could not resist us if the Anglican communion had but that one note of the Church upon it,—sanctity. The Church of the day [fourth century] could not resist Meletius; his enemies were fairly overcome by him, by his meekness and holiness, which melted the most jealous of them." And I continue, "We are almost content to say to Romanists, account us not yet as a branch of the Catholic Church, though we be a branch, till we are like a branch, provided that when we do become like a branch, then you consent to acknowledge us," etc. And so I was led on in the Article to that sharp attack on English Catholics for their short-comings as regards this note, a good portion of which I have already quoted in another place. It is there that I speak of the great scandal which I took at their political, social, and controversial bearing; and this was a second reason why I fell back upon the note of sanctity, because it took me away from the necessity of making any attack upon the doctrines of the Roman Church, nay, from the consideration of her popular beliefs, and brought me upon a ground on which I felt I could not make a mistake; for what is a higher guide for us in speculation and in practice, than that conscience of right and wrong, of truth and falsehood, those sentiments of what is decorous, consistent, and noble, which our Creator has made a part of our original nature? Therefore I felt I could not be wrong in attacking what I fancied was a fact,—the unscrupulousness, the deceit, and the intriguing spirit of the agents and representatives of Rome.
In these situations, I sought refuge in the idea of sanctity, aiming to demonstrate that we had at least one of the essential qualities, as fully as the Roman Catholic Church; or at the very least, without making comparisons, that we had it in a way that justified our stance and provided clear evidence and direction regarding our practical duties. We had the quality of life—not just any kind of life, but a supernatural Christian life that could only come from above. In my article for the British Critic, which I've referenced multiple times, published in January 1840 (before Tract 90), I wrote about the Anglican Church that "she has the quality of possession, the quality of freedom from party labels, the quality of life—a strong and vital life; she has a long-standing heritage, continuous existence, and agreement in doctrine with the Ancient Church." I then go on to discuss sanctity: "Even though Roman Catholics may currently label us as schismatic, they could not oppose us if the Anglican communion had just that one quality of the Church—sanctity. The Church of the time [fourth century] could not resist Meletius; his opponents were genuinely overcome by his meekness and holiness, which disarmed even the most envious of them." I continue, "We are almost willing to tell Romanists, do not yet regard us as a branch of the Catholic Church, even though we are one, until we resemble a branch; however, once we do become like a branch, we hope you will recognize us," etc. This led me to make a pointed critique of English Catholics for their failings regarding this quality, much of which I have already quoted elsewhere. It's there that I express my deep frustration with their political, social, and controversial stance; and this was a second reason I turned to the note of sanctity, as it allowed me to avoid critiquing the doctrines of the Roman Church, or dwelling on her popular beliefs, and instead focused me on a ground where I felt I couldn't go wrong; after all, what better guide for us in our thoughts and actions exists than that conscience of right and wrong, of truth and falsehood, those sentiments of what is proper, cohesive, and noble, which our Creator has embedded in our very nature? Therefore, I felt justified in criticizing what I believed to be a reality—the unscrupulousness, deceit, and scheming nature of the agents and representatives of Rome.
This reference to holiness as the true test of a Church was steadily kept in view in what I wrote in connection with Tract 90. I say in its Introduction, "The writer can never be party to forcing the opinions or projects of one school upon another; religious changes should be the act of the whole body. No good can come of a change which is not a development of feelings springing up freely and calmly within the bosom of the whole body itself; every change in religion" must be "attended by deep repentance; changes" must be "nurtured in mutual love; we cannot agree without a supernatural influence;" we must come "together to God to do for us what we cannot do for ourselves." In my letter to the bishop I said, "I have set myself against suggestions for considering the differences between ourselves and the foreign Churches with a view to their adjustment." (I meant in the way of negotiation, conference, agitation, or the like.) "Our business is with ourselves,—to make ourselves more holy, more self-denying, more primitive, more worthy of our high calling. To be anxious for a composition of differences is to begin at the end. Political reconciliations are but outward and hollow, and fallacious. And till Roman Catholics renounce political efforts, and manifest in their public measures the light of holiness and truth, perpetual war is our only prospect."
This reference to holiness as the true measure of a Church remained prominent in what I wrote regarding Tract 90. In its Introduction, I stated, "The writer can never support pushing the opinions or plans of one group onto another; religious changes should be a collective decision. No good can come from a change that doesn’t grow from feelings freely and calmly emerging from the whole group itself; every change in religion" must be "accompanied by deep remorse; changes" must be "fostered in mutual love; we cannot agree without a supernatural influence;" we must come "together to God to do for us what we cannot do for ourselves." In my letter to the bishop, I mentioned, "I have opposed suggestions for reconciling the differences between us and foreign Churches with the intention of adjustment." (I was referring to negotiation, conference, agitation, or anything similar.) "Our focus should be on ourselves—to make ourselves more holy, more self-denying, more primitive, more worthy of our high calling. Worrying about resolving differences is starting from the end. Political reconciliations are merely surface-level, empty, and misleading. And until Roman Catholics abandon political efforts and show in their public actions the light of holiness and truth, perpetual conflict is our only future."
According to this theory, a religious body is part of the One Catholic and Apostolic Church, if it has the succession and the creed of the apostles, with the note of holiness of life; and there is much in such a view to approve itself to the direct common sense and practical habits of an Englishman. However, with events consequent upon Tract 90, I sunk my theory to a lower level. What could be said in apology, when the bishops and the people of my Church, not only did not suffer, but actually rejected primitive Catholic doctrine, and tried to eject from their communion all who held it? after the Bishops' charges? after the Jerusalem "abomination?" Well, this could be said; still we were not nothing: we could not be as if we never had been a Church; we were "Samaria." This then was that lower level on which I placed myself, and all who felt with me, at the end of 1841.
According to this theory, a religious group is part of the One Catholic and Apostolic Church if it has the succession and beliefs of the apostles, along with a reputation for living a holy life; and there’s a lot in this perspective that aligns well with the straightforward common sense and practical nature of an Englishman. However, following the events after Tract 90, I brought my theory down to a more humble level. What could I say in defense when the bishops and the people of my Church not only didn’t suffer but actively rejected primitive Catholic doctrine and tried to push out anyone who believed in it? After the Bishops' charges? After the Jerusalem "abomination?" Well, I could say this: we were still something; we couldn’t pretend we had never been a Church; we were "Samaria." This was the lower level I positioned myself and others who thought like me at the end of 1841.
To bring out this view was the purpose of four sermons preached at St. Mary's in December of that year. Hitherto I had not introduced the exciting topics of the day into the pulpit; on this occasion I did. I did so, for the moment was urgent; there was great unsettlement of mind among us, in consequence of those same events which had unsettled me. One special anxiety, very obvious, which was coming on me now, was, that what was "one man's meat was another man's poison." I had said even of Tract 90, "It was addressed to one set of persons, and has been used and commented on by another;" still more was it true now, that whatever I wrote for the service of those whom I knew to be in trouble of mind, would become on the one hand matter of suspicion and slander in the mouths of my opponents, and of distress and surprise to those on the other hand, who had no difficulties of faith at all. Accordingly, when I published these four sermons at the end of 1843, I introduced them with a recommendation that none should read them who did not need them. But in truth the virtual condemnation of Tract 90, after that the whole difficulty seemed to have been weathered, was an enormous disappointment and trial. My Protest also against the Jerusalem Bishopric was an unavoidable cause of excitement in the case of many; but it calmed them too, for the very fact of a Protest was a relief to their impatience. And so, in like manner, as regards the four sermons, of which I speak, though they acknowledged freely the great scandal which was involved in the recent episcopal doings, yet at the same time they might be said to bestow upon the multiplied disorders and shortcomings of the Anglican Church a sort of place in the Revealed Dispensation, and an intellectual position in the controversy, and the dignity of a great principle, for unsettled minds to take and use, which might teach them to recognise their own consistency, and to be reconciled to themselves, and which might absorb into itself and dry up a multitude of their grudgings, discontents, misgivings, and questionings, and lead the way to humble, thankful, and tranquil thoughts;—and this was the effect which certainly it produced on myself.
The goal of four sermons delivered at St. Mary's in December that year was to express this perspective. Until then, I had not brought up the pressing issues of the day in my sermons; but this time, I did. The situation was urgent; there was a lot of confusion among us due to the same events that had unsettled me. A particular concern that was becoming clear to me was that what was beneficial for one person could be harmful for another. I had mentioned even about Tract 90 that "It was aimed at one group of people and has been interpreted and discussed by another;" it was even more true now that whatever I wrote to assist those I knew were struggling would, on one side, be met with suspicion and gossip from my opponents, and on the other side, cause confusion and surprise for those who faced no doubts about their faith. Consequently, when I published these four sermons at the end of 1843, I prefaced them with the note that they should only be read by those who needed them. However, the effective condemnation of Tract 90, after it seemed like the main issues had been resolved, was a huge disappointment and challenge. My protest against the Jerusalem Bishopric also stirred significant concern for many; but it also provided some peace, as the simple act of protesting eased their frustration. Similarly, regarding the four sermons I mentioned, although they openly acknowledged the significant scandal involved in recent episcopal actions, they could also be seen as providing a sort of framework within the Revealed Dispensation for the various issues and shortcomings of the Anglican Church. They offered a position in the ongoing debate and the respect of a fundamental principle, allowing unsettled minds to find consistency and reconcile with themselves, which might help dissipate their grievances, discontent, doubts, and questions, leading to humble, thankful, and peaceful thoughts;—and that was certainly the effect it had on me.
The point of these sermons is, that, in spite of the rigid character of the Jewish law, the formal and literal force of its precepts, and the manifest schism, and worse than schism, of the ten tribes, yet in fact they were still recognised as a people by the Divine Mercy; that the great prophets Elias and Eliseus were sent to them, and not only so, but sent to preach to them and reclaim them, without any intimation that they must be reconciled to the line of David and the Aaronic priesthood, or go up to Jerusalem to worship. They were not in the Church, yet they had the means of grace and the hope of acceptance with their Maker. The application of all this to the Anglican Church was immediate;—whether a man could assume or exercise ministerial functions under the circumstances, or not, might not clearly appear, though it must be remembered that England had the apostolic priesthood, whereas Israel had no priesthood at all; but so far was clear, that there was no call at all for an Anglican to leave his Church for Rome, though he did not believe his own to be part of the One Church:—and for this reason, because it was a fact that the kingdom of Israel was cut off from the Temple; and yet its subjects, neither in a mass, nor as individuals, neither the multitudes on Mount Carmel, nor the Shunammite and her household, had any command given them, though miracles were displayed before them, to break off from their own people, and to submit themselves to Judah.[3]
The purpose of these sermons is to show that, despite the strict nature of the Jewish law, the formal and literal force of its commands, and the clear division—even worse than division—of the ten tribes, they were still acknowledged as a people by Divine Mercy. The great prophets Elijah and Elisha were sent to them, and not only that, but they were sent to preach and bring them back without any indication that they needed to reconcile with the line of David and the Aaronic priesthood, or travel to Jerusalem to worship. They were not part of the Church, yet they had access to grace and the hope of acceptance with their Creator. The relevance of all this to the Anglican Church was immediate—whether a person could take on or carry out ministerial roles in such circumstances might not be entirely clear, though it should be noted that England had the apostolic priesthood, while Israel had none. However, it was clear that there was no reason for an Anglican to leave his Church for Rome, even if he believed his own Church was not part of the One Church. This is because it was a reality that the kingdom of Israel was separated from the Temple; yet its people, whether as a whole or as individuals—neither the crowds on Mount Carmel nor the Shunammite and her family—were never instructed, despite witnessing miracles, to break away from their own community and submit themselves to Judah.[3]
It is plain that a theory such as this, whether the marks of a divine presence and life in the Anglican Church were sufficient to prove that she was actually within the covenant, or only sufficient to prove that she was at least enjoying extraordinary and uncovenanted mercies, not only lowered her level in a religious point of view, but weakened her controversial basis. Its very novelty made it suspicious; and there was no guarantee that the process of subsidence might not continue, and that it might not end in a submersion. Indeed, to many minds, to say that England was wrong was even to say that Rome was right; and no ethical reasoning whatever could overcome in their case the argument from prescription and authority. To this objection I could only answer that I did not make my circumstances. I fully acknowledged the force and effectiveness of the genuine An glican theory, and that it was all but proof against the disputants of Rome; but still like Achilles, it had a vulnerable point, and that St. Leo had found it out for me, and that I could not help it;—that, were it not for matter of fact, the theory would be great indeed, it would be irresistible, if it were only true. When I became a Catholic, the editor of a magazine who had in former days accused me, to my indignation, of tending towards Rome, wrote to me to ask, which of the two was now right, he or I? I answered him in a letter, part of which I here insert, as it will serve as a sort of leave-taking of the great theory, which is so specious to look upon, so difficult to prove, and so hopeless to work.
It’s clear that a theory like this, whether the signs of a divine presence and life in the Anglican Church were enough to prove that it was truly within the covenant, or only enough to show that it was at least receiving extraordinary and unpromised blessings, not only reduced its standing from a religious perspective but also weakened its argumentative foundation. Its very newness made it suspect; there was no assurance that this decline wouldn’t continue, possibly leading to a total downfall. In fact, for many, saying that England was wrong implied that Rome was right, and no amount of ethical reasoning could convince them against the argument based on tradition and authority. In response to this concern, I could only say that I didn’t create my circumstances. I fully recognized the strength and validity of the authentic Anglican theory, which was nearly immune to the criticisms from Rome; yet, like Achilles, it had a weak spot, one that St. Leo had identified for me, and that was beyond my control—if it weren’t for the realities, the theory would be truly impressive, almost unstoppable, if it were only accurate. When I became a Catholic, the editor of a magazine who had previously accused me, much to my frustration, of leaning towards Rome, wrote to ask which of us was now correct, him or me? I replied in a letter, a part of which I’ll include here as it serves as a kind of farewell to the grand theory, which looks appealing, is hard to demonstrate, and proves futile to put into practice.
"Nov. 8, 1845. I do not think, at all more than I did, that the Anglican principles which I advocated at the date you mention, lead men to the Church of Rome. If I must specify what I mean by 'Anglican principles,' I should say, e.g. taking Antiquity, not the existing Church, as the oracle of truth; and holding that the Apostolical Succession is a sufficient guarantee of Sacramental Grace, without union with the Christian Church throughout the world. I think these still the firmest, strongest ground against Rome—that is, if they can be held. They have been held by many, and are far more difficult to refute in the Roman controversy, than those of any other religious body.
"Nov. 8, 1845. I don’t think, any more than I did before, that the Anglican principles I supported at that time lead people to the Church of Rome. If I have to specify what I mean by 'Anglican principles,' I would say, for example, taking Antiquity, not the existing Church, as the source of truth; and believing that Apostolical Succession is a solid guarantee of Sacramental Grace, without the need for union with the Christian Church throughout the world. I still believe these are the strongest arguments against Rome—if they can be maintained. They have been upheld by many and are much harder to refute in the Roman debate than those of any other religious group."
"For myself, I found I could not hold them. I left them. From the time I began to suspect their unsoundness, I ceased to put them forward. When I was fairly sure of their unsoundness, I gave up my Living. When I was fully confident that the Church of Rome was the only true Church, I joined her.
"For me, I realized I couldn't keep them. I stepped away from them. Once I started to doubt their validity, I stopped promoting them. When I was convinced of their flaws, I abandoned my position. When I was completely sure that the Catholic Church was the only true Church, I became a member."
"I have felt all along that Bp. Bull's theology was the only theology on which the English Church could stand. I have felt, that opposition to the Church of Rome was part of that theology; and that he who could not protest against the Church of Rome was no true divine in the English Church. I have never said, nor attempted to say, that any one in office in the English Church, whether Bishop or incumbent, could be otherwise than in hostility to the Church of Rome."
"I've always believed that Bishop Bull's theology was the only one that the English Church could rely on. I've felt that opposing the Church of Rome was a key part of that theology; anyone who couldn't stand against the Church of Rome wasn't a true theologian in the English Church. I've never claimed, nor tried to suggest, that anyone in a position in the English Church, whether a Bishop or a clergy member, could be anything other than opposed to the Church of Rome."
The Via Media then disappeared for ever, and a new Theory, made expressly for the occasion, took its place. I was pleased with my new view. I wrote to an intimate friend, Dec. 13, 1841, "I think you will give me the credit, Carissime, of not undervaluing the strength of the feelings which draw one [to Rome], and yet I am (I trust) quite clear about my duty to remain where I am; indeed, much clearer than I was some time since. If it is not presumptuous to say, I have ... a much more definite view of the promised inward Presence of Christ with us in the Sacraments now that the outward notes of it are being removed. And I am content to be with Moses in the desert, or with Elijah excommunicated from the Temple. I say this, putting things at the strongest."
The Via Media then vanished forever, and a new theory, created specifically for this situation, took its place. I was happy with my new perspective. I wrote to a close friend on December 13, 1841, "I think you’ll agree with me, dear friend, that I don’t underestimate the strong feelings that draw one [to Rome], and yet I believe (I hope) that I’m quite clear about my duty to stay where I am; in fact, I’m much clearer than I was some time ago. If it’s not too bold to say, I have ... a much clearer understanding of the promised inner presence of Christ with us in the Sacraments now that the outward signs of it are being taken away. And I’m fine being with Moses in the desert or with Elijah excluded from the Temple. I say this, making my point as strongly as possible."
However, my friends of the moderate Apostolical party, who were my friends for the very reason of my having been so moderate and Anglican myself in general tone in times past, who had stood up for Tract 90 partly from faith in me, and certainly from generous and kind feeling, and had thereby shared an obloquy which was none of theirs, were naturally surprised and offended at a line of argument, novel, and, as it appeared to them, wanton, which threw the whole controversy into confusion, stultified my former principles, and substituted, as they would consider, a sort of methodistic self-contemplation, especially abhorrent both to my nature and to my past professions, for the plain and honest tokens, as they were commonly received, of a divine mission in the Anglican Church. They could not tell whither I was going; and were still further annoyed, when I would view the reception of Tract 90 by the public and the Bishops as so grave a matter, and threw about what they considered mysterious hints of "eventualities," and would not simply say, "An Anglican I was born, and an Anglican I will die." One of my familiar friends, who was in the country at Christmas, 1841-2, reported to me the feeling that prevailed about me; and how I felt towards it will appear in the following letter of mine, written in answer:—
However, my friends from the moderate Apostolic party, who supported me because of my own moderate and Anglian stance in the past, and who defended Tract 90 partly out of faith in me and largely from generous feelings, which led them to share in the criticism that wasn’t theirs, were understandably surprised and upset by a line of argument that was new and, to them, unnecessary. This argument threw the whole controversy into chaos, undermined my previous principles, and replaced, as they would see it, the clear and honest signs of a divine mission in the Anglican Church with what they considered a kind of methodical self-reflection, particularly distasteful to both my character and my prior beliefs. They couldn’t understand where I was headed; they were even more irritated when I regarded the public and Bishop's reception of Tract 90 as such a serious matter and hinted at what they thought were mysterious "eventualities," instead of simply stating, “I was born an Anglican, and I will die an Anglican.” One of my close friends, who was in the country during Christmas of 1841-2, reported back to me about the prevailing sentiment regarding me; how I felt about it is expressed in the following letter I wrote in response:—
"Oriel, Dec. 24, 1841. Carissime, you cannot tell how sad your account of Moberly has made me. His view of the sinfulness of the decrees of Trent is as much against union of Churches as against individual conversions. To tell the truth, I never have examined those decrees with this object, and have no view; but that is very different from having a deliberate view against them. Could not he say which they are? I suppose Transubstantiation is one. A. B., though of course he would not like to have it repeated, does not scruple at that. I have not my mind clear. Moberly must recollect that Palmer thinks they all bear a Catholic interpretation. For myself, this only I see, that there is indefinitely more in the Fathers against our own state of alienation from Christendom than against the Tridentine Decrees.
"Oriel, Dec. 24, 1841. Dearest, you can’t imagine how sad your account of Moberly has made me. His perspective on the sinfulness of the decrees of Trent clearly stands against the union of Churches as much as it does against individual conversions. Honestly, I’ve never examined those decrees with this in mind, and I don’t have a specific viewpoint; but that’s very different from having a clear opposition to them. Couldn’t he specify which ones he means? I assume Transubstantiation is one. A. B., even though he wouldn’t want it repeated, doesn’t have a problem with that. I’m confused. Moberly must remember that Palmer believes they all have a Catholic interpretation. For my part, I only see that there is much more in the Fathers against our own state of being disconnected from Christendom than against the Tridentine Decrees."
"The only thing I can think of [that I can have said] is this, that there were persons who, if our Church committed herself to heresy, sooner than think that there was no Church anywhere, would believe the Roman to be the Church; and therefore would on faith accept what they could not otherwise acquiesce in. I suppose, it would be no relief to him to insist upon the circumstance that there is no immediate danger. Individuals can never be answered for of course; but I should think lightly of that man, who, for some act of the Bishops, should all at once leave the Church. Now, considering how the Clergy really are improving, considering that this row is even making them read the Tracts, is it not possible we may all be in a better state of mind seven years hence to consider these matters? and may we not leave them meanwhile to the will of Providence? I cannot believe this work has been of man; God has a right to His own work, to do what He will with it. May we not try to leave it in His hands, and be content?
"The only thing I can say is this: there are people who, if our Church went into heresy, would sooner believe that the Roman Church is the true Church than think there was no Church anywhere. They would accept on faith what they could not otherwise agree with. I doubt it would comfort him to point out that there’s no immediate danger. Individuals can't really be held accountable, of course; but I would think less of a man who would suddenly leave the Church over some action by the Bishops. Now, considering how the Clergy are genuinely improving, and that this conflict is even making them read the Tracts, isn't it possible that we might all be in a better mindset to think about these issues seven years from now? Shouldn’t we leave them for now to the will of Providence? I can't believe this work is purely human. God has a right to His work and can do what He wants with it. Can we try to leave it in His hands and be at peace with that?"
"If you learn anything about Barter, which leads you to think that I can relieve him by a letter, let me know. The truth is this—our good friends do not read the Fathers; they assent to us from the common sense of the case: then, when the Fathers, and we, say more than their common sense, they are dreadfully shocked.
"If you find out anything about Barter that makes you think I can help him with a letter, please let me know. The truth is this—our good friends don’t read the Fathers; they agree with us based on common sense. But then, when the Fathers, and we, say more than what makes sense to them, they are extremely shocked."
"The Bishop of London has rejected a man, 1. For holding any Sacrifice in the Eucharist. 2. The Real Presence. 3. That there is a grace in Ordination.[4]
"The Bishop of London has turned down a man, 1. For conducting any Sacrifice in the Eucharist. 2. The Real Presence. 3. That there is a grace in Ordination.[4]
"Are we quite sure that the Bishops will not be drawing up some stringent declarations of faith? is this what Moberly fears? Would the Bishop of Oxford accept them? If so, I should be driven into the Refuge for the Destitute [Littlemore]. But I promise Moberly, I would do my utmost to catch all dangerous persons and clap them into confinement there."
"Are we really sure that the Bishops won't be drafting some strict statements of faith? Is this what Moberly is worried about? Would the Bishop of Oxford agree to them? If that's the case, I'd have to find my way to the Refuge for the Destitute [Littlemore]. But I promise Moberly, I'd do my best to identify all the dangerous people and lock them up there."
Christmas Day, 1841. "I have been dreaming of Moberly all night. Should not he and the like see, that it is unwise, unfair, and impatient to ask others, What will you do under circumstances, which have not, which may never come? Why bring fear, suspicion, and disunion into the camp about things which are merely in posse? Natural, and exceedingly kind as Barter's and another friend's letters were, I think they have done great harm. I speak most sincerely when I say, that there are things which I neither contemplate, nor wish to contemplate; but, when I am asked about them ten times, at length I begin to contemplate them.
Christmas Day, 1841. "I've been dreaming about Moberly all night. Shouldn't he and people like him realize that it’s unwise, unfair, and impatient to ask others, ‘What will you do in situations that haven’t happened yet and might never happen?’ Why introduce fear, doubt, and division into the group over things that are just in posse? As natural and incredibly kind as Barter's and another friend's letters were, I believe they’ve caused a lot of harm. I genuinely mean it when I say there are things I neither think about nor want to think about; but when I get asked about them ten times, eventually I start to think about them."
"He surely does not mean to say, that nothing could separate a man from the English Church, e.g. its avowing Socinianism; its holding the Holy Eucharist in a Socinian sense. Yet, he would say, it was not right to contemplate such things.
"He can’t seriously claim that nothing could keep a person from the English Church, like for instance, it promoting Socinianism or interpreting the Holy Eucharist in a Socinian way. Still, he would argue that it’s not right to even think about such things."
"Again, our case is [diverging] from that of Ken's. To say nothing of the last miserable century, which has given us to start from a much lower level and with much less to spare than a Churchman in the 17th century, questions of doctrine are now coming in; with him, it was a question of discipline.
"Once more, our situation is different from Ken's. Not to mention the last awful century, which has left us starting from a much lower point and with much less to work with than a Churchman in the 17th century, we are now facing questions of doctrine; for him, it was mainly about discipline."
"If such dreadful events were realised, I cannot help thinking we should all be vastly more agreed than we think now. Indeed, is it possible (humanly speaking) that those, who have so much the same heart, should widely differ? But let this be considered, as to alternatives. What communion could we join? Could the Scotch or American sanction the presence of its Bishops and congregations in England, without incurring the imputation of schism, unless indeed (and is that likely?) they denounced the English as heretical?
"If such terrible events were to happen, I can’t help but think we would all be much more in agreement than we realize now. Is it really possible, in human terms, for people who share so much of the same heart to differ so widely? But let’s consider the alternatives. What communion could we join? Would the Scottish or American churches accept the presence of their Bishops and congregations in England without being accused of schism, unless, of course (and is that likely?), they labeled the English as heretical?"
"Is not this a time of strange providences? is it not our safest course, without looking to consequences, to do simply what we think right day by day? shall we not be sure to go wrong, if we attempt to trace by anticipation the course of divine Providence?
"Isn't this a time of unusual events? Isn't it our best option, without worrying about the outcomes, to just do what we think is right every day? Won't we surely go astray if we try to predict the path of divine Providence?"
"Has not all our misery, as a Church, arisen from people being afraid to look difficulties in the face? They have palliated acts, when they should have denounced them. There is that good fellow, Worcester Palmer, can whitewash the Ecclesiastical Commission and the Jerusalem Bishopric. And what is the consequence? that our Church has, through centuries, ever been sinking lower and lower, till good part of its pretensions and professions is a mere sham, though it be a duty to make the best of what we have received. Yet, though bound to make the best of other men's shams, let us not incur any of our own. The truest friends of our Church are they, who say boldly when her rulers are going wrong, and the consequences; and (to speak catachrestically) they are most likely to die in the Church, who are, under these black circumstances, most prepared to leave it.
"Hasn't all our misery as a Church come from people being afraid to confront difficulties? They've downplayed issues when they should have spoken out against them. There’s that nice guy, Worcester Palmer, who can cover up the Ecclesiastical Commission and the Jerusalem Bishopric. And what’s the result? Our Church has been sinking lower and lower for centuries, to the point where a lot of its claims and beliefs are just a facade, even though we have a duty to make the best of what we've been given. Yet, while we should strive to make the best of other people's facades, let's not create any of our own. The true friends of our Church are those who boldly point out when its leaders are making mistakes and what the repercussions are; ironically, those most ready to leave the Church under these dark circumstances are often the ones most likely to stay."
"And I will add, that, considering the traces of God's grace which surround us, I am very sanguine, or rather confident (if it is right so to speak), that our prayers and our alms will come up as a memorial before God, and that all this miserable confusion tends to good.
"And I’ll add that, looking at the signs of God’s grace around us, I feel very hopeful, or rather confident (if it’s okay to say that), that our prayers and our donations will be remembered by God, and that all this terrible chaos is ultimately for the good."
"Let us not then be anxious, and anticipate differences in prospect, when we agree in the present.
"Let's not worry and expect disagreements in the future when we are in agreement right now."
"P.S. I think, when friends [i.e. the extreme party] get over their first unsettlement of mind and consequent vague apprehensions, which the new attitude of the Bishops, and our feelings upon it, have brought about, they will get contented and satisfied. They will see that they exaggerated things.... Of course it would have been wrong to anticipate what one's feelings would be under such a painful contingency as the Bishops' charging as they have done—so it seems to me nobody's fault. Nor is it wonderful that others" [moderate men] "are startled" [i.e. at my Protest, etc. etc.]; "yet they should recollect that the more implicit the reverence one pays to a Bishop, the more keen will be one's perception of heresy in him. The cord is binding and compelling, till it snaps.
"P.S. I think that when friends [i.e. the extreme party] get past their initial confusion and the vague worries that the Bishops' new stance and our reactions to it have caused, they will feel more at ease and satisfied. They will realize that they blew things out of proportion... Of course, it would have been wrong to predict how one would feel in such a painful situation as the Bishops' accusations—so it seems to me that it's nobody's fault. It’s not surprising that others [moderate men] are taken aback [i.e. by my Protest, etc. etc.]; yet they should remember that the more respect one has for a Bishop, the more sensitive one will be to heresy in them. The bond is strong and binding, until it breaks."
"Men of reflection would have seen this, if they had looked that way. Last spring, a very high churchman talked to me of resisting my Bishop, of asking him for the Canons under which he acted, and so forth; but those, who have cultivated a loyal feeling towards their superiors, are the most loving servants, or the most zealous protestors. If others became so too, if the clergy of Chester denounced the heresy of their diocesan, they would be doing their duty, and relieving themselves of the share which they otherwise have in any possible defection of their brethren."
"Thinking men would have noticed this if they had considered it. Last spring, a high-ranking church official talked to me about opposing my Bishop and asking him for the rules he was following, and so on; but those who have developed a sense of loyalty towards their superiors are either the most devoted servants or the most passionate protesters. If others felt the same way, if the clergy of Chester condemned the heresy of their Bishop, they would be fulfilling their duty and freeing themselves from any responsibility for their fellow clergy's potential failings."
"St. Stephen's [December 26]. How I fidget! I now fear that the note I wrote yesterday only makes matters worse by disclosing too much. This is always my great difficulty.
"St. Stephen's [December 26]. I can't stop fidgeting! Now I'm worried that the note I wrote yesterday just makes things worse by revealing too much. This has always been my biggest challenge."
"In the present state of excitement on both sides, I think of leaving out altogether my reassertion of No. 90 in my Preface to Volume 6, and merely saying, 'As many false reports are at this time in circulation about him, he hopes his well-wishers will take this Volume as an indication of his real thoughts and feelings: those who are not, he leaves in God's hand to bring them to a better mind in His own time.' What do you say to the logic, sentiment, and propriety of this?"
"In the current atmosphere of excitement on both sides, I’m considering skipping my restatement of No. 90 in my Preface to Volume 6, and just saying, ‘Since there are many false rumors going around about him right now, he hopes his supporters will see this Volume as a reflection of his true thoughts and feelings: those who don’t, he leaves in God’s hands to guide them to a better understanding in His own time.’ What do you think of the logic, sentiment, and appropriateness of this?"
There was one very old friend, at a distance from Oxford, afterwards a Catholic, now dead some years, who must have said something to me, I do not know what, which challenged a frank reply; for I disclosed to him, I do not know in what words, my frightful suspicion, hitherto only known to two persons, as regards my Anglicanism, perhaps I might break down in the event, that perhaps we were both out of the Church. He answered me thus, under date of Jan. 29, 1842: "I don't think that I ever was so shocked by any communication, which was ever made to me, as by your letter of this morning. It has quite unnerved me.... I cannot but write to you, though I am at a loss where to begin ... I know of no act by which we have dissevered ourselves from the communion of the Church Universal.... The more I study Scripture, the more am I impressed with the resemblance between the Romish principle in the Church and the Babylon of St. John.... I am ready to grieve that I ever directed my thoughts to theology, if it is indeed so uncertain, as your doubts seem to indicate."
There was one very old friend, living far from Oxford, who later became a Catholic and passed away a few years ago. He must have said something to me, though I can't remember what, that provoked an honest response; so I shared with him, in words I can't recall, my intense suspicion—only known to two people before—that maybe I could falter and that perhaps we were both outside the Church. He replied to me on January 29, 1842: "I don't think I've ever been as shocked by anything anyone has ever communicated to me as I was by your letter this morning. It's completely thrown me off balance.... I have to write to you, although I'm not sure where to start ... I know of no action by which we have separated ourselves from the communion of the Universal Church.... The more I study scripture, the more I’m struck by the similarity between the Roman principle in the Church and the Babylon of St. John.... I would almost regret ever thinking about theology if it truly is as uncertain as your doubts suggest."
While my old and true friends were thus in trouble about me, I suppose they felt not only anxiety but pain, to see that I was gradually surrendering myself to the influence of others, who had not their own claims upon me, younger men, and of a cast of mind uncongenial to my own. A new school of thought was rising, as is usual in such movements, and was sweeping the original party of the movement aside, and was taking its place. The most prominent person in it, was a man of elegant genius, of classical mind, of rare talent in literary composition:—Mr. Oakeley. He was not far from my own age; I had long known him, though of late years he had not been in residence at Oxford; and quite lately, he has been taking several signal occasions of renewing that kindness, which he ever showed towards me when we were both in the Anglican Church. His tone of mind was not unlike that which gave a character to the early movement; he was almost a typical Oxford man, and, as far as I recollect, both in political and ecclesiastical views, would have been of one spirit with the Oriel party of 1826-1833. But he had entered late into the Movement; he did not know its first years; and, beginning with a new start, he was naturally thrown together with that body of eager, acute, resolute minds who had begun their Catholic life about the same time as he, who knew nothing about the Via Media, but had heard much about Rome. This new party rapidly formed and increased, in and out of Oxford, and, as it so happened, contemporaneously with that very summer, when I received so serious a blow to my ecclesiastical views from the study of the Monophysite controversy. These men cut into the original Movement at an angle, fell across its line of thought, and then set about turning that line in its own direction. They were most of them keenly religious men, with a true concern for their souls as the first matter of all, with a great zeal for me, but giving little certainty at the time as to which way they would ultimately turn. Some in the event have remained firm to Anglicanism, some have become Catholics, and some have found a refuge in Liberalism. Nothing was clearer concerning them, than that they needed to be kept in order; and on me who had had so much to do with the making of them, that duty was as clearly incumbent; and it is equally clear, from what I have already said, that I was just the person, above all others, who could not undertake it. There are no friends like old friends; but of those old friends, few could help me, few could understand me, many were annoyed with me, some were angry, because I was breaking up a compact party, and some, as a matter of conscience, could not listen to me. I said, bitterly, "You are throwing me on others, whether I will or no." Yet still I had good and true friends around me of the old sort, in and out of Oxford too. But on the other hand, though I neither was so fond of the persons, nor of the methods of thought, which belonged to this new school, excepting two or three men, as of the old set, though I could not trust in their firmness of purpose, for, like a swarm of flies, they might come and go, and at length be divided and dissipated, yet I had an intense sympathy in their object and in the direction of their path, in spite of my old friends, in spite of my old life-long prejudices. In spite of my ingrained fears of Rome, and the decision of my reason and conscience against her usages, in spite of my affection for Oxford and Oriel, yet I had a secret longing love of Rome the author of English Christianity, and I had a true devotion to the Blessed Virgin, in whose College I lived, whose altar I served, and whose immaculate purity I had in one of my earliest printed Sermons made much of. And it was the consciousness of this bias in myself, if it is so to be called, which made me preach so earnestly against the danger of being swayed by our sympathy rather than our reason in religious inquiry. And moreover, the members of this new school looked up to me, as I have said, and did me true kindnesses, and really loved me, and stood by me in trouble, when others went away, and for all this I was grateful; nay, many of them were in trouble themselves, and in the same boat with me, and that was a further cause of sympathy between us; and hence it was, when the new school came on in force, and into collision with the old, I had not the heart, any more than the power, to repel them; I was in great perplexity, and hardly knew where I stood; I took their part: and, when I wanted to be in peace and silence, I had to speak out, and I incurred the charge of weakness from some men, and of mysteriousness, shuffling, and underhand dealing from the majority.
While my old and true friends were worried about me, I imagine they felt not just anxious but also hurt to see that I was slowly giving in to the influence of others who had no real claims on me—younger guys whose mindset didn't align with my own. A new way of thinking was emerging, as often happens during such changes, pushing aside the original group and taking its place. The most notable figure in this new movement was a man of refined genius, a classical thinker, and someone with remarkable literary talent: Mr. Oakeley. He was close to my age, and I had known him for a long time, although he hadn’t been at Oxford in recent years. He had just begun to reach out again, renewing the kindness he always showed me when we were both in the Anglican Church. His mindset resembled that of the early movement; he was almost a typical Oxford man and, as far as I recall, shared similar political and religious views with the Oriel party of 1826-1833. However, he had joined the Movement later; he missed its early years and started fresh with a group of eager, sharp, determined minds who began their Catholic journeys around the same time he did—people who knew nothing about the Via Media but had heard plenty about Rome. This new group quickly formed and grew, both in and out of Oxford, coinciding with that very summer when I faced a serious challenge to my religious views from studying the Monophysite controversy. These people intersected with the original Movement at an angle, disrupted its lines of thought, and attempted to redirect that thought in their own way. Most of them were deeply religious individuals, genuinely concerned for their souls as their primary focus, and were very enthusiastic about me, but at that time, it was uncertain which direction they would ultimately take. Some ended up staying loyal to Anglicanism, others became Catholics, and some found comfort in Liberalism. What was clear was that they needed guidance, and since I had been heavily involved in shaping them, that responsibility fell to me; it was equally evident, from what I’ve mentioned already, that I was the last person who could handle it. There are no friends quite like old friends; however, among those old friends, few could actually help me, few understood me, many were frustrated with me, some were angry because I was dismantling a cohesive group, and some, due to personal convictions, couldn’t listen to me. I remarked, bitterly, "You are leaving me to others, whether I like it or not." Still, I had loyal, true friends from the old days, both in and out of Oxford. On the flip side, even though I wasn't particularly fond of the people or the thought processes of this new school—apart from a couple of guys—like I was with the old group, and even though I couldn’t rely on their determination, because, like a swarm of flies, they could come and go and eventually split apart, I still felt a strong connection to their goals and the direction they were taking, despite my long-standing friends and lifelong biases. Despite my deep-seated fears of Rome and my reason and conscience urging me against its practices, despite my affection for Oxford and Oriel, I secretly cherished a love for Rome—the source of English Christianity—and I had a true devotion to the Blessed Virgin, living in her college, serving at her altar, and emphasizing her immaculate purity in one of my earliest published sermons. It was this awareness of my own bias, if that’s what you want to call it, that led me to preach so passionately against the danger of allowing our feelings to guide us rather than our reason in matters of faith. Moreover, the members of this new school looked up to me, as I mentioned before, and showed me genuine kindness; they really cared for me and stood by me during tough times when others walked away, and for all this, I felt grateful. Many of them faced their own struggles and were in the same boat as I was, which further deepened our bond. So, when the new school gained strength and clashed with the old, I didn’t have the heart or the ability to push them away; I was quite confused and barely knew where I stood. I sided with them, and when I wanted peace and quiet, I felt compelled to speak up, incurring accusations of weakness from some and of being mysterious, evasive, and deceitful from the majority.
Now I will say here frankly, that this sort of charge is a matter which I cannot properly meet, because I cannot duly realise it. I have never had any suspicion of my own honesty; and, when men say that I was dishonest, I cannot grasp the accusation as a distinct conception, such as it is possible to encounter. If a man said to me, "On such a day and before such persons you said a thing was white, when it was black," I understand what is meant well enough, and I can set myself to prove an alibi or to explain the mistake; or if a man said to me, "You tried to gain me over to your party, intending to take me with you to Rome, but you did not succeed," I can give him the lie, and lay down an assertion of my own as firm and as exact as his, that not from the time that I was first unsettled, did I ever attempt to gain any one over to myself or to my Romanizing opinions, and that it is only his own coxcombical fancy which has bred such a thought in him: but my imagination is at a loss in presence of those vague charges, which have commonly been brought against me, charges, which are made up of impressions, and understandings, and inferences, and hearsay, and surmises. Accordingly, I shall not make the attempt, for, in doing so, I should be dealing blows in the air; what I shall attempt is to state what I know of myself and what I recollect, and leave its application to others.
Now I’ll be honest here: I can’t really respond to this kind of accusation because I can’t truly understand it. I’ve never doubted my own honesty, and when people say I was dishonest, I can’t grasp the accusation as something clear and specific. If someone told me, “On such a day and in front of such people, you said something was white when it was actually black,” I get what that means well enough, and I can work to prove an alibi or explain the mistake. Or if someone said to me, “You tried to sway me to your side, planning to take me to Rome, but you didn’t succeed,” I can refute that and assert just as firmly that ever since I first felt uncertain, I never tried to sway anyone to my views or my interest in Roman ideas, and it’s only his own silly imagination that created such a thought. But when it comes to those vague accusations that are often thrown at me, which are based on impressions, interpretations, rumors, and guesses, I find myself lost. Therefore, I won’t even try, because it would just be like swinging at nothing; instead, I’ll share what I know about myself and what I remember, and I’ll let others interpret it as they wish.
While I had confidence in the Via Media, and thought that nothing could overset it, I did not mind laying down large principles, which I saw would go further than was commonly perceived. I considered that to make the Via Media concrete and substantive, it must be much more than it was in outline; that the Anglican Church must have a ceremonial, a ritual, and a fulness of doctrine and devotion, which it had not at present, if it were to compete with the Roman Church with any prospect of success. Such additions would not remove it from its proper basis, but would merely strengthen and beautify it: such, for instance, would be confraternities, particular devotions, reverence for the Blessed Virgin, prayers for the dead, beautiful churches, rich offerings to them and in them, monastic houses, and many other observances and institutions, which I used to say belonged to us as much as to Rome, though Rome had appropriated them, and boasted of them, by reason of our having let them slip from us. The principle, on which all this turned, is brought out in one of the letters I published on occasion of Tract 90. "The age is moving," I said, "towards something; and most unhappily the one religious communion among us, which has of late years been practically in possession of this something, is the Church of Rome. She alone, amid all the errors and evils of her practical system, has given free scope to the feelings of awe, mystery, tenderness, reverence, devotedness, and other feelings which may be especially called Catholic. The question then is, whether we shall give them up to the Roman Church or claim them for ourselves.... But if we do give them up, we must give up the men who cherish them. We must consent either to give up the men, or to admit their principles." With these feelings I frankly admit, that, while I was working simply for the sake of the Anglican Church, I did not at all mind, though I found myself laying down principles in its defence, which went beyond that particular defence which high-and-dry men thought perfection, and though I ended in framing a sort of defence, which they might call a revolution, while I thought it a restoration. Thus, for illustration, I might discourse upon the "Communion of Saints" in such a manner, (though I do not recollect doing so) as might lead the way towards devotion to the Blessed Virgin and the saints on the one hand, and towards prayers for the dead on the other. In a memorandum of the year 1844 or 1845, I thus speak on this subject: "If the Church be not defended on establishment grounds, it must be upon principles, which go far beyond their immediate object. Sometimes I saw these further results, sometimes not. Though I saw them, I sometimes did not say that I saw them; so long as I thought they were inconsistent, not with our Church, but only with the existing opinions, I was not unwilling to insinuate truths into our Church, which I thought had a right to be there."
While I believed in the Via Media and thought it was unshakeable, I was okay with establishing broad principles that I knew would extend further than most realized. I believed that to make the Via Media real and substantial, it needed to encompass much more than just its outline; the Anglican Church had to incorporate ceremony, ritual, and a richness of doctrine and devotion that it lacked at that time if it wanted to stand a chance against the Roman Church. Adding these elements wouldn’t undermine its foundation but would instead reinforce and beautify it: for example, confraternities, specific devotions, reverence for the Blessed Virgin, prayers for the dead, beautiful churches, generous offerings, monastic houses, and many other practices and institutions that I used to argue were as much ours as they were Rome's, even though Rome claimed them and flaunted them because we let them go. The principle behind all this is highlighted in one of the letters I published regarding Tract 90. "The age is moving," I said, "towards something; and unfortunately, the only religious community among us that has recently claimed this something is the Roman Church. She alone, amidst all the errors and problems of her practical system, has allowed space for feelings of awe, mystery, tenderness, reverence, devotion, and other sentiments that can be specifically labeled as Catholic. The question is, will we surrender these feelings to the Roman Church or claim them for ourselves.... But if we do surrender them, we must also let go of the people who hold onto them. We have to choose either to give up the people or to accept their principles." With these thoughts in mind, I openly admit that, while I was working for the sake of the Anglican Church, I didn’t mind laying down principles in its defense that extended beyond what dry traditionalists considered perfect, and though I ended up creating a defense they might label as revolutionary, I viewed it as a restoration. For instance, I might discuss the "Communion of Saints" in a way (though I don’t recall doing so) that could lead toward devotion to the Blessed Virgin and the saints on one hand, and prayers for the dead on the other. In a memo from 1844 or 1845, I addressed this topic: "If the Church is not defended on foundational grounds, it must be on principles that go well beyond their immediate goals. Sometimes I recognized these further implications; sometimes I didn’t. Even when I did see them, I didn’t always express that I did; as long as I thought they conflicted with existing opinions—not with our Church itself—I was willing to suggest truths to our Church that I believed had a right to be there."
To so much I confess; but I do not confess, I simply deny that I ever said anything which secretly bore against the Church of England, knowing it myself, in order that others might unwarily accept it. It was indeed one of my great difficulties and causes of reserve, as time went on, that I at length recognised in principles which I had honestly preached as if Anglican, conclusions favourable to the Roman Church. Of course I did not like to confess this; and, when interrogated, was in consequence in perplexity. The prime instance of this was the appeal to Antiquity; St. Leo had overset, in my own judgment, its force in the special argument for Anglicanism; yet I was committed to Antiquity, together with the whole Anglican school; what then was I to say, when acute minds urged this or that application of it against the Via Media? it was impossible that, in such circumstances, any answer could be given which was not unsatisfactory, or any behaviour adopted which was not mysterious. Again, sometimes in what I wrote I went just as far as I saw, and could as little say more, as I could see what is below the horizon; and therefore, when asked as to the consequences of what I had said, had no answer to give. Again, sometimes when I was asked, whether certain conclusions did not follow from a certain principle, I might not be able to tell at the moment, especially if the matter were complicated; and for this reason, if for no other, because there is great difference between a conclusion in the abstract and a conclusion in the concrete, and because a conclusion may be modified in fact by a conclusion from some opposite principle. Or it might so happen that I got simply confused, by the very clearness of the logic which was administered to me, and thus gave my sanction to conclusions which really were not mine; and when the report of those conclusions came round to me through others, I had to unsay them. And then again, perhaps I did not like to see men scared or scandalised by unfeeling logical inferences, which would not have touched them to the day of their death, had they not been made to eat them. And then I felt altogether the force of the maxim of St. Ambrose, "Non in dialecticâ complacuit Deo salvum facere populum suum;"—I had a great dislike of paper logic. For myself, it was not logic that carried me on; as well might one say that the quicksilver in the barometer changes the weather. It is the concrete being that reasons; pass a number of years, and I find my mind in a new place; how? the whole man moves; paper logic is but the record of it. All the logic in the world would not have made me move faster towards Rome than I did; as well might you say that I have arrived at the end of my journey, because I see the village church before me, as venture to assert that the miles, over which my soul had to pass before it got to Rome, could be annihilated, even though I had had some far clearer view than I then had, that Rome was my ultimate destination. Great acts take time. At least this is what I felt in my own case; and therefore to come to me with methods of logic, had in it the nature of a provocation, and, though I do not think I ever showed it, made me somewhat indifferent how I met them, and perhaps led me, as a means of relieving my impatience, to be mysterious or irrelevant, or to give in because I could not reply. And a greater trouble still than these logical mazes, was the introduction of logic into every subject whatever, so far, that is, as it was done. Before I was at Oriel, I recollect an acquaintance saying to me that "the Oriel Common Room stank of Logic." One is not at all pleased when poetry, or eloquence, or devotion, is considered as if chiefly intended to feed syllogisms. Now, in saying all this, I am saying nothing against the deep piety and earnestness which were characteristics of this second phase of the Movement, in which I have taken so prominent a part. What I have been observing is, that this phase had a tendency to bewilder and to upset me, and, that instead of saying so, as I ought to have done, in a sort of easiness, for what I know, I gave answers at random, which have led to my appearing close or inconsistent.
I admit a lot; however, I deny ever saying anything that I knew could undermine the Church of England, just so that others might unwittingly accept it. It became one of my major struggles and reasons for holding back, as I eventually realized that the principles I had honestly preached as Anglican included conclusions that favored the Roman Church. Naturally, I didn't want to admit this, and when pressed, I found myself confused. A prime example was the appeal to Antiquity; in my opinion, St. Leo had undermined its effectiveness in supporting Anglicanism, yet I remained committed to Antiquity and the entire Anglican tradition. So, what was I supposed to say when sharp minds pointed out various applications of it against the Via Media? In such situations, there was no way I could provide an answer that wouldn’t be unsatisfactory or behave in a way that wasn’t puzzling. Sometimes, when I wrote, I could only go as far as I understood and couldn't express more than that, similar to being unable to see what's beyond the horizon; thus, when asked about the implications of my statements, I had no answer ready. Other times, if someone asked whether specific conclusions followed from a certain principle, I might not know at the moment, especially if the topic was complex; and this was true for no other reason than that there’s a significant difference between abstract conclusions and practical ones, as a conclusion can be altered by principles that oppose it. It might also happen that I became genuinely confused by the clarity of the logic presented to me, and I ended up agreeing with conclusions that weren't actually mine; then, when those conclusions were relayed back to me, I had to retract them. Additionally, I didn't want to see people shocked or offended by harsh logical deductions that wouldn’t have affected them if they hadn’t been forced to confront them. I completely understood St. Ambrose's saying, "Non in dialecticâ complacuit Deo salvum facere populum suum"; I really disliked rigid logic. For me, it wasn't logic that propelled me; it would be just as accurate to say that the mercury in a barometer changes the weather. It's the real, concrete person that reasons; after several years, I find my mind in a different state; how? The whole person has moved; paper logic merely records that change. No amount of logic could have sped up my journey towards Rome any more than it did; it's as absurd as claiming that I’ve reached my destination just because I can see the village church ahead, while neglecting the many miles my soul had to travel to get to Rome, even if I had a much clearer understanding that Rome was my ultimate goal. Significant changes take time. At least that's how I felt in my own case; thus, when approached with logical methods, it felt like a provocation, and although I don’t think I ever showed it, it left me somewhat indifferent in how I responded, possibly leading me to be vague or irrelevant, or to give in simply because I couldn’t answer. An even greater frustration than these logical complexities was the tendency to apply logic to every subject that came up, as far as it was done. Before I was at Oriel, I remember an acquaintance commenting that "the Oriel Common Room stank of Logic." It can be quite off-putting when poetry, or eloquence, or devotion is treated primarily as if they exist just to support logical arguments. In saying all this, I'm not criticizing the deep piety and sincerity that characterized this second phase of the Movement, in which I played a significant role. What I’ve been pointing out is that this phase tended to confuse and unsettle me, and instead of expressing that, as I should have, I often gave random answers that made me come across as close-minded or inconsistent.
I have turned up two letters of this period, which in a measure illustrate what I have been saying. The first is what I said to the Bishop of Oxford on occasion of Tract 90:
I found two letters from this time that somewhat illustrate what I've been talking about. The first is what I told the Bishop of Oxford regarding Tract 90:
"March 20, 1841. No one can enter into my situation but myself. I see a great many minds working in various directions and a variety of principles with multiplied bearings; I act for the best. I sincerely think that matters would not have gone better for the Church, had I never written. And if I write I have a choice of difficulties. It is easy for those who do not enter into those difficulties to say, 'He ought to say this and not say that,' but things are wonderfully linked together, and I cannot, or rather I would not be dishonest. When persons too interrogate me, I am obliged in many cases to give an opinion, or I seem to be underhand. Keeping silence looks like artifice. And I do not like people to consult or respect me, from thinking differently of my opinions from what I know them to be. And again (to use the proverb) what is one man's food is another man's poison. All these things make my situation very difficult. But that collision must at some time ensue between members of the Church of opposite sentiments, I have long been aware. The time and mode has been in the hand of Providence; I do not mean to exclude my own great imperfections in bringing it about; yet I still feel obliged to think the Tract necessary.
March 20, 1841. No one understands my situation better than I do. I see many minds working in different directions and a variety of principles with complex implications; I act with the best intentions. I genuinely believe that things wouldn't have gone any better for the Church if I had never written. And if I choose to write, I face a set of challenges. It's easy for those who aren't dealing with these challenges to say, "He should say this, not that," but everything is intricately connected, and I can't, or rather, I wouldn't want to be dishonest. When people question me, I often have to give an opinion, or I risk seeming secretive. Staying silent can seem like a trick. I don't want people to seek my advice or respect me based on a misunderstanding of my opinions. Moreover, as the saying goes, what one person enjoys can be another person's poison. All these factors make my situation quite challenging. But I've been aware for a long time that a clash will eventually happen among Church members with opposing views. The timing and manner of this clash are in the hands of Providence; I don't mean to overlook my own significant flaws in making it happen, yet I still feel compelled to think that the Tract is necessary.
"Dr. Pusey has shown me your Lordship's letters to him. I am most desirous of saying in print anything which I can honestly say to remove false impressions created by the Tract."
"Dr. Pusey has shown me your Lordship's letters to him. I really want to say in print anything I can honestly share to clear up any misunderstandings created by the Tract."
The second is part of the notes of a letter sent to Dr. Pusey in the next year:
The second is part of the notes from a letter sent to Dr. Pusey the following year:
"October 16, 1842. As to my being entirely with A. B., I do not know the limits of my own opinions. If A. B. says that this or that is a development from what I have said, I cannot say Yes or No. It is plausible, it may be true. Of course the fact that the Roman Church has so developed and maintained, adds great weight to the antecedent plausibility. I cannot assert that it is not true; but I cannot, with that keen perception which some people have, appropriate it. It is a nuisance to me to be forced beyond what I can fairly accept."
"October 16, 1842. Regarding my complete alignment with A. B., I’m not sure about the boundaries of my own beliefs. If A. B. claims that this or that is a progression from what I’ve said, I can’t confidently agree or disagree. It seems reasonable, and it might be accurate. Naturally, the fact that the Roman Church has developed and sustained itself this way adds significant weight to the initial plausibility. I can’t claim it isn’t true, but I also can’t, with the sharp insight that some people possess, fully adopt it. It’s frustrating for me to be pushed beyond what I can genuinely accept."
There was another source of the perplexity with which at this time I was encompassed, and of the reserve and mysteriousness, of which it gave me the credit. After Tract 90 the Protestant world would not let me alone; they pursued me in the public journals to Littlemore. Reports of all kinds were circulated about me. "Imprimis, why did I go up to Littlemore at all? For no good purpose certainly; I dared not tell why." Why, to be sure, it was hard that I should be obliged to say to the Editors of newspapers that I went up there to say my prayers; it was hard to have to tell the world in confidence, that I had a certain doubt about the Anglican system, and could not at that moment resolve it, or say what would come of it; it was hard to have to confess that I had thought of giving up my living a year or two before, and that this was a first step to it. It was hard to have to plead, that, for what I knew, my doubts would vanish, if the newspapers would be so good as to give me time and let me alone. Who would ever dream of making the world his confidant? yet I was considered insidious, sly, dishonest, if I would not open my heart to the tender mercies of the world. But they persisted: "What was I doing at Littlemore?" Doing there? have I not retreated from you? have I not given up my position and my place? am I alone, of Englishmen, not to have the privilege to go where I will, no questions asked? am I alone to be followed about by jealous prying eyes, who note down whether I go in at a back door or at the front, and who the men are who happen to call on me in the afternoon? Cowards! if I advanced one step, you would run away; it is not you that I fear: "Di me terrent, et Jupiter hostis." It is because the Bishops still go on charging against me, though I have quite given up: it is that secret misgiving of heart which tells me that they do well, for I have neither lot nor part with them: this it is which weighs me down. I cannot walk into or out of my house, but curious eyes are upon me. Why will you not let me die in peace? Wounded brutes creep into some hole to die in, and no one grudges it them. Let me alone, I shall not trouble you long. This was the keen heavy feeling which pierced me, and, I think, these are the very words that I used to myself. I asked, in the words of a great motto, "Ubi lapsus? quid feci?" One day when I entered my house, I found a flight of undergraduates inside. Heads of houses, as mounted patrols, walked their horses round those poor cottages. Doctors of divinity dived into the hidden recesses of that private tenement uninvited, and drew domestic conclusions from what they saw there. I had thought that an Englishman's house was his castle; but the newspapers thought otherwise, and at last the matter came before my good Bishop. I insert his letter, and a portion of my reply to him:—
There was another reason for the confusion I was dealing with at that time, and for the distance and mystery that people credited me with. After Tract 90, the Protestant community wouldn’t leave me alone; they hounded me from the public newspapers all the way to Littlemore. All sorts of rumors circulated about me. "First of all, why did I go to Littlemore at all? Clearly, it couldn’t have been for anything good; I didn't dare say why." Honestly, it was tough that I had to explain to newspaper editors that I went there to pray; it was hard to privately admit that I was having doubts about the Anglican system and couldn’t resolve them at that moment or predict where they would lead; it was hard to confess that I had thought about giving up my position a year or two before and that this was a first step toward that. It was hard to plead that, for all I knew, my doubts might disappear if the newspapers would just give me some space and leave me alone. Who would ever think of making the world their confidant? Yet I was seen as sneaky, cunning, and dishonest if I wouldn’t open my heart to the world’s scrutiny. But they kept insisting: "What was I doing at Littlemore?" What was I doing there? Haven’t I retreated from you? Haven’t I given up my role and place? Am I the only Englishman who doesn’t have the right to go wherever I want without being questioned? Am I the only one followed by jealous, prying eyes who take note of whether I come in through the back door or the front, and who the visitors are that see me in the afternoon? Cowards! If I took one step forward, you would flee; it isn’t you I fear: "Di me terrent, et Jupiter hostis." It’s because the Bishops keep charging against me, even though I’ve completely withdrawn; it’s that nagging doubt in my heart telling me they’re right, as I have no connection with them: that's what weighs me down. I can’t step in or out of my house without feeling curious eyes on me. Why can’t you let me die in peace? Wounded animals find a spot to hide and die, and no one begrudges them that. Just leave me alone, I won’t trouble you for long. This was the intense, heavy sensation that pierced me, and I think these are the exact words I said to myself. I asked, in the words of a famous saying, "Ubi lapsus? quid feci?" One day when I walked into my house, I found a group of undergraduates inside. Heads of houses, like mounted patrols, circled those poor cottages. Doctors of divinity intruded into that private home uninvited and made domestic conclusions based on what they saw there. I thought an Englishman’s home was his castle; but the newspapers thought differently, and eventually, the issue came before my good Bishop. I’m including his letter, along with part of my response to him:—
"April 12, 1842. So many of the charges against yourself and your friends which I have seen in the public journals have been, within my own knowledge, false and calumnious, that I am not apt to pay much attention to what is asserted with respect to you in the newspapers.
"April 12, 1842. I've seen so many false and slanderous accusations against you and your friends in the news that I'm not inclined to take seriously what the newspapers say about you."
"In a" [newspaper], "however, of April 9, there appears a paragraph in which it is asserted, as a matter of notoriety, that a 'so-called Anglo-Catholic Monastery is in process of erection at Littlemore, and that the cells of dormitories, the chapel, the refectory, the cloisters all may be seen advancing to perfection, under the eye of a Parish Priest of the Diocese of Oxford.'
"In a" [newspaper], "however, from April 9, there is a paragraph that claims, as a well-known fact, that a 'so-called Anglo-Catholic Monastery is being built at Littlemore, and that the dormitory cells, chapel, refectory, and cloisters can all be seen progressing towards completion, under the supervision of a Parish Priest from the Diocese of Oxford.'"
"Now, as I have understood that you really are possessed of some tenements at Littlemore—as it is generally believed that they are destined for the purposes of study and devotion—and as much suspicion and jealousy are felt about the matter, I am anxious to afford you an opportunity of making me an explanation on the subject.
"Now that I understand you actually own some properties in Littlemore—since it’s widely thought they are meant for study and worship—and since there’s a lot of suspicion and jealousy regarding this, I’m eager to give you a chance to explain it to me."
"I know you too well not to be aware that you are the last man living to attempt in my Diocese a revival of the Monastic orders (in anything approaching to the Romanist sense of the term) without previous communication with me—or indeed that you should take upon yourself to originate any measure of importance without authority from the heads of the Church—and therefore I at once exonerate you from the accusation brought against you by the newspaper I have quoted, but I feel it nevertheless a duty to my Diocese and myself, as well as to you, to ask you to put it in my power to contradict what, if uncontradicted, would appear to imply a glaring invasion of all ecclesiastical discipline on your part, or of inexcusable neglect and indifference to my duties on mine."
"I know you too well not to realize that you are the last person in my Diocese who would try to revive the Monastic orders (in any sense close to the Roman Catholic interpretation) without getting in touch with me first—or that you would take it upon yourself to start any significant initiative without approval from the Church leaders. So, I clear you of the accusation made against you by the newspaper I mentioned, but I still feel it's my responsibility to my Diocese and to myself, as well as to you, to ask you to help me directly contradict what, if left unchallenged, would seem to suggest a blatant violation of all church rules on your part, or an unacceptable neglect and indifference to my responsibilities on mine."
"April 14, 1842. I am very much obliged by your Lordship's kindness in allowing me to write to you on the subject of my house at Littlemore; at the same time I feel it hard both on your Lordship and myself that the restlessness of the public mind should oblige you to require an explanation of me.
"April 14, 1842. I really appreciate your Lordship's kindness in letting me write to you about my house at Littlemore; however, I find it difficult for both you and me that the restlessness of the public should force you to ask for an explanation from me."
"It is now a whole year that I have been the subject of incessant misrepresentation. A year since I submitted entirely to your Lordship's authority; and with the intention of following out the particular act enjoined upon me, I not only stopped the series of Tracts, on which I was engaged, but withdrew from all public discussion of Church matters of the day, or what may be called ecclesiastical politics. I turned myself at once to the preparation for the Press of the translations of St. Athanasius to which I had long wished to devote myself, and I intended and intend to employ myself in the like theological studies, and in the concerns of my own parish and in practical works.
"It’s been a whole year since I became the target of constant misrepresentation. A year since I completely submitted to your Lordship’s authority; and with the aim of fulfilling the specific task required of me, I not only halted the series of Tracts I was working on, but also withdrew from all public discussions about Church issues of the day, or what you might call ecclesiastical politics. I immediately focused on preparing the translations of St. Athanasius for publication, which I had long wished to do, and I intended, and still intend, to dedicate myself to similar theological studies, to the affairs of my own parish, and to practical work."
"With the same view of personal improvement I was led more seriously to a design which had been long on my mind. For many years, at least thirteen, I have wished to give myself to a life of greater religious regularity than I have hitherto led; but it is very unpleasant to confess such a wish even to my Bishop, because it seems arrogant, and because it is committing me to a profession which may come to nothing. For what have I done that I am to be called to account by the world for my private actions, in a way in which no one else is called? Why may I not have that liberty which all others are allowed? I am often accused of being underhand and uncandid in respect to the intentions to which I have been alluding: but no one likes his own good resolutions noised about, both from mere common delicacy and from fear lest he should not be able to fulfil them. I feel it very cruel, though the parties in fault do not know what they are doing, that very sacred matters between me and my conscience are made a matter of public talk. May I take a case parallel though different? suppose a person in prospect of marriage; would he like the subject discussed in newspapers, and parties, circumstances, etc., etc., publicly demanded of him, at the penalty of being accused of craft and duplicity?
"With the same focus on personal growth, I became more serious about a plan that had been on my mind for a long time. For many years, at least thirteen, I've wanted to commit to a life of greater religious discipline than I’ve lived so far; but it's really uncomfortable to admit this even to my Bishop, as it feels arrogant, and I risk committing to something that might lead nowhere. Why should I be held accountable by the world for my personal choices in a way that others are not? Why can’t I have the same freedom that everyone else enjoys? I often get accused of being secretive and insincere about my intentions, but no one likes their good intentions broadcasted because of common courtesy and the fear of not being able to follow through. I find it very unfair, even though those responsible don’t realize what they’re doing, that very personal matters between me and my conscience become public gossip. Can I draw an analogy, even though it’s not the same? Imagine someone about to get married; would they want their situation discussed in newspapers, with all the details, demands, and circumstances made public, facing the risk of being labeled deceitful and manipulative?"
"The resolution I speak of has been taken with reference to myself alone, and has been contemplated quite independent of the co-operation of any other human being, and without reference to success or failure other than personal, and without regard to the blame or approbation of man. And being a resolution of years, and one to which I feel God has called me, and in which I am violating no rule of the Church any more than if I married, I should have to answer for it, if I did not pursue it, as a good Providence made openings for it. In pursuing it then I am thinking of myself alone, not aiming at any ecclesiastical or external effects. At the same time of course it would be a great comfort to me to know that God had put it into the hearts of others to pursue their personal edification in the same way, and unnatural not to wish to have the benefit of their presence and encouragement, or not to think it a great infringement on the rights of conscience if such personal and private resolutions were interfered with. Your Lordship will allow me to add my firm conviction that such religious resolutions are most necessary for keeping a certain class of minds firm in their allegiance to our Church; but still I can as truly say that my own reason for anything I have done has been a personal one, without which I should not have entered upon it, and which I hope to pursue whether with or without the sympathies of others pursuing a similar course." ...
"The resolution I’m talking about is purely about myself and was made independently of anyone else’s involvement. It’s not tied to success or failure in any way that concerns others, nor do I care about people’s approval or disapproval. This resolution has been years in the making, and I genuinely believe God has called me to it. I'm not breaking any Church rules; it’s like if I got married, I would be accountable for that decision if I didn’t pursue it when opportunities arose. So, in following through with this resolution, I’m focused on my own journey, without aiming for any church-related or outward outcomes. Naturally, it would mean a lot to me to know that God inspired others to seek their personal growth in a similar way, and it feels unnatural not to want their support and encouragement. It would also feel wrong if these personal commitments were interfered with. I must assert my strong belief that such religious commitments are essential for keeping certain minds loyal to our Church. Yet, I can honestly say that my motivation for everything I’ve done is deeply personal, and without that personal motive, I wouldn’t have engaged in it. I plan to pursue this path whether or not others share my journey."
"As to my intentions, I purpose to live there myself a good deal, as I have a resident curate in Oxford. In doing this, I believe I am consulting for the good of my parish, as my population at Littlemore is at least equal to that of St. Mary's in Oxford, and the whole of Littlemore is double of it. It has been very much neglected; and in providing a parsonage-house at Littlemore, as this will be, and will be called, I conceive I am doing a very great benefit to my people. At the same time it has appeared to me that a partial or temporary retirement from St. Mary's Church might be expedient under the prevailing excitement.
"As for my plans, I intend to spend a significant amount of time there myself, since I have a resident curate in Oxford. By doing this, I believe I'm looking out for the best interests of my parish, as the population in Littlemore is at least as large as that of St. Mary's in Oxford, and the entire area of Littlemore is double that size. It has been greatly overlooked; and by creating a parsonage house in Littlemore, as this will be known, I think I'm providing a major benefit to my community. At the same time, it seems to me that taking a partial or temporary break from St. Mary's Church might be wise given the current excitement."
"As to the quotation from the [newspaper] which I have not seen, your Lordship will perceive from what I have said, that no 'monastery is in process of erection;' there is no 'chapel;' no 'refectory,' hardly a dining-room or parlour. The 'cloisters' are my shed connecting the cottages. I do not understand what 'cells of dormitories' means. Of course I can repeat your Lordship's words that 'I am not attempting a revival of the Monastic Orders, in anything approaching to the Romanist sense of the term,' or 'taking on myself to originate any measure of importance without authority from the Heads of the Church.' I am attempting nothing ecclesiastical, but something personal and private, and which can only be made public, not private, by newspapers and letter-writers, in which sense the most sacred and conscientious resolves and acts may certainly be made the objects of an unmannerly and unfeeling curiosity."
"As for the quote from the [newspaper] that I haven’t seen, your Lordship will understand from what I’ve said that there is no 'monastery being built'; there’s no 'chapel'; no 'refectory,' and hardly even a dining room or parlor. The 'cloisters' are just my shed connecting the cottages. I don't quite get what 'cells of dormitories' refers to. I can certainly echo your Lordship’s remarks about 'not trying to revive the Monastic Orders in any way that resembles the Romanist meaning' or 'taking it upon myself to initiate any significant measure without approval from the Heads of the Church.' I’m not pursuing anything religious, just something personal and private, which can only become public, not private, through newspapers and letter-writers. In that sense, even the most sacred and sincere resolutions and actions can become the target of rude and insensitive curiosity."
One calumny there was which the bishop did not believe, and of which of course he had no idea of speaking. It was that I was actually in the service of the enemy. I had been already received into the Catholic Church, and was rearing at Littlemore a nest of Papists, who, like me, were to take the Anglican oaths which they did not believe, and for which they got dispensation from Rome, and thus in due time were to bring over to that unprincipled Church great numbers of the Anglican clergy and laity. Bishops gave their countenance to this imputation against me. The case was simply this:—as I made Littlemore a place of retirement for myself, so did I offer it to others. There were young men in Oxford, whose testimonials for Orders had been refused by their Colleges; there were young clergymen, who had found themselves unable from conscience to go on with their duties, and had thrown up their parochial engagements. Such men were already going straight to Rome, and I interposed; I interposed for the reasons I have given in the beginning of this portion of my narrative. I interposed from fidelity to my clerical engagements, and from duty to my Bishop; and from the interest which I was bound to take in them, and from belief that they were premature or excited. Their friends besought me to quiet them, if I could. Some of them came to live with me at Littlemore. They were laymen, or in the place of laymen. I kept some of them back for several years from being received into the Catholic Church. Even when I had given up my living, I was still bound by my duty to their parents or friends, and I did not forget still to do what I could for them. The immediate occasion of my resigning St. Mary's, was the unexpected conversion of one of them. After that, I felt it was impossible to keep my post there, for I had been unable to keep my word with my Bishop.
One rumor the bishop didn't believe, and of course he never mentioned it, was that I was actually working for the enemy. I had already joined the Catholic Church and was creating a community of Catholics at Littlemore who, like me, would take the Anglican oaths they didn't believe in and for which they received dispensation from Rome, thus eventually helping to convert many Anglican clergy and laypeople to that unprincipled Church. Bishops supported this accusation against me. The situation was simply this: as I made Littlemore a retreat for myself, I offered it to others too. There were young men in Oxford whose applications for Orders had been rejected by their Colleges; there were also young clergymen who could no longer perform their duties because of their conscience and had resigned from their parishes. These men were already heading straight to Rome, and I intervened; I intervened for the reasons I explained at the start of this part of my story. I stepped in out of loyalty to my clerical responsibilities and duty to my Bishop, feeling obligated to help them, believing their decisions were premature or made in haste. Their friends urged me to calm them down if I could. Some of them moved in with me at Littlemore. They were laymen or in a lay capacity. I held some of them back from joining the Catholic Church for several years. Even after I stepped down from my position, I still felt responsible to their parents or friends, and I continued to do what I could for them. The main reason I resigned from St. Mary's was the unexpected conversion of one of them. After that, I felt it was impossible to remain there, as I had failed to keep my promise to my Bishop.
The following letters refer, more or less, to these men, whether they were with me at Littlemore or not:—
The following letters are about these men, whether they were with me at Littlemore or not:—
1. 1843 or 1844. "I did not explain to you sufficiently the state of mind of those who were in danger. I only spoke of those who were convinced that our Church was external to the Church Catholic, though they felt it unsafe to trust their own private convictions; but there are two other states of mind; 1, that of those who are unconsciously near Rome, and whose despair about our Church would at once develop into a state of conscious approximation, or a quasi-resolution to go over; 2, those who feel they can with a safe conscience remain with us while they are allowed to testify in behalf of Catholicism, i.e. as if by such acts they were putting our Church, or at least that portion of it in which they were included, in the position of catechumens."
1. 1843 or 1844. "I didn’t fully explain the mindset of those who felt threatened. I only mentioned those who believed that our Church was separate from the Catholic Church, even though they were hesitant to rely on their personal beliefs; however, there are two other mindsets: 1, those who are unknowingly close to Rome and whose despair about our Church could quickly turn into a conscious decision or a quasi-resolution to convert; 2, those who think they can comfortably stay with us while they’re allowed to testify in support of Catholicism, i.e. as if by doing so they were placing our Church, or at least the part of it they belong to, in the role of catechumens."
2. "July 16, 1843. I assure you that I feel, with only too much sympathy, what you say. You need not be told that the whole subject of our position is a subject of anxiety to others beside yourself. It is no good attempting to offer advice, when perhaps I might raise difficulties instead of removing them. It seems to me quite a case, in which you should, as far as may be, make up your mind for yourself. Come to Littlemore by all means. We shall all rejoice in your company; and, if quiet and retirement are able, as they very likely will be, to reconcile you to things as they are, you shall have your fill of them. How distressed poor Henry Wilberforce must be! Knowing how he values you, I feel for him; but, alas! he has his own position, and every one else has his own, and the misery is that no two of us have exactly the same.
2. "July 16, 1843. I truly empathize with what you’re saying. You don’t need me to tell you that this whole situation is a source of worry for others as well as for you. There’s really no point in giving advice when I might just complicate things further. It seems to me that you should, as much as possible, come to your own conclusions. Definitely come to Littlemore. We’ll all be happy to have you with us; and if some peace and quiet can help you come to terms with everything, you’ll have plenty of that. Poor Henry Wilberforce must be so upset! Knowing how much he values you, I feel for him; but unfortunately, he has his own challenges, just like everyone else, and the sad truth is that no two of us share the same circumstances."
"It is very kind of you to be so frank and open with me, as you are; but this is a time which throws together persons who feel alike. May I without taking a liberty sign myself, yours affectionately, etc."
"It’s really nice of you to be so honest and open with me, as you are; but these are times that bring together people who share similar feelings. Can I, without overstepping, sign myself, yours affectionately, etc."
3. "1845. I am concerned to find you speak of me in a tone of distrust. If you knew me ever so little, instead of hearing of me from persons who do not know me at all, you would think differently of me, whatever you thought of my opinions. Two years since, I got your son to tell you my intention of resigning St. Mary's, before I made it public, thinking you ought to know it. When you expressed some painful feeling upon it, I told him I could not consent to his remaining here, painful as it would be to me to part with him, without your written sanction. And this you did me the favour to give.
3. "1845. I'm worried to hear you talk about me with distrust. If you knew me even a little, instead of hearing about me from people who don’t really know me, you’d have a different opinion, regardless of what you think about my views. Two years ago, I asked your son to let you know about my plan to resign from St. Mary's before making it public, thinking you should hear it from me first. When you seemed upset by this news, I told him I couldn't agree to his staying here—no matter how hard it would be for me to say goodbye—without your written approval. And you kindly provided that."
"I believe you will find that it has been merely a delicacy on your son's part, which has delayed his speaking to you about me for two months past; a delicacy, lest he should say either too much or too little about me. I have urged him several times to speak to you.
"I believe you will find that it has just been a sensitivity on your son's part that has held him back from talking to you about me for the past two months; a sensitivity, so he wouldn't say either too much or too little about me. I've encouraged him several times to talk to you."
"Nothing can be done after your letter, but to recommend him to go to A. B. (his home) at once. I am very sorry to part with him."
"After your letter, there's nothing left to do but suggest he head back home to A. B. right away. I'm really sorry to see him go."
4. The following letter is addressed to a Catholic prelate, who accused me of coldness in my conduct towards him:—
4. The following letter is addressed to a Catholic leader who accused me of being distant in my behavior towards him:—
"April 16, 1845. I was at that time in charge of a ministerial office in the English Church, with persons entrusted to me, and a Bishop to obey; how could I possibly write otherwise than I did without violating sacred obligations and betraying momentous interests which were upon me? I felt that my immediate, undeniable duty, clear if anything was clear, was to fulfil that trust. It might be right indeed to give it up, that was another thing; but it never could be right to hold it, and to act as if I did not hold it.... If you knew me, you would acquit me, I think, of having ever felt towards your Lordship an unfriendly spirit, or ever having had a shadow on my mind (as far as I dare witness about myself) of what might be called controversial rivalry or desire of getting the better, or fear lest the world should think I had got the worst, or irritation of any kind. You are too kind indeed to imply this, and yet your words lead me to say it. And now in like manner, pray believe, though I cannot explain it to you, that I am encompassed with responsibilities, so great and so various, as utterly to overcome me, unless I have mercy from Him, who all through my life has sustained and guided me, and to whom I can now submit myself, though men of all parties are thinking evil of me."
"April 16, 1845. At that time, I was in charge of a ministerial office in the English Church, responsible for those assigned to me and under the authority of a Bishop; how could I write anything else without betraying my sacred obligations and the important interests at stake? I felt that my immediate and undeniable duty, clear if anything ever was, was to fulfill that trust. It may indeed be right to give it up; that's a different matter. But it could never be right to keep it and act as if I didn't. If you knew me, I believe you would see I never harbored any unfriendly feelings toward your Lordship, nor did I ever have even a hint of what could be called rivalry, a desire to outshine, fears of being perceived as lesser, or any form of irritation. You're too kind to suggest such a thing, yet your words prompt me to clarify. Now, please believe me when I say that I am overwhelmed with responsibilities so great and varied that I would be totally defeated if it weren't for the mercy of Him who has sustained and guided me throughout my life, to whom I can now submit myself, even when people from all sides think ill of me."
5. "August 30, 1843. A. B. has suddenly conformed to the Church of Rome. He was away for three weeks. I suppose I must say in my defence, that he promised me distinctly to remain in our Church three years, before I received him here."
5. "August 30, 1843. A. B. has suddenly joined the Roman Catholic Church. He was gone for three weeks. I guess I should say in my defense that he clearly promised me he would stay in our church for three years before I welcomed him here."
Such fidelity, however, was taken in malam partem by the high Anglican authorities; they thought it insidious. I happen still to have a correspondence, in which the chief place is filled by one of the most eminent bishops of the day, a theologian and reader of the Fathers, a moderate man, who at one time was talked of as likely to have the reversion of the Primacy. A young clergyman in his diocese became a Catholic; the papers at once reported on authority from "a very high quarter," that, after his reception, "the Oxford men had been recommending him to retain his living." I had reasons for thinking that the allusion was to me, and I authorised the editor of a paper, who had inquired of me on the point, to "give it, as far as I was concerned, an unqualified contradiction;"—when from a motive of delicacy he hesitated, I added "my direct and indignant contradiction." "Whoever is the author of it, no correspondence or intercourse of any kind, direct or indirect, has passed," I continued to the Editor, "between Mr. S. and myself, since his conforming to the Church of Rome, except my formally and merely acknowledging the receipt of his letter, in which he informed me of the fact, without, as far as I recollect, my expressing any opinion upon it. You may state this as broadly as I have set it down." My denial was told to the Bishop; what took place upon it is given in a letter from which I copy. "My father showed the letter to the Bishop, who, as he laid it down, said, 'Ah, those Oxford men are not ingenuous.' 'How do you mean?' I asked my father. 'Why,' said the Bishop, 'they advised Mr. B. S. to retain his living after he turned Catholic. I know that to be a fact, because A. B. told me so.'" "The Bishop," continues the letter, "who is perhaps the most influential man in reality on the bench, evidently believes it to be the truth." Dr. Pusey too wrote for me to the Bishop; and the Bishop instantly beat a retreat. "I have the honour," he says in the autograph which I transcribe, "to acknowledge the receipt of your note, and to say in reply that it has not been stated by me (though such a statement has, I believe, appeared in some of the Public Prints), that Mr. Newman had advised Mr. B. S. to retain his living, after he had forsaken our Church. But it has been stated to me, that Mr. Newman was in close correspondence with Mr. B. S., and, being fully aware of his state of opinions and feelings, yet advised him to continue in our communion. Allow me to add," he says to Dr. Pusey, "that neither your name, nor that of Mr. Keble, was mentioned to me in connection with that of Mr. B. S."
Such loyalty, however, was viewed negatively by the high Anglican authorities; they thought it was deceitful. I still happen to have a correspondence, with one of the most prominent bishops of the time taking center stage. He was a theologian and scholar of the Church Fathers, a moderate man, who at one point was considered a candidate for the Primacy. A young clergyman in his diocese converted to Catholicism; the papers quickly reported, citing "a very high source," that after his conversion, "the Oxford guys had been suggesting he should keep his position." I had reasons to believe this referred to me, and I authorized the editor of a paper, who had asked me about it, to state that, as far as I was concerned, it was completely false;—when, out of politeness, he hesitated, I added "my direct and strong denial." "Whoever is responsible for it, no correspondence or interaction of any kind, direct or indirect, has occurred," I continued to the editor, "between Mr. S. and myself since he joined the Roman Catholic Church, other than my formal acknowledgment of receipt of his letter informing me of that fact, without, as far as I remember, my expressing any opinion on it. You may report this as clearly as I have stated it." My denial reached the Bishop; the response is detailed in a letter from which I am quoting. "My father showed the letter to the Bishop, who, as he put it down, said, 'Ah, those Oxford guys are not straightforward.' 'What do you mean?' I asked my father. 'Well,' said the Bishop, 'they advised Mr. B. S. to keep his position after he became Catholic. I know that for a fact because A. B. told me so.'" "The Bishop," the letter continues, "who is perhaps the most influential person on the bench, clearly believes that to be true." Dr. Pusey also wrote to the Bishop on my behalf; and the Bishop immediately retreated. "I have the honor," he says in his note which I am copying, "to acknowledge the receipt of your letter, and to reply that I have not stated (though I believe such a statement has appeared in some public newspapers) that Mr. Newman advised Mr. B. S. to keep his position after he left our Church. But I have been told that Mr. Newman was in close communication with Mr. B. S., and, fully aware of his opinions and feelings, still advised him to stay in our communion. Let me add," he tells Dr. Pusey, "that neither your name nor Mr. Keble's was mentioned to me in relation to Mr. B. S."
I was not going to let the Bishop off on this evasion, so I wrote to him myself. After quoting his letter to Dr. Pusey, I continued, "I beg to trouble your Lordship with my own account of the two allegations" [close correspondence and fully aware, etc.] "which are contained in your statement, and which have led to your speaking of me in terms which I hope never to deserve. 1. Since Mr. B. S. has been in your Lordship's diocese, I have seen him in common rooms or private parties in Oxford two or three times, when I never (as far as I can recollect) had any conversation with him. During the same time I have, to the best of my memory, written to him three letters. One was lately, in acknowledgment of his informing me of his change of religion. Another was last summer, when I asked him (to no purpose) to come and stay with me in this place. The earliest of the three letters was written just a year since, as far as I recollect, and it certainly was on the subject of his joining the Church of Rome. I wrote this letter at the earnest wish of a friend of his. I cannot be sure that, on his replying, I did not send him a brief note in explanation of points in my letter which he had misapprehended. I cannot recollect any other correspondence between us.
I wasn't going to let the Bishop get away with this avoidance, so I wrote to him directly. After quoting his letter to Dr. Pusey, I continued, "I’d like to share my own account of the two claims" [close correspondence and fully aware, etc.] "that are in your statement, which have led you to describe me in ways I hope I never deserve. 1. Since Mr. B. S. has been in your Lordship's diocese, I've seen him in common rooms or private parties in Oxford two or three times, but I never (as far as I can remember) had any conversation with him. During that time, I've written him three letters to the best of my recollection. One was recently, in response to him informing me of his change of religion. Another was last summer, when I asked him (without success) to come and stay with me here. The earliest of the three letters was written about a year ago, as far as I remember, and it was definitely regarding his joining the Catholic Church. I wrote this letter at the strong request of a friend of his. I can’t be sure if, when he replied, I sent him a brief note to clarify points in my letter that he misunderstood. I don’t remember any other correspondence between us."
"2. As to my knowledge of his opinions and feelings, as far as I remember, the only point of perplexity which I knew, the only point which to this hour I know, as pressing upon him, was that of the Pope's supremacy. He professed to be searching Antiquity whether the see of Rome had formally that relation to the whole Church which Roman Catholics now assign to it. My letter was directed to the point, that it was his duty not to perplex himself with arguments on [such] a question ... and to put it altogether aside.... It is hard that I am put upon my memory, without knowing the details of the statement made against me, considering the various correspondence in which I am from time to time unavoidably engaged.... Be assured, my Lord, that there are very definite limits, beyond which persons like me would never urge another to retain preferment in the English Church, nor would retain it themselves; and that the censure which has been directed against them by so many of its Rulers has a very grave bearing upon those limits." The Bishop replied in a civil letter, and sent my own letter to his original informant, who wrote to me the letter of a gentleman. It seems that an anxious lady had said something or other which had been misinterpreted, against her real meaning, into the calumny which was circulated, and so the report vanished into thin air. I closed the correspondence with the following letter to the Bishop:—
"2. Regarding what I know about his opinions and feelings, as far as I can remember, the only issue that I knew was troubling him— and still is— was the Pope's supremacy. He claimed he was looking into whether the see of Rome formally held that relationship with the whole Church that Roman Catholics currently attribute to it. My letter aimed to point out that it was his responsibility not to overthink arguments about this matter... and to set it aside completely.... It's frustrating that I'm being asked to recall things without knowing the specifics of the accusations against me, especially since I am constantly involved in various correspondence.... Please understand, my Lord, that there are very clear limits beyond which people like me would never push someone to keep a position in the English Church, nor would they hold onto it themselves; and the criticism directed at them by many of its leaders has serious implications regarding those limits." The Bishop responded with a polite letter and forwarded my letter to his original informant, who then wrote to me a letter showing good manners. It turns out that an concerned lady had mentioned something that was misunderstood, leading to the false accusation that spread, and eventually the rumor disappeared. I concluded the correspondence with the following letter to the Bishop:—
"I hope your Lordship will believe me when I say, that statements about me, equally incorrect with that which has come to your Lordship's ears, are from time to time reported to me as credited and repeated by the highest authorities in our Church, though it is very seldom that I have the opportunity of denying them. I am obliged by your Lordship's letter to Dr. Pusey as giving me such an opportunity." Then I added, with a purpose, "Your Lordship will observe that in my Letter I had no occasion to proceed to the question, whether a person holding Roman Catholic opinions can in honesty remain in our Church. Lest then any misconception should arise from my silence, I here take the liberty of adding, that I see nothing wrong in such a person's continuing in communion with us, provided he holds no preferment or office, abstains from the management of ecclesiastical matters, and is bound by no subscription or oath to our doctrines."
"I hope you'll believe me when I say that there are statements about me, just as incorrect as the ones you've heard, that are reported to me as being believed and repeated by the highest authorities in our Church. However, I rarely get the chance to deny them. Your letter to Dr. Pusey has given me that opportunity." Then I added, intentionally, "You’ll notice that in my letter, I didn’t need to address whether someone with Roman Catholic beliefs can honestly remain in our Church. So, to avoid any misunderstanding from my silence, I’d like to say that I don’t see anything wrong with such a person staying in communion with us, as long as they hold no position of authority, refrain from managing church matters, and aren’t bound by any subscription or oath to our doctrines."
This was written on March 7, 1843, and was in anticipation of my own retirement into lay communion. This again leads me to a remark; for two years I was in lay communion, not indeed being a Catholic in my convictions, but in a state of serious doubt, and with the probable prospect of becoming some day, what as yet I was not. Under these circumstances I thought the best thing I could do was to give up duty and to throw myself into lay communion, remaining an Anglican. I could not go to Rome, while I thought what I did of the devotions she sanctioned to the Blessed Virgin and the Saints. I did not give up my fellowship, for I could not be sure that my doubts would not be reduced or overcome, however unlikely I thought such an event. But I gave up my living; and, for two years before my conversion, I took no clerical duty. My last sermon was in September, 1843; then I remained at Littlemore in quiet for two years. But it was made a subject of reproach to me at the time, and is at this day, that I did not leave the Anglican Church sooner. To me this seems a wonderful charge; why, even had I been quite sure that Rome was the true Church, the Anglican Bishops would have had no just subject of complaint against me, provided I took no Anglican oath, no clerical duty, no ecclesiastical administration. Do they force all men who go to their Churches to believe in the 39 Articles, or to join in the Athanasian Creed? However, I was to have other measure dealt to me; great authorities ruled it so; and a learned controversialist in the North thought it a shame that I did not leave the Church of England as much as ten years sooner than I did. His nephew, an Anglican clergyman, kindly wished to undeceive him on this point. So, in 1850, after some correspondence, I wrote the following letter, which will be of service to this narrative, from its chronological character:—
This was written on March 7, 1843, and was in anticipation of my own retirement into lay communion. This makes me think of something; for two years I was in lay communion, not really being a Catholic in my beliefs, but in a state of serious doubt, and with the likely chance of becoming, someday, what I wasn’t yet. In this situation, I thought the best thing to do was to give up my duties and immerse myself in lay communion while still remaining an Anglican. I couldn’t go to Rome, as I had my feelings about the devotions she endorsed to the Blessed Virgin and the Saints. I didn’t give up my fellowship, as I couldn’t be sure that my doubts wouldn’t be resolved or overcome, even though I thought it was unlikely. But I did give up my living; for two years before my conversion, I took on no clerical duties. My last sermon was in September 1843; then I stayed at Littlemore in peace for two years. But at that time, and even today, I faced criticism for not leaving the Anglican Church sooner. To me, this seems an odd accusation; I mean, even if I had been completely sure that Rome was the true Church, the Anglican Bishops wouldn’t have had any legitimate reason to complain, as long as I didn’t take any Anglican oath, perform any clerical duties, or engage in any ecclesiastical administration. Do they force everyone who attends their Churches to believe in the 39 Articles or to participate in the Athanasian Creed? However, I was to receive other treatment; great authorities saw to that; and a learned debater in the North thought it was shameful that I didn’t leave the Church of England at least ten years earlier. His nephew, an Anglican clergyman, kindly sought to inform him otherwise. So, in 1850, after some correspondence, I wrote the following letter, which will be useful for this narrative due to its chronological nature:—
"Dec. 6, 1849. Your uncle says, 'If he (Mr. N.) will declare, sans phrase, as the French say, that I have laboured under an entire mistake, and that he was not a concealed Romanist during the ten years in question' (I suppose, the last ten years of my membership with the Anglican Church), 'or during any part of the time, my controversial antipathy will be at an end, and I will readily express to him that I am truly sorry that I have made such a mistake.'
"Dec. 6, 1849. Your uncle says, 'If he (Mr. N.) will openly admit, as the French say, that I've been completely wrong, and that he was not secretly a Roman Catholic during the last ten years (I assume that refers to my time as a member of the Anglican Church), or at any other point, then my argument against him will be over, and I'll gladly tell him that I'm genuinely sorry for making that mistake.'"
"So candid an avowal is what I should have expected from a mind like your uncle's. I am extremely glad he has brought it to this issue.
"So honest a confession is what I would have expected from a mind like your uncle's. I'm really glad he has brought it to this point."
"By a 'concealed Romanist' I understand him to mean one, who, professing to belong to the Church of England, in his heart and will intends to benefit the Church of Rome, at the expense of the Church of England. He cannot mean by the expression merely a person who in fact is benefiting the Church of Rome, while he is intending to benefit the Church of England, for that is no discredit to him morally, and he (your uncle) evidently means to impute blame.
"By a 'hidden Roman Catholic,' I think he means someone who, while claiming to be part of the Church of England, secretly intends to support the Church of Rome to the detriment of the Church of England. He can't just be talking about someone who is actually helping the Church of Rome while intending to help the Church of England because that wouldn't be a moral fault, and he (your uncle) clearly intends to assign blame."
"In the sense in which I have explained the words, I can simply and honestly say that I was not a concealed Romanist during the whole, or any part of, the years in question.
"In the way I've explained it, I can honestly and clearly say that I was not secretly a Roman Catholic at any time during the years in question."
"For the first four years of the ten (up to Michaelmas, 1839) I honestly wished to benefit the Church of England, at the expense of the Church of Rome:
"For the first four years of the ten (up to Michaelmas, 1839), I genuinely wanted to help the Church of England, even if it meant hurting the Church of Rome:
"For the second four years I wished to benefit the Church of England without prejudice to the Church of Rome:
"For the next four years, I wanted to support the Church of England while still respecting the Church of Rome."
"At the beginning of the ninth year (Michaelmas, 1843) I began to despair of the Church of England, and gave up all clerical duty; and then, what I wrote and did was influenced by a mere wish not to injure it, and not by the wish to benefit it:
"At the start of the ninth year (Michaelmas, 1843), I started to lose hope in the Church of England and decided to stop all clerical duties. From then on, what I wrote and did was shaped more by a desire not to harm it rather than a desire to help it."
"At the beginning of the tenth year I distinctly contemplated leaving it, but I also distinctly told my friends that it was in my contemplation.
"At the start of the tenth year, I clearly thought about leaving it, but I also clearly told my friends that it was on my mind."
"Lastly, during the last half of that tenth year I was engaged in writing a book (Essay on Development) in favour of the Roman Church, and indirectly against the English; but even then, till it was finished, I had not absolutely intended to publish it, wishing to reserve to myself the chance of changing my mind when the argumentative views which were actuating me had been distinctly brought out before me in writing.
"Finally, during the last half of that tenth year, I was busy writing a book (Essay on Development) supporting the Roman Church and, indirectly, criticizing the English Church. However, even then, until it was completed, I didn't fully intend to publish it, wanting to keep the option open to change my mind once the arguments that were driving me were clearly laid out in writing."
"I wish this statement, which I make from memory, and without consulting any document, severely tested by my writings and doings, as I am confident it will, on the whole, be borne out, whatever real or apparent exceptions (I suspect none) have to be allowed by me in detail.
"I hope this statement, which I'm making from memory without looking at any documents, will be thoroughly examined by my writings and actions, as I'm sure it will mostly be supported, no matter what real or perceived exceptions (I doubt there are any) I may need to acknowledge in detail."
"Your uncle is at liberty to make what use he pleases of this explanation."
"Your uncle is free to use this explanation however he wants."
I have now reached an important date in my narrative, the year 1843, but before proceeding to the matters which it contains, I will insert portions of my letters from 1841 to 1843, addressed to Catholic acquaintances.
I have now reached an important date in my story, the year 1843, but before moving on to the topics it includes, I will include sections of my letters from 1841 to 1843, sent to my Catholic friends.
1. "April 8, 1841 ... The unity of the Church Catholic is very near my heart, only I do not see any prospect of it in our time; and I despair of its being effected without great sacrifices on all hands. As to resisting the Bishop's will, I observe that no point of doctrine or principle was in dispute, but a course of action, the publication of certain works. I do not think you sufficiently understood our position. I suppose you would obey the holy see in such a case; now, when we were separated from the Pope, his authority reverted to our Diocesans. Our Bishop is our Pope. It is our theory, that each diocese is an integral Church, intercommunion being a duty (and the breach of it a sin), but not essential to Catholicity. To have resisted my Bishop, would have been to place myself in an utterly false position, which I never could have recovered. Depend upon it, the strength of any party lies in its being true to its theory. Consistency is the life of a movement.
1. "April 8, 1841 ... The unity of the Catholic Church is very important to me, but I don't see any possibility of it happening in our time; and I doubt it can be achieved without significant sacrifices from everyone involved. Regarding resisting the Bishop's will, I want to point out that there was no disagreement over doctrine or principles, but rather a disagreement over specific actions, specifically the publication of certain works. I don’t think you fully understand our situation. I assume you would obey the Holy See in such a case; however, since we are separated from the Pope, his authority has returned to our Diocesans. Our Bishop is our Pope. We believe that each diocese is a complete Church, with intercommunion being a duty (and failing to do so is a sin), but not essential to being Catholic. Resisting my Bishop would have put me in a completely false position, from which I could never recover. Rest assured, the strength of any group comes from being true to its theory. Consistency is the lifeblood of a movement."
"I have no misgivings whatever that the line I have taken can be other than a prosperous one: that is, in itself, for of course Providence may refuse to us its legitimate issues for our sins.
"I have no doubts at all that the path I've chosen can only lead to success: that is, in itself, because of course, fate may withhold its rightful outcomes from us due to our mistakes."
"I am afraid, that in one respect you may be disappointed. It is my trust, though I must not be too sanguine, that we shall not have individual members of our communion going over to yours. What one's duty would be under other circumstances, what our duty ten or twenty years ago, I cannot say; but I do think that there is less of private judgment in going with one's Church, than in leaving it. I can earnestly desire a union between my Church and yours. I cannot listen to the thought of your being joined by individuals among us."
"I'm worried that in one way you might be let down. I hope, though I shouldn't be overly optimistic, that we won't see individual members of our community switching to yours. I can't say what one's responsibilities would have been in other situations, or what our duties were ten or twenty years ago; however, I believe that sticking with one's Church involves less personal judgment than leaving it. I genuinely wish for a union between my Church and yours. I can't bear the idea of individuals from our side joining yours."
2. "April 26, 1841. My only anxiety is lest your branch of the Church should not meet us by those reforms which surely are necessary. It never could be, that so large a portion of Christendom should have split off from the communion of Rome, and kept up a protest for 300 years for nothing. I think I never shall believe that so much piety and earnestness would be found among Protestants, if there were not some very grave errors on the side of Rome. To suppose the contrary is most unreal, and violates all one's notions of moral probabilities. All aberrations are founded on, and have their life in, some truth or other—and Protestantism, so widely spread and so long enduring, must have in it, and must be witness for, a great truth or much truth. That I am an advocate for Protestantism, you cannot suppose—but I am forced into a Via Media, short of Rome, as it is at present."
2. "April 26, 1841. My only worry is that your branch of the Church won’t embrace the reforms that are definitely necessary. It just can't be that such a large portion of Christendom has separated from the communion of Rome and has protested for 300 years for no reason. I can’t believe that so much devotion and seriousness exists among Protestants unless there are some very serious issues with Rome. To think otherwise is quite unrealistic and goes against all my ideas about moral probabilities. All deviations are based on, and derive their existence from, some kind of truth—and Protestantism, being so widespread and enduring for so long, must contain and testify to a significant truth or many truths. You can’t assume that I support Protestantism, but I’m being driven towards a Via Media, a middle ground, short of Rome as it stands now."
3. "May 5, 1841. While I most sincerely hold that there is in the Roman Church a traditionary system which is not necessarily connected with her essential formularies, yet, were I ever so much to change my mind on this point, this would not tend to bring me from my present position, providentially appointed in the English Church. That your communion was unassailable, would not prove that mine was indefensible. Nor would it at all affect the sense in which I receive our Articles; they would still speak against certain definite errors, though you had reformed them.
3. "May 5, 1841. While I truly believe that the Roman Church has a traditional system that isn’t necessarily linked to its core beliefs, even if I were to change my mind about that, it wouldn't change my current place in the English Church, which I feel is where I’m meant to be. Just because your church can't be criticized doesn't mean mine is beyond defense. It also wouldn’t change how I interpret our Articles; they would still address specific errors, even if you have reformed them."
"I say this lest any lurking suspicion should be left in the mind of your friends that persons who think with me are likely, by the growth of their present views, to find it imperative on them to pass over to your communion. Allow me to state strongly, that if you have any such thoughts, and proceed to act upon them, your friends will be committing a fatal mistake. We have (I trust) the principle and temper of obedience too intimately wrought into us to allow of our separating ourselves from our ecclesiastical superiors because in many points we may sympathise with others. We have too great a horror of the principle of private judgment to trust it in so immense a matter as that of changing from one communion to another. We may be cast out of our communion, or it may decree heresy to be truth—you shall say whether such contingencies are likely; but I do not see other conceivable causes of our leaving the Church in which we were baptized.
"I say this so that no lingering doubt remains in your friends' minds that people who share my views are likely to feel compelled to join your group. Let me emphasize that if you have any such thoughts and decide to act on them, your friends would be making a serious mistake. We have, I hope, a deep commitment to obedience that prevents us from separating ourselves from our church leaders simply because we may agree with others on certain issues. We have too great a fear of the idea of private judgment to trust it in such a significant matter as switching from one church to another. We might be cast out from our church, or it might decide that heresy is truth—you can decide how likely these situations are; but I don't see any other valid reasons for us to leave the Church where we were baptized."
"For myself, persons must be well acquainted with what I have written before they venture to say whether I have much changed my main opinions and cardinal views in the course of the last eight years. That my sympathies have grown towards the religion of Rome I do not deny; that my reasons for shunning her communion have lessened or altered it would be difficult perhaps to prove. And I wish to go by reason, not by feeling."
"For me, people need to be familiar with what I've written before they can claim that I've significantly changed my main opinions and core beliefs over the past eight years. I don't deny that my sympathies have shifted toward the religion of Rome; however, it might be hard to prove that my reasons for avoiding her communion have diminished or changed. I want to rely on reason, not emotions."
4. "June 18, 1841. You urge persons whose views agree with mine to commence a movement in behalf of a union between the Churches. Now in the letters I have written, I have uniformly said that I did not expect that union in our time, and have discouraged the notion of all sudden proceedings with a view to it. I must ask your leave to repeat on this occasion most distinctly, that I cannot be party to any agitation, but mean to remain quiet in my own place, and to do all I can to make others take the same course. This I conceive to be my simple duty; but, over and above this, I will not set my teeth on edge with sour grapes. I know it is quite within the range of possibilities that one or another of our people should go over to your communion; however, it would be a greater misfortune to you than grief to us. If your friends wish to put a gulf between themselves and us, let them make converts, but not else. Some months ago, I ventured to say that I felt it a painful duty to keep aloof from all Roman Catholics who came with the intention of opening negotiations for the union of the Churches: when you now urge us to petition our Bishops for a union, this, I conceive, is very like an act of negotiation."
4. "June 18, 1841. You encourage people who share my views to start a movement for a union between the Churches. In the letters I’ve written, I’ve consistently stated that I don’t expect that union to happen in our time and have discouraged any sudden actions aimed at it. I have to clearly say again, on this occasion, that I cannot be a part of any agitation and intend to stay in my own place, doing everything I can to encourage others to do the same. I see this as my simple duty; additionally, I won’t distress myself with things that don’t concern me. I know it’s possible that some of our people might join your faith; however, that would be a bigger loss for you than it would be a sorrow for us. If your friends want to create a divide between us, let them make converts, but nothing else. A few months ago, I mentioned that it felt like a painful duty to stay away from any Roman Catholics who came looking to negotiate for the union of the Churches; now, when you ask us to petition our Bishops for a union, I think this is very much like an act of negotiation."
5. I have the first sketch or draft of a letter, which I wrote to a zealous Catholic layman: it runs as follows, as I have preserved it:—September 12, 1841. "It would rejoice all Catholic minds among us, more than words can say, if you could persuade members of the Church of Rome to take the line in politics which you so earnestly advocate. Suspicion and distrust are the main causes at present of the separation between us, and the nearest approaches in doctrine will but increase the hostility, which, alas, our people feel towards yours, while these causes continue. Depend upon it, you must not rely upon our Catholic tendencies till they are removed. I am not speaking of myself, or of any friends of mine; but of our Church generally. Whatever our personal feelings may be, we shall but tend to raise and spread a rival Church to yours in the four quarters of the world, unless you do what none but you can do. Sympathies, which would flow over to the Church of Rome, as a matter of course, did she admit them, will but be developed in the consolidation of our own system, if she continues to be the object of our suspicions and fears. I wish, of course I do, that our own Church may be built up and extended, but still, not at the cost of the Church of Rome, not in opposition to it. I am sure, that, while you suffer, we suffer too from the separation; but we cannot remove the obstacles; it is with you to do so. You do not fear us; we fear you. Till we cease to fear you, we cannot love you.
5. I have the first sketch or draft of a letter, which I wrote to a passionate Catholic layman: it goes like this, as I’ve kept it:—September 12, 1841. "It would make all Catholic minds among us incredibly happy, more than words can say, if you could convince members of the Church of Rome to take the political stance that you so strongly support. Suspicion and distrust are the main reasons for the separation between us right now, and even the closest agreement in doctrine will only heighten the hostility, which, unfortunately, our people feel toward yours, as long as these reasons persist. You can count on it, you must not depend on our Catholic tendencies until they are cleared up. I’m not just talking about myself or any friends of mine; I mean our Church as a whole. Whatever our personal feelings might be, we will only end up supporting and promoting a competing Church to yours in all corners of the world, unless you take action that only you can take. Sympathy that would naturally flow to the Church of Rome, if she welcomed it, will just be channeled into strengthening our own system if she continues to be the target of our suspicions and fears. Of course, I wish for our own Church to grow and thrive, but not at the expense of the Church of Rome, and not in opposition to it. I’m sure that while you suffer, we suffer too from the separation; but we cannot remove the obstacles; it’s up to you to do that. You do not fear us; we fear you. Until we stop fearing you, we can’t truly love you."
"While you are in your present position, the friends of Catholic unity in our Church are but fulfilling the prediction of those of your body who are averse to them, viz. that they will be merely strengthening a rival communion to yours. Many of you say that we are your greatest enemies; we have said so ourselves: so we are, so we shall be, as things stand at present. We are keeping people from you, by supplying their wants in our own Church. We are keeping persons from you: do you wish us to keep them from you for a time or for ever? It rests with you to determine. I do not fear that you will succeed among us; you will not supplant our Church in the affections of the English nation; only through the English Church can you act upon the English nation. I wish of course our Church should be consolidated, with and through and in your communion, for its sake, and your sake, and for the sake of unity.
"While you're in your current position, the supporters of Catholic unity in our Church are just fulfilling the prediction from those in your group who oppose them, namely that they will only be strengthening a rival community to yours. Many of you claim that we are your greatest enemies; we have acknowledged this ourselves: so we are, and so we will remain, as things are now. We are keeping people away from you by meeting their needs within our own Church. We are indeed keeping people from you: do you want us to keep them away for a while or forever? The choice is yours. I have no doubt that you will not succeed among us; you won't replace our Church in the hearts of the English people; only through the English Church can you influence the English nation. I hope, of course, that our Church becomes strong, with and through and in your community, for its own sake, your sake, and for the sake of unity."
"Are you aware that the more serious thinkers among us are used, as far as they dare form an opinion, to regard the spirit of Liberalism as the characteristic of the destined Antichrist? In vain does any one clear the Church of Rome from the badges of Antichrist, in which Protestants would invest her, if she deliberately takes up her position in the very quarter, whither we have cast them, when we took them off from her. Antichrist is described as the ἄνομος, as exalting himself above the yoke of religion and law. The spirit of lawlessness came in with the Reformation, and Liberalism is its offspring.
"Are you aware that the more serious thinkers among us tend to see the spirit of Liberalism as a defining characteristic of the prophesied Antichrist? It’s pointless for anyone to try to clear the Roman Catholic Church of the labels of Antichrist that Protestants apply to her if she intentionally positions herself in the very place where we’ve assigned those labels after removing them from her. The Antichrist is described as the lawless, as someone who elevates himself above the authority of religion and law. The spirit of lawlessness emerged with the Reformation, and Liberalism is its offspring."
"And now I fear I am going to pain you by telling you, that you consider the approaches in doctrine on our part towards you, closer than they really are. I cannot help repeating what I have many times said in print, that your services and devotions to St. Mary in matter of fact do most deeply pain me. I am only stating it as a fact.
"And now I worry that I’m going to hurt you by saying that you see our attempts to connect with you as closer than they actually are. I can’t help but repeat what I’ve said many times in writing: your services and devotion to St. Mary truly upset me. I’m just stating it as a fact."
"Again, I have nowhere said that I can accept the decrees of Trent throughout, nor implied it. The doctrine of Transubstantiation is a great difficulty with me, as being, as I think, not primitive. Nor have I said that our Articles in all respects admit of a Roman interpretation; the very word 'Transubstantiation' is disowned in them.
"Once again, I haven't claimed that I can fully accept all the decisions made at Trent, nor have I suggested it. The idea of Transubstantiation is a major issue for me, as I believe it isn't original. I also haven't stated that our Articles can be interpreted in a Roman way in every aspect; in fact, the term 'Transubstantiation' is rejected in them."
"Thus, you see, it is not merely on grounds of expedience that we do not join you. There are positive difficulties in the way of it. And, even if there were not, we shall have no divine warrant for doing so, while we think that the Church of England is a branch of the true Church, and that intercommunion with the rest of Christendom is necessary, not for the life of a particular Church, but for its health only. I have never disguised that there are actual circumstances in the Church of Rome, which pain me much; of the removal of these I see no chance, while we join you one by one; but if our Church were prepared for a union, she might make her terms; she might gain the Cup; she might protest against the extreme honours paid to St. Mary; she might make some explanation of the doctrine of Transubstantiation. I am not prepared to say that a reform in other branches of the Roman Church would be necessary for our uniting with them, however desirable in itself, so that we were allowed to make a reform in our own country. We do not look towards Rome as believing that its communion is infallible, but that union is a duty."
"Therefore, you see, it's not just a matter of convenience that we don't join you. There are real challenges in the way. And even if there weren't, we wouldn't have any divine authority to do so, as long as we believe that the Church of England is a part of the true Church, and that communion with the rest of Christianity is necessary not for the survival of a specific Church, but for its overall health. I’ve never hidden the fact that there are genuine issues within the Church of Rome that trouble me greatly; I see no chance of resolving these while we join you one by one. However, if our Church were open to a union, it could set its own terms; it could gain the Cup; it could protest against the excessive honors given to St. Mary; it could clarify the doctrine of Transubstantiation. I'm not saying that reform in other parts of the Roman Church would be essential for us to unite with them, even though it would be desirable in itself, as long as we were allowed to reform in our own country. We do not look to Rome believing that its communion is infallible, but we see union as a duty."
The following letter was occasioned by the present of a book, from the friend to whom it is written; more will be said on the subject of it presently:—
The following letter was prompted by the gift of a book from the friend it is addressed to; more will be discussed about it shortly:—
"Nov. 22, 1842. I only wish that your Church were more known among us by such writings. You will not interest us in her, till we see her, not in politics, but in her true functions of exhorting, teaching, and guiding. I wish there were a chance of making the leading men among you understand, what I believe is no novel thought to yourself. It is not by learned discussions, or acute arguments, or reports of miracles, that the heart of England can be gained. It is by men 'approving themselves,' like the Apostle, 'ministers of Christ.'
"Nov. 22, 1842. I really wish your Church was better known among us through such writings. You won’t capture our interest until we see her, not through politics, but in her true roles of encouraging, teaching, and guiding. I hope there’s a way to help the key figures among you understand what I believe isn’t a new idea for you. It’s not through scholarly debates, clever arguments, or accounts of miracles that you can win over the heart of England. It’s through men who 'prove themselves,' like the Apostle, 'ministers of Christ.'”
"As to your question, whether the Volume you have sent is not calculated to remove my apprehensions that another gospel is substituted for the true one in your practical instructions, before I can answer it in any way, I ought to know how far the Sermons which it comprises are selected from a number, or whether they are the whole, or such as the whole, which have been published of the author's. I assure you, or at least I trust, that, if it is ever clearly brought home to me that I have been wrong in what I have said on this subject, my public avowal of that conviction will only be a question of time with me.
"Regarding your question about whether the volume you sent will ease my concerns that a different gospel is being presented instead of the true one in your practical teachings, I need to know whether the sermons it contains are selected from a larger number or if they are the complete set, or at least a part, of what the author has published. I assure you, or at least I hope, that if I ever clearly realize that I've been mistaken in what I've said on this topic, publicly acknowledging that belief will just be a matter of time for me."
"If, however, you saw our Church as we see it, you would easily understand that such a change of feeling, did it take place, would have no necessary tendency, which you seem to expect, to draw a person from the Church of England to that of Rome. There is a divine life among us, clearly manifested, in spite of all our disorders, which is as great a note of the Church, as any can be. Why should we seek our Lord's presence elsewhere, when He vouchsafes it to us where we are? What call have we to change our communion?
"If you could see our Church as we see it, you would easily understand that if a change in feeling were to happen, it wouldn't necessarily lead someone from the Church of England to the Church of Rome, as you seem to think. There is a divine life among us, clearly visible, despite all our issues, which is just as significant a marker of the Church as any. Why should we look for our Lord's presence somewhere else when He makes it known to us right where we are? What reason do we have to change our communion?"
"Roman Catholics will find this to be the state of things in time to come, whatever promise they may fancy there is of a large secession to their Church. This man or that may leave us, but there will be no general movement. There is, indeed, an incipient movement of our Church towards yours, and this your leading men are doing all they can to frustrate by their unwearied efforts at all risks to carry off individuals. When will they know their position, and embrace a larger and wiser policy?"
"Roman Catholics will see that this is how things will be in the future, despite any wishful thinking about a big shift to their Church. Some individuals may leave us, but there won't be any widespread change. There is, however, a small movement of our Church towards yours, and your leaders are doing everything they can to prevent it by trying hard to attract individuals at any cost. When will they recognize their situation and adopt a broader and smarter approach?"
The last letter, which I have inserted, is addressed to my dear friend, Dr. Russell, the present President of Maynooth. He had, perhaps, more to do with my conversion than any one else. He called upon me, in passing through Oxford in the summer of 1841, and I think I took him over some of the buildings of the University. He called again another summer, on his way from Dublin to London. I do not recollect that he said a word on the subject of religion on either occasion. He sent me at different times several letters; he was always gentle, mild, unobtrusive, uncontroversial. He let me alone. He also gave me one or two books. Veron's Rule of Faith and some Treatises of the Wallenburghs was one; a volume of St. Alfonso Liguori's Sermons was another; and to that the letter which I have last inserted relates.
The last letter I included is to my dear friend, Dr. Russell, who is currently the President of Maynooth. He probably played a bigger role in my conversion than anyone else. He visited me while passing through Oxford in the summer of 1841, and I think I showed him around some of the university buildings. He came by again another summer on his way from Dublin to London. I don't remember him mentioning anything about religion during either visit. He sent me several letters over time; he was always kind, gentle, low-key, and non-controversial. He gave me space. He also gave me a couple of books. One was Veron's Rule of Faith and some writings by the Wallenburghs; another was a volume of St. Alfonso Liguori's Sermons, which is what the last letter I included refers to.
Now it must be observed that the writings of St. Alfonso, as I knew them by the extracts commonly made from them, prejudiced me as much against the Roman Church as anything else, on account of what was called their "Mariolatry;" but there was nothing of the kind in this book. I wrote to ask Dr. Russell whether anything had been left out in the translation; he answered that there certainly was an omission of one passage about the Blessed Virgin. This omission, in the case of a book intended for Catholics, at least showed that such passages as are found in the works of Italian authors were not acceptable to every part of the Catholic world. Such devotional manifestations in honour of our Lady had been my great crux as regards Catholicism; I say frankly, I do not fully enter into them now; I trust I do not love her the less, because I cannot enter into them. They may be fully explained and defended; but sentiment and taste do not run with logic: they are suitable for Italy, but they are not suitable for England. But, over and above England, my own case was special; from a boy I had been led to consider that my Maker and I, His creature, were the two beings, certainly such, in rerum naturâ. I will not here speculate, however, about my own feelings. Only this I know full well now, and did not know then, that the Catholic Church allows no image of any sort, material or immaterial, no dogmatic symbol, no rite, no sacrament, no Saint, not even the Blessed Virgin herself, to come between the soul and its Creator. It is face to face, "solus cum solo," in all matters between man and his God. He alone creates; He alone has redeemed; before His awful eyes we go in death; in the vision of Him is our eternal beatitude. "Solus cum solo:"—I recollect but indistinctly the effect produced upon me by this volume, but it must have been considerable. At all events I had got a key to a difficulty; in these sermons (or rather heads of sermons, as they seem to be, taken down by a hearer) there is much of what would be called legendary illustration; but the substance of them is plain, practical, awful preaching upon the great truths of salvation. What I can speak of with greater confidence is the effect upon me a little later of the Exercises of St. Ignatius. Here again, in a pure matter of the most direct religion, in the intercourse between God and the soul, during a season of recollection, of repentance, of good resolution, of inquiry into vocation, the soul was "sola cum solo;" there was no cloud interposed between the creature and the Object of his faith and love. The command practically enforced was, "My son, give Me thy heart." The devotions then to angels and saints as little interfered with the incommunicable glory of the Eternal, as the love which we bear our friends and relations, our tender human sympathies, are inconsistent with that supreme homage of the heart to the Unseen, which really does but sanctify and exalt what is of earth. At a later date Dr. Russell sent me a large bundle of penny or half-penny books of devotion, of all sorts, as they are found in the booksellers' shops at Rome; and, on looking them over, I was quite astonished to find how different they were from what I had fancied, how little there was in them to which I could really object. I have given an account of them in my Essay on the Development of Doctrine. Dr. Russell sent me St. Alfonso's book at the end of 1842; however, it was still a long time before I got over my difficulty, on the score of the devotions paid to the saints; perhaps, as I judge, from a letter I have turned up, it was some way into 1844, before I could be said to have got over it.
Now it should be noted that the writings of St. Alfonso, as I understood them from the common extracts, biased me against the Roman Church because of what was called their "Mariolatry"; however, there was nothing like that in this book. I wrote to ask Dr. Russell if anything had been omitted in the translation; he replied that there was indeed a missing passage about the Blessed Virgin. This omission, in a book meant for Catholics, showed at least that passages found in the works of Italian authors weren't acceptable to every part of the Catholic world. Such devotional expressions honoring our Lady had been my major struggle with Catholicism; I honestly admit that I still don't completely connect with them now; I hope I don't love her any less because I can't fully embrace them. They can be thoroughly explained and defended; but feelings and tastes don't always align with logic: they work for Italy, but not for England. Beyond England, my situation was unique; since I was a boy, I had been led to believe that my Creator and I, His creation, were the two definite beings, certainly so, in reality. I won't speculate on my own feelings here. Only this I know for sure now, which I didn't realize then: the Catholic Church allows no image, whether material or immaterial, no dogmatic symbol, no rite, no sacrament, no Saint, not even the Blessed Virgin herself, to come between the soul and its Creator. It's face to face, "solus cum solo," in all matters between man and his God. He alone creates; He alone redeems; before His awe-inspiring presence we face death; in the vision of Him lies our eternal happiness. "Solus cum solo:"—I only vaguely remember the impact this volume had on me, but it must have been significant. At any rate, I had found a key to a puzzle; in these sermons (or rather summaries of sermons, as they seem to be, taken down by a listener) there is much that could be considered legendary illustration; yet the core of them is straightforward, practical, and powerful preaching on the essential truths of salvation. What I can confidently discuss is the effect of the Exercises of St. Ignatius on me a little later. Here again, in a completely direct matter of religion, during a time of reflection, repentance, good intentions, and searching for a calling, the soul was "sola cum solo;" there was no barrier between the creation and the Object of faith and love. The practical command was, "My son, give Me your heart." The devotions to angels and saints didn't interfere with the unique glory of the Eternal, just as the love we have for our friends and family, our gentle human sympathies, do not clash with that supreme respect for the Unseen, which actually sanctifies and elevates what is earthly. Later, Dr. Russell sent me a large bundle of penny or half-penny devotional books, of all kinds, as they are found in the bookstores in Rome; and when I looked them over, I was quite surprised at how different they were from what I had imagined, how little I could genuinely object to. I've provided an account of them in my Essay on the Development of Doctrine. Dr. Russell sent me St. Alfonso's book at the end of 1842; however, it took me a long time to resolve my difficulties regarding the devotions to the saints; from a letter I found, it appears it was well into 1844 before I could finally be said to have moved past it.
I am not sure that another consideration did not also weigh with me then. The idea of the Blessed Virgin was as it were magnified in the Church of Rome, as time went on,—but so were all the Christian ideas; as that of the Blessed Eucharist. The whole scene of pale, faint, distant Apostolic Christianity is seen in Rome, as through a telescope or magnifier. The harmony of the whole, however, is of course what it was. It is unfair then to take one Roman idea, that of the Blessed Virgin, out of what may be called its context.
I’m not sure if there was another factor influencing me at that time. The concept of the Blessed Virgin became more significant in the Roman Church over time—as did all Christian ideas, such as the Blessed Eucharist. The entire picture of pale, faint, and distant Apostolic Christianity is viewed in Rome as if through a telescope or magnifying glass. However, the overall harmony remains unchanged. It’s unfair to isolate one Roman idea, like that of the Blessed Virgin, from its broader context.
Thus I am brought to the principle of development of doctrine in the Christian Church, to which I gave my mind at the end of 1842. I had spoken of it in the passage, which I quoted many pages back, in Home Thoughts Abroad, published in 1836; but it had been a favourite subject with me all along. And it is certainly recognised in that celebrated Treatise of Vincent of Lerins, which has so often been taken as the basis of the Anglican theory. In 1843 I began to consider it steadily; and the general view to which I came is stated thus in a letter to a friend of the date of July 14, 1844; it will be observed that, now as before, my issue is still Faith versus Church:—
Thus, I come to the idea of the development of doctrine in the Christian Church, which I started thinking about at the end of 1842. I had mentioned it in the excerpt I quoted many pages ago from Home Thoughts Abroad, published in 1836; but it has always been a topic I cared a lot about. This concept is also recognized in the well-known Treatise of Vincent of Lerins, which has often served as a foundation for the Anglican perspective. In 1843, I began to examine it more thoroughly, and the overall conclusion I reached is expressed in a letter to a friend dated July 14, 1844; it’s important to note that, just like before, my issue is still Faith versus Church:—
"The kind of considerations which weigh with me are such as the following:—1. I am far more certain (according to the Fathers) that we are in a state of culpable separation, than that developments do not exist under the Gospel, and that the Roman developments are not the true ones. 2. I am far more certain, that our (modern) doctrines are wrong, than that the Roman (modern) doctrines are wrong. 3. Granting that the Roman (special) doctrines are not found drawn out in the early Church, yet I think there is sufficient trace of them in it, to recommend and prove them, on the hypothesis of the Church having a divine guidance, though not sufficient to prove them by itself. So that the question simply turns on the nature of the promise of the Spirit, made to the Church. 4. The proof of the Roman (modern) doctrine is as strong (or stronger) in Antiquity, as that of certain doctrines which both we and Romans hold: e.g. there is more of evidence in Antiquity for the necessity of Unity, than for the Apostolical Succession; for the Supremacy of the See of Rome, than for the Presence in the Eucharist; for the practice of Invocation, than for certain books in the present Canon of Scripture, etc., etc. 5. The analogy of the Old Testament, and also of the New, leads to the acknowledgment of doctrinal developments."
"The things I consider are as follows: 1. I am much more certain (based on the early Church Fathers) that we are in a state of blameworthy separation, than that developments do not exist in the Gospel, and that the Roman developments are not the right ones. 2. I am much more certain that our (modern) doctrines are incorrect, than that the Roman (modern) doctrines are incorrect. 3. Even if the Roman (specific) doctrines aren’t explicitly laid out in the early Church, I believe there are enough traces of them to support and validate them, assuming that the Church has divine guidance, even though this is not enough to prove them on its own. So the question really boils down to the nature of the promise of the Spirit made to the Church. 4. The evidence for the Roman (modern) doctrine is as strong (or stronger) in Antiquity as that of several doctrines held by both us and the Romans: for example, there is more evidence in Antiquity for the necessity of Unity than for Apostolic Succession; for the Supremacy of the See of Rome than for the Real Presence in the Eucharist; for the practice of Invocation than for certain books in the current Canon of Scripture, etc., etc. 5. The analogy found in both the Old and New Testaments suggests the acceptance of doctrinal developments."
And thus I was led on to a further consideration. I saw that the principle of development not only accounted for certain facts, but was in itself a remarkable philosophical phenomenon, giving a character to the whole course of Christian thought. It was discernible from the first years of the Catholic teaching up to the present day, and gave to that teaching a unity and individuality. It served as a sort of test, which the Anglican could not exhibit, that modern Rome was in truth ancient Antioch, Alexandria, and Constantinople, just as a mathematical curve has its own law and expression.
And so I began to think further. I realized that the principle of development not only explained certain facts but was also an impressive philosophical phenomenon, shaping the entire trajectory of Christian thought. It was evident from the early years of Catholic teaching to the present day, giving that teaching a sense of unity and individuality. It acted as a kind of test that Anglicans couldn’t provide, showing that modern Rome is truly ancient Antioch, Alexandria, and Constantinople, just like a mathematical curve has its own rules and expression.
And thus again I was led on to examine more attentively what I doubt not was in my thoughts long before, viz. the concatenation of argument by which the mind ascends from its first to its final religious idea; and I came to the conclusion that there was no medium, in true philosophy, between Atheism and Catholicity, and that a perfectly consistent mind, under those circumstances in which it finds itself here below, must embrace either the one or the other. And I hold this still: I am a Catholic by virtue of my believing in a God; and if I am asked why I believe in a God, I answer that it is because I believe in myself, for I feel it impossible to believe in my own existence (and of that fact I am quite sure) without believing also in the existence of Him, who lives as a Personal, All-seeing, All-judging Being in my conscience. Now, I dare say, I have not expressed myself with philosophical correctness, because I have not given myself to the study of what others have said on the subject; but I think I have a strong true meaning in what I say which will stand examination.
So once again, I was prompted to carefully consider what I’m sure had been on my mind long before: the connection of ideas that allows the mind to progress from its initial to its ultimate religious understanding. I reached the conclusion that, in genuine philosophy, there’s no middle ground between Atheism and Catholicism. A completely consistent mind, given the circumstances it faces in this world, must choose one or the other. I still hold this belief: I am a Catholic because I believe in God. If someone asks why I believe in God, I respond that it's because I believe in myself. I find it impossible to trust in my own existence (of which I am completely certain) without also believing in the existence of Him, who exists as a Personal, All-seeing, All-judging Being in my conscience. I may not have expressed myself with perfect philosophical accuracy since I haven't deeply studied what others have said on this topic, but I believe that I have a solid, genuine meaning in what I’m saying that can withstand scrutiny.
Moreover, I came to the conclusion which I have been stating, on reasoning of the same nature, as that which I had adopted on the subject of development of doctrine. The fact of the operation from first to last of that principle of development is an argument in favour of the identity of Roman and Primitive Christianity; but as there is a law which acts upon the subject-matter of dogmatic theology, so is there a law in the matter of religious faith. In the third part of this narrative I spoke of certitude as the consequence, divinely intended and enjoined upon us, of the accumulative force of certain given reasons which, taken one by one, were only probabilities. Let it be recollected that I am historically relating my state of mind, at the period of my life which I am surveying. I am not speaking theologically, nor have I any intention of going into controversy, or of defending myself; but speaking historically of what I held in 1843-4, I say, that I believed in a God on a ground of probability, that I believed in Christianity on a probability, and that I believed in Catholicism on a probability, and that all three were about the same kind of probability, a cumulative, a transcendent probability, but still probability; inasmuch as He who made us, has so willed that in mathematics indeed we arrive at certitude by rigid demonstration, but in religious inquiry we arrive at certitude by accumulated probabilities—inasmuch as He who has willed that we should so act, co-operates with us in our acting, and thereby bestows on us a certitude which rises higher than the logical force of our conclusions. And thus I came to see clearly, and to have a satisfaction in seeing, that, in being led on into the Church of Rome, I was proceeding, not by any secondary grounds of reason, or by controversial points in detail, but was protected and justified, even in the use of those secondary arguments, by a great and broad principle. But, let it be observed, that I am stating a matter of fact, not defending it; and if any Catholic says in consequence that I have been converted in a wrong way, I cannot help that now.
Furthermore, I've reached the conclusion I've been sharing, based on reasoning similar to what I used regarding the development of doctrine. The continuous application of that development principle supports the idea that Roman and Primitive Christianity are the same. Just as there's a law governing the subject matter of dogmatic theology, there's also a law that applies to religious faith. In the third part of this narrative, I mentioned certitude as the result, divinely intended and required of us, of the accumulating force of specific reasons that, when considered individually, were merely probabilities. I want to emphasize that I'm recounting my mindset during the period I'm reflecting on. I'm not speaking from a theological perspective, nor do I intend to engage in debate or defend myself; instead, I'm historically discussing my beliefs in 1843-4. I believed in God based on a probability, believed in Christianity based on a probability, and believed in Catholicism based on a probability, with all three reflecting a similar kind of probability—a cumulative, transcendent probability—yet still a probability. This is because the one who created us designed it so that in mathematics we attain certitude through rigorous demonstration, while in religious exploration we reach certitude through accumulated probabilities. Since He has determined that we should act this way, He collaborates with us in our actions, granting us a certitude that surpasses the logical strength of our conclusions. Consequently, I clearly recognized and found satisfaction in the realization that my journey into the Church of Rome was not based on secondary reasoning or detailed controversies, but I was safeguarded and validated, even in utilizing those secondary arguments, by a significant and wide-reaching principle. However, I want to clarify that I'm merely stating a fact, not defending it; and if any Catholic argues that my conversion was misguided, I can't change that now.
And now I have carried on the history of my opinions to their last point, before I became a Catholic. I find great difficulty in fixing dates precisely; but it must have been some way into 1844, before I thought not only that the Anglican Church was certainly wrong, but that Rome was right. Then I had nothing more to learn on the subject. How "Samaria" faded away from my imagination I cannot tell, but it was gone. Now to go back to the time when this last stage of my inquiry was in its commencement, which, if I dare assign dates, was towards the end of 1842.
And now I've shared the history of my beliefs up to the point where I became a Catholic. I find it really hard to pinpoint exact dates, but it must have been sometime in 1844 that I not only thought the Anglican Church was definitely wrong, but also that Rome was right. At that point, I felt there was nothing more left to learn about it. I can't explain how "Samaria" faded from my mind, but it was gone. Now, let’s go back to when this final stage of my inquiry began, which, if I can assign dates, was towards the end of 1842.
In 1843, I took two very important and significant steps:—1. In February, I made a formal retractation of all the hard things which I had said against the Church of Rome. 2. In September, I resigned the living of St. Mary's, Littlemore inclusive:—I will speak of these two acts separately.
In 1843, I took two very important steps: 1. In February, I officially retracted all the negative things I had said about the Roman Catholic Church. 2. In September, I resigned from my position at St. Mary's in Littlemore. I will discuss these two actions separately.
1. The words, in which I made my retractation, have given rise to much criticism. After quoting a number of passages from my writings against the Church of Rome, which I withdrew, I ended thus:—"If you ask me how an individual could venture, not simply to hold, but to publish such views of a communion so ancient, so wide-spreading, so fruitful in Saints, I answer that I said to myself, 'I am not speaking my own words, I am but following almost a consensus of the divines of my own Church. They have ever used the strongest language against Rome, even the most able and learned of them. I wish to throw myself into their system. While I say what they say, I am safe. Such views, too, are necessary for our position.' Yet I have reason to fear still, that such language is to be ascribed, in no small measure, to an impetuous temper, a hope of approving myself to persons I respect, and a wish to repel the charge of Romanism."
1. The words in which I retracted my statements have sparked a lot of criticism. After quoting several passages from my writings against the Church of Rome, which I take back, I concluded with this: “If you ask me how someone could dare not just to hold but to publish such views about a community so ancient, so vast, and so rich in Saints, I would respond that I told myself, 'I’m not expressing my own opinions; I’m just following almost a consensus of the theologians from my own Church. They have always used the strongest language against Rome, even the most skilled and knowledgeable among them. I want to align myself with their perspective. As long as I say what they say, I’m safe. These views are also essential for our position.' Still, I have reason to worry that such language stems largely from a quick temper, a desire to impress people I respect, and a need to counter the accusation of being Romanist.”
These words have been, and are, cited again and again against me, as if a confession that, when in the Anglican Church, I said things against Rome which I did not really believe.
These words have been, and still are, used repeatedly against me, as if it's a confession that, when I was in the Anglican Church, I said things against Rome that I didn’t actually believe.
For myself, I cannot understand how any impartial man can so take them; and I have explained them in print several times. I trust that by this time they have been sufficiently explained by what I have said in former portions of this narrative; still I have a word or two to say about them, which I have not said before I apologised in the lines in question for saying out charges against the Church of Rome which I fully believed to be true. What is wonderful in such an apology?
For me, I can’t understand how any fair-minded person could take them that way; and I’ve explained my position in writing several times. I hope that by now I’ve made myself clear enough in earlier parts of this narrative; still, I have a few more things to say about it that I haven't mentioned before. I apologized in the lines in question for making accusations against the Church of Rome that I believed to be true. What’s so remarkable about that apology?
There are many things a man may hold, which at the same time he may feel that he has no right to say publicly. The law recognises this principle. In our own time, men have been imprisoned and fined for saying true things of a bad king. The maxim has been held, that, "The greater the truth, the greater is the libel." And so as to the judgment of society, a just indignation would be felt against a writer who brought forward wantonly the weaknesses of a great man, though the whole world knew that they existed. No one is at liberty to speak ill of another without a justifiable reason, even though he knows he is speaking truth, and the public knows it too. Therefore I could not speak ill against the Church of Rome, though I believed what I said, without a good reason. I did believe what I said; but had I a good reason for saying it? I thought I had, viz. I said what I believed was simply necessary in the controversy, in order to defend ourselves; I considered that the Anglican position could not be defended, without bringing charges against the Church of Rome. Is not this almost a truism? is it not what every one says, who speaks on the subject at all? does any serious man abuse the Church of Rome, for the sake of abusing her, or because it justifies his own religious position? What is the meaning of the very word "Protestantism," but that there is a call to speak out? This then is what I said; "I know I spoke strongly against the Church of Rome; but it was no mere abuse, for I had a serious reason for doing so."
There are many things a man may possess that he might feel he shouldn’t speak about publicly. The law acknowledges this idea. In our time, people have been jailed or fined for speaking the truth about a bad king. The saying goes, "The greater the truth, the greater the libel." Similarly, society would feel just anger toward a writer who carelessly highlighted the flaws of a great person, even if everyone knew those flaws existed. No one is free to speak negatively about another without a good reason, even if he knows he is telling the truth and the public knows it too. So, I couldn’t speak poorly of the Church of Rome, even though I believed what I said, without a valid reason. I truly believed what I said; but did I have a good reason for saying it? I thought I did—I believed it was necessary in the debate to defend ourselves. I thought the Anglican position couldn’t be defended without making accusations against the Church of Rome. Isn’t this practically obvious? Isn’t this what everyone says when they discuss the topic? Does any serious person criticize the Church of Rome just for the sake of criticizing her, or because it supports their own religious stance? What does the word "Protestantism" mean, if not that there’s a need to speak out? This is what I stated: "I know I criticized the Church of Rome strongly, but it wasn’t mere insults; I had a serious reason for doing so."
But, not only did I think such language necessary for my Church's religious position, but all the great Anglican divines had thought so before me. They had thought so, and they had acted accordingly. And therefore I said, with much propriety, that I had not done it simply out of my own head, but that I was following the track, or rather reproducing the teaching, of those who had preceded me.
But I didn't just think that kind of language was necessary for my Church's religious stance; all the great Anglican theologians had thought so before me. They believed it and acted on it. So, I confidently said that I wasn't just coming up with this on my own, but that I was following the path, or rather echoing the teachings, of those who came before me.
I was pleading guilty; but pleading also that there were extenuating circumstances in the case. We all know the story of the convict, who on the scaffold bit off his mother's ear. By doing so he did not deny the fact of his own crime, for which he was to hang; but he said that his mother's indulgence, when he was a boy, had a good deal to do with it. In like manner I had made a charge, and I had made it ex animo; but I accused others of having led me into believing it and publishing it.
I was admitting my guilt; but I was also saying that there were factors to consider in the situation. We all know the story of the convict who, on his way to the gallows, bit off his mother's ear. By doing this, he didn't deny his crime that led to his execution; instead, he suggested that his mother's leniency during his childhood played a significant role in his actions. In the same way, I had made an accusation, and I had done it with sincerity; but I claimed that others influenced me into believing and spreading it.
But there was more than this meant in the words which I used:—first, I will freely confess, indeed I said it some pages back, that I was angry with the Anglican divines. I thought they had taken me in; I had read the Fathers with their eyes; I had sometimes trusted their quotations or their reasonings; and from reliance on them, I had used words or made statements, which properly I ought rigidly to have examined myself. I had exercised more faith than criticism in the matter. This did not imply any broad misstatements on my part, arising from reliance on their authority, but it implied carelessness in matters of detail. And this of course was a fault.
But there was more to my words than this:—first, I will openly admit, as I mentioned a few pages back, that I was angry with the Anglican theologians. I felt they had deceived me; I had read the Church Fathers through their perspectives; I had sometimes trusted their quotes and reasoning; and because of this trust, I had used terms or made claims that I really should have critically examined myself. I had placed more faith than scrutiny in the matter. This didn’t mean I made any major errors based on their authority, but it indicated a lack of attention to detail. And this, of course, was a mistake.
But there was a far deeper reason for my saying what I said in this matter, on which I have not hitherto touched; and it was this:—The most oppressive thought, in the whole process of my change of opinion, was the clear anticipation, verified by the event, that it would issue in the triumph of Liberalism. Against the Anti-dogmatic principle I had thrown my whole mind; yet now I was doing more than any one else could do, to promote it. I was one of those who had kept it at bay in Oxford for so many years; and thus my very retirement was its triumph. The men who had driven me from Oxford were distinctly the Liberals; it was they who had opened the attack upon Tract 90, and it was they who would gain a second benefit, if I went on to retire from the Anglican Church. But this was not all. As I have already said, there are but two alternatives, the way to Rome, and the way to Atheism: Anglicanism is the halfway house on the one side, and Liberalism is the halfway house on the other. How many men were there, as I knew full well, who would not follow me now in my advance from Anglicanism to Rome, but would at once leave Anglicanism and me for the Liberal camp. It is not at all easy (humanly speaking) to wind up an Englishman to a dogmatic level. I had done so in a good measure, in the case both of young men and of laymen, the Anglican Via Media being the representative of dogma. The dogmatic and the Anglican principle were one, as I had taught them; but I was breaking the Via Media to pieces, and would not dogmatic faith altogether be broken up, in the minds of a great number, by the demolition of the Via Media? Oh! how unhappy this made me! I heard once from an eyewitness the account of a poor sailor whose legs were shattered by a ball, in the action off Algiers in 1816, and who was taken below for an operation. The surgeon and the chaplain persuaded him to have a leg off; it was done and the tourniquet applied to the wound. Then, they broke it to him that he must have the other off too. The poor fellow said, "You should have told me that, gentlemen," and deliberately unscrewed the instrument and bled to death. Would not that be the case with many friends of my own? How could I ever hope to make them believe in a second theology, when I had cheated them in the first? with what face could I publish a new edition of a dogmatic creed, and ask them to receive it as gospel? Would it not be plain to them that no certainty was to be found anywhere? Well, in my defence I could but make a lame apology; however, it was the true one, viz. that I had not read the Fathers critically enough; that in such nice points, as those which determine the angle of divergence between the two Churches, I had made considerable miscalculations; and how came this about? Why the fact was, unpleasant as it was to avow, that I had leaned too much upon the assertions of Ussher, Jeremy Taylor, or Barrow, and had been deceived by them. Valeat quantum—it was all that could be said. This then was a chief reason of that wording of the retractation, which has given so much offence, and the following letter will illustrate it:—
But there was a much deeper reason for what I said in this matter, which I haven't touched on before; and it was this: the most troubling thought, throughout my change of opinion, was the clear expectation, confirmed by events, that it would result in the victory of Liberalism. I had completely invested my mind against the Anti-dogmatic principle; yet now I was doing more than anyone else to promote it. I was one of those who had held it back in Oxford for so many years; thus, my very withdrawal was its victory. The people who had pushed me away from Oxford were clearly the Liberals; they were the ones who had led the charge against Tract 90, and they would reap another reward if I decided to leave the Anglican Church. But that wasn’t all. As I’ve already mentioned, there are only two options: the path to Rome and the path to Atheism; Anglicanism is a halfway house on one side, and Liberalism is the halfway house on the other. I knew very well how many men would not follow me now in my move from Anglicanism to Rome, but would immediately abandon Anglicanism and me for the Liberal camp. It’s not easy (humanly speaking) to encourage an Englishman to accept a dogmatic stance. I had done so to a good extent, both with young men and laypeople, as the Anglican Via Media represents dogma. The dogmatic principle and the Anglican ideal were one, as I had taught them; but I was breaking the Via Media apart, and wouldn't dogmatic faith be completely shattered in the minds of many because of the destruction of the Via Media? Oh, how miserable this made me! I once heard from someone who witnessed it the story of a poor sailor whose legs were shattered by a cannonball during the action off Algiers in 1816, who was taken below for surgery. The surgeon and chaplain convinced him to have one leg amputated; it was done and a tourniquet applied to the wound. Then, they broke the news to him that he would also need the other leg amputated. The poor guy said, "You should have told me that, gentlemen," and deliberately unscrewed the instrument, bleeding to death. Wouldn't that be the case with many of my own friends? How could I ever expect them to accept a second theology after I had misled them about the first? With what face could I publish a new edition of a dogmatic creed and ask them to accept it as the truth? Wouldn’t it be obvious to them that certainty was nowhere to be found? Well, in my defense, I could only offer a weak apology; however, it was the honest one, which was that I hadn’t critically examined the Fathers closely enough; that in those delicate issues, which determine the divergence angle between the two Churches, I had made substantial miscalculations; and how did this happen? The uncomfortable truth was that I had relied too much on the assertions of Ussher, Jeremy Taylor, or Barrow, and had been misled by them. Valeat quantum—it was all I could say. This then was a main reason for the phrasing of the retraction that has caused so much offense, and the following letter will illustrate it:—
"April 3, 1844. I wish to remark on W.'s chief distress, that my changing my opinion seemed to unsettle one's confidence in truth and falsehood as external things, and led one to be suspicious of the new opinion as one became distrustful of the old. Now in what I shall say, I am not going to speak in favour of my second thoughts in comparison of my first, but against such scepticism and unsettlement about truth and falsehood generally, the idea of which is very painful.
"April 3, 1844. I want to point out W.'s main concern, which is that my changing my mind seemed to shake one’s confidence in truth and falsehood as things that exist outside of us, making one suspicious of the new opinion while becoming distrustful of the old. In what I’m about to say, I’m not arguing in favor of my second thoughts over my first, but rather against this kind of skepticism and uncertainty about truth and falsehood in general, as the notion of it is very distressing."
"The case with me, then, was this, and not surely an unnatural one:—as a matter of feeling and of duty I threw myself into the system which I found myself in. I saw that the English Church had a theological idea or theory as such, and I took it up. I read Laud on Tradition, and thought it (as I still think it) very masterly. The Anglican Theory was very distinctive. I admired it and took it on faith. It did not (I think) occur to me to doubt it; I saw that it was able, and supported by learning, and I felt it was a duty to maintain it. Further, on looking into Antiquity and reading the Fathers, I saw such portions of it as I examined, fully confirmed (e.g. the supremacy of Scripture). There was only one question about which I had a doubt, viz. whether it would work, for it has never been more than a paper system....
"My situation was this, and it wasn't unusual: based on my feelings and sense of duty, I immersed myself in the system I found myself in. I recognized that the English Church had a clear theological idea or theory, and I embraced it. I read Laud on Tradition and found it (as I still do) very impressive. The Anglican Theory was quite unique. I admired it and accepted it on faith. It didn't occur to me to question it; I saw it was capable and backed by scholarship, and I felt it was my duty to uphold it. Moreover, when I explored antiquity and read the Church Fathers, I found that the parts I examined strongly supported it (e.g. the supremacy of Scripture). The only question I had was whether it would actually work, since it had always just been a theoretical system...."
"So far from my change of opinion having any fair tendency to unsettle persons as to truth and falsehood viewed as objective realities, it should be considered whether such change is not necessary, if truth be a real objective thing, and be made to confront a person who has been brought up in a system short of truth. Surely the continuance of a person who wishes to go right in a wrong system, and not his giving it up, would be that which militated against the objectiveness of Truth, leading, as it would, to the suspicion, that one thing and another were equally pleasing to our Maker, where men were sincere.
"Instead of my change of opinion disrupting people's understanding of truth and falsehood as objective realities, we should consider whether this change is actually necessary, if truth is a real objective thing, and if it confronts someone raised in a system short of truth. Surely, the continuation of a person who wants to do right within a flawed system, rather than their giving it up, would actually undermine the objectiveness of Truth, suggesting that different things are equally acceptable to our Maker when people are sincere."
"Nor surely is it a thing I need be sorry for, that I defended the system in which I found myself, and thus have had to unsay my words. For is it not one's duty, instead of beginning with criticism, to throw oneself generously into that form of religion which is providentially put before one? Is it right, or is it wrong, to begin with private judgment? May we not, on the other hand, look for a blessing through obedience even to an erroneous system, and a guidance even by means of it out of it? Were those who were strict and conscientious in their Judaism, or those who were lukewarm and sceptical, more likely to be led into Christianity, when Christ came? Yet in proportion to their previous zeal, would be their appearance of inconsistency. Certainly, I have always contended that obedience even to an erring conscience was the way to gain light, and that it mattered not where a man began, so that he began on what came to hand, and in faith; and that anything might become a divine method of Truth; that to the pure all things are pure, and have a self-correcting virtue and a power of germinating. And though I have no right at all to assume that this mercy is granted to me, yet the fact, that a person in my situation may have it granted to him, seems to me to remove the perplexity which my change of opinion may occasion.
"Surely, I shouldn't regret defending the system I found myself in, even if it means retracting my words. Isn't it our responsibility, rather than starting with criticism, to fully embrace the form of religion that's presented to us? Is it right or wrong to lead with personal judgment? On the flip side, can't we seek blessings through obedience to even a flawed system and guidance that helps us grow? Were those who remained strict and sincere in their Judaism more likely to convert to Christianity when Christ arrived, compared to those who were indifferent and skeptical? Yet, the stronger their initial zeal, the more their inconsistency might stand out. I've always believed that obedience, even to a misled conscience, is the path to gaining insight, and it doesn't matter where someone starts, as long as they begin with what's available and with faith; anything can become a divine method of truth. To the pure, all things are pure and have a self-correcting quality that allows growth. While I have no right to assume that this mercy is extended to me, the fact that someone in my position might receive it seems to clear up the confusion my change of opinion may cause."
"It may be said—I have said it to myself—'Why, however, did you publish? had you waited quietly, you would have changed your opinion without any of the misery, which now is involved in the change, of disappointing and distressing people.' I answer, that things are so bound up together, as to form a whole, and one cannot tell what is or is not a condition of what. I do not see how possibly I could have published the Tracts, or other works professing to defend our Church, without accompanying them with a strong protest or argument against Rome. The one obvious objection against the whole Anglican line is, that it is Roman; so that I really think there was no alternative between silence altogether, and forming a theory and attacking the Roman system."
"I’ve thought to myself, 'Why did you even publish? If you had just waited, you could have changed your mind without all the pain that now comes with it, like disappointing and upsetting people.' My response is that everything is interconnected and makes up a whole, and it’s hard to tell what influences what. I honestly don’t see how I could have published the Tracts or other works meant to support our Church without also strongly opposing or arguing against Rome. The main criticism against the entire Anglican approach is that it's too Roman, so I really believe there was no real choice between staying completely silent or developing a theory and challenging the Roman system."
2. And now, secondly, as to my resignation of St. Mary's, which was the second of the steps which I took in 1843. The ostensible, direct, and sufficient cause of my doing so was the persevering attack of the Bishops on Tract 90. I alluded to it in the letter which I have inserted above, addressed to one of the most influential among them. A series of their ex cathedrâ judgments, lasting through three years, and including a notice of no little severity in a Charge of my own Bishop, came as near to a condemnation of my Tract, and, so far, to a repudiation of the ancient Catholic doctrine, which was the scope of the Tract, as was possible in the Church of England. It was in order to shield the Tract from such a condemnation, that I had at the time of its publication so simply put myself at the disposal of the higher powers in London. At that time, all that was distinctly contemplated in the way of censure, was the message which my Bishop sent me, that it was "objectionable." That I thought was the end of the matter. I had refused to suppress it, and they had yielded that point. Since I wrote the former portions of this narrative, I have found what I wrote to Dr. Pusey on March 24, while the matter was in progress. "The more I think of it," I said, "the more reluctant I am to suppress Tract 90, though of course I will do it if the Bishop wishes it; I cannot, however, deny that I shall feel it a severe act." According to the notes which I took of the letters or messages which I sent to him in the course of that day, I went on to say, "My first feeling was to obey without a word; I will obey still; but my judgment has steadily risen against it ever since." Then in the postscript, "If I have done any good to the Church, I do ask the Bishop this favour, as my reward for it, that he would not insist on a measure, from which I think good will not come. However, I will submit to him." Afterwards, I get stronger still: "I have almost come to the resolution, if the Bishop publicly intimates that I must suppress the Tract, or speaks strongly in his charge against it, to suppress it indeed, but to resign my living also. I could not in conscience act otherwise. You may show this in any quarter you please."
2. Now, let’s talk about my resignation from St. Mary's, which was the second step I took in 1843. The clear and direct reason for my decision was the ongoing attack from the Bishops on Tract 90. I mentioned it in the letter I included above, directed to one of the most influential Bishops. A series of their official judgments over three years, including a rather harsh notice in a Charge from my own Bishop, came very close to condemning my Tract and, in effect, rejecting the ancient Catholic doctrine that the Tract aimed to uphold, as much as was possible within the Church of England. To protect the Tract from such condemnation, I had offered myself to the higher authorities in London when it was published. At that time, the only censure clearly expected was the message from my Bishop saying it was "objectionable." I thought that would be the end of it. I had refused to suppress it, and they had conceded that point. Since I wrote the earlier parts of this narrative, I discovered what I wrote to Dr. Pusey on March 24, while this matter was ongoing. "The more I think about it," I wrote, "the less willing I am to suppress Tract 90, though of course I’ll do it if the Bishop wants; however, I can’t deny it will feel like a serious loss." According to my notes from the letters or messages I sent him that day, I continued, "Initially, I felt I should comply without protest; I will still comply, but my opinion has consistently turned against it since then." Then in the postscript, "If I have done any good for the Church, I ask the Bishop this favor as my reward: that he wouldn’t insist on a measure that I believe won’t lead to anything good. Still, I will submit to him." Later, I became even more resolute: "I have nearly decided that if the Bishop publicly states I must suppress the Tract, or speaks firmly against it in his charge, I will indeed suppress it, but I will also resign my living. I couldn’t act otherwise in good conscience. Feel free to share this wherever you want."
All my then hopes, all my satisfaction at the apparent fulfilment of those hopes, were at an end in 1843. It is not wonderful then, that in May of that year I addressed a letter on the subject of St. Mary's to the same friend, whom I had consulted about retiring from it in 1840. But I did more now; I told him my great unsettlement of mind on the question of the Churches. I will insert portions of two of my letters:—
All my hopes at that time and all my satisfaction with the seeming realization of those hopes came to an end in 1843. It's not surprising, then, that in May of that year, I wrote a letter about St. Mary's to the same friend I had talked to about leaving it in 1840. But I did more this time; I shared my deep uncertainty regarding the Churches. I'll include parts of two of my letters:—
"May 4, 1843.... At present I fear, as far as I can analyze my own convictions, I consider the Roman Catholic Communion to be the Church of the Apostles, and that what grace is among us (which, through God's mercy, is not little) is extraordinary, and from the overflowings of His dispensation. I am very far more sure that England is in schism, than that the Roman additions to the Primitive Creed may not be developments, arising out of a keen and vivid realizing of the Divine Depositum of Faith.
"May 4, 1843... Right now, I’m concerned because, as far as I can understand my own beliefs, I view the Roman Catholic Church as the Church of the Apostles. I believe that the grace we experience, which, thanks to God’s mercy, is significant, is extraordinary and comes from His abundant generosity. I'm much more certain that England is in schism than that the Roman additions to the Original Creed are not developments that come from a deep and vivid understanding of the Divine Deposit of Faith."
"You will now understand what gives edge to the Bishops' Charges, without any undue sensitiveness on my part. They distress me in two ways:—first, as being in some sense protests and witnesses to my conscience against my own unfaithfulness to the English Church, and next, as being samples of her teaching, and tokens how very far she is from even aspiring to Catholicity.
"You will now understand what makes the Bishops' Charges stand out, without any unnecessary sensitivity on my part. They upset me in two ways: first, as they serve as protests and reminders to my conscience about my own unfaithfulness to the English Church, and second, as they exemplify her teachings and show how far she is from even attempting to be fully Catholic."
"Of course my being unfaithful to a trust is my great subject of dread—as it has long been, as you know."
"Of course, my fear of being unfaithful to a trust is a major concern for me—just as it has been for a long time, as you know."
When he wrote to make natural objections to my purpose, such as the apprehension that the removal of clerical obligations might have the indirect effect of propelling me towards Rome, I answered:—
When he wrote to express natural concerns about my goals, like the fear that getting rid of clerical duties might indirectly push me toward Rome, I replied:—
"May 18, 1843.... My office or charge at St. Mary's is not a mere state, but a continual energy. People assume and assert certain things of me in consequence. With what sort of sincerity can I obey the Bishop? how am I to act in the frequent cases, in which one way or another the Church of Rome comes into consideration? I have to the utmost of my power tried to keep persons from Rome, and with some success; but even a year and a half since, my arguments, though more efficacious with the persons I aimed at than any others could be, were of a nature to infuse great suspicion of me into the minds of lookers-on.
May 18, 1843.... My role at St. Mary's isn't just a title; it's an ongoing commitment. People make assumptions about me because of this. How can I sincerely follow the Bishop's orders? What should I do in the many situations where the Roman Church is involved? I've done my best to steer people away from Rome, and I've had some success, but even a year and a half ago, my arguments, while more persuasive with the people I intended to influence than anyone else's could be, raised a lot of doubts about me in the eyes of others.
"By retaining St. Mary's, I am an offence and a stumbling-block. Persons are keen-sighted enough to make out what I think on certain points, and then they infer that such opinions are compatible with holding situations of trust in our Church. A number of younger men take the validity of their interpretation of the Articles, etc., from me on faith. Is not my present position a cruelty, as well as a treachery towards the Church?
"By keeping St. Mary's, I'm being offensive and a hindrance. People are sharp enough to figure out what I think on certain issues, and then they assume that my views are acceptable for holding trusted positions in our Church. Many younger men base their understanding of the Articles and other teachings on me, trusting my judgment. Isn't my current situation both cruel and a betrayal to the Church?"
"I do not see how I can either preach or publish again, while I hold St. Mary's;—but consider again the following difficulty in such a resolution, which I must state at some length.
"I don't see how I can preach or publish again while I’m at St. Mary's;—but I need to elaborate on the following challenge regarding this decision."
"Last Long Vacation the idea suggested itself to me of publishing the Lives of the English Saints; and I had a conversation with [a publisher] upon it. I thought it would be useful, as employing the minds of men who were in danger of running wild, bringing them from doctrine to history, and from speculation to fact;—again, as giving them an interest in the English soil, and the English Church, and keeping them from seeking sympathy in Rome, as she is; and further, as seeking to promote the spread of right views.
"Last long vacation, it occurred to me to publish the Lives of the English Saints, and I talked to [a publisher] about it. I thought it would be beneficial because it would engage the minds of those at risk of going off track, pulling them from abstract ideas to real history and facts; it would also help them connect with the English landscape and the English Church, preventing them from looking for support in Rome as it is now. Additionally, it aimed to promote the spread of correct perspectives."
"But, within the last month, it has come upon me, that, if the scheme goes on, it will be a practical carrying out of No. 90; from the character of the usages and opinions of ante-reformation times.
"But, in the past month, I’ve realized that if this plan continues, it will actually put No. 90 into practice, based on the customs and beliefs from before the Reformation."
"It is easy to say, 'Why will you do any thing? why won't you keep quiet? what business had you to think of any such plan at all?' But I cannot leave a number of poor fellows in the lurch. I am bound to do my best for a great number of people both in Oxford and elsewhere. If I did not act, others would find means to do so.
"It’s easy to ask, 'Why are you doing anything? Why won’t you just be quiet? What gave you the idea to think of such a plan anyway?' But I can’t just abandon a bunch of struggling guys. I’m committed to doing my best for a lot of people both in Oxford and beyond. If I didn’t take action, others would figure out a way to step in."
"Well, the plan has been taken up with great eagerness and interest. Many men are setting to work. I set down the names of men, most of them engaged, the rest half engaged and probable, some actually writing." About thirty names follow, some of them at that time of the school of Dr. Arnold, others of Dr. Pusey's, some my personal friends and of my own standing, others whom I hardly knew, while of course the majority were of the party of the new Movement. I continue:—
"Well, the plan has been embraced with a lot of enthusiasm and interest. Many people are getting to work. I wrote down the names of individuals, most of whom are fully committed, some partially committed and likely, and a few are actually writing." About thirty names follow, some of them from the time of Dr. Arnold's school, others from Dr. Pusey's, some are my personal friends and peers, while there are others I barely recognized, and of course, the majority were supporters of the new Movement. I continue:—
"The plan has gone so far, that it would create surprise and talk, were it now suddenly given over. Yet how is it compatible with my holding St. Mary's, being what I am?"
"The plan has progressed to the point where it would cause surprise and chatter if it were suddenly abandoned now. But how can it work with me still being in charge of St. Mary's, considering who I am?"
Such was the object and the origin of the projected series of the English Saints; and, as the publication was connected, as has been seen, with my resignation of St. Mary's, I may be allowed to conclude what I have to say on the subject here, though it will read like a digression. As soon then as the first of the series got into print, the whole project broke down. I had already anticipated that some portions of the series would be written in a style inconsistent with the professions of a beneficed clergyman, and therefore I had given up my living; but men of great weight went further, when they saw the Life of St. Stephen Harding, and decided that it was of such a character as to be inconsistent even with its being given to the world by an Anglican publisher: and so the scheme was given up at once. After the two first parts, I retired from the editorship, and those Lives only were published in addition, which were then already finished, or in advanced preparation. The following passages from what I or others wrote at the time will illustrate what I have been saying:—
Such was the goal and the origin of the planned series about the English Saints; and since the publication was linked, as mentioned, to my resignation from St. Mary's, I can wrap up my thoughts on the matter here, even if it seems like a tangent. As soon as the first part of the series was published, the whole project fell apart. I had already expected that some sections of the series would be written in a style that didn’t align with the duties of a clergyman with a benefice, which is why I had given up my position; however, influential figures went further when they saw the Life of St. Stephen Harding and concluded that it was inappropriate even for it to be published by an Anglican publisher: so the plan was abandoned immediately. After the first two parts, I stepped down from the editorship, and only those lives that were already finished or in advanced preparation were published afterward. The following excerpts from what I or others wrote at the time will illustrate what I’ve been saying:—
In November, 1844, I wrote thus to one of the authors of them: "I am not Editor, I have no direct control over the Series. It is T.'s work; he may admit what he pleases; and exclude what he pleases. I was to have been Editor. I did edit the two first numbers. I was responsible for them, in the way in which an Editor is responsible. Had I continued Editor, I should have exercised a control over all. I laid down in the Preface that doctrinal subjects were, if possible, to be excluded. But, even then, I also set down that no writer was to be held answerable for any of the Lives but his own. When I gave up the Editorship, I had various engagements with friends for separate Lives remaining on my hands. I should have liked to have broken from them all, but there were some from which I could not break, and I let them take their course. Some have come to nothing; others like yours have gone on. I have seen such, either in MS. or Proof. As time goes on, I shall have less and less to do with the Series. I think the engagement between you and me should come to an end. I have anyhow abundant responsibility on me, and too much. I shall write to T. that if he wants the advantage of your assistance, he must write to you direct."
In November 1844, I wrote this to one of the authors involved: "I'm not the Editor, and I don't have direct control over the Series. It's T.'s project; he can include or exclude whatever he wants. I was supposed to be the Editor. I edited the first two issues and was responsible for them as an Editor would be. If I had continued as Editor, I would have had control over everything. In the Preface, I stated that doctrinal topics should, if possible, be avoided. However, I also noted that no author should be held accountable for any of the Lives except for their own. When I stepped down from the Editorship, I had various commitments with friends for separate Lives that were still pending. I would have preferred to break away from all of them, but there were some I couldn't disconnect from, so I allowed them to proceed. Some have come to nothing; others, like yours, have continued. I've seen some of those, either in manuscript or proof. As time goes on, I will be less involved with the Series. I believe the agreement between you and me should come to an end. I already have more than enough responsibility on my plate. I'll inform T. that if he wants your assistance, he needs to reach out to you directly."
In accordance with this letter, I had already advertised in January 1844, ten months before it, that "other Lives," after St. Stephen Harding, "will be published by their respective authors on their own responsibility." This notice is repeated in February, in the advertisement to the second volume entitled "The Family of St. Richard," though to this volume also, for some reason, I also put my initials. In the Life of St. Augustine, the author, a man of nearly my own age, says in like manner, "No one but himself is responsible for the way in which these materials have been used." I have in MS. another advertisement to the same effect, but cannot tell whether it was ever put into print.
According to this letter, I had already announced back in January 1844, ten months earlier, that "other Lives," after St. Stephen Harding, "will be published by their respective authors at their own risk." This notice is repeated in February in the advertisement for the second volume titled "The Family of St. Richard," although for some reason I also included my initials on this volume. In the Life of St. Augustine, the author, a man nearly my age, similarly states, "No one but himself is responsible for how these materials have been used." I have another advertisement with the same message in manuscript form, but I can't confirm whether it was ever published.
I will add, since the authors have been considered hot-headed boys, whom I was in charge of and whom I suffered do intemperate things, that, while the writer of St. Augustine was of the mature age which I have stated, most of the others were on one side or other of thirty. Three were under twenty-five. Moreover, of these writers some became Catholics, some remained Anglicans, and others have professed what are called free or liberal opinions.
I should mention that since the authors have been seen as hot-headed young men, who I oversaw and who acted impulsively, even though the writer of St. Augustine was of the mature age I've mentioned, most of the others were either side of thirty. Three were under twenty-five. Additionally, among these writers, some converted to Catholicism, some stayed Anglicans, and others embraced what are known as free or liberal views.
The immediate cause of the resignation of my living is stated in the following letter, which I wrote to my Bishop:—
The direct reason for my resignation is explained in the following letter I wrote to my Bishop:—
"August 29, 1843. It is with much concern that I inform your Lordship, that Mr. A. B., who has been for the last year an inmate of my house here, has just conformed to the Church of Rome. As I have ever been desirous, not only of faithfully discharging the trust, which is involved in holding a living in your Lordship's diocese, but of approving myself to your Lordship, I will for your information state one or two circumstances connected with this unfortunate event.... I received him on condition of his promising me, which he distinctly did, that he would remain quietly in our Church for three years. A year has passed since that time, and, though I saw nothing in him which promised that he would eventually be contented with his present position, yet for the time his mind became as settled as one could wish, and he frequently expressed his satisfaction at being under the promise which I had exacted of him."
"August 29, 1843. I regret to inform your Lordship that Mr. A. B., who has been living in my house for the past year, has just converted to the Church of Rome. Since I have always aimed to faithfully fulfill my responsibilities in your Lordship's diocese and to earn your approval, I’d like to share a few details about this unfortunate situation.... I welcomed him on the condition that he promised me, which he clearly did, that he would stay quietly in our Church for three years. A year has passed since then, and while I didn’t see any signs that he would be happy in his current position long-term, for a while his mindset was as settled as could be, and he often expressed his satisfaction with the promise I had required of him."
I felt it impossible to remain any longer in the service of the Anglican Church, when such a breach of trust, however little I had to do with it, would be laid at my door. I wrote in a few days to a friend:
I found it impossible to stay any longer in the service of the Anglican Church when such a violation of trust, even if I had little to do with it, would be blamed on me. A few days later, I wrote to a friend:
"September 7, 1843. I this day ask the Bishop leave to resign St. Mary's. Men whom you little think, or at least whom I little thought, are in almost a hopeless way. Really we may expect anything. I am going to publish a Volume of Sermons, including those Four against moving."
"September 7, 1843. Today, I ask the Bishop for permission to resign from St. Mary's. People you wouldn't expect, or at least I didn't expect, are in almost a hopeless situation. Honestly, we can expect anything. I’m planning to publish a Volume of Sermons, including those Four against moving."
I resigned my living on September 18th. I had not the means of doing it legally at Oxford. The late Mr. Goldsmid aided me in resigning it in London. I found no fault with the Liberals; they had beaten me in a fair field. As to the act of the Bishops, I thought, as Walter Scott has applied the text, that they had "seethed the kid in his mother's milk."
I resigned my position on September 18th. I didn’t have the resources to do it legally in Oxford. The late Mr. Goldsmid helped me resign it in London. I had no complaints about the Liberals; they had defeated me in a fair contest. Regarding the action of the Bishops, I thought, as Walter Scott has used the phrase, that they had "cooked the kid in his mother's milk."
I said to a friend:—
I told a friend:—
"Victrix causa diis placuit, sed victa Catoni."
"The gods favored victory, but defeat was meant for Cato."
And now I have brought almost to an end, as far as this sketch has to treat of them, the history both of my opinions, and of the public acts which they involved. I had only one more advance of mind to make; and that was, to be certain of what I had hitherto anticipated, concluded, and believed; and this was close upon my submission to the Catholic Church. And I had only one more act to perform, and that was the act of submission itself. But two years yet intervened before the date of these final events; during which I was in lay communion in the Church of England, attending its services as usual, and abstaining altogether from intercourse with Catholics, from their places of worship, and from those religious rites and usages, such as the Invocation of Saints, which are characteristics of their creed. I did all this on principle; for I never could understand how a man could be of two religions at once.
And now I have nearly finished sharing my journey, in terms of my beliefs and the public actions that came from them. I just had one more step to take, which was to be certain about what I had previously anticipated, concluded, and believed; this was just before I decided to submit to the Catholic Church. I had one last act to carry out, and that was the act of submission itself. However, it would be two more years before those final events occurred; during that time, I was participating as a lay member in the Church of England, attending its services as usual, and completely avoiding any interaction with Catholics, their places of worship, and their religious practices, like the Invocation of Saints, which are key aspects of their faith. I did all of this on principle because I could never understand how someone could belong to two religions at the same time.
What then I now have to add is of a private nature, being my preparation for the great event, for which I was waiting, in the interval between the autumns of 1843 and 1845.
What I have to say now is personal, as I was getting ready for the significant event I had been anticipating during the time between the autumns of 1843 and 1845.
And I shall almost confine what I have to say to this one point, the difficulty I was in as to the best mode of revealing the state of my mind to my friends and others, and how I managed to do it.
And I will mostly focus on this one point: the challenge I faced in figuring out the best way to express my thoughts and feelings to my friends and others, and how I went about doing that.
Up to January, 1842, I had not disclosed my state of unsettlement to more than three persons, as has been mentioned above, and is repeated in the letters which I am now about to give to the reader. To two of them, intimate and familiar companions, in the Autumn of 1839: to the third, an old friend too, when, I suppose, I was in great distress of mind upon the affair of the Jerusalem Bishopric. In May, 1843, I mentioned it to the friend, by whose advice I wished, as far as possible, to be guided. To mention it on set purpose to any one, unless indeed I was asking advice, I should have felt to be a crime. If there is anything that was and is abhorrent to me, it is the scattering doubts, and unsettling consciences without necessity. A strong presentiment that my existing opinions would ultimately give way, and that the grounds of them were unsound, was not a sufficient warrant for disclosing the state of my mind. I had no guarantee yet, that that presentiment would be realised. Supposing I were crossing ice, which came right in my way, which I had good reasons for considering sound, and which I saw numbers before me crossing in safety, and supposing a stranger from the bank, in a voice of authority, and in an earnest tone, warned me that it was dangerous, and then was silent, I think I should be startled, and should look about me anxiously, but I also should go on, till I had better grounds for doubt; and such was my state, I believe, till the end of 1842. Then again, when my dissatisfaction became greater, it was hard at first to determine the point of time, when it was too strong to suppress with propriety. Certitude of course is a point, but doubt is a progress; I was not near certitude yet. Certitude is a reflex action; it is to know that one knows. I believe I had not that, till close upon my reception into the Catholic Church. Again, a practical, effective doubt is a point too, but who can easily ascertain it for himself? Who can determine when it is, that the scales in the balance of opinion begin to turn, and what was a greater probability in behalf of a belief becomes a positive doubt against it?
Up until January 1842, I hadn’t shared my feelings of uncertainty with more than three people, as mentioned earlier and repeated in the letters I’m about to present to you. I confided in two close friends in the autumn of 1839, and I spoke to the third, an old friend as well, when I was, I believe, really distressed about the Jerusalem Bishopric issue. In May 1843, I brought it up to the friend whose advice I wanted to follow as much as possible. I would have felt it was wrong to mention it to anyone on purpose unless I was seeking advice. I’ve always found it intolerable to spread doubts and unsettle people's consciences without reason. I had a strong sense that my current beliefs would eventually change, and that my reasons for holding them were weak, but that wasn’t enough to justify revealing my thoughts. I had no assurance yet that my intuition would be proven correct. If I were crossing over ice that I had reason to believe was solid and saw many others doing so safely, and a stranger on the shore, speaking authoritatively and earnestly, warned me that it was dangerous but then fell silent, I think I would feel alarmed and look around nervously, but I would continue on until I had better grounds for doubt; such was my state, I believe, until the end of 1842. When my dissatisfaction grew stronger, it was initially difficult to determine when it reached a point where it couldn’t be suppressed properly. Certainty is one thing, but doubt is a process; I wasn’t near certainty yet. Certainty is a reflex action; it means to know that you know. I believe I didn’t have that until I was close to being received into the Catholic Church. Also, practical, effective doubt is a kind of certainty too, but how can anyone easily figure it out for themselves? Who can say when the scales of opinion start to tip, and what was once a stronger likelihood in favor of a belief turns into positive doubt against it?
In considering this question in its bearing upon my conduct in 1843, my own simple answer to my great difficulty was, Do what your present state of opinion requires, and let that doing tell: speak by acts. This I did; my first act of the year was in February, 1843. After three months' deliberation I published my retractation of the violent charges which I had made against Rome: I could not be wrong in doing so much as this; but I did no more: I did not retract my Anglican teaching. My second act was in September; after much sorrowful lingering and hesitation, I resigned my Living. I tried indeed to keep Littlemore for myself, even though it was still to remain an integral part of St. Mary's. I had made it a parish, and I loved it; but I did not succeed in my attempt. I could indeed bear to become the curate at will of another, but I hoped still that I might have been my own master there. I had hoped an exception might have been made in my favour, under the circumstances; but I did not gain my request. Indeed, I was asking what was impracticable, and it is well for me that it was so.
When I thought about this question and how it affected my actions in 1843, my simple answer to my big dilemma was, Do what your current beliefs require, and let that doing be known: express it through acts. That’s what I did; my first act of the year happened in February 1843. After three months of reflection, I published my retraction of the harsh criticisms I had made against Rome: I couldn't be wrong in doing at least this much; however, I did not go further: I did not retract my Anglican teachings. My second act took place in September; after much painful hesitation, I resigned my Living. I did try to keep Littlemore for myself, even though it still would remain a part of St. Mary's. I had established it as a parish, and I loved it; but my attempt was unsuccessful. I could accept being a curate under someone else, but I still hoped to be my own master there. I had hoped an exception could be made for me given the circumstances, but my request was denied. In truth, I was asking for something that wasn’t feasible, and it's probably a good thing that it was.
These were my two acts of the year, and I said, "I cannot be wrong in making them; let that follow which must follow in the thoughts of the world about me, when they see what I do." They fully answered my purpose. What I felt as a simple duty to do, did create a general suspicion about me, without such responsibility as would be involved in my taking the initiative in creating it. Then, when friends wrote me on the subject, either I did not deny or I confessed it, according to the character and need of their letters. Sometimes, in the case of intimate friends, whom I seemed to leave in ignorance of what others knew about me, I invited the question.
These were my two actions of the year, and I thought, "I can’t be wrong for doing these; whatever people think of me when they see what I do is out of my control." They totally served my purpose. What I saw as a simple duty ended up raising general suspicion about me, without the responsibility that would come from me initiating that suspicion. Then, when friends wrote to me about it, I either didn’t deny it or I admitted it, depending on the nature of their letters. Sometimes, with close friends who didn't seem to know what others already did, I even prompted the conversation.
And here comes in another point for explanation. While I was fighting for the Anglican Church in Oxford, then indeed I was very glad to make converts, and, though I never broke away from that rule of my mind (as I may call it) of which I have already spoken, of finding disciples rather than seeking them, yet, that I made advances to others in a special way, I have no doubt; this came to an end, however, as soon as I fell into misgivings as to the true ground to be taken in the controversy. Then, when I gave up my place in the Movement, I ceased from any such proceeding: and my utmost endeavour was to tranquillise such persons, especially those who belonged to the new school, as were unsettled in their religious views, and, as I judged, hasty in their conclusions. This went on till 1843; but, at that date, as soon as I turned my face Romeward, I gave up altogether and in any shape, as far as ever was possible, the thought of acting upon others. Then I myself was simply my own concern. How could I in any sense direct others, who had to be guided in so momentous a matter myself? How could I be considered in a position, even to say a word to them one way or the other? How could I presume to unsettle them, as I was unsettled, when I had no means of bringing them out of such unsettlement? And, if they were unsettled already, how could I point to them a place of refuge, which I was not sure that I should choose for myself? My only line, my only duty, was to keep simply to my own case. I recollected Pascal's words, "Je mourrai seul." I deliberately put out of my thoughts all other works and claims, and said nothing to any one, unless I was obliged.
And here's another point to explain. While I was advocating for the Anglican Church in Oxford, I was definitely eager to make converts. Although I never strayed from my mindset of finding followers rather than seeking them out, I certainly reached out to others in a special way. However, this changed as soon as I started having doubts about the right stance to take in the debate. Once I stepped back from the Movement, I stopped any such efforts; my main focus shifted to calming those, especially from the new school, who were uncertain in their beliefs and, as I saw it, too quick in their judgments. This continued until 1843; but that year, as soon as I began looking towards Rome, I completely abandoned any thought of influencing others. From then on, my concerns were entirely my own. How could I guide others when I was struggling with such an important decision myself? How could I even be in a position to offer them advice one way or the other? How could I risk unsettling them when I was myself lost, without a way to help them through that confusion? And if they were already unsettled, how could I point them to a safe place when I wasn't even sure of where I would choose to go? My only path, my only responsibility, was to focus solely on my own situation. I remembered Pascal's words, "Je mourrai seul." I intentionally set aside all other commitments and claims and said nothing to anyone unless absolutely necessary.
But this brought upon me a great trouble. In the newspapers there were continual reports about my intentions; I did not answer them; presently strangers or friends wrote, begging to be allowed to answer them; and, if I still kept to my resolution and said nothing, then I was thought to be mysterious, and a prejudice was excited against me. But, what was far worse, there were a number of tender, eager hearts, of whom I knew nothing at all, who were watching me, wishing to think as I thought, and to do as I did, if they could but find it out; who in consequence were distressed, that, in so solemn a matter, they could not see what was coming, and who heard reports about me this way or that, on a first day and on a second; and felt the weariness of waiting, and the sickness of delayed hope, and did not understand that I was as perplexed as themselves, and, being of more sensitive complexion of mind than myself, were made ill by the suspense. And they too of course for the time thought me mysterious and inexplicable. I ask their pardon as far as I was really unkind to them. There was a gifted and deeply earnest lady, who in a parabolical account of that time, has described both my conduct as she felt it, and that of such as herself. In a singularly graphic, amusing vision of pilgrims, who were making their way across a bleak common in great discomfort, and who were ever warned against, yet continually nearing, "the king's highway" on the right, she says, "All my fears and disquiets were speedily renewed by seeing the most daring of our leaders (the same who had first forced his way through the palisade, and in whose courage and sagacity we all put implicit trust) suddenly stop short, and declare that he would go on no further. He did not, however, take the leap at once, but quietly sat down on the top of the fence with his feet hanging towards the road, as if he meant to take his time about it, and let himself down easily." I do not wonder at all that I thus seemed so unkind to a lady, who at that time had never seen me. We were both in trial in our different ways. I am far from denying that I was acting selfishly both towards them and towards others; but it was a religious selfishness. Certainly to myself my own duty seemed clear. They that are whole can heal others; but in my case it was, "Physician, heal thyself." My own soul was my first concern, and it seemed an absurdity to my reason to be converted in partnership. I wished to go to my Lord by myself, and in my own way, or rather His way. I had neither wish, nor, I may say, thought of taking a number with me. But nothing of this could be known to others.
But this caused me a lot of trouble. The newspapers kept reporting on my intentions; I didn’t respond. Soon, both strangers and friends wrote, pleading to respond for me. If I still stuck to my decision and said nothing, people thought I was mysterious, and a bias formed against me. But what was much worse was that there were many sensitive, eager people, of whom I knew nothing at all, who were watching me, wanting to think like me and act like me, if they could just figure it out. They were stressed that, in such an important matter, they couldn't see what was coming. They heard rumors about me here and there, day after day, and felt the fatigue of waiting and the frustration of delayed hope, not understanding that I was just as confused as they were, and that they, being more sensitive than I, were getting sick from the uncertainty. They too, of course, thought I was mysterious and hard to understand. I apologize for any unkindness I showed them. There was a talented and earnest woman who, in a figurative story about that time, described both my actions as she perceived them and hers. In a vividly amusing vision of pilgrims struggling across a bleak field, continually warned against but always approaching "the king's highway" on the right, she wrote, "All my fears and anxieties were quickly renewed when I saw the most daring of our leaders (the same one who had first plowed through the barricade, and in whom we all had complete trust) suddenly stop and declare that he wouldn’t go any further. He didn’t leap at once, but quietly sat down on the top of the fence, his feet hanging over the road, as if he wanted to take his time and ease himself down." I don’t blame her for thinking I was unkind, especially since she had never seen me. We were both going through our own struggles. I don’t deny that I was acting selfishly toward them and others; but it was a religious kind of selfishness. For me, my duty seemed clear. Those who are healthy can heal others; but in my case, it was "Physician, heal thyself." My own soul was my primary concern, and it seemed absurd to my mind to be saved in partnership. I wanted to approach my Lord on my own and in my own way, or rather, in His way. I had no desire, or even thought, of bringing others along. But none of this could be known to others.
The following three letters are written to a friend, who had every claim upon me to be frank with him:—it will be seen that I disclose the real state of mind to him, in proportion as he presses me.
The following three letters are written to a friend, who had every right to expect honesty from me:—you will see that I share my true thoughts with him as he encourages me to do so.
1. "October 14, 1843. I would tell you in a few words why I have resigned St. Mary's, as you seem to wish, were it possible to do so. But it is most difficult to bring out in brief, or even in extenso, any just view of my feelings and reasons.
1. "October 14, 1843. I would explain in a few words why I resigned from St. Mary's, as you seem to want, if it were possible to do so. However, it’s really hard to summarize, or even in extenso, any fair view of my feelings and reasons."
"The nearest approach I can give to a general account of them is to say, that it has been caused by the general repudiation of the view, contained in No. 90, on the part of the Church. I could not stand against such an unanimous expression of opinion from the Bishops, supported, as it has been, by the concurrence, or at least silence, of all classes in the Church, lay and clerical. If there ever was a case, in which an individual teacher has been put aside and virtually put away by a community, mine is one. No decency has been observed in the attacks upon me from authority; no protests have been offered against them. It is felt,—I am far from denying, justly felt,—that I am a foreign material, and cannot assimilate with the Church of England.
The closest I can come to a general explanation of the situation is to say that it stems from the Church's overall rejection of the perspective presented in No. 90. I couldn’t oppose such a unanimous opinion from the Bishops, which has been backed, at the very least, by the silence of all groups within the Church, both laypeople and clergy. If there was ever a case where an individual teacher was sidelined and effectively removed by a community, it’s mine. No decency has been shown in the attacks against me from those in authority; no protests have been made against them. It’s acknowledged—I don’t deny it—that there’s a feeling, justly so, that I’m an outsider and cannot integrate with the Church of England.
"Even my own Bishop has said that my mode of interpreting the Articles makes them mean anything or nothing. When I heard this delivered, I did not believe my ears. I denied to others that it was said.... Out came the charge, and the words could not be mistaken. This astonished me the more, because I published that Letter to him (how unwillingly you know) on the understanding that I was to deliver his judgment on No. 90 instead of him. A year elapses, and a second and heavier judgment came forth. I did not bargain for this,—nor did he, but the tide was too strong for him.
"Even my own Bishop has said that the way I interpret the Articles makes them mean anything or nothing. When I heard this, I couldn't believe my ears. I told others that it wasn't actually said… But the accusation came out, and the words were clear. This shocked me even more because I published that Letter to him (as you know, very reluctantly) with the understanding that I would be conveying his judgment on No. 90 instead of him. A year went by, and then a second, even harsher judgment was released. I didn't expect this—nor did he, but the pressure was too much for him."
"I fear that I must confess, that, in proportion as I think the English Church is showing herself intrinsically and radically alien from Catholic principles, so do I feel the difficulties of defending her claims to be a branch of the Catholic Church. It seems a dream to call a communion Catholic, when one can neither appeal to any clear statement of Catholic doctrine in its formularies, nor interpret ambiguous formularies by the received and living Catholic sense, whether past or present. Men of Catholic views are too truly but a party in our Church. I cannot deny that many other independent circumstances, which it is not worth while entering into, have led me to the same conclusion.
"I have to admit that the more I believe the English Church is fundamentally different from Catholic principles, the more I struggle to support its claims to be a part of the Catholic Church. It feels unrealistic to label a community as Catholic when you can’t refer to any clear statement of Catholic doctrine in its teachings, nor can you interpret vague teachings according to the established and ongoing Catholic understanding, whether from the past or present. People with Catholic beliefs are simply a faction within our Church. I can’t deny that many other unrelated factors, which aren't worth discussing, have brought me to the same conclusion."
"I do not say all this to every body, as you may suppose; but I do not like to make a secret of it to you."
"I don't share this with everyone, as you might think; but I don't want to keep it a secret from you."
2. "Oct. 25, 1843. You have engaged in a dangerous correspondence; I am deeply sorry for the pain I shall give you.
2. "Oct. 25, 1843. You’ve gotten into a risky correspondence; I'm really sorry for the hurt I’m going to cause you.
"I must tell you then frankly (but I combat arguments which to me, alas, are shadows), that it is not from disappointment, irritation, or impatience, that I have, whether rightly or wrongly, resigned St. Mary's; but because I think the Church of Rome the Catholic Church, and ours not part of the Catholic Church, because not in communion with Rome; and because I feel that I could not honestly be a teacher in it any longer.
"I have to be honest with you (though I’m fighting against arguments that feel like mere illusions to me) that my decision to leave St. Mary's isn’t due to disappointment, frustration, or impatience. Instead, it’s because I believe that the Church of Rome is the true Catholic Church, and our church is not part of that because we’re not in communion with Rome. I also feel I couldn’t continue to be a teacher there with integrity."
"This thought came to me last summer four years.... I mentioned it to two friends in the autumn.... It arose in the first instance from the Monophysite and Donatist controversies, the former of which I was engaged with in the course of theological study to which I had given myself. This was at a time when no Bishop, I believe, had declared against us, and when all was progress and hope. I do not think I have ever felt disappointment or impatience, certainly not then; for I never looked forward to the future, nor do I realise it now.
"This thought came to me last summer four years ago. I shared it with two friends in the autumn. It initially stemmed from the Monophysite and Donatist controversies, which I was studying during my theological pursuits. This was a time when, to my knowledge, no Bishop had spoken out against us, and everything felt like progress and hope. I don't think I ever felt disappointment or impatience, definitely not back then; because I never looked ahead to the future, nor do I perceive it that way now."
"My first effort was to write that article on the Catholicity of the English Church; for two years it quieted me. Since the summer of 1839 I have written little or nothing on modern controversy.... You know how unwillingly I wrote my letter to the Bishop in which I committed myself again, as the safest course under circumstances. The article I speak of quieted me till the end of 1841, over the affair of No. 90, when that wretched Jerusalem Bishopric (no personal matter) revived all my alarms. They have increased up to this moment. At that time I told my secret to another person in addition.
My first attempt was to write that article on the inclusivity of the English Church; it kept me calm for two years. Since the summer of 1839, I've hardly written anything about modern debates... You know how reluctantly I wrote my letter to the Bishop, where I committed myself again, thinking it was the safest option given the situation. The article I mentioned kept me settled until the end of 1841, during the No. 90 issue, when that dreadful Jerusalem Bishopric (nothing personal) brought all my fears back. They've just gotten worse since then. At that time, I shared my secret with one more person.
"You see then that the various ecclesiastical and quasi-ecclesiastical acts, which have taken place in the course of the last two years and a half, are not the cause of my state of opinion, but are keen stimulants and weighty confirmations of a conviction forced upon me, while engaged in the course of duty, viz. that theological reading to which I had given myself. And this last-mentioned circumstance is a fact, which has never, I think, come before me till now that I write to you.
You can see that the various church-related actions and semi-church-related events that have happened over the past two and a half years aren't the cause of my viewpoint. Instead, they are strong motivators and significant affirmations of a belief that has been impressed upon me while I was fulfilling my responsibilities, specifically through the course of duty I dedicated myself to in my theological studies. I realize that this particular fact hasn't come to my attention until now, as I'm writing to you.
"It is three years since, on account of my state of opinion, I urged the Provost in vain to let St. Mary's be separated from Littlemore; thinking I might with a safe conscience serve the latter, though I could not comfortably continue in so public a place as a University. This was before No. 90.
"It has been three years since I tried unsuccessfully to convince the Provost to separate St. Mary's from Littlemore because of my beliefs. I thought I could serve Littlemore without compromising my conscience, even though I couldn't comfortably remain in such a public role at a university. This was before No. 90."
"Finally, I have acted under advice, and that, not of my own choosing, but what came to me in the way of duty, nor the advice of those only who agree with me, but of near friends who differ from me.
"Finally, I have acted on advice, and that not of my own choosing, but what came to me as a duty, and not just the advice of those who agree with me, but also from close friends who disagree with me."
"I have nothing to reproach myself with, as far as I see, in the matter of impatience; i.e. practically or in conduct. And I trust that He, who has kept me in the slow course of change hitherto, will keep me still from hasty acts or resolves with a doubtful conscience.
"I don't have anything to blame myself for when it comes to impatience; i.e. in terms of actions or behavior. And I hope that He, who has guided me through a gradual process of change so far, will continue to prevent me from making impulsive decisions or commitments with a troubled conscience."
"This I am sure of, that such interposition as yours, kind as it is, only does what you would consider harm. It makes me realise my own views to myself; it makes me see their consistency; it assures me of my own deliberateness; it suggests to me the traces of a Providential Hand; it takes away the pain of disclosures; it relieves me of a heavy secret.
"I'm sure of this: your interference, as kind as it is, only does what you would see as harm. It makes me reflect on my own beliefs; it shows me their consistency; it assures me of my own intent; it hints at a higher power at work; it eases the pain of sharing; it frees me from a heavy secret."
"You may make what use of my letters you think right."
"You can use my letters however you see fit."
My correspondent wrote to me once more, and I replied thus: "October 31, 1843. Your letter has made my heart ache more, and caused me more and deeper sighs than any I have had a long while, though I assure you there is much on all sides of me to cause sighing and heartache. On all sides I am quite haunted by the one dreadful whisper repeated from so many quarters, and causing the keenest distress to friends. You know but a part of my present trial, in knowing that I am unsettled myself.
My correspondent wrote to me again, and I replied like this: "October 31, 1843. Your letter has made my heart ache even more and has given me deeper sighs than I've had in a long time, though I promise you there's plenty around me that could cause sighing and heartache. I'm being haunted from all sides by that one terrible whisper coming from so many places, which is causing immense distress to my friends. You only know part of my current struggle, which is realizing that I am feeling so unsettled myself."
"Since the beginning of this year I have been obliged to tell the state of my mind to some others; but never, I think, without being in a way obliged, as from friends writing to me as you did, or guessing how matters stood. No one in Oxford knows it or here" [Littlemore], "but one friend whom I felt I could not help telling the other day. But, I suppose, very many suspect it."
"Since the start of this year, I've felt the need to share my thoughts with a few others, but it’s always been because of some obligation, like when friends write to me like you did, or when they sense what’s going on. No one in Oxford knows about it or here in Littlemore, except for one friend I felt I had to tell the other day. But I guess a lot of people probably suspect it."
On receiving these letters, my correspondent, if I recollect rightly, at once communicated the matter of them to Dr. Pusey, and this will enable me to state as nearly as I can the way in which my changed state of opinion was made known to him.
On receiving these letters, my correspondent, if I remember correctly, immediately shared their contents with Dr. Pusey, which will allow me to explain as accurately as possible how my changed opinion was conveyed to him.
I had from the first a great difficulty in making Dr. Pusey understand such differences of opinion as existed between himself and me. When there was a proposal about the end of 1838 for a subscription for a Cranmer Memorial, he wished us both to subscribe together to it. I could not, of course, and wished him to subscribe by himself. That he would not do; he could not bear the thought of our appearing to the world in separate positions, in a matter of importance. And, as time went on, he would not take any hints, which I gave him, on the subject of my growing inclination to Rome. When I found him so determined, I often had not the heart to go on. And then I knew, that, from affection to me, he so often took up and threw himself into what I said, that I felt the great responsibility I should incur, if I put things before him just as I might view them. And, not knowing him so well as I did afterwards, I feared lest I should unsettle him. And moreover, I recollected well, how prostrated he had been with illness in 1832, and I used always to think that the start of the Movement had given him a fresh life. I fancied that his physical energies even depended on the presence of a vigorous hope and bright prospects for his imagination to feed upon; so much so, that when he was so unworthily treated by the authorities of the place in 1843, I recollect writing to the late Mr. Dodsworth to state my anxiety, lest, if his mind became dejected in consequence, his health would suffer seriously also. These were difficulties in my way; and then again, another difficulty was, that, as we were not together under the same roof, we only saw each other at set times; others indeed, who were coming in or out of my rooms freely, and as there might be need at the moment, knew all my thoughts easily; but for him to know them well, formal efforts were necessary. A common friend of ours broke it all to him in 1841, as far as matters had gone at that time, and showed him clearly the logical conclusions which must lie in propositions to which I had committed myself; but somehow or other in a little while, his mind fell back into its former happy state, and he could not bring himself to believe that he and I should not go on pleasantly together to the end. But that affectionate dream needs must have been broken at last; and two years afterwards, that friend to whom I wrote the letters which I have just now inserted, set himself, as I have said, to break it. Upon that, I too begged Dr. Pusey to tell in private to any one he would, that I thought in the event I should leave the Church of England. However, he would not do so; and at the end of 1844 had almost relapsed into his former thoughts about me, if I may judge from a letter of his which I have found. Nay, at the Commemoration of 1845, a few months before I left the Anglican Church, I think he said about me to a friend, "I trust after all we shall keep him."
I initially found it really hard to get Dr. Pusey to understand the differences in opinion between us. When there was a proposal towards the end of 1838 for a subscription for a Cranmer Memorial, he wanted us both to subscribe together. I couldn't agree to that and wanted him to contribute on his own. He refused, not wanting us to appear divided in an important matter. As time went on, he didn't pick up on the hints I dropped about my growing interest in Rome. When I saw how set he was, I often didn't have the heart to continue. I realized that he cared for me so much that he often got wrapped up in what I said, which made me feel a heavy responsibility if I presented my views honestly. Not knowing him as well back then as I did later, I worried I might unsettle him. I also remembered how sick he had been in 1832 and thought that the start of the Movement had revitalized him. I imagined his physical strength relied on having a strong hope and positive outlook to thrive on; so much so that when he was treated unfairly by the authorities in 1843, I remember writing to Mr. Dodsworth out of concern that if he became discouraged, his health would seriously suffer as well. These were challenges I faced; additionally, since we didn't live under the same roof, we only saw each other at scheduled times. Others casually coming in and out of my rooms easily grasped my thoughts, but for him to understand them, I had to make formal efforts. A mutual friend informed him in 1841 about my situation at that point, clearly laying out the logical conclusions of the beliefs I had committed to; but somehow, soon after, his mind reverted to its previous happy state, and he couldn’t accept that we wouldn’t get along just fine until the end. But that hopeful dream had to end eventually; two years later, the friend I wrote those letters to sought to break that illusion. With that in mind, I also asked Dr. Pusey to share privately with anyone he wanted that I was considering leaving the Church of England. However, he didn’t follow through, and by the end of 1844, he seemed to have almost returned to his earlier feelings about me, judging from a letter I found. In fact, at the Commemoration of 1845, a few months before I left the Anglican Church, I believe he told a friend, "I trust after all we shall keep him."
In that autumn of 1843, at the time that I spoke to Dr. Pusey, I asked another friend also to communicate to others in confidence the prospect which lay before me.
In the autumn of 1843, when I talked to Dr. Pusey, I also asked another friend to privately share the opportunity that was ahead of me.
To another friend I gave the opportunity of knowing it, if he would, in the following postscript to a letter:—
To another friend, I offered the chance to learn about it, if he wanted, in the following postscript to a letter:—
"While I write, I will add a word about myself. You may come near a person or two who, owing to circumstances, know more exactly my state of feeling than you do, though they would not tell you. Now I do not like that you should not be aware of this, though I see no reason why you should know what they happen to know. Your wishing it otherwise would be a reason."
"While I write, I want to share a little about myself. There may be a couple of people who, due to the situation, understand my feelings better than you do, even though they wouldn’t share that with you. I don’t like that you’re unaware of this, but I also don’t see any reason why you should know what they know. If you wanted it to be different, that would be a reason."
I had a dear and old friend, near his death; I never told him my state of mind. Why should I unsettle that sweet calm tranquillity, when I had nothing to offer him instead? I could not say, "Go to Rome;" else I should have shown him the way. Yet I offered myself for his examination. One day he led the way to my speaking out; but, rightly or wrongly, I could not respond. My reason was, "I have no certainty on the matter myself. To say 'I think' is to tease and to distress, not to persuade."
I had a close, old friend who was near death; I never shared my true feelings with him. Why would I disrupt that sweet, peaceful calm when I had nothing better to offer? I couldn't say, "Go to Rome," because that would have indicated a path forward. Still, I was open for him to ask me questions. One day, he encouraged me to speak up, but, whether it was right or wrong, I just couldn't do it. My reasoning was, "I have no certainty about this myself. To say 'I think' would only confuse and upset him, not convince him."
I wrote to him on Michaelmas Day, 1843: "As you may suppose, I have nothing to write to you about, pleasant. I could tell you some very painful things; but it is best not to anticipate trouble, which after all can but happen, and, for what one knows, may be averted. You are always so kind, that sometimes, when I part with you, I am nearly moved to tears, and it would be a relief to be so, at your kindness and at my hardness. I think no one ever had such kind friends as I have."
I wrote to him on Michaelmas Day, 1843: "As you can imagine, I don’t have anything pleasant to share with you. I could tell you some really painful things, but it’s better not to expect trouble, which can happen anyway, and who knows, maybe it can be prevented. You are always so kind that sometimes, when I say goodbye to you, I almost feel like crying, and it would be a relief to do so, because of your kindness and my own hardness. I don’t think anyone has ever had such kind friends as I do."
The next year, January 22, I wrote to him: "Pusey has quite enough on him, and generously takes on himself more than enough, for me to add burdens when I am not obliged; particularly too, when I am very conscious, that there are burdens, which I am or shall be obliged to lay upon him some time or other, whether I will or no."
The next year, on January 22, I wrote to him: "Pusey has more than enough on his plate, and he kindly takes on even more than he should, so I don't want to add to his burdens when I don't have to; especially since I know there are burdens that I am or will be required to place on him sooner or later, whether I like it or not."
And on February 21: "Half-past ten. I am just up, having a bad cold; the like has not happened to me (except twice in January) in my memory. You may think you have been in my thoughts, long before my rising. Of course you are so continually, as you well know. I could not come to see you; I am not worthy of friends. With my opinions, to the full of which I dare not confess, I feel like a guilty person with others, though I trust I am not so. People kindly think that I have much to bear externally, disappointment, slander, etc. No, I have nothing to bear, but the anxiety which I feel for my friends' anxiety for me, and their perplexity. This [letter] is a better Ash-Wednesday than birthday present;" [his birthday was the same day as mine; it was Ash-Wednesday that year]; "but I cannot help writing about what is uppermost. And now all kindest and best wishes to you, my oldest friend, whom I must not speak more about, and with reference to myself, lest you should be angry." It was not in his nature to have doubts: he used to look at me with anxiety, and wonder what had come over me.
And on February 21: "10:30 AM. I just got up, feeling really sick with a bad cold; I haven’t had one like this (except twice in January) for as long as I can remember. You might think you’ve been on my mind long before I got out of bed. Of course, you always are, as you know. I couldn’t come to see you; I don’t feel worthy of friends. With my opinions, which I can’t fully share, I feel like I’m guilty around others, even though I hope I’m not. People kindly assume I have a lot to deal with, like disappointment and slander. But really, I have nothing to deal with except the worry I feel about my friends being worried about me, and their confusion. This [letter] is a better Ash Wednesday present than a birthday gift;" [his birthday was the same day as mine; that year it was Ash Wednesday]; "but I can’t help but write about what’s on my mind. So, sending all my best wishes to you, my oldest friend, whom I shouldn’t talk more about because I don’t want you to get upset." It wasn’t in his nature to have doubts: he would look at me with concern and wonder what was bothering me.
On Easter Monday: "All that is good and gracious descend upon you and yours from the influences of this Blessed Season; and it will be so (so be it!), for what is the life of you all, as day passes after day, but a simple endeavour to serve Him, from whom all blessing comes? Though we are separated in place, yet this we have in common, that you are living a calm and cheerful time, and I am enjoying the thought of you. It is your blessing to have a clear heaven, and peace around, according to the blessing pronounced on Benjamin. So it is, and so may it ever be."
On Easter Monday: "May all that is good and kind come to you and your loved ones through the gifts of this Blessed Season; and it will be so (so be it!), for what is life for all of you, as day follows day, but a simple effort to serve Him, from whom all blessings flow? Even though we are apart, we share this: you are experiencing a peaceful and joyful time, and I find joy in thinking of you. It is your blessing to have a clear sky and peace all around you, just as the blessing on Benjamin foretold. So it is, and may it always be."
He was in simple good faith. He died in September that year. I had expected that his last illness would have brought light to my mind, as to what I ought to do. It brought none. I made a note, which runs thus: "I sobbed bitterly over his coffin, to think that he left me still dark as to what the way of truth was, and what I ought to do in order to please God and fulfil His will." I think I wrote to Charles Marriott to say, that at that moment, with the thought of my friend before me, my strong view in favour of Rome remained just what it was. On the other hand, my firm belief that grace was to be found in the Anglican Church remained too.[5] I wrote to a friend upon his death:—
He was genuinely well-meaning. He died in September that year. I had hoped that his last illness would clarify in my mind what I should do. It didn’t. I made a note that reads: "I cried intensely over his coffin, thinking that he left me still in the dark about what the truth was and what I should do to please God and fulfill His will." I think I wrote to Charles Marriott to say that, at that moment, with my friend in my thoughts, my strong opinion in favor of Rome remained unchanged. Meanwhile, my firm belief that grace could also be found in the Anglican Church stayed the same too.[5] I wrote to a friend upon his death:—
"Sept. 16, 1844. I am full of wrong and miserable feelings, which it is useless to detail, so grudging and sullen, when I should be thankful. Of course, when one sees so blessed an end, and that, the termination of so blameless a life, of one who really fed on our ordinances and got strength from them, and see the same continued in a whole family, the little children finding quite a solace of their pain in the Daily Prayer, it is impossible not to feel more at ease in our Church, as at least a sort of Zoar, a place of refuge and temporary rest, because of the steepness of the way. Only, may we be kept from unlawful security, lest we have Moab and Ammon for our progeny, the enemies of Israel."
"Sept. 16, 1844. I’m filled with wrong and miserable feelings that I don’t need to go into, so grudging and sullen, when I should be grateful. Of course, when you see such a blessed end, the conclusion of such a blameless life—someone who truly thrived on our rituals and drew strength from them—and you see that this legacy continues in an entire family, with the little children finding comfort in their pain through the Daily Prayer, it’s hard not to feel more at ease in our Church, at least as a sort of Zoar, a place of refuge and temporary rest because of the steepness of the journey. But may we be kept from false security, so we don't end up with Moab and Ammon as our descendants, the enemies of Israel."
I could not continue in this state, either in the light of duty or of reason. My difficulty was this: I had been deceived greatly once; how could I be sure that I was not deceived a second time? I then thought myself right; how was I to be certain that I was right now? How many years had I thought myself sure of what I now rejected? how could I ever again have confidence in myself? As in 1840 I listened to the rising doubt in favour of Rome, now I listened to the waning doubt in favour of the English Church. To be certain is to know that one knows; what test had I, that I should not change again, after that I had become a Catholic? I had still apprehension of this, though I thought a time would come, when it would depart. However, some limit ought to be put to these vague misgivings; I must do my best and then leave it to a higher power to prosper it. So, I determined to write an essay on Doctrinal Development; and then, if, at the end of it, my convictions in favour of the Roman Church were not weaker, to make up my mind to seek admission into her fold. I acted upon this resolution in the beginning of 1845, and worked at my Essay steadily into the autumn.
I couldn't keep going in this state, either out of duty or reason. My problem was this: I had been misled badly before; how could I be sure I wasn't being fooled again? I thought I was right; how could I be sure that I was right now? How many years had I been convinced of something that I now rejected? How could I ever trust myself again? Just as I listened to the growing doubts about Rome in 1840, I now listened to the fading doubts about the English Church. To be certain means to know that you know; what evidence did I have that I wouldn't change my mind again after becoming a Catholic? I still worried about this, even though I thought a time would come when those worries would go away. However, some limit should be set to these vague uncertainties; I had to do my best and then leave the outcome to a higher power. So, I decided to write an essay on Doctrinal Development; then, if my beliefs about the Roman Church weren't weaker by the end, I would commit to seeking admission into her community. I followed through with this decision at the beginning of 1845 and worked on my Essay steadily until the autumn.
I told my resolution to various friends at the beginning of the year; indeed, it was at that time known generally. I wrote to a friend thus:—
I shared my resolution with several friends at the start of the year; in fact, it was widely known at that point. I wrote to a friend like this:—
"My intention is, if nothing comes upon me, which I cannot foresee, to remain quietly in statu quo for a considerable time, trusting that my friends will kindly remember me and my trial in their prayers. And I should give up my fellowship some time before anything further took place."
"My plan is, as long as nothing unexpected happens, to stay in the same situation for quite a while, hoping that my friends will kindly keep me and my struggle in their thoughts and prayers. I would also resign from my fellowship sometime before anything else occurs."
One very dear friend, now no more, Charles Marriott, sent me a letter at the beginning of the next year, from which, from love of him, I quote some sentences:—
One very dear friend, who is no longer with us, Charles Marriott, sent me a letter at the start of the next year, and out of my affection for him, I’ll share a few sentences:—
"January 15, 1845. You know me well enough to be aware, that I never see through anything at first. Your letter to B. casts a gloom over the future, which you can understand, if you have understood me, as I believe you have. But I may speak out at once, of what I see and feel at once, and doubt not that I shall ever feel: that your whole conduct towards the Church of England and towards us, who have striven and are still striving to seek after God for ourselves, and to revive true religion among others, under her authority and guidance, has been generous and considerate, and, were that word appropriate, dutiful, to a degree that I could scarcely have conceived possible, more unsparing of self than I should have thought nature could sustain. I have felt with pain every link that you have severed, and I have asked no questions, because I felt that you ought to measure the disclosure of your thoughts according to the occasion, and the capacity of those to whom you spoke. I write in haste, in the midst of engagements engrossing in themselves, but partly made tasteless, partly embittered by what I have heard; but I am willing to trust even you, whom I love best on earth, in God's Hand, in the earnest prayer that you may be so employed as is best for the Holy Catholic Church."
"January 15, 1845. You know me well enough to realize that I never grasp things right away. Your letter to B. casts a shadow over the future, which you can understand if you really know me, as I believe you do. But I can say clearly what I see and feel now, and I am sure I will always feel this: that your entire approach to the Church of England and to us, who have worked hard and continue to work hard to seek God for ourselves and to revive true faith in others, under her authority and guidance, has been generous and thoughtful, and, if that word fits, dutiful, to a degree that I never thought possible, more selfless than I would have believed anyone could endure. I have felt with pain each connection you have broken, and I haven’t asked questions because I thought you should share your thoughts based on the situation and the understanding of those you're speaking to. I write this quickly, amidst obligations that are compelling in themselves but partly spoiled, partly embittered by what I’ve heard; still, I am willing to trust even you, who I love most in the world, into God’s hands, sincerely praying that you may be given a role that serves the Holy Catholic Church best."
There was a lady, who was very anxious on the subject, and I wrote to her the following letters:—
There was a woman who was very worried about the topic, and I wrote her the following letters:—
1. "October, 1844. What can I say more to your purpose? If you will ask me any specific questions, I will answer them, as far as I am able."
1. "October, 1844. What else can I say that will help you? If you have any specific questions, I’ll answer them to the best of my ability."
2. "November 7, 1844. I am still where I was; I am not moving. Two things, however, seem plain, that every one is prepared for such an event, next, that every one expects it of me. Few indeed, who do not think it suitable, fewer still, who do not think it likely. However, I do not think it either suitable or likely. I have very little reason to doubt about the issue of things, but the when and the how are known to Him, from whom, I trust, both the course of things and the issue come. The expression of opinion, and the latent and habitual feeling about me, which is on every side and among all parties, has great force. I insist upon it, because I have a great dread of going by my own feelings, lest they should mislead me. By one's sense of duty one must go; but external facts support one in doing so."
2. "November 7, 1844. I'm still in the same place; I'm not moving. However, two things seem clear: everyone is ready for such an event, and everyone expects it from me. Very few think it's inappropriate, and even fewer doubt it's likely to happen. But I don’t see it as either appropriate or likely. I have little reason to question how things will turn out, but the when and how are known only to Him, from whom I believe both the course of events and the outcomes come. The opinions expressed and the underlying feelings about me that exist on all sides and among all groups are quite powerful. I emphasize this because I really fear relying on my own feelings, for they might lead me astray. One must act according to their sense of duty; external facts support one in doing so."
3. "January 8, 1845. My full belief is, in accordance with your letter, that, if there is a move in our Church, very few persons indeed will be partners to it. I doubt whether one or two at the most among residents at Oxford. And I don't know whether I can wish it. The state of the Roman Catholics is at present so unsatisfactory. This I am sure of, that nothing but a simple, direct call of duty is a warrant for any one leaving our Church; no preference of another Church, no delight in its services, no hope of greater religious advancement in it, no indignation, no disgust, at the persons and things, among which we may find ourselves in the Church of England. The simple question is, Can I (it is personal, not whether another, but can I) be saved in the English Church? am I in safety, were I to die tonight? Is it a mortal sin in me, not joining another communion? P.S. I hardly see my way to concur in attendance, though occasional, in the Roman Catholic chapel, unless a man has made up his mind pretty well to join it eventually. Invocations are not required in the Church of Rome; somehow, I do not like using them except under the sanction of the Church, and this makes me unwilling to admit them in members of our Church."
3. "January 8, 1845. I truly believe, based on your letter, that if there's a shift in our Church, very few people will actually support it. I doubt whether even one or two of the residents at Oxford would. And I’m not sure I would even want that. The situation with the Roman Catholics is currently very disappointing. What I am certain of is that only a clear, straightforward sense of duty justifies anyone leaving our Church; not a preference for another Church, not enjoyment of its services, not the expectation of better spiritual growth there, and not anger or disgust at the people and issues we encounter in the Church of England. The essential question is, Can I (it’s personal, not about someone else, but can I) be saved in the English Church? Am I safe if I were to die tonight? Is it a serious sin in me not to join another communion? P.S. I find it hard to agree to attend, even occasionally, the Roman Catholic chapel unless someone has made a solid decision to join it for good. Invocations aren't required in the Church of Rome; for some reason, I don’t feel comfortable using them unless they are approved by the Church, which makes me hesitant to accept them from members of our Church."
4. "March 30. Now I will tell you more than any one knows except two friends. My own convictions are as strong, as I suppose they can become: only it is so difficult to know whether it is a call of reason or of conscience. I cannot make out, if I am impelled by what seems clear, or by a sense of duty. You can understand how painful this doubt is; so I have waited, hoping for light, and using the words of the Psalmist, 'Show some token upon me.' But I suppose I have no right to wait for ever for this. Then I am waiting, because friends are most considerately bearing me in mind, and asking guidance for me; and, I trust, I should attend to any new feelings which came upon me, should that be the effect of their kindness. And then this waiting subserves the purpose of preparing men's minds. I dread shocking, unsettling people. Anyhow, I can't avoid giving incalculable pain. So, if I had my will, I should like to wait till the summer of 1846, which would be a full seven years from the time that my convictions first began to fall on me. But I don't think I shall last so long.
4. "March 30. Now I’m going to share something that only two friends know. My beliefs are as strong as I think they can be, but it’s hard to tell if it’s coming from reason or from my conscience. I can’t figure out if I'm being driven by what seems clear or by a sense of duty. You can understand how painful this doubt is, so I’ve been waiting, hoping for some clarity, using the words of the Psalmist, 'Show some token upon me.' But I guess I don’t have the right to wait forever for this. I’m waiting because my friends are kindly keeping me in mind and asking for guidance for me; and I trust I'll pick up on any new feelings that come from their kindness. Plus, this waiting helps prepare others for what's to come. I really dread shocking or upsetting people. Regardless, I can’t avoid causing a lot of pain. So, if I had my way, I would wait until the summer of 1846, which would be a full seven years since my convictions first started to weigh on me. But I don’t think I can hold out that long."
"My present intention is to give up my Fellowship in October, and to publish some work or treatise between that and Christmas. I wish people to know why I am acting, as well as what I am doing; it takes off that vague and distressing surprise, 'What can have made him?'"
"My current plan is to resign from my Fellowship in October and publish some work or treatise between then and Christmas. I want people to understand why I'm doing this, as well as what I'm doing; it helps avoid that confusing and unsettling question, 'What could have caused him to do that?'"
5. "June 1. What you tell me of yourself makes it plain that it is your duty to remain quietly and patiently, till you see more clearly where you are; else you are leaping in the dark."
5. "June 1. What you share about yourself makes it clear that it's your responsibility to stay calm and patient until you have a better understanding of your situation; otherwise, you're just jumping into the unknown."
In the early part of this year, if not before, there was an idea afloat that my retirement from the Anglican Church was owing to the feeling that I had so been thrust aside, without any one's taking my part. Various measures were, I believe, talked of in consequence of this surmise. Coincidently with it was an exceedingly kind article about me in a quarterly, in its April number. The writer praised me in feeling and beautiful language far above my deserts. In the course of his remarks, he said, speaking of me as Vicar of St. Mary's: "He had the future race of clergy hearing him. Did he value and feel tender about, and cling to his position? ...Not at all.... No sacrifice to him perhaps, he did not care about such things."
Earlier this year, or maybe even before that, there was a rumor going around that my decision to leave the Anglican Church was because I felt sidelined, without anyone standing up for me. I think people discussed various actions because of this assumption. Alongside this, there was a very kind article about me published in a quarterly magazine in its April issue. The writer praised me in heartfelt and beautiful language far beyond what I deserved. In his comments, he referred to me as the Vicar of St. Mary's and said: "He had the future generation of clergy listening to him. Did he value and feel attached to his position? ...Not at all.... To him, perhaps, it was no sacrifice; he didn’t care about such things."
This was the occasion of my writing to a very intimate friend the following letter:—
This was the reason I wrote the following letter to a close friend:—
"April 3, 1845.... Accept this apology, my dear C., and forgive me. As I say so, tears come into my eyes—that arises from the accident of this time, when I am giving up so much I love. Just now I have been overset by A. B.'s article in the C. D.; yet really, my dear C., I have never for an instant had even the temptation of repenting my leaving Oxford. The feeling of repentance has not even come into my mind. How could it? How could I remain at St. Mary's a hypocrite? how could I be answerable for souls (and life so uncertain), with the convictions, or at least persuasions, which I had upon me? It is indeed a responsibility to act as I am doing; and I feel His hand heavy on me without intermission, who is all Wisdom and Love, so that my heart and mind are tired out, just as the limbs might be from a load on one's back. That sort of dull aching pain is mine; but my responsibility really is nothing to what it would be, to be answerable for souls, for confiding loving souls, in the English Church, with my convictions. My love to Marriott, and save me the pain of sending him a line."
"April 3, 1845.... Please accept this apology, my dear C., and forgive me. As I say this, tears fill my eyes—it comes from the situation I’m in now, giving up so much that I love. I was just overwhelmed by A. B.'s article in the C. D.; yet honestly, my dear C., I have never once thought about regretting my decision to leave Oxford. The thought of regret hasn’t even crossed my mind. How could it? How could I stay at St. Mary's as a hypocrite? How could I be responsible for souls (when life is so uncertain) with the beliefs, or at least the feelings, that I hold? It is indeed a heavy responsibility to act as I am doing; and I constantly feel His weight upon me, who is all Wisdom and Love, so that my heart and mind are exhausted, just like my body might be from carrying a heavy load. That dull aching pain belongs to me; but my actual responsibility is nothing compared to what it would be if I were accountable for the souls of trusting, loving individuals in the English Church, with my current convictions. Please send my love to Marriott, and spare me the pain of having to write him a note."
In July a bishop thought it worth while to give out to the world that "the adherents of Mr. Newman are few in number. A short time will now probably suffice to prove this fact. It is well known that he is preparing for secession; and, when that event takes place, it will be seen how few will go with him."
In July, a bishop decided it was important to inform everyone that "Mr. Newman's supporters are few in number. It won't be long before this becomes clear. It's well known that he is getting ready to leave, and when that happens, it will become evident how few will follow him."
All this time I was hard at my essay on Doctrinal Development. As I advanced, my view so cleared that instead of speaking any more of "the Roman Catholics," I boldly called them Catholics. Before I got to the end, I resolved to be received, and the book remains in the state in which it was then, unfinished.
All this time, I was focused on my essay about Doctrinal Development. As I progressed, my perspective became so clear that instead of referring to "the Roman Catholics," I confidently called them Catholics. By the time I finished, I decided I wanted to be accepted, and the book remains in the condition it was then, unfinished.
On October 8th I wrote to a number of friends the following letter:—
On October 8th, I wrote the following letter to several friends:—
"Littlemore, October 8, 1845. I am this night expecting Father Dominic, the Passionist, who, from his youth, has been led to have distinct and direct thoughts, first of the countries of the North, then of England. After thirty years' (almost) waiting, he was without his own act sent here. But he has had little to do with conversions. I saw him here for a few minutes on St. John Baptist's day last year. He does not know of my intention; but I mean to ask of him admission into the one Fold of Christ....
Littlemore, October 8, 1845. Tonight, I’m expecting Father Dominic, the Passionist, who has been thoughtful about the northern countries and England since he was young. After nearly thirty years of waiting, he was brought here without his own decision. However, he hasn’t been involved much in conversions. I saw him briefly last year on St. John Baptist's day. He isn’t aware of my intention, but I plan to ask him for admission into the one Fold of Christ....
"I have so many letters to write, that this must do for all who choose to ask about me. With my best love to dear Charles Marriott, who is over your head, etc., etc.
"I have so many letters to write that this will have to suffice for everyone who asks about me. Sending my love to dear Charles Marriott, who is above you, etc., etc."
"P.S. This will not go till all is over. Of course it requires no answer."
"P.S. This won't last until everything is done. Of course, no response is needed."
For a while after my reception, I proposed to betake myself to some secular calling. I wrote thus in answer to a very gracious letter of congratulation:—
For a while after my reception, I planned to pursue a regular job. I wrote this in response to a very kind letter of congratulations:—
"Nov. 25, 1845. I hope you will have anticipated, before I express it, the great gratification which I received from your Eminence's letter. That gratification, however, was tempered by the apprehension, that kind and anxious well-wishers at a distance attach more importance to my step than really belongs to it. To me indeed personally it is of course an inestimable gain; but persons and things look great at a distance, which are not so when seen close; and, did your Eminence know me, you would see that I was one, about whom there has been far more talk for good and bad than he deserves, and about whose movements far more expectation has been raised than the event will justify.
"Nov. 25, 1845. I hope you anticipated, before I say it, how pleased I was with your Eminence's letter. That pleasure, however, was mixed with concern that kind and caring supporters from afar might attach more significance to my actions than they actually deserve. To me personally, it is undeniably a valuable gain; but people and situations often seem more impressive from a distance than they do up close. If your Eminence truly knew me, you would realize that I've been the subject of much more discussion—both positive and negative—than I merit, and that far more expectations have been set regarding my actions than the outcome will show."
"As I never, I do trust, aimed at anything else than obedience to my own sense of right, and have been magnified into the leader of a party without my wishing it or acting as such, so now, much as I may wish to the contrary, and earnestly as I may labour (as is my duty) to minister in a humble way to the Catholic Church, yet my powers will, I fear, disappoint the expectations of both my own friends, and of those who pray for the peace of Jerusalem.
"As I never intended anything other than to follow my own sense of what’s right, and have been elevated to the leader of a party against my will, now, as much as I might wish otherwise, and as hard as I may work (as is my duty) to serve in a modest way the Catholic Church, I fear my abilities will disappoint the hopes of both my friends and those who pray for the peace of Jerusalem."
"If I might ask of your Eminence a favour, it is that you would kindly moderate those anticipations. Would it were in my power to do, what I do not aspire to do! At present certainly I cannot look forward to the future, and, though it would be a good work if I could persuade others to do as I have done, yet it seems as if I had quite enough to do in thinking of myself."
"If I may ask a favor of you, Your Eminence, it would be to please tone down those expectations. How I wish I could do what I don’t aim to do! Right now, I definitely can’t look ahead to the future, and while it would be great if I could encourage others to follow my example, it feels like I have more than enough on my plate just thinking about myself."
Soon, Dr. Wiseman, in whose vicariate Oxford lay, called me to Oscott; and I went there with others; afterwards he sent me to Rome, and finally placed me in Birmingham.
Soon, Dr. Wiseman, whose area included Oxford, called me to Oscott; I went there with others; later he sent me to Rome, and eventually placed me in Birmingham.
I wrote to a friend:—
I messaged a friend:—
"January 20, 1846. You may think how lonely I am. 'Obliviscere populum tuum et domum patris tui,' has been in my ears for the last twelve hours. I realise more that we are leaving Littlemore, and it is like going on the open sea."
"January 20, 1846. You might imagine how lonely I feel. 'Forget your people and your father's house' has been ringing in my ears for the last twelve hours. I realize even more that we are leaving Littlemore, and it feels like we're heading out to open sea."
I left Oxford for good on Monday, February 23, 1846. On the Saturday and Sunday before, I was in my house at Littlemore simply by myself, as I had been for the first day or two when I had originally taken possession of it. I slept on Sunday night at my dear friend's, Mr. Johnson's, at the Observatory. Various friends came to see the last of me; Mr. Copeland, Mr. Church, Mr. Buckle, Mr. Pattison, and Mr. Lewis. Dr. Pusey too came up to take leave of me; and I called on Dr. Ogle, one of my very oldest friends, for he was my private tutor when I was an undergraduate. In him I took leave of my first college, Trinity, which was so dear to me, and which held on its foundation so many who have been kind to me both when I was a boy, and all through my Oxford life. Trinity had never been unkind to me. There used to be much snapdragon growing on the walls opposite my freshman's rooms there, and I had for years taken it as the emblem of my own perpetual residence even unto death in my University.
I left Oxford for good on Monday, February 23, 1846. The Saturday and Sunday before that, I was at my house in Littlemore all alone, just like I was during the first day or two after I moved in. On Sunday night, I stayed at my dear friend Mr. Johnson's place, at the Observatory. Various friends came to say goodbye; Mr. Copeland, Mr. Church, Mr. Buckle, Mr. Pattison, and Mr. Lewis. Dr. Pusey also came by to take his leave, and I visited Dr. Ogle, one of my oldest friends, who had been my private tutor when I was an undergraduate. Through him, I said goodbye to my first college, Trinity, which was very dear to me and had so many people who were kind to me both as a boy and throughout my time at Oxford. Trinity had always been good to me. Snapdragon used to grow abundantly on the walls opposite my freshman rooms there, and for years, I took that as a symbol of my permanent presence, even unto death, at my University.
On the morning of the 23rd I left the observatory. I have never seen Oxford since, excepting its spires, as they are seen from the railway.
On the morning of the 23rd, I left the observatory. I haven’t seen Oxford since, except for its spires as viewed from the train.
Footnotes
[3] As I am not writing controversially, I will only here remark upon this argument, that there is a great difference between a command, which implies physical conditions, and one which is moral. To go to Jerusalem was a matter of the body, not of the soul.
[3] Since I'm not writing in a controversial way, I just want to point out that there’s a big difference between a command that involves physical actions and one that is moral. Going to Jerusalem was something physical, not spiritual.
[4] I cannot prove this at this distance of time; but I do not think it wrong to introduce here the passage containing it, as I am imputing to the Bishop nothing which the world would think disgraceful, but, on the contrary, what a large religious body would approve.
[4] I can't prove this after all this time; however, I don't think it's wrong to include the part that mentions it here, since I'm not attributing anything to the Bishop that would be seen as disgraceful by the public. Instead, it's something that a large religious community would actually support.
[5] On this subject, vid. my third lecture on "Anglican Difficulties."
[5] On this topic, see my third lecture on "Anglican Difficulties."
Part VII
General answer to Mr. Kingsley
From the time that I became a Catholic, of course I have no further history of my religious opinions to narrate. In saying this, I do not mean to say that my mind has been idle, or that I have given up thinking on theological subjects; but that I have had no changes to record, and have had no anxiety of heart whatever. I have been in perfect peace and contentment. I never have had one doubt. I was not conscious to myself, on my conversion, of any difference of thought or of temper from what I had before. I was not conscious of firmer faith in the fundamental truths of revelation, or of more self-command; I had not more fervour; but it was like coming into port after a rough sea; and my happiness on that score remains to this day without interruption.
Since I became a Catholic, I don’t have any more history of my religious beliefs to share. When I say this, I don’t mean to imply that I’ve stopped thinking about theological topics or that I’ve been inactive in my mind; it’s just that I haven’t experienced any changes to report, and I’ve had no anxiety at all. I’ve been in complete peace and contentment. I’ve never had a single doubt. At the time of my conversion, I wasn’t aware of any change in my thoughts or feelings compared to before. I didn’t feel a stronger faith in the fundamental truths of revelation or more self-control; I didn’t have more passion either. It felt like arriving in a safe harbor after a rough journey, and my happiness about that has continued uninterrupted to this day.
Nor had I any trouble about receiving those additional articles, which are not found in the Anglican Creed. Some of them I believed already, but not any one of them was a trial to me. I made a profession of them upon my reception with the greatest ease, and I have the same ease in believing them now. I am far of course from denying that every article of the Christian Creed, whether as held by Catholics or by Protestants, is beset with intellectual difficulties; and it is simple fact, that, for myself, I cannot answer those difficulties. Many persons are very sensitive of the difficulties of religion; I am as sensitive as any one; but I have never been able to see a connection between apprehending those difficulties, however keenly, and multiplying them to any extent, and doubting the doctrines to which they are attached. Ten thousand difficulties do not make one doubt, as I understand the subject; difficulty and doubt are incommensurate. There of course may be difficulties in the evidence; but I am speaking of difficulties intrinsic to the doctrines, or to their compatibility with each other. A man may be annoyed that he cannot work out a mathematical problem, of which the answer is or is not given to him, without doubting that it admits of an answer, or that a particular answer is the true one. Of all points of faith, the being of a God is, to my own apprehension, encompassed with most difficulty, and borne in upon our minds with most power.
I also had no trouble accepting those additional beliefs that aren’t part of the Anglican Creed. Some of them I already agreed with, but none of them were a struggle for me. I embraced them easily when I joined, and I still find it easy to believe them now. Of course, I don’t deny that every article of the Christian Creed, whether held by Catholics or Protestants, comes with intellectual challenges; and frankly, I can’t answer those challenges myself. Many people are very aware of the difficulties that come with religion; I’m as aware as anyone, but I’ve never been able to see how recognizing those challenges, no matter how intensely, leads to doubting the beliefs they relate to. A thousand difficulties don’t create a single doubt, in my view; difficulty and doubt don’t measure up against each other. There can be challenges in the evidence, but I’m talking about challenges that are inherent to the doctrines or their compatibility with one another. A person can be frustrated because they can’t resolve a math problem, whether the answer is available or not, without doubting that there is an answer or that a specific answer is correct. Among all the points of faith, the existence of God seems to me to be surrounded by the most difficulty and resonates within our minds with the greatest force.
People say that the doctrine of Transubstantiation is difficult to believe; I did not believe the doctrine till I was a Catholic. I had no difficulty in believing it as soon as I believed that the Catholic Roman Church was the oracle of God, and that she had declared this doctrine to be part of the original revelation. It is difficult, impossible to imagine, I grant—but how is it difficult to believe? Yet Macaulay thought it so difficult to believe, that he had need of a believer in it of talents as eminent as Sir Thomas More, before he could bring himself to conceive that the Catholics of an enlightened age could resist "the overwhelming force of the argument against it." "Sir Thomas More," he says, "is one of the choice specimens of wisdom and virtue; and the doctrine of transubstantiation is a kind of proof charge. A faith which stands that test, will stand any test." But for myself, I cannot indeed prove it, I cannot tell how it is; but I say, "Why should it not be? What's to hinder it? What do I know of substance or matter? just as much as the greatest philosophers, and that is nothing at all;"—so much is this the case, that there is a rising school of philosophy now, which considers phenomena to constitute the whole of our knowledge in physics. The Catholic doctrine leaves phenomena alone. It does not say that the phenomena go; on the contrary, it says that they remain: nor does it say that the same phenomena are in several places at once. It deals with what no one on earth knows anything about, the material substances themselves. And, in like manner, of that majestic article of the Anglican as well as of the Catholic Creed—the doctrine of the Trinity in Unity. What do I know of the essence of the Divine Being? I know that my abstract idea of three is simply incompatible with my idea of one; but when I come to the question of concrete fact, I have no means of proving that there is not a sense in which one and three can equally be predicated of the Incommunicable God.
People say that the idea of Transubstantiation is hard to accept; I didn’t believe it until I became a Catholic. I found it easy to believe as soon as I accepted that the Catholic Roman Church was the voice of God and that it declared this doctrine as part of the original revelation. It's challenging, even impossible to imagine, I agree—but why is it hard to believe? Yet Macaulay found it so hard to believe that he needed a believer as talented as Sir Thomas More to conceive that Catholics in an enlightened age could resist "the overwhelming force of the argument against it." "Sir Thomas More," he states, "is one of the finest examples of wisdom and virtue; and the doctrine of transubstantiation is a kind of proof test. A faith that withstands that test can withstand any test." But for me, I can't prove it; I can’t explain how it is; still, I ask, "Why shouldn't it be? What’s stopping it? What do I know about substance or matter? Just as much as the greatest philosophers, and that’s practically nothing;"—so much so that there’s a rising school of philosophy today that believes phenomena make up the entirety of our knowledge in physics. The Catholic doctrine leaves phenomena untouched. It doesn't claim that phenomena disappear; on the contrary, it affirms that they remain. Nor does it assert that the same phenomena exist in multiple places at once. It concerns itself with what no one on earth knows anything about— the material substances themselves. Similarly, there’s that profound article of both the Anglican and Catholic Creeds—the doctrine of the Trinity in Unity. What do I know about the essence of the Divine Being? I understand that my abstract idea of three is completely incompatible with my idea of one; but when it comes to the question of concrete reality, I have no way to prove that there isn’t a sense in which one and three can both apply to the Incommunicable God.
But I am going to take upon myself the responsibility of more than the mere creed of the Church; as the parties accusing me are determined I shall do. They say, that now, in that I am a Catholic, though I may not have offences of my own against honesty to answer for, yet, at least, I am answerable for the offences of others, of my co-religionists, of my brother priests, of the Church herself. I am quite willing to accept the responsibility; and, as I have been able, as I trust, by means of a few words, to dissipate, in the minds of all those who do not begin with disbelieving me, the suspicion with which so many Protestants start, in forming their judgment of Catholics, viz. that our creed is actually set up in inevitable superstition and hypocrisy, as the original sin of Catholicism; so now I will go on, as before, identifying myself with the Church and vindicating it—not of course denying the enormous mass of sin and ignorance which exists of necessity in that world-wide multiform communion—but going to the proof of this one point, that its system is in no sense dishonest, and that therefore the upholders and teachers of that system, as such, have a claim to be acquitted in their own persons of that odious imputation.
But I’m going to take on the responsibility of more than just the Church's beliefs; since the parties accusing me are determined to do so, I will. They say that now, because I am a Catholic, even though I might not have my own issues with honesty to address, I am at least accountable for the wrongdoings of others—my fellow Catholics, my brother priests, the Church itself. I'm more than willing to accept that responsibility; and, as I have been able to, I hope, through a few words, to dispel the suspicion held by many Protestants who start with disbelief when judging Catholics—that our beliefs are purely rooted in unavoidable superstition and hypocrisy, which they see as the fundamental flaw of Catholicism. So now, I will continue, as before, to identify with the Church and defend it—not denying the vast amount of sin and ignorance that exists in that diverse, worldwide community—but proving this one point: that its system is not in any way dishonest, and therefore those who support and teach that system, as such, deserve to be cleared of that hateful accusation.
Starting then with the being of a God (which, as I have said, is as certain to me as the certainty of my own existence, though when I try to put the grounds of that certainty into logical shape I find a difficulty in doing so in mood and figure to my satisfaction), I look out of myself into the world of men, and there I see a sight which fills me with unspeakable distress. The world seems simply to give the lie to that great truth, of which my whole being is so full; and the effect upon me is, in consequence, as a matter of necessity, as confusing as if it denied that I am in existence myself. If I looked into a mirror, and did not see my face, I should have the sort of feeling which actually comes upon me, when I look into this living busy world, and see no reflexion of its Creator. This is, to me, one of the great difficulties of this absolute primary truth, to which I referred just now. Were it not for this voice, speaking so clearly in my conscience and my heart, I should be an atheist, or a pantheist, or a polytheist when I looked into the world. I am speaking for myself only; and I am far from denying the real force of the arguments in proof of a God, drawn from the general facts of human society, but these do not warm me or enlighten me; they do not take away the winter of my desolation, or make the buds unfold and the leaves grow within me, and my moral being rejoice. The sight of the world is nothing else than the prophet's scroll, full of "lamentations, and mourning, and woe."
Starting with the existence of God (which, as I’ve said, feels as certain to me as my own existence, although I struggle to logically clarify that certainty to my satisfaction), I look outside myself at the world of people, and I see a sight that fills me with deep distress. The world seems to contradict that profound truth that fills my entire being; as a result, it’s confusing to me, almost like it’s denying my own existence. If I looked in a mirror and didn’t see my reflection, I’d feel the same way I do when I gaze at this vibrant world and see no sign of its Creator. This is one of the great challenges of this fundamental truth I mentioned earlier. If it weren’t for this voice speaking clearly in my conscience and my heart, I would be an atheist, pantheist, or polytheist when I observe the world. I’m speaking only for myself; I’m not denying the strength of the arguments for God's existence based on the overall facts of human society, but those arguments don’t comfort or enlighten me; they don’t eliminate the winter of my desolation or make the buds bloom and the leaves grow within me or allow my moral being to rejoice. The state of the world is nothing more than the prophet’s scroll, filled with "lamentations, and mourning, and woe."
To consider the world in its length and breadth, its various history, the many races of man, their starts, their fortunes, their mutual alienation, their conflicts; and then their ways, habits, governments, forms of worship; their enterprises, their aimless courses, their random achievements and acquirements, the impotent conclusion of long-standing facts, the tokens so faint and broken, of a superintending design, the blind evolution of what turn out to be great powers or truths, the progress of things, as if from unreasoning elements, not towards final causes, the greatness and littleness of man, his far-reaching aims, his short duration, the curtain hung over his futurity, the disappointments of life, the defeat of good, the success of evil, physical pain, mental anguish, the prevalence and intensity of sin, the pervading idolatries, the corruptions, the dreary hopeless irreligion, that condition of the whole race, so fearfully yet exactly described in the Apostle's words, "having no hope and without God in the world,"—all this is a vision to dizzy and appal; and inflicts upon the mind the sense of a profound mystery, which is absolutely beyond human solution.
To think about the world in all its dimensions, its varied history, the many races of humanity, their beginnings, their fortunes, their distancing from one another, their conflicts; and then their ways, habits, governments, forms of worship; their endeavors, their aimless journeys, their random achievements and possessions, the powerless conclusions of long-standing facts, the faint and broken signs of an overseeing design, the blind evolution of what turn out to be significant powers or truths, the progress of things, as if from unreasoning elements, not toward final purposes, the greatness and smallness of humanity, its far-reaching aspirations, its brief existence, the uncertainty of the future, the disappointments of life, the defeat of good, the triumph of evil, physical suffering, mental distress, the prevalence and intensity of sin, the widespread idolatries, the corruptions, the dreary hopeless irreligion, that state of the entire human race, so fearfully yet accurately described in the Apostle's words, "having no hope and without God in the world,"—all this is a vision that is dizzying and frightening; it leaves the mind with a sense of profound mystery that is completely beyond human understanding.
What shall be said to this heart-piercing, reason-bewildering fact? I can only answer, that either there is no Creator, or this living society of men is in a true sense discarded from His presence. Did I see a boy of good make and mind, with the tokens on him of a refined nature, cast upon the world without provision, unable to say whence he came, his birthplace or his family connections, I should conclude that there was some mystery connected with his history, and that he was one, of whom, from one cause or other, his parents were ashamed. Thus only should I be able to account for the contrast between the promise and condition of his being. And so I argue about the world;—if there be a God, since there is a God, the human race is implicated in some terrible aboriginal calamity. It is out of joint with the purposes of its Creator. This is a fact, a fact as true as the fact of its existence; and thus the doctrine of what is theologically called original sin becomes to me almost as certain as that the world exists, and as the existence of God.
What can be said about this heart-wrenching, mind-boggling fact? I can only conclude that either there is no Creator, or this living society of people is truly cut off from His presence. If I saw a well-built and thoughtful boy, showing signs of a refined nature, thrown into the world without any support, unable to say where he came from, his birthplace, or his family connections, I would conclude that there’s some mystery in his background and that for some reason, his parents were ashamed of him. That is the only way I could make sense of the difference between his potential and his current situation. And so I think about the world—if there is a God, since there is a God, the human race must be involved in some terrible ancient disaster. It’s out of alignment with the purposes of its Creator. This is a fact, as undeniable as the fact of its existence; and so the doctrine known in theology as original sin seems to me almost as certain as the world's existence and the existence of God.
And now, supposing it were the blessed and loving will of the Creator to interfere in this anarchical condition of things, what are we to suppose would be the methods which might be necessarily or naturally involved in His object of mercy? Since the world is in so abnormal a state, surely it would be no surprise to me, if the interposition were of necessity equally extraordinary—or what is called miraculous. But that subject does not directly come into the scope of my present remarks. Miracles as evidence, involve an argument; and of course I am thinking of some means which does not immediately run into argument. I am rather asking what must be the face-to-face antagonist, by which to withstand and baffle the fierce energy of passion and the all-corroding, all-dissolving scepticism of the intellect in religious inquiries? I have no intention at all to deny, that truth is the real object of our reason, and that, if it does not attain to truth, either the premiss or the process is in fault; but I am not speaking of right reason, but of reason as it acts in fact and concretely in fallen man. I know that even the unaided reason, when correctly exercised, leads to a belief in God, in the immortality of the soul, and in a future retribution; but I am considering it actually and historically; and in this point of view, I do not think I am wrong in saying that its tendency is towards a simple unbelief in matters of religion. No truth, however sacred, can stand against it, in the long run; and hence it is that in the pagan world, when our Lord came, the last traces of the religious knowledge of former times were all but disappearing from those portions of the world in which the intellect had been active and had had a career.
And now, assuming it was the blessed and loving will of the Creator to step in and change this chaotic situation, what methods might He use to show His mercy? Given how abnormal the world is, it wouldn't surprise me if His intervention was equally extraordinary—or what we might call miraculous. But that's not the main focus of what I'm discussing right now. Miracles as evidence involve arguments, and I'm thinking about ways that don't lead directly to arguments. I'm really asking what the direct challenger is that can stand up to and confound the intense energy of passion and the all-consuming doubt of the intellect in religious matters. I have no intention of denying that truth is the ultimate goal of our reasoning, and that if we don't reach truth, either the premise or the reasoning process is to blame; but I'm not talking about sound reasoning, rather, I'm looking at how reasoning actually operates in the fallen human condition. I know that even unaided reason, when used properly, leads to belief in God, the immortality of the soul, and a future judgment; but I'm considering this in a historical context, and from this perspective, I think it’s accurate to say that its tendency leans towards a straightforward unbelief in religious issues. No truth, however sacred, can ultimately withstand it; and that’s why, when our Lord arrived in the pagan world, the last remnants of ancient religious knowledge were almost gone from those areas where intellectual activity had thrived.
And in these latter days, in like manner, outside the Catholic Church things are tending, with far greater rapidity than in that old time from the circumstance of the age, to atheism in one shape or other. What a scene, what a prospect, does the whole of Europe present at this day! and not only Europe, but every government and every civilization through the world, which is under the influence of the European mind! Especially, for it most concerns us, how sorrowful, in the view of religion, even taken in its most elementary, most attenuated form, is the spectacle presented to us by the educated intellect of England, France, and Germany! Lovers of their country and of their race, religious men, external to the Catholic Church, have attempted various expedients to arrest fierce wilful human nature in its onward course, and to bring it into subjection. The necessity of some form of religion for the interests of humanity, has been generally acknowledged: but where was the concrete representative of things invisible, which would have the force and the toughness necessary to be a breakwater against the deluge? Three centuries ago the establishment of religion, material, legal, and social, was generally adopted as the best expedient for the purpose, in those countries which separated from the Catholic Church; and for a long time it was successful; but now the crevices of those establishments are admitting the enemy. Thirty years ago, education was relied upon: ten years ago there was a hope that wars would cease for ever, under the influence of commercial enterprise and the reign of the useful and fine arts; but will any one venture to say that there is anything anywhere on this earth, which will afford a fulcrum for us, whereby to keep the earth from moving onwards?
And nowadays, similarly, outside the Catholic Church, things are moving towards atheism faster than before due to the current times. What a scene, what a prospect Europe shows us today! And not just Europe, but every government and civilization around the world influenced by European thinking! Particularly concerning for us is how sad, from a religious standpoint, the situation looks among the educated people in England, France, and Germany, even when religion is viewed in its most basic and stripped-down form! Patriotic and religious people outside the Catholic Church have tried different ways to contain the wild nature of humanity and bring it under control. It’s widely recognized that some form of religion is needed for the well-being of humanity, but where is the tangible representation of the unseen? What has the strength and resilience to serve as a barrier against the flood? Three centuries ago, establishing religion—material, legal, and social—was seen as the best approach in those countries that broke away from the Catholic Church, and it worked for a long time. But now, the cracks in those establishments are letting in the enemy. Thirty years ago, education was seen as the solution; ten years ago, there was hope that wars would end forever due to commerce and the flourishing of the arts; but can anyone honestly say there’s anything on this earth that will provide us with the leverage needed to stop the world from moving forward?
The judgment, which experience passes on establishments or education, as a means of maintaining religious truth in this anarchical world, must be extended even to Scripture, though Scripture be divine. Experience proves surely that the Bible does not answer a purpose, for which it was never intended. It may be accidentally the means of the conversion of individuals; but a book, after all, cannot make a stand against the wild living intellect of man, and in this day it begins to testify, as regards its own structure and contents, to the power of that universal solvent, which is so successfully acting upon religious establishments.
The judgment that experience makes about institutions or education, as a way to uphold religious truth in this chaotic world, should also be applied to Scripture, even if it's divine. Experience clearly shows that the Bible doesn't fulfill a purpose for which it was never meant. It might occasionally lead to the conversion of individuals, but ultimately, a book can't compete with the untamed intellect of humanity, and today it increasingly reflects the influence of that universal solvent that's effectively impacting religious institutions.
Supposing then it to be the Will of the Creator to interfere in human affairs, and to make provisions for retaining in the world a knowledge of Himself, so definite and distinct as to be proof against the energy of human scepticism, in such a case—I am far from saying that there was no other way—but there is nothing to surprise the mind, if He should think fit to introduce a power into the world, invested with the prerogative of infallibility in religious matters. Such a provision would be a direct, immediate, active, and prompt means of withstanding the difficulty; it would be an instrument suited to the need; and, when I find that this is the very claim of the Catholic Church, not only do I feel no difficulty in admitting the idea, but there is a fitness in it, which recommends it to my mind. And thus I am brought to speak of the Church's infallibility, as a provision, adapted by the mercy of the Creator, to preserve religion in the world, and to restrain that freedom of thought, which of course in itself is one of the greatest of our natural gifts, and to rescue it from its own suicidal excesses. And let it be observed that, neither here nor in what follows, shall I have occasion to speak directly of the revealed body of truths, but only as they bear upon the defence of natural religion. I say, that a power, possessed of infallibility in religious teaching, is happily adapted to be a working instrument, in the course of human affairs, for smiting hard and throwing back the immense energy of the aggressive intellect:—and in saying this, as in the other things that I have to say, it must still be recollected that I am all along bearing in mind my main purpose, which is a defence of myself.
If we assume that it's the Creator's will to get involved in human matters and ensure that there’s a clear and unmistakable understanding of Himself that can withstand human doubt, then—while I’m not saying there was no other option—it’s not surprising if He chose to bring into the world a force that has the authority to be infallible in religious matters. Such a provision would provide a direct, active, and effective way to address this challenge; it would serve the need perfectly. When I see that this is exactly the claim made by the Catholic Church, I don’t struggle to accept the idea; rather, it makes sense to me. Therefore, I feel led to discuss the Church's infallibility as a provision devised by the Creator's mercy to maintain religion in the world and to control that freedom of thought, which is one of our greatest natural gifts, preventing it from leading to harmful extremes. I should note that, both here and in what follows, I won’t address the specific set of revealed truths but rather their relevance to defending natural religion. I assert that a force with infallibility in religious teaching is well-suited to effectively counter the strong and aggressive intellect:—and while I state this, along with everything else I have to say, it's important to remember that I am continually focused on my main goal, which is to defend myself.
I am defending myself here from a plausible charge brought against Catholics, as will be seen better as I proceed. The charge is this:—that I, as a Catholic, not only make profession to hold doctrines which I cannot possibly believe in my heart, but that I also believe in the existence of a power on earth, which at its own will imposes upon men any new set of credenda, when it pleases, by a claim to infallibility; in consequence, that my own thoughts are not my own property; that I cannot tell that tomorrow I may not have to give up what I hold today, and that the necessary effect of such a condition of mind must be a degrading bondage, or a bitter inward rebellion relieving itself in secret infidelity, or the necessity of ignoring the whole subject of religion in a sort of disgust, and of mechanically saying everything that the Church says, and leaving to others the defence of it. As then I have above spoken of the relation of my mind towards the Catholic Creed, so now I shall speak of the attitude which it takes up in the view of the Church's infallibility.
I’m defending myself from a reasonable accusation against Catholics, which will become clearer as I continue. The accusation is this: that I, as a Catholic, not only claim to believe in doctrines that I can't truly accept in my heart, but that I also believe in a power on earth that can impose any new set of beliefs whenever it wants, based on a claim of infallibility. As a result, my own thoughts aren’t truly my own; I can't be certain that tomorrow I won't have to abandon what I believe today. This state of mind inevitably leads to a demeaning sense of bondage, or to a painful inner struggle that manifests as secret disbelief, or to a need to completely ignore the topic of religion out of frustration, just repeating whatever the Church says and leaving the defense of it to others. Having discussed my relationship with the Catholic Creed, I will now address my perspective on the Church's infallibility.
And first, the initial doctrine of the infallible teacher must be an emphatic protest against the existing state of mankind. Man had rebelled against his Maker. It was this that caused the divine interposition: and the first act of the divinely accredited messenger must be to proclaim it. The Church must denounce rebellion as of all possible evils the greatest. She must have no terms with it; if she would be true to her Master, she must ban and anathematise it. This is the meaning of a statement which has furnished matter for one of those special accusations to which I am at present replying: I have, however, no fault at all to confess in regard to it; I have nothing to withdraw, and in consequence I here deliberately repeat it. I said, "The Catholic Church holds it better for the sun and moon to drop from heaven, for the earth to fail, and for all the many millions on it to die of starvation in extremest agony, as far as temporal affliction goes, than that one soul, I will not say, should be lost, but should commit one single venial sin, should tell one wilful untruth, or should steal one poor farthing without excuse." I think the principle here enunciated to be the mere preamble in the formal credentials of the Catholic Church, as an Act of Parliament might begin with a "Whereas." It is because of the intensity of the evil which has possession of mankind, that a suitable antagonist has been provided against it; and the initial act of that divinely-commissioned power is of course to deliver her challenge and to defy the enemy. Such a preamble then gives a meaning to her position in the world, and an interpretation to her whole course of teaching and action.
And first, the core belief of the infallible teacher must strongly oppose the current state of humanity. People have rebelled against their Creator. This was what prompted divine intervention: the very first action of the divinely chosen messenger must be to declare this. The Church must condemn rebellion as the greatest of all possible evils. She cannot compromise with it; to be true to her Master, she must reject and curse it. This is the meaning behind a statement that has led to one of the specific accusations I'm currently responding to: however, I have nothing to admit regarding it; I have nothing to take back, and therefore, I will repeat it intentionally. I said, "The Catholic Church believes it is better for the sun and moon to fall from the sky, for the earth to fail, and for all the many millions on it to die of starvation in extreme agony, as far as temporary suffering goes, than for one soul—not to mention, to be lost—but to commit a single minor sin, to tell one intentional lie, or to steal a single penny without justification." I think the principle stated here is merely the introduction in the official credentials of the Catholic Church, much like how an Act of Parliament might start with a "Whereas." It is due to the severity of the evil that has taken hold of humanity that a fitting opposing force has been provided against it; and the first action of that divinely appointed authority is, of course, to issue its challenge and confront the enemy. Such an introduction then gives meaning to her role in the world and insight into her entire course of teaching and action.
In like manner she has ever put forth, with most energetic distinctness, those other great elementary truths, which either are an explanation of her mission or give a character to her work. She does not teach that human nature is irreclaimable, else wherefore should she be sent? not that it is to be shattered and reversed, but to be extricated, purified, and restored; not that it is a mere mass of evil, but that it has the promise of great things, and even now has a virtue and a praise proper to itself. But in the next place she knows and she preaches that such a restoration, as she aims at effecting in it, must be brought about, not simply through any outward provision of preaching and teaching, even though it be her own, but from a certain inward spiritual power or grace imparted directly from above, and which is in her keeping. She has it in charge to rescue human nature from its misery, but not simply by raising it upon its own level, but by lifting it up to a higher level than its own. She recognises in it real moral excellence though degraded, but she cannot set it free from earth except by exalting it towards heaven. It was for this end that a renovating grace was put into her hands, and therefore from the nature of the gift, as well as from the reasonableness of the case, she goes on, as a further point, to insist, that all true conversion must begin with the first springs of thought, and to teach that each individual man must be in his own person one whole and perfect temple of God, while he is also one of the living stones which build up a visible religious community. And thus the distinctions between nature and grace, and between outward and inward religion, become two further articles in what I have called the preamble of her divine commission.
In the same way, she has always presented, with great clarity, those other fundamental truths that either explain her mission or define her work. She does not teach that human nature is beyond redemption; otherwise, why would she be here? It’s not that it should be destroyed or completely changed, but rather that it should be freed, purified, and restored. It’s not just a mass of evil; it holds the promise of great things and even has its own inherent goodness and worth. Additionally, she understands and teaches that this kind of restoration cannot happen solely through external preaching and teaching, even if it’s her own, but requires an inner spiritual power or grace that comes directly from above and is entrusted to her. She is meant to lift human nature from its suffering, not just raise it back to its original state but elevate it to a higher one. She sees true moral excellence in it, even in its fallen state, but she cannot free it from earthly ties without raising it toward heaven. This renovating grace was given to her for this purpose, which is why she emphasizes that genuine conversion must start from the very roots of thought. She teaches that each individual must embody a complete and perfect temple of God, while also being one of the living stones that build a visible religious community. Thus, the distinctions between nature and grace, and between outward and inward religion, become two additional key points in what I’ve referred to as the introduction to her divine mission.
Such truths as these she vigorously reiterates, and pertinaciously inflicts upon mankind; as to such she observes no half-measures, no economical reserve, no delicacy or prudence. "Ye must be born again," is the simple, direct form of words which she uses after her Divine Master; "your whole nature must be re-born, your passions, and your affections, and your aims, and your conscience, and your will, must all be bathed in a new element, and reconsecrated to your Maker, and, the last not the least, your intellect." It was for repeating these points of her teaching in my own way, that certain passages of one of my volumes have been brought into the general accusation which has been made against my religious opinions. The writer has said that I was demented if I believed, and unprincipled if I did not believe, in my statement that a lazy, ragged, filthy, story-telling beggar-woman, if chaste, sober, cheerful, and religious, had a prospect of heaven, which was absolutely closed to an accomplished statesman, or lawyer, or noble, be he ever so just, upright, generous, honourable, and conscientious, unless he had also some portion of the divine Christian grace; yet I should have thought myself defended from criticism by the words which our Lord used to the chief priests, "The publicans and harlots go into the kingdom of God before you." And I was subjected again to the same alternative of imputations, for having ventured to say that consent to an unchaste wish was indefinitely more heinous than any lie viewed apart from its causes, its motives, and its consequences; though a lie, viewed under the limitation of these conditions, is a random utterance, an almost outward act, not directly from the heart, however disgraceful it may be, whereas we have the express words of our Lord to the doctrine that "whoso looketh on a woman to lust after her, hath committed adultery with her already in his heart." On the strength of these texts I have surely as much right to believe in these doctrines as to believe in the doctrine of original sin, or that there is a supernatural revelation, or that a Divine Person suffered, or that punishment is eternal.
She confidently repeats these truths and insists on them for everyone; she shows no indecision, no reservations, no delicacy or caution. "You must be born again" is the straightforward language she uses after her Divine Master; "your entire nature must be re-born, your passions, your feelings, your goals, your conscience, and your will must all be transformed and dedicated anew to your Maker, and last but not least, your intellect." It was for expressing these aspects of her teaching in my own way that certain sections of one of my books were included in the general criticism of my religious views. The writer claimed that I was crazy if I believed this and unethical if I didn’t, stating that a lazy, ragged, filthy, story-telling beggar-woman, if she is chaste, sober, cheerful, and religious, has a chance at heaven that is completely closed to a skilled statesman, lawyer, or nobleman, no matter how just, honorable, generous, or conscientious he might be, unless he also possesses some level of divine Christian grace. Yet I thought I was protected from criticism by the words our Lord spoke to the chief priests: "The tax collectors and prostitutes go into the kingdom of God ahead of you." I faced the same accusations again for saying that consenting to an unchaste thought is far worse than any lie when considered separately from its causes, motives, and consequences; however, a lie, when viewed within those limits, is a random statement, an almost external action, not something that comes directly from the heart, no matter how disgraceful it may be. On the other hand, we have the clear words of our Lord saying that "whoever looks at a woman to lust after her has already committed adultery with her in his heart." Based on these teachings, I certainly have just as much right to believe in these doctrines as I do to believe in the doctrine of original sin, that there is a supernatural revelation, that a Divine Person suffered, or that punishment is eternal.
Passing now from what I have called the preamble of that grant of power, with which the Church is invested, to that power itself, Infallibility, I make two brief remarks: on the one hand, I am not here determining anything about the essential seat of that power, because that is a question doctrinal, not historical and practical; nor, on the other hand, am I extending the direct subject-matter, over which that power has jurisdiction, beyond religious opinion:—and now as to the power itself.
Passing now from what I’ve referred to as the introduction of that grant of power given to the Church, to the power itself, Infallibility, I want to make two quick points: first, I’m not addressing the fundamental source of that power, as it’s more of a doctrinal question than a historical or practical one; second, I’m not expanding the direct area over which that power has authority beyond religious belief:—and now regarding the power itself.
This power, viewed in its fulness, is as tremendous as the giant evil which has called for it. It claims, when brought into exercise in the legitimate manner, for otherwise of course it is but dormant, to have for itself a sure guidance into the very meaning of every portion of the divine message in detail, which was committed by our Lord to His Apostles. It claims to know its own limits, and to decide what it can determine absolutely and what it cannot. It claims, moreover, to have a hold upon statements not directly religious, so far as this, to determine whether they indirectly relate to religion, and, according to its own definitive judgment, to pronounce whether or not, in a particular case, they are consistent with revealed truth. It claims to decide magisterially, whether infallibly or not, that such and such statements are or are not prejudicial to the apostolic depositum of faith, in their spirit or in their consequences, and to allow them, or condemn and forbid them, accordingly. It claims to impose silence at will on any matters, or controversies, of doctrine, which on its own ipse dixit, it pronounces to be dangerous, or inexpedient, or inopportune. It claims that whatever may be the judgment of Catholics upon such acts, these acts should be received by them with those outward marks of reverence, submission, and loyalty, which Englishmen, for instance, pay to the presence of their sovereign, without public criticism on them, as being in their matter inexpedient, or in their manner violent or harsh. And lastly, it claims to have the right of inflicting spiritual punishment, of cutting off from the ordinary channels of the divine life, and of simply excommunicating, those who refuse to submit themselves to its formal declarations. Such is the infallibility lodged in the Catholic Church, viewed in the concrete, as clothed and surrounded by the appendages of its high sovereignty: it is, to repeat what I said above, a supereminent prodigious power sent upon earth to encounter and master a giant evil.
This power, when fully realized, is as immense as the great evil that demands it. When exercised legitimately—because otherwise it remains inactive—it claims to have clear guidance on the exact meaning of every part of the divine message entrusted to the Apostles by our Lord. It asserts that it understands its own boundaries and can determine what it can absolutely decide and what it cannot. Additionally, it claims to have relevance to non-religious statements in that it can judge whether they indirectly relate to religion, and based on its own definitive assessment, it can declare whether or not they align with revealed truth. It also claims to authoritatively determine, whether infallibly or not, whether specific statements are harmful to the apostolic depositum of faith, either in essence or consequences, and to allow or condemn them accordingly. It further asserts the right to impose silence on any matters or debates concerning doctrine that it deems dangerous, inappropriate, or untimely based on its own ipse dixit. It asserts that regardless of Catholic opinion on these actions, they should be received with the respect, submission, and loyalty that English people, for example, show to their sovereign, without public criticism on the grounds of being inappropriate or excessively harsh. Lastly, it claims the authority to impose spiritual punishment, to cut off individuals from the usual channels of divine life, and to simply excommunicate those who refuse to adhere to its formal declarations. This is the infallibility present in the Catholic Church, seen in its concrete reality, adorned with the attributes of its high authority: it is, to reiterate what I stated earlier, an extraordinary and powerful force sent to confront and overcome a great evil.
And now, having thus described it, I profess my own absolute submission to its claim. I believe the whole revealed dogma as taught by the apostles, as committed by the apostles to the Church, and as declared by the Church to me. I receive it, as it is infallibly interpreted by the authority to whom it is thus committed, and (implicitly) as it shall be, in like manner, further interpreted by that same authority till the end of time. I submit, moreover, to the universally received traditions of the Church, in which lies the matter of those new dogmatic definitions which are from time to time made, and which in all times are the clothing and the illustration of the Catholic dogma as already defined. And I submit myself to those other decisions of the holy see, theological or not, through the organs which it has itself appointed, which, waiving the question of their infallibility, on the lowest ground come to me with a claim to be accepted and obeyed. Also, I consider that, gradually and in the course of ages, Catholic inquiry has taken certain definite shapes, and has thrown itself into the form of a science, with a method and a phraseology of its own, under the intellectual handling of great minds, such as St. Athanasius, St. Augustine, and St. Thomas; and I feel no temptation at all to break in pieces the great legacy of thought thus committed to us for these latter days.
And now, having described it, I fully accept its authority. I believe in the entire doctrine revealed by the apostles, as given by the apostles to the Church, and as expressed by the Church to me. I embrace it, as it is interpreted without error by the authority to which it has been entrusted, and (implicitly) as it will be further interpreted by that same authority until the end of time. I also accept the universally acknowledged traditions of the Church, which contain the essence of these new dogmatic definitions that are made from time to time and which have always illustrated the Catholic doctrine as already defined. Additionally, I submit to those other decisions made by the holy see, whether theological or not, through the channels it has appointed, which, regardless of their infallibility, come to me with a request to be accepted and followed. I believe that, over the years, Catholic inquiry has developed into specific forms and has become a science, with its own methods and terminology, shaped by great thinkers like St. Athanasius, St. Augustine, and St. Thomas; and I have no desire to undermine the valuable legacy of thought passed down to us for these later times.
All this being considered as the profession ex animo, as on my own part, so also on the part of the Catholic body, as far as I know it, it will at first sight be said that the restless intellect of our common humanity is utterly weighed down to the repression of all independent effort and action whatever, so that, if this is to be the mode of bringing it into order, it is brought into order only to be destroyed. But this is far from the result, far from what I conceive to be the intention of that high Providence who has provided a great remedy for a great evil—far from borne out by the history of the conflict between infallibility and reason in the past, and the prospect of it in the future. The energy of the human intellect "does from opposition grow;" it thrives and is joyous, with a tough elastic strength, under the terrible blows of the divinely-fashioned weapon, and is never so much itself as when it has lately been overthrown. It is the custom with Protestant writers to consider that, whereas there are two great principles in action in the history of religion, Authority and Private Judgment, they have all the Private Judgment to themselves, and we have the full inheritance and the superincumbent oppression of Authority. But this is not so; it is the vast Catholic body itself, and it only, which affords an arena for both combatants in that awful, never-dying duel. It is necessary for the very life of religion, viewed in its large operations and its history, that the warfare should be incessantly carried on. Every exercise of Infallibility is brought out into act by an intense and varied operation of the Reason, from within and without, and provokes again a re-action of Reason against it; and, as in a civil polity the State exists and endures by means of the rivalry and collision, the encroachments and defeats of its constituent parts, so in like manner Catholic Christendom is no simple exhibition of religious absolutism, but it presents a continuous picture of Authority and Private Judgment alternately advancing and retreating as the ebb and flow of the tide;—it is a vast assemblage of human beings with wilful intellects and wild passions, brought together into one by the beauty and the majesty of a superhuman power—into what may be called a large reformatory or training-school, not to be sent to bed, not to be buried alive, but for the melting, refining, and moulding, as in some moral factory, by an incessant noisy process (if I may proceed to another metaphor), of the raw material of human nature, so excellent, so dangerous, so capable of divine purposes.
Considering all of this in the context of the profession ex animo, both from my perspective and that of the Catholic community, as far as I understand it, it might seem at first that the restless minds of humanity are completely burdened, stifling any independent effort or action. If this is how we are to bring things into order, then it seems ordered only to be undone. However, this is far from the outcome and far from what I believe to be the intention of that higher Providence which offers a significant remedy for a profound issue—this is also not supported by the history of the struggle between infallibility and reason in the past, nor the outlook for the future. The strength of human intellect "grows from opposition;" it flourishes and is animated, with a strong resilience, under the harsh challenges posed by divine mechanisms and is never more itself than when it has recently faced defeat. Protestant writers typically argue that while there are two key principles in the history of religion—Authority and Private Judgment—they solely possess Private Judgment, while we bear the entire weight and oppressive inheritance of Authority. But that's not the case; it is the vast Catholic body itself that provides a battleground for both sides in that intense, enduring conflict. For the sake of the very life of religion, viewed in its broader operations and history, this struggle must be constant. Each act of Infallibility is activated through a strong and varied engagement of Reason, both from within and outside, which in turn provokes a reaction of Reason against it. Just as a state persists and thrives through the rivalries and conflicts, and the advances and setbacks of its components, so Catholic Christendom is not merely a demonstration of religious absolutism; it presents a continuous scene of Authority and Private Judgment alternately moving forward and retreating like the ebb and flow of the tide. It is a vast gathering of individuals with strong willpower and intense passions, united by the beauty and majesty of a higher power—creating what might be described as a large reformative or training ground, not meant to be sent to bed or buried alive, but for the melting, refining, and shaping of the raw material of human nature: so excellent, so perilous, and so filled with divine potential.
St. Paul says in one place that his apostolical power is given him to edification, and not to destruction. There can be no better account of the Infallibility of the Church. It is a supply for a need, and it does not go beyond that need. Its object is, and its effect also, not to enfeeble the freedom or vigour of human thought in religious speculation, but to resist and control its extravagance. What have been its great works? All of them in the distinct province of theology:—to put down Arianism, Eutychianism, Pelagianism, Manichæism, Lutheranism, Jansenism. Such is the broad result of its action in the past;—and now as to the securities which are given us that so it ever will act in time to come.
St. Paul mentions that his apostolic power is meant for building up, not tearing down. This is the best explanation for the Church's Infallibility. It serves a purpose and doesn't go beyond that purpose. Its aim and impact are not to weaken the freedom or vigor of human thought in religious exploration, but to curb its excesses. What have been its significant achievements? All of them in the realm of theology: to suppress Arianism, Eutychianism, Pelagianism, Manichaeism, Lutheranism, and Jansenism. This is the overarching outcome of its actions in the past; now, what guarantees do we have that it will continue to act in this way in the future?
First, infallibility cannot act outside of a definite circle of thought, and it must in all its decisions, or definitions, as they are called, profess to be keeping within it. The great truths of the moral law, of natural religion, and of apostolical faith, are both its boundary and its foundation. It must not go beyond them, and it must ever appeal to them. Both its subject-matter, and its articles in that subject-matter, are fixed. Thus, in illustration, it does not extend to statements, however sound and evident, which are mere logical conclusions from the articles of the apostolic Depositum; again, it can pronounce nothing about the persons of heretics, whose works fall within its legitimate province. It must ever profess to be guided by Scripture and by tradition. It must refer to the particular apostolic truth which it is enforcing, or (what is called) defining. Nothing, then, can be presented to me, in time to come, as part of the faith, but what I ought already to have received, and have not actually received, (if not) merely because it has not been told me. Nothing can be imposed upon me different in kind from what I hold already—much less contrary to it. The new truth which is promulgated, if it is to be called new, must be at least homogeneous, cognate, implicit, viewed relatively to the old truth. It must be what I may even have guessed, or wished, to be included in the apostolic revelation; and at least it will be of such a character, that my thoughts readily concur in it or coalesce with it, as soon as I hear it. Perhaps I and others actually have always believed it, and the only question which is now decided in my behalf, is that I am henceforth to believe that I have only been holding what the apostles held before me.
First, infallibility cannot operate outside a specific circle of thought, and it must, in all its decisions, or definitions, claim to stay within it. The fundamental truths of moral law, natural religion, and apostolic faith serve as both its limits and its foundation. It must not go beyond them, and it must always refer to them. Both its subject matter and its components are set. For instance, it does not extend to statements, no matter how sound and clear, that are simply logical conclusions drawn from the articles of the apostolic Depositum; furthermore, it cannot make judgments about the individuals of heretics, whose works fall within its valid scope. It must consistently claim to be guided by Scripture and tradition. It must refer to the specific apostolic truth it is emphasizing, or (what is called) defining. Therefore, nothing can be presented to me in the future as part of the faith that I should have already accepted but have not, except perhaps because it hasn't been communicated to me. Nothing can be imposed on me that is fundamentally different from what I already hold—much less anything that contradicts it. Any new truth that is proclaimed, if it can be considered new, must at least be similar, related, or implicit when compared to the old truth. It must be something I might have even suspected or wished to be included in the apostolic revelation; and at the very least, it should be of such a nature that my thoughts easily align with it when I hear it. Perhaps I and others have always believed it, and the only issue now clarified for me is that I am to believe I have only been holding what the apostles believed before me.
Let me take the doctrine which Protestants consider our greatest difficulty, that of the Immaculate Conception. Here I entreat the reader to recollect my main drift, which is this. I have no difficulty in receiving it: if I have no difficulty, why may not another have no difficulty also? why may not a hundred? a thousand? Now I am sure that Catholics in general have not any intellectual difficulty at all on the subject of the Immaculate Conception; and that there is no reason why they should. Priests have no difficulty. You tell me that they ought to have a difficulty;—but they have not. Be large-minded enough to believe, that men may reason and feel very differently from yourselves; how is it that men fall, when left to themselves, into such various forms of religion, except that there are various types of mind among them, very distinct from each other? From my testimony then about myself, if you believe it, judge of others also who are Catholics: we do not find the difficulties which you do in the doctrines which we hold; we have no intellectual difficulty in that in particular, which you call a novelty of this day. We priests need not be hypocrites, though we be called upon to believe in the Immaculate Conception. To that large class of minds, who believe in Christianity, after our manner,—in the particular temper, spirit, and light (whatever word is used) in which Catholics believe it—there is no burden at all in holding that the Blessed Virgin was conceived without original sin; indeed, it is a simple fact to say, that Catholics have not come to believe it because it is defined, but it was defined because they believed it.
Let me address the doctrine that Protestants see as our biggest challenge, the Immaculate Conception. I urge the reader to remember my main point, which is this: I have no trouble accepting it. If I have no trouble, then why shouldn’t others? Why not a hundred? A thousand? I’m sure that Catholics, in general, don’t have any intellectual issues with the Immaculate Conception, and there’s no reason they should. Priests don’t have any trouble with it. You might say they should have trouble, but they don’t. Be open-minded enough to believe that people can think and feel very differently from you; how else do people end up embracing various religions if there aren't many different types of minds among them, each distinct from one another? Based on my own experience, if you believe me, you can judge others who are Catholics: we don’t find the difficulties you do in the doctrines we hold; we have no intellectual issues with what you call a modern novelty. We priests don't need to be hypocrites just because we’re asked to believe in the Immaculate Conception. For that broad group of minds who believe in Christianity in our way—in the specific temperament, spirit, and understanding that Catholics have—there’s no burden in accepting that the Blessed Virgin was conceived without original sin. In fact, it’s simply true that Catholics didn’t come to believe it just because it was defined; it was defined because they already believed it.
So far from the definition in 1854 being a tyrannical infliction on the Catholic world, it was received everywhere on its promulgation with the greatest enthusiasm. It was in consequence of the unanimous petition, presented from all parts to the holy see, in behalf of a declaration that the doctrine was apostolic, that it was declared so to be. I never heard of one Catholic having difficulties in receiving it, whose faith on other grounds was not already suspicious. Of course there were grave and good men, who were made anxious by the doubt whether it could be proved apostolical either by Scripture or tradition, and who accordingly, though believing it themselves, did not see how it could be defined by authority; but this is another matter. The point in question is, whether the doctrine is a burden. I believe it to be none. So far from it being so, I sincerely think that St. Bernard and St. Thomas, who scrupled at it in their day, had they lived into this, would have rejoiced to accept it for its own sake. Their difficulty, as I view it, consisted in matters of words, ideas, and arguments. They thought the doctrine inconsistent with other doctrines; and those who defended it in that age had not that precision in their view of it, which has been given to it by means of the long controversy of the centuries which followed. And hence the difference of opinion, and the controversy.
Far from being a harsh imposition on the Catholic world in 1854, it was embraced everywhere with great enthusiasm upon its announcement. This declaration that the doctrine was apostolic came about because of a unanimous request sent from all regions to the holy see. I have never heard of a single Catholic struggling to accept it, except those whose faith was already shaky for other reasons. Certainly, there were serious and good people who worried whether it could be proven apostolic through Scripture or tradition, and while they personally believed it, they couldn’t understand how it could be officially defined; but that's a separate issue. The real question is whether the doctrine is a burden. I don’t believe it is. On the contrary, I genuinely think that St. Bernard and St. Thomas, who had reservations about it in their time, would have been happy to accept it for its own sake if they had lived in this era. Their issue, as I see it, was mainly about wording, ideas, and arguments. They believed the doctrine contradicted other teachings, and those who defended it back then didn’t have the clarity that has been achieved through the long debates in the centuries that followed. That’s where the differences of opinion and the controversies arose.
Now the instance which I have been taking suggests another remark; the number of those (so called) new doctrines will not oppress us, if it takes eight centuries to promulgate even one of them. Such is about the length of time through which the preparation has been carried on for the definition of the Immaculate Conception. This of course is an extraordinary case; but it is difficult to say what is ordinary, considering how few are the formal occasions on which the voice of infallibility has been solemnly lifted up. It is to the Pope in ecumenical council that we look, as to the normal seat of infallibility: now there have been only eighteen such councils since Christianity was—an average of one to a century—and of these councils some passed no doctrinal decree at all, others were employed on only one, and many of them were concerned with only elementary points of the Creed. The Council of Trent embraced a large field of doctrine certainly; but I should apply to its canons a remark contained in that University Sermon of mine, which has been so ignorantly criticised in the pamphlet which has led to my writing;—I there have said that the various verses of the Athanasian Creed are only repetitions in various shapes of one and the same idea; and in like manner, the Tridentine decrees are not isolated from each other, but are occupied in bringing out in detail, by a number of separate declarations, as if into bodily form, a few necessary truths. I should make the same remark on the various theses condemned by popes, and on their dogmatic decisions generally. I acknowledge that at first sight they seem from their number to be a greater burden to the faith of individuals than are the canons of councils; still I do not believe in matter of fact that they are so at all, and I give this reason for it:—it is not that a Catholic, layman or priest, is indifferent to the subject, or, from a sort of recklessness, will accept anything that is placed before him, or is willing, like a lawyer, to speak according to his brief, but that in such condemnations the holy see is engaged, for the most part, in repudiating one or two great lines of error, such as Lutheranism or Jansenism, principally ethical not doctrinal, which are foreign to the Catholic mind, and that it is expressing what any good Catholic, of fair abilities, though unlearned, would say himself, from common and sound sense, if the matter could be put before him.
Now, the example I've been discussing brings up another point; the number of those so-called new doctrines won't overwhelm us if it takes eight centuries to promote even one of them. That's about how long the preparation has been going on for defining the Immaculate Conception. This is obviously an unusual case, but it’s hard to define what’s typical, considering how few times the voice of infallibility has been formally raised. We look to the Pope in ecumenical council as the standard source of infallibility: there have only been eighteen such councils since Christianity began—an average of one per century—and some of these councils didn’t issue any doctrinal decree, while others focused on just one, and many dealt with only basic points of the Creed. The Council of Trent did cover a wide range of doctrine, for sure; but I would make a remark from that University Sermon of mine, which has been misunderstood in the pamphlet that prompted me to write this: I mentioned that the different verses of the Athanasian Creed are just variations of the same idea; similarly, the Tridentine decrees are interconnected and focus on elaborating a few essential truths through a series of separate statements. I would apply the same idea to the various theses condemned by popes and their dogmatic decisions in general. I admit that, at first glance, their number seems to place a heavier burden on the faith of individuals than the councils’ canons do; however, I don’t really believe they are a heavier burden in practice. Here’s why: it’s not that a Catholic, whether layperson or priest, is indifferent to the issue or, out of recklessness, will accept anything thrown at him or is willing, like a lawyer, to argue according to his brief. Instead, in these condemnations, the Holy See is primarily focused on rejecting a few major lines of error, like Lutheranism or Jansenism, which are mainly ethical rather than doctrinal and are alien to the Catholic mindset. It’s articulating what any good, reasonably intelligent Catholic—even if not formally educated—would express from common sense if the issue were clearly presented to him.
Now I will go on in fairness to say what I think is the great trial to the reason, when confronted with that august prerogative of the Catholic Church, of which I have been speaking. I enlarged just now upon the concrete shape and circumstances, under which pure infallible authority presents itself to the Catholic. That authority has the prerogative of an indirect jurisdiction on subject-matters which lie beyond its own proper limits, and it most reasonably has such a jurisdiction. It could not act in its own province, unless it had a right to act out of it. It could not properly defend religious truth, without claiming for it what may be called its pomœria; or, to take another illustration, without acting as we act, as a nation, in claiming as our own, not only the land on which we live, but what are called British waters. The Catholic Church claims, not only to judge infallibly on religious questions, but to animadvert on opinions in secular matters which bear upon religion, on matters of philosophy, of science, of literature, of history, and it demands our submission to her claim. It claims to censure books, to silence authors, and to forbid discussions. In all this it does not so much speak doctrinally, as enforce measures of discipline. It must of course be obeyed without a word, and perhaps in process of time it will tacitly recede from its own injunctions. In such cases the question of faith does not come in; for what is matter of faith is true for all times, and never can be unsaid. Nor does it at all follow, because there is a gift of infallibility in the Catholic Church, that therefore the power in possession of it is in all its proceedings infallible. "O, it is excellent," says the poet, "to have a giant's strength, but tyrannous, to use it like a giant." I think history supplies us with instances in the Church, where legitimate power has been harshly used. To make such admission is no more than saying that the divine treasure, in the words of the apostle, is "in earthen vessels;" nor does it follow that the substance of the acts of the ruling power is not right and expedient, because its manner may have been faulty. Such high authorities act by means of instruments; we know how such instruments claim for themselves the name of their principals, who thus get the credit of faults which really are not theirs. But granting all this to an extent greater than can with any show of reason be imputed to the ruling power in the Church, what is there in this want of prudence or moderation more than can be urged, with far greater justice, against Protestant communities and institutions? What is there in it to make us hypocrites, if it has not that effect upon Protestants? We are called upon, not to profess anything, but to submit and be silent. Such injunctions as I have supposed are laid merely upon our actions, not upon our thoughts. How, for instance, does it tend to make a man a hypocrite, to be forbidden to publish a libel? his thoughts are as free as before: authoritative prohibitions may tease and irritate, but they have no bearing whatever upon the exercise of reason.
Now I’ll be fair and say what I think is the major challenge for reason when faced with that esteemed authority of the Catholic Church that I just mentioned. I just elaborated on the specific form and context in which pure infallible authority presents itself to Catholics. That authority has the right to indirectly govern issues that go beyond its own proper boundaries, and it makes perfect sense for it to have such authority. It couldn't function effectively within its own domain unless it had the right to operate outside of it. It couldn’t properly defend religious truth without claiming what could be called its own territory; or, to put it another way, without acting as we do as a nation in asserting not only the land we inhabit but what are referred to as British waters. The Catholic Church claims not only to make infallible judgments on religious issues but also to comment on secular opinions that impact religion, including those in philosophy, science, literature, and history, and it demands that we accept its claims. It claims the authority to censor books, silence authors, and ban discussions. In all this, it is not so much communicating doctrine but enforcing discipline. Naturally, it must be obeyed without question, and perhaps over time, it will quietly back down from its own commands. In such cases, the question of faith does not arise; what is a matter of faith is true for all time and can never be taken back. Nor does it follow that just because the Catholic Church possesses the gift of infallibility, its actions are infallibly correct in every instance. "Oh, it's remarkable,” says the poet, “to have a giant's strength, but it's tyrannical to use it like a giant.” I believe history shows us instances in the Church where legitimate power has been misused. Acknowledging this is simply saying that the divine treasure, as the apostle puts it, is “in earthen vessels”; nor does it imply that the essence of the actions taken by the ruling power is incorrect or inappropriate just because the execution may have been flawed. Such high authorities work through intermediaries; we know how these intermediaries claim to represent their principals, who end up being credited with faults that aren’t truly theirs. But even if we accept this to a degree beyond what can reasonably be attributed to the Church's ruling power, what is there in this lack of prudence or restraint that isn’t far more justly applied to Protestant communities and institutions? What makes us hypocrites, if it doesn’t have that effect on Protestants? We are asked not to profess anything but to submit and remain silent. The restrictions I mentioned are placed only on our actions, not our thoughts. For instance, how does it make someone a hypocrite to be prohibited from publishing a libel? Their thoughts remain as free as ever: authoritative prohibitions may annoy and frustrate, but they don't impact the exercise of reason at all.
So much at first sight; but I will go on to say further, that, in spite of all that the most hostile critic may say upon the encroachments or severities of high ecclesiastics, in times past, in the use of their power, I think that the event has shown after all, that they were mainly in the right, and that those whom they were hard upon mainly in the wrong. I love, for instance, the name of Origen: I will not listen to the notion that so great a soul was lost; but I am quite sure that, in the contest between his doctrine and his followers and ecclesiastical power, his opponents were right, and he was wrong. Yet who can speak with patience of his enemy and the enemy of St. John Chrysostom, that Theophilus, bishop of Alexandria? who can admire or revere Pope Vigilius? And here another consideration presents itself to my thoughts. In reading ecclesiastical history, when I was an Anglican, it used to be forcibly brought home to me, how the initial error of what afterwards became heresy was the urging forward some truth against the prohibition of authority at an unseasonable time. There is a time for everything, and many a man desires a reformation of an abuse, or the fuller development of a doctrine, or the adoption of a particular policy, but forgets to ask himself whether the right time for it is come; and, knowing that there is no one who will do anything towards it in his own lifetime unless he does it himself, he will not listen to the voice of authority, and spoils a good work in his own century, that another man, as yet unborn, may not bring it happily to perfection in the next. He may seem to the world to be nothing else than a bold champion for the truth and a martyr to free opinion, when he is just one of those persons whom the competent authority ought to silence, and, though the case may not fall within that subject-matter in which it is infallible, or the formal conditions of the exercise of that gift may be wanting, it is clearly the duty of authority to act vigorously in the case. Yet that act will go down to posterity as an instance of a tyrannical interference with private judgment, and of the silencing of a reformer, and of a base love of corruption or error; and it will show still less to advantage, if the ruling power happens in its proceedings to act with any defect of prudence or consideration. And all those who take the part of that ruling authority will be considered as time-servers, or indifferent to the cause of uprightness and truth; while, on the other hand, the said authority may be supported by a violent ultra party, which exalts opinions into dogmas, and has it principally at heart to destroy every school of thought but its own.
So much for now; but I want to add that, despite everything the most critical voices may say about the overreach or harshness of church leaders in the past, I believe history shows they were mostly justified, and those they were tough on were often wrong. I admire Origen, for example; I won't accept the idea that such a remarkable person was lost to us. But I'm convinced that, in the conflict between his teachings, his followers, and church power, his critics were correct, and he was not. Yet, who can speak kindly of his adversary, the enemy of St. John Chrysostom, Theophilus, the bishop of Alexandria? Who can respect Pope Vigilius? Another thought comes to mind. When I studied church history as an Anglican, it struck me how the original mistake that led to what became heresy was pushing for a truth that was forbidden by authority at the wrong time. There is a right time for everything, and many people seek to change an abuse, better develop a doctrine, or promote a specific policy, but they often forget to consider whether the timing is appropriate. Knowing that no one else is likely to take action in their lifetime unless they do it themselves, they ignore the voice of authority, ruining a worthwhile endeavor in their own era, which someone yet to be born could have brought to fruition in the next. To the world, they might appear as a courageous truth-teller and a martyr for free thought, while they are really just someone who should be silenced by competent authority. Although their situation might not fall into the area where authority is infallible, or the formal conditions for exercising that authority might be lacking, it is still the responsibility of the authority to take decisive action. Unfortunately, that action may go down in history as an example of tyrannical suppression of personal belief and the silencing of a reformer, revealing a sordid affection for corruption or falsehood. It will appear even worse if the ruling power acts with any lack of prudence or thoughtfulness. Those who support that ruling authority will be viewed as opportunists, indifferent to the causes of integrity and truth; meanwhile, the authority might find backing from an extreme faction that elevates opinions to dogmas and primarily seeks to eliminate all other schools of thought.
Such a state of things may be provoking and discouraging at the time, in the case of two classes of persons; of moderate men who wish to make differences in religious opinion as little as they fairly can be made; and of such as keenly perceive, and are honestly eager to remedy, existing evils—evils, of which divines in this or that foreign country know nothing at all, and which even at home it is not every one who has the means of estimating. This is a state of things both of past time and of the present. We live in a wonderful age; the enlargement of the circle of secular knowledge just now is simply a bewilderment, and the more so, because it has the promise of continuing, and that with greater rapidity, and more signal results. Now these discoveries, certain or probable, have in matter of fact an indirect bearing upon religious opinions, and the question arises how are the respective claims of revelation and of natural science to be adjusted. Few minds in earnest can remain at ease without some sort of rational grounds for their religious belief; to reconcile theory and fact is almost an instinct of the mind. When then a flood of facts, ascertained or suspected, comes pouring in upon us, with a multitude of others in prospect, all believers in revelation, be they Catholic or not, are roused to consider their bearing upon themselves, both for the honour of God, and from tenderness for those many souls who, in consequence of the confident tone of the schools of secular knowledge, are in danger of being led away into a bottomless liberalism of thought.
This situation can be frustrating and discouraging, particularly for two groups of people: moderate individuals who want to minimize differences in religious beliefs, and those who clearly see and genuinely want to address current issues—issues that many theologians in other countries are completely unaware of, and that not everyone at home is able to evaluate. This has been true both in the past and now. We live in an incredible time; the expansion of secular knowledge right now is astonishing, especially since it seems to be continuing at an even faster pace with more significant outcomes. These discoveries, whether certain or likely, indirectly impact religious beliefs, raising the question of how to balance the claims of revelation and natural science. Few earnest thinkers can feel settled without some reasonable foundation for their faith; harmonizing theory and reality is almost a fundamental instinct. So, when a flood of confirmed or speculative facts comes rushing at us, along with many more on the horizon, all believers in revelation, whether Catholic or not, are prompted to reflect on how this affects them, both for the glory of God and out of concern for the many souls who, due to the assertive stance of secular knowledge, might be led into a limitless liberalism of thought.
I am not going to criticise here that vast body of men, in the mass, who at this time would profess to be liberals in religion; and who look towards the discoveries of the age, certain or in progress, as their informants, direct or indirect, as to what they shall think about the unseen and the future. The Liberalism which gives a colour to society now, is very different from that character of thought which bore the name thirty or forty years ago. It is scarcely now a party; it is the educated lay world. When I was young, I knew the word first as giving name to a periodical, set up by Lord Byron and others. Now, as then, I have no sympathy with the philosophy of Byron. Afterwards, Liberalism was the badge of a theological school, of a dry and repulsive character, not very dangerous in itself, though dangerous as opening the door to evils which it did not itself either anticipate or comprehend. Now it is nothing else than that deep, plausible scepticism, of which I spoke above, as being the development of human reason, as practically exercised by the natural man.
I'm not here to criticize the large group of people who today identify as liberal in religion and look to the discoveries of our time, whether confirmed or in progress, as sources for their thoughts on the unseen and the future. The Liberalism that shapes society now is very different from what it meant thirty or forty years ago. It’s hardly a political party anymore; it represents the educated general public. When I was younger, I first encountered the term as the title of a magazine created by Lord Byron and others. Even back then, I didn’t share Byron's philosophical views. Later, Liberalism became associated with a theological movement that was dry and off-putting; it wasn’t inherently dangerous, but it did open the door to issues that it neither foresaw nor understood. Now, it has evolved into a profound, seemingly reasonable skepticism that I mentioned earlier, as a product of human reason as it plays out in daily life.
The Liberal religionists of this day are a very mixed body, and therefore I am not intending to speak against them. There may be, and doubtless is, in the hearts of some or many of them a real antipathy or anger against revealed truth, which it is distressing to think of. Again; in many men of science or literature there may be an animosity arising from almost a personal feeling; it being a matter of party, a point of honour, the excitement of a game, or a consequence of soreness or annoyance occasioned by the acrimony or narrowness of apologists for religion, to prove that Christianity or that Scripture is untrustworthy. Many scientific and literary men, on the other hand, go on, I am confident, in a straightforward impartial way, in their own province and on their own line of thought, without any disturbance from religious opinion in themselves, or any wish at all to give pain to others by the result of their investigations. It would ill become me, as if I were afraid of truth of any kind, to blame those who pursue secular facts, by means of the reason which God has given them, to their logical conclusions: or to be angry with science because religion is bound to take cognizance of its teaching. But putting these particular classes of men aside, as having no special call on the sympathy of the Catholic, of course he does most deeply enter into the feelings of a fourth and large class of men, in the educated portions of society, of religious and sincere minds, who are simply perplexed—frightened or rendered desperate, as the case may be—by the utter confusion into which late discoveries or speculations have thrown their most elementary ideas of religion. Who does not feel for such men? who can have one unkind thought of them? I take up St. Augustine's beautiful words, "Illi in vos sæviant," etc. Let them be fierce with you who have no experience of the difficulty with which error is discriminated from truth, and the way of life is found amid the illusions of the world. How many Catholics have in their thoughts followed such men, many of them so good, so true, so noble! how often has the wish risen in their hearts that some one from among themselves should come forward as the champion of revealed truth against its opponents! Various persons, Catholic and Protestant, have asked me to do so myself; but I had several strong difficulties in the way. One of the greatest is this, that at the moment it is so difficult to say precisely what it is that is to be encountered and overthrown. I am far from denying that scientific knowledge is really growing, but it is by fits and starts; hypotheses rise and fall; it is difficult to anticipate which will keep their ground, and what the state of knowledge in relation to them will be from year to year. In this condition of things, it has seemed to me to be very undignified for a Catholic to commit himself to the work of chasing what might turn out to be phantoms, and in behalf of some special objections, to be ingenious in devising a theory, which, before it was completed, might have to give place to some theory newer still, from the fact that those former objections had already come to nought under the uprising of others. It seemed to be a time of all others, in which Christians had a call to be patient, in which they had no other way of helping those who were alarmed, than that of exhorting them to have a little faith and fortitude, and to "beware," as the poet says, "of dangerous steps." This seemed so clear to me, the more I thought, as to make me surmise, that, if I attempted what had so little promise in it, I should find that the highest Catholic authority was against the attempt, and that I should have spent my time and my thought, in doing what either it would be imprudent to bring before the public at all, or what, did I do so, would only complicate matters further which were already complicated more than enough. And I interpret recent acts of that authority as fulfilling my expectation; I interpret them as tying the hands of a controversialist, such as I should be, and teaching us that true wisdom, which Moses inculcated on his people, when the Egyptians were pursuing them, "Fear ye not, stand still; the Lord shall fight for you, and ye shall hold your peace." And so far from finding a difficulty in obeying in this case, I have cause to be thankful and to rejoice to have so clear a direction in a matter of difficulty.
The liberal religious people today are quite diverse, and I don’t intend to criticize them. Some of them may harbor real dislike or frustration towards revealed truth, which is upsetting to think about. Also, some scientists and writers might have a personal grudge; it's often about party lines, pride, the thrill of debate, or irritation caused by overly harsh defenders of religion trying to prove that Christianity or Scripture can't be trusted. On the flip side, many scientists and writers move forward with a straightforward and unbiased approach in their respective fields, without being disturbed by religious opinions or wanting to hurt others with the results of their research. It wouldn’t be right for me—if I were afraid of any kind of truth—to criticize those who seek out secular facts using the reason God has given them and draw their own conclusions, or to be upset with science just because religion has to take its teachings into account. However, setting aside these specific groups, who don’t particularly need the sympathy of a Catholic, I certainly deeply relate to a fourth, larger group of educated individuals with sincere religious beliefs who are simply confused—either scared or desperate—due to the chaos that recent discoveries or theories have introduced to their fundamental ideas of religion. Who doesn’t empathize with these individuals? Who could have an unkind thought towards them? I recall St. Augustine's beautiful words, "Illi in vos sæviant," etc. Let them be fierce with you if they’ve never faced the challenge of distinguishing truth from error and finding the right path amidst the world’s illusions. How many Catholics have thought about such people, many of whom are so good, true, and noble! How often have they wished that someone among them would step up as the defender of revealed truth against its challengers! Various people, both Catholic and Protestant, have asked me to take on that role myself; however, I have faced several significant challenges. One of the biggest is that right now, it’s very difficult to specify exactly what needs to be confronted and dismantled. I certainly don’t deny that scientific knowledge is genuinely advancing, but it happens in fits and starts; theories rise and fall; it’s hard to predict which ones will hold up and how our understanding will evolve from year to year. Given this situation, it seems quite undignified for a Catholic to commit to chasing what might just turn out be illusions and, in order to address specific objections, to come up with a theory that could quickly be outdated by even newer theories, especially when earlier objections have already been rendered invalid by emerging ones. It feels like a time when Christians are called to be patient, where the best way to support those who are anxious is to encourage them to have a bit of faith and courage, and to "beware," as the poet says, "of dangerous steps." This became so clear to me upon reflection that I began to suspect that if I pursued something seemingly fruitless, I would find that the highest Catholic authority would be opposed to that endeavor, thus I would have wasted my time and intellect on something that might not be wise to present to the public or, if I did, it would only add more complexity to an already complicated situation. I interpret recent actions from that authority as confirming my expectations; I see them as constraining a controversial figure like myself and guiding us toward the true wisdom Moses imparted to his people when the Egyptians were chasing them: "Fear not, stand still; the Lord shall fight for you, and you shall hold your peace." Far from feeling it was hard to follow this guidance, I feel grateful and relieved to have such clear direction in a challenging matter.
But if we would ascertain with correctness the real course of a principle, we must look at it at a certain distance, and as history represents it to us. Nothing carried on by human instruments, but has its irregularities, and affords ground for criticism, when minutely scrutinised in matters of detail. I have been speaking of that aspect of the action of an infallible authority, which is most open to invidious criticism from those who view it from without; I have tried to be fair, in estimating what can be said to its disadvantage, as witnessed in the Catholic Church, and now I wish its adversaries to be equally fair in their judgment upon its historical character. Can, then, the infallible authority, with any show of reason, be said in fact to have destroyed the energy of the intellect in the Catholic Church? Let it be observed, I have not to speak of any conflict which ecclesiastical authority has had with science, for there has been none such, because the secular sciences, as they now exist, are a novelty in the world, and there has been no time yet for a history of relations between theology and these new methods of knowledge, and indeed the Church may be said to have kept clear of them, as is proved by the constantly cited case of Galileo. Here "exceptio probat regulam:" for it is the one stock argument. Again, I have not to speak of any relations of the Church to the new sciences, because my simple question is whether the assumption of infallibility by the proper authority is adapted to make me a hypocrite, and till that authority passes decrees on pure physical subjects and calls on me to subscribe them (which it never will do, because it has not the power), it has no tendency by its acts to interfere with my private judgment on those points. The simple question is whether authority has so acted upon the reason of individuals, that they can have no opinion of their own, and have but an alternative of slavish superstition or secret rebellion of heart; and I think the whole history of theology puts an absolute negative upon such a supposition. It is hardly necessary to argue out so plain a point. It is individuals, and not the holy see, who have taken the initiative, and given the lead to Catholic minds, in theological inquiry. Indeed, it is one of the reproaches urged against the Church of Rome, that it has originated nothing, and has only served as a sort of remora or break in the development of doctrine. And it is an objection which I embrace as a truth; for such I conceive to be the main purpose of its extraordinary gift. It is said, and truly, that the Church of Rome possessed no great mind in the whole period of persecution. Afterwards for a long while, it has not a single doctor to show; St. Leo, its first, is the teacher of one point of doctrine; St. Gregory, who stands at the very extremity of the first age of the Church, has no place in dogma or philosophy. The great luminary of the western world is, as we know, St. Augustine; he, no infallible teacher, has formed the intellect of Europe; indeed to the African Church generally we must look for the best early exposition of Latin ideas. The case is the same as regards the ecumenical councils. Authority in its most imposing exhibition, grave bishops, laden with the traditions and rivalries of particular nations or places, have been guided in their decisions by the commanding genius of individuals, sometimes young and of inferior rank. Not that uninspired intellect overruled the super-human gift which was committed to the council, which would be a self-contradictory assertion, but that in that process of inquiry and deliberation, which ended in an infallible enunciation, individual reason was paramount. Thus the writings of St. Bonaventura, and, what is more to the point, the address of a priest and theologian, Salmeron, at Trent, had a critical effect on some of the definitions of dogmas. Parallel to this is the influence, so well known, of a young deacon, St. Athanasius, with the 318 Fathers at Nicæa. In like manner we hear of the influence of St. Anselm at Bari, and St. Thomas at Lyons. In the latter cases the influence might be partly moral, but in the former it was that of a discursive knowledge of ecclesiastical writers, a scientific acquaintance with theology, and a force of thought in the treatment of doctrine.
But if we want to accurately understand the true direction of a principle, we need to look at it from a certain distance and as history presents it to us. Everything pursued by human means has its irregularities and offers grounds for criticism when examined closely in terms of details. I’ve been discussing that aspect of the actions of an infallible authority that is most susceptible to critical judgment from outsiders; I’ve tried to be fair in assessing what could be seen as its shortcomings within the Catholic Church, and now I expect its critics to be equally fair in their evaluation of its historical context. Can we reasonably assert that the infallible authority has actually stifled intellectual vigor within the Catholic Church? It’s important to note that I’m not addressing any conflict between ecclesiastical authority and science, as none exists; the secular sciences, as we know them today, are a recent development, and there hasn’t been enough time to establish a history of interaction between theology and these new fields of knowledge. In fact, we could say the Church has generally steered clear of these issues, as best illustrated by the often-cited case of Galileo. Here, “exception proves the rule,” since it stands as the primary argument. Furthermore, my focus isn’t on the Church’s relationship with new sciences; my simple question is whether the assumption of infallibility by the relevant authority leads me to be hypocritical. Until that authority issues proclamations on purely physical matters and asks me to endorse them (which it will never do, since it lacks that power), its actions do not interfere with my personal judgment in those areas. The main question is whether authority has influenced individuals' reasoning to the point where they have no independent opinion and are left with only the choices of blind superstition or hidden rebellion. I believe the entire history of theology completely disproves such a notion. There’s no need to elaborate on such a straightforward point. It is individuals, not the holy see, who have taken the lead and inspired Catholic thinking in theological inquiries. Indeed, one of the criticisms leveled against the Roman Church is that it hasn’t produced anything original and has merely acted as a sort of hindrance in the evolution of doctrine. I accept this as true, as I believe this reflects the main purpose of its extraordinary gift. It’s often noted, and rightly so, that the Church of Rome had no prominent intellectual during the entire period of persecution. Afterwards, for a long time, it can’t point to a single doctor; St. Leo, its first, teaches only one specific doctrine; St. Gregory, at the very end of the first age of the Church, has no standing in dogma or philosophy. The great light of the Western world is, as we know, St. Augustine; he was not an infallible teacher but shaped the minds of Europe; indeed, we must look to the African Church in general for the best early articulation of Latin ideas. The same applies to the ecumenical councils. In their most impressive forms, serious bishops, bearing the weight of traditions and rivalries from specific nations or places, have been swayed in their decisions by the commanding intellect of individuals, sometimes young and of lower rank. It’s not that uninspired intellect overshadowed the superhuman gift assigned to the council, which would be contradictory, but rather that in the process of inquiry and deliberation that culminated in an infallible declaration, individual reasoning prevailed. Thus, the writings of St. Bonaventura, and more notably, the speech of a priest and theologian, Salmeron, at Trent, significantly influenced certain dogmatic definitions. Similarly, we recognize the well-known influence of a young deacon, St. Athanasius, among the 318 Fathers at Nicæa. We also hear about the impact of St. Anselm at Bari and St. Thomas at Lyons. In those latter cases, the influence might have been partially moral, but in the former, it was characterized by a thorough knowledge of ecclesiastical writers, a scientific understanding of theology, and an insightful approach to doctrinal issues.
There are of course intellectual habits which theology does not tend to form, as for instance the experimental, and again the philosophical; but that is because it is theology, not because of the gift of infallibility. But, as far as this goes, I think it could be shown that physical science on the other hand, or mathematical, affords but an imperfect training for the intellect. I do not see then how any objection about the narrowness of theology comes into our question, which simply is, whether the belief in an infallible authority destroys the independence of the mind; and I consider that the whole history of the Church, and especially the history of the theological schools, gives a negative to the accusation. There never was a time when the intellect of the educated class was more active, or rather more restless, than in the middle ages. And then again all through Church history from the first, how slow is authority in interfering! Perhaps a local teacher, or a doctor in some local school, hazards a proposition, and a controversy ensues. It smoulders or burns in one place, no one interposing; Rome simply lets it alone. Then it comes before a Bishop; or some priest, or some professor in some other seat of learning takes it up; and then there is a second stage of it. Then it comes before a University, and it may be condemned by the theological faculty. So the controversy proceeds year after year, and Rome is still silent. An appeal perhaps is next made to a seat of authority inferior to Rome; and then at last after a long while it comes before the supreme power. Meanwhile, the question has been ventilated and turned over and over again, and viewed on every side of it, and authority is called upon to pronounce a decision, which has already been arrived at by reason. But even then, perhaps the supreme authority hesitates to do so, and nothing is determined on the point for years; or so generally and vaguely, that the whole controversy has to be gone through again, before it is ultimately determined. It is manifest how a mode of proceeding, such as this, tends not only to the liberty, but to the courage, of the individual theologian or controversialist. Many a man has ideas, which he hopes are true, and useful for his day, but he wishes to have them discussed. He is willing or rather would be thankful to give them up, if they can be proved to be erroneous or dangerous, and by means of controversy he obtains his end. He is answered, and he yields; or he finds that he is considered safe. He would not dare to do this, if he knew an authority, which was supreme and final, was watching every word he said, and made signs of assent or dissent to each sentence, as he uttered it. Then indeed he would be fighting, as the Persian soldiers, under the lash, and the freedom of his intellect might truly be said to be beaten out of him. But this has not been so:—I do not mean to say that, when controversies run high, in schools or even in small portions of the Church, an interposition may not rightly take place; and again, questions may be of that urgent nature, that an appeal must, as a matter of duty, be made at once to the highest authority in the Church; but, if we look into the history of controversy, we shall find, I think, the general run of things to be such as I have represented it. Zosimus treated Pelagius and Cœlestius with extreme forbearance; St. Gregory VII. was equally indulgent with Berengarius; by reason of the very power of the popes they have commonly been slow and moderate in their use of it.
There are definitely some intellectual habits that theology typically doesn't develop, such as experimental or philosophical thinking; but that's because it's theology, not because of infallibility. However, it can be argued that physical science or math provides only a limited training for the mind. So, I don’t see how any criticism about the narrowness of theology applies to our main question, which is whether believing in an infallible authority undermines the independence of thought. I believe the entire history of the Church, especially the history of theological schools, supports the opposite of that claim. There was never a time when the educated class's intellect was more active—or rather, more restless—than in the Middle Ages. Throughout Church history from the beginning, authority has been slow to intervene. Perhaps a local teacher or a scholar at some local institution suggests a novel idea and a debate begins. It might smolder or flare up in one place, and no one steps in; Rome simply leaves it alone. Then it comes to a Bishop; or some priest or professor at another institution picks it up, leading to a second phase. Eventually, it reaches a University, where it might be condemned by the theology faculty. The debate continues year after year, while Rome remains silent. There may be an appeal to a lower authority, and only after a long time does it arrive at the highest power. In the meantime, the issue has been thoroughly discussed from every angle, and authority is called to make a decision that has already been reached through reason. Even then, the supreme authority might hesitate, leading to years without a clear conclusion, or a decision so vague and general that the whole issue has to be reexamined before a final determination is made. It’s clear how this approach promotes not just freedom but also the courage of individual theologians or debaters. Many individuals have ideas that they hope are true and beneficial for their time, but they want them to be analyzed. They are willing to let go of those ideas if shown to be incorrect or harmful, and through debate, they achieve this outcome. They receive responses, and they either adjust their views or are reassured of their safety. They wouldn’t dare to do this if they felt a supreme and final authority was scrutinizing every word and signaling approval or disapproval after every statement. In that case, they would indeed feel like Persian soldiers under the whip, and their intellectual freedom would effectively be beaten out of them. However, this has not been the case: I do not mean to imply that when debates get heated, whether in schools or in small sections of the Church, that intervention can’t be justified; and some questions are so urgent that immediate appeal to the highest authority is necessary. But if we examine the history of controversy, I believe we’ll find that the general trend aligns with what I’ve described. Zosimus treated Pelagius and Cœlestius with great restraint; St. Gregory VII was equally lenient with Berengarius; historically, because of the very power of the popes, they have often been slow and moderate in exercising it.
And here again is a further shelter for the individual reason:—the multitude of nations who are in the fold of the Church will be found to have acted for its protection, against any narrowness, if so, in the various authorities at Rome, with whom lies the practical decision of controverted questions. How have the Greek traditions been respected and provided for in the later Ecumenical Councils, in spite of the countries that held them being in a state of schism! There are important points of doctrine which have been (humanly speaking) exempted from the infallible sentence, by the tenderness with which its instruments, in framing it, have treated the opinions of particular places. Then, again, such national influences have a providential effect in moderating the bias which the local influences of Italy may exert upon the See of St. Peter. It stands to reason that, as the Gallican Church has in it an element of France, so Rome must have an element of Italy; and it is no prejudice to the zeal and devotion with which we submit ourselves to the holy see to admit this plainly. It seems to me, as I have been saying, that Catholicity is not only one of the notes of the Church, but, according to the divine purposes, one of its securities. I think it would be a very serious evil, which Divine Mercy avert! that the Church should be contracted in Europe within the range of particular nationalities. It is a great idea to introduce Latin civilization into America, and to improve the Catholics there by the energy of French religion; but I trust that all European races will have ever a place in the Church, and assuredly I think that the loss of the English, not to say the German element, in its composition has been a most serious evil. And certainly, if there is one consideration more than another which should make us English grateful to Pius the Ninth, it is that, by giving us a Church of our own, he has prepared the way for our own habits of mind, our own manner of reasoning, our own tastes, and our own virtues, finding a place and thereby a sanctification, in the Catholic Church.
And here’s another reason to support individual thought: the many nations that belong to the Church have worked to protect it from any narrowness that might come from various authorities in Rome, who make the practical decisions on disputed issues. How have the Greek traditions been honored and addressed in the later Ecumenical Councils, despite those countries being in a state of schism? There are significant doctrines that have been, from a human perspective, spared from the infallible decree, due to the care with which its creators have considered the views of specific regions. Additionally, these national influences help balance the local biases that Italy might impose on the See of St. Peter. It makes sense that just as the Gallican Church includes an aspect of France, Rome must also reflect an aspect of Italy; acknowledging this doesn’t detract from the respect and devotion we show to the Holy See. As I’ve mentioned, I believe that Catholicity is not only a defining characteristic of the Church but also a safeguard according to divine plans. It would be a grave issue, which I hope divine mercy prevents, for the Church in Europe to be limited to specific national identities. It’s a fantastic idea to bring Latin culture to America and to enhance the Catholic experience there through the vibrancy of French faith; however, I sincerely hope that all European backgrounds will always have a place in the Church. I truly think that losing the English, and even the German, presence within its framework has been a significant loss. If there’s any reason for us English to be thankful to Pius IX, it’s that by establishing a Church for us, he has paved the way for our own ways of thinking, reasoning, tastes, and virtues to find a space and thus be sanctified within the Catholic Church.
There is only one other subject, which I think it necessary to introduce here, as bearing upon the vague suspicions which are attached in this country to the Catholic priesthood. It is one of which my accuser says much, the charge of reserve and economy. He founds it in no slight degree on what I have said on the subject in my History of the Arians, and in a note upon one of my sermons in which I refer to it. The principle of reserve is also advocated by an admirable writer in two numbers of the Tracts for the Times.
There is only one other topic that I think is important to mention here, as it relates to the unclear suspicions that people in this country have about the Catholic priesthood. It’s something my accuser talks about a lot, the accusation of being reserved and economical. He bases this, in part, on what I’ve discussed in my History of the Arians and in a note about one of my sermons where I touch on it. The idea of being reserved is also supported by an excellent writer in two issues of the Tracts for the Times.
Now, as to the economy itself, I leave the greater part of what I have to say to an Appendix. Here I will but say that it is founded upon the words of our Lord, "Cast not your pearls before swine;" and it was observed by the early Christians more or less in their intercourse with the heathen populations among whom they lived. In the midst of the abominable idolatries and impurities of that fearful time, they could not do otherwise. But the rule of the economy, at least as I have explained and recommended it, did not go beyond (1) the concealing the truth when we could do so without deceit, (2) stating it only partially, and (3) representing it under the nearest form possible to a learner or inquirer, when he could not possibly understand it exactly. I conceive that to draw angels with wings is an instance of the third of these economical modes; and to avoid the question, "Do Christians believe in a Trinity?" by answering, "They believe in only one God," would be an instance of the second. As to the first, it is hardly an economy, but comes under what is called the "Disciplina Arcani." The second and third economical modes Clement calls lying; meaning that a partial truth is in some sense a lie, and so also is a representative truth. And this, I think, is about the long and the short of the ground of the accusation which has been so violently urged against me, as being a patron of the economy.
Now, regarding the economy itself, I’m leaving most of what I have to say for an Appendix. Here, I’ll just mention that it’s based on the words of our Lord, “Don’t throw your pearls before pigs;” and early Christians observed this somewhat in their interactions with the non-believers around them. In the midst of the horrible idol worship and impurities of that dreadful time, they had no other option. But the approach of the economy, at least as I explained and suggested it, didn’t go beyond (1) concealing the truth when we could do so without being dishonest, (2) stating it only in part, and (3) presenting it in the simplest way possible for someone learning or questioning, when they couldn’t fully grasp it. I think depicting angels with wings is an example of the third of these methods; and dodging the question, “Do Christians believe in a Trinity?” by saying, “They believe in only one God,” is an example of the second. As for the first, it hardly counts as an economy but falls under what’s called the “Disciplina Arcani.” Clement refers to the second and third approaches as lying; meaning that a partial truth is, in a way, a lie, and so is a representational truth. And I believe this sums up the basis of the severe accusation against me for being a supporter of the economy.
Of late years I have come to think, as I believe most writers do, that Clement meant more than I have said. I used to think he used the word "lie" as an hyperbole, but I now believe that he, as other early Fathers, thought that, under certain circumstances, it was lawful to tell a lie. This doctrine I never maintained, though I used to think, as I do now, that the theory of the subject is surrounded with considerable difficulty; and it is not strange that I should say so, considering that great English writers simply declare that in certain extreme cases, as to save life, honour, or even property, a lie is allowable. And thus I am brought to the direct question of truth, and the truthfulness of Catholic priests generally in their dealings with the world, as bearing on the general question of their honesty, and their internal belief in their religious professions.
Recently, I've come to think, like many writers do, that Clement meant more than I've stated. I used to believe he used the word "lie" as an exaggeration, but now I think that, like other early Fathers, he believed it was acceptable to lie under certain circumstances. I've never supported this idea, although I thought, as I still do, that the topic is quite complex; it’s not surprising I say this, considering that prominent English writers claim that in extreme cases—like saving a life, honor, or even property—a lie is permissible. This brings me to the main question of truth and the general honesty of Catholic priests in their interactions with the world, which relates to the broader issue of their belief in their religious beliefs.
It would answer no purpose, and it would be departing from the line of writing which I have been observing all along, if I entered into any formal discussion on the subject; what I shall do here, as I have done in the foregoing pages, is to give my own testimony on the matter in question, and there to leave it. Now first I will say, that, when I became a Catholic, nothing struck me more at once than the English out-spoken manner of the priests. It was the same at Oscott, at Old Hall Green, at Ushaw; there was nothing of that smoothness, or mannerism, which is commonly imputed to them, and they were more natural and unaffected than many an Anglican clergyman. The many years, which have passed since, have only confirmed my first impression. I have ever found it in the priests of this Diocese; did I wish to point out a straightforward Englishman, I should instance the Bishop, who has, to our great benefit, for so many years presided over it.
It wouldn't serve any purpose, and it would go against the style of writing I've been following, if I got into a formal discussion on the topic; what I will do here, just like I've done in the previous pages, is share my own thoughts on the matter and leave it at that. First, I want to say that when I became a Catholic, what struck me right away was the straightforward way the priests communicated. It was the same at Oscott, Old Hall Green, and Ushaw; there was none of that smoothness or mannerism people usually associate with them, and they were more genuine and down-to-earth than many Anglican ministers. The years that have passed since have only reinforced my initial impression. I've always found the same quality in the priests of this Diocese; if I wanted to point out a straightforward Englishman, I would mention the Bishop, who has, to our great advantage, led us for so many years.
And next, I was struck, when I had more opportunity of judging of the Priests, by the simple faith in the Catholic Creed and system of which they always gave evidence, and which they never seemed to feel, in any sense at all, to be a burden. And now that I have been in the Church nineteen years, I cannot recollect hearing of a single instance in England of an infidel priest. Of course there are men from time to time, who leave the Catholic Church for another religion, but I am speaking of cases, when a man keeps a fair outside to the world and is a hollow hypocrite in his heart.
And then I was amazed, as I had more chances to evaluate the priests, by their genuine belief in the Catholic faith and system, which they always demonstrated and never seemed to view as a burden in any way. Now that I’ve been part of the Church for nineteen years, I can’t recall hearing about a single instance of an infidel priest in England. Sure, there are people who occasionally leave the Catholic Church for another religion, but I’m talking about cases where someone maintains a respectable image to the world while being a complete hypocrite inside.
I wonder that the self-devotion of our priests does not strike Protestants in this point of view. What do they gain by professing a Creed, in which, if my assailant is to be believed, they really do not believe? What is their reward for committing themselves to a life of self-restraint and toil, and after all to a premature and miserable death? The Irish fever cut off between Liverpool and Leeds thirty priests and more, young men in the flower of their days, old men who seemed entitled to some quiet time after their long toil. There was a bishop cut off in the North; but what had a man of his ecclesiastical rank to do with the drudgery and danger of sick calls, except that Christian faith and charity constrained him? Priests volunteered for the dangerous service. It was the same on the first coming of the cholera, that mysterious awe-inspiring infliction. If priests did not heartily believe in the Creed of the Church, then I will say that the remark of the apostle had its fullest illustration:—"If in this life only we have hope in Christ, we are of all men most miserable." What could support a set of hypocrites in the presence of a deadly disorder, one of them following another in long order up the forlorn hope, and one after another perishing? And such, I may say, in its substance, is every mission-priest's life. He is ever ready to sacrifice himself for his people. Night and day, sick or well himself, in all weathers, off he is, on the news of a sick call. The fact of a parishioner dying without the sacraments through his fault is terrible to him; why terrible, if he has not a deep absolute faith, which he acts upon with a free service? Protestants admire this, when they see it; but they do not seem to see as clearly, that it excludes the very notion of hypocrisy.
I wonder why the dedication of our priests doesn't strike Protestants from this perspective. What do they gain by professing a creed that, if my critic is to be believed, they don’t actually believe in? What's their reward for committing to a life of self-restraint and hard work, only to end up with an early and miserable death? The Irish fever took the lives of over thirty priests traveling between Liverpool and Leeds—young men in the prime of their lives, and older men who deserved some peace after their long service. There was also a bishop who died up North; but what was a man of his position doing risking his life and labor for sick calls, except that his Christian faith and charity compelled him? Priests volunteered for the risky duty. The same happened during the initial outbreak of cholera, that mysterious and fearsome plague. If priests didn’t truly believe in the Church’s creed, then I would argue that the apostle’s remark is fully illustrated: "If in this life only we have hope in Christ, we are of all men most miserable." What could keep a group of hypocrites going in the face of a deadly epidemic, lining up one after another to serve, only to perish one by one? And this is, in essence, the life of every mission priest. He is always ready to sacrifice himself for his community. Night and day, whether he is sick or well, in any weather, he rushes off at the news of a sick call. The thought of a parishioner dying without receiving the sacraments because of his failure is horrifying to him; why is it horrifying if he doesn't have deep, unwavering faith that drives his selfless service? Protestants admire this when they see it, but they don’t seem to recognize clearly that it completely rules out the idea of hypocrisy.
Sometimes, when they reflect upon it, it leads them to remark on the wonderful discipline of the Catholic priesthood; they say that no Church has so well ordered a clergy, and that in that respect it surpasses their own; they wish they could have such exact discipline among themselves. But is it an excellence which can be purchased? is it a phenomenon which depends on nothing else than itself, or is it an effect which has a cause? You cannot buy devotion at a price. "It hath never been heard of in the land of Chanaan, neither hath it been seen in Theman. The children of Agar, the merchants of Meran, none of these have known its way." What then is that wonderful charm, which makes a thousand men act all in one way, and infuses a prompt obedience to rule, as if they were under some stern military compulsion? How difficult to find an answer, unless you will allow the obvious one, that they believe intensely what they profess!
Sometimes, when they think about it, they comment on the amazing discipline of the Catholic priesthood; they say that no Church has such a well-organized clergy and that in that way it outshines their own; they wish they could have such strict discipline among themselves. But is it something you can buy? Is it a quality that exists on its own, or is it a result of something else? You can’t buy devotion. "It has never been heard of in the land of Canaan, nor has it been seen in Teman. The children of Hagar, the merchants of Meran, none of these have known its way." So what is that incredible charm that makes thousands of men act as one and creates an immediate obedience to the rules, as if they were under some strict military control? It’s hard to find an answer unless you accept the obvious one: that they believe deeply in what they profess!
I cannot think what it can be, in a day like this, which keeps up the prejudice of this Protestant country against us, unless it be the vague charges which are drawn from our books of moral theology; and with a notice of the work in particular which my accuser especially throws in our teeth, I shall in a very few words bring these observations to a close.
I can't imagine what it could be, on a day like today, that maintains the bias of this Protestant country against us, unless it’s the unclear accusations taken from our moral theology texts; and with a mention of the specific work that my accuser keeps bringing up, I'll wrap up these remarks in just a few words.
St. Alfonso Liguori, it cannot be denied, lays down that an equivocation, that is, a play upon words, in which one sense is taken by the speaker, and another sense intended by him for the hearer, is allowable, if there is a just cause, that is, in a special case, and may even be confirmed by an oath. I shall give my opinion on this point as plainly as any Protestant can wish; and therefore I avow at once that in this department of morality, much as I admire the high points of the Italian character, I like the English character better; but, in saying so, I am not, as will be seen, saying anything disrespectful to St. Alfonso, who was a lover of truth, and whose intercession I trust I shall not lose, though, on the matter under consideration, I follow other guidance in preference to his.
St. Alfonso Liguori, it can't be denied, states that an equivocation, which is a play on words where the speaker takes one meaning and intends another for the listener, is acceptable if there is a good reason, that is, in a specific case, and can even be confirmed by an oath. I will express my opinion on this matter as clearly as any Protestant might want; and so I admit right away that in this area of morality, despite my admiration for the admirable traits of the Italian character, I prefer the English character. However, in saying this, I am not, as will be evident, disrespecting St. Alfonso, who was a lover of truth, and whose intercession I hope to maintain, even though in this instance, I choose to follow different guidance over his.
Now I make this remark first:—great English authors, Jeremy Taylor, Milton, Paley, Johnson, men of very distinct schools of thought, distinctly say, that under certain special circumstances it is allowable to tell a lie. Taylor says: "To tell a lie for charity, to save a man's life, the life of a friend, of a husband, of a prince, of a useful and a public person, hath not only been done at all times, but commended by great and wise and good men. Who would not save his father's life, at the charge of a harmless lie, from persecutors or tyrants?" Again, Milton says: "What man in his senses would deny, that there are those whom we have the best grounds for considering that we ought to deceive—as boys, madmen, the sick, the intoxicated, enemies, men in error, thieves? I would ask, by which of the commandments is a lie forbidden? You will say, by the ninth. If then my lie does not injure my neighbour, certainly it is not forbidden by this commandment." Paley says: "There are falsehoods, which are not lies, that is, which are not criminal." Johnson: "The general rule is, that truth should never be violated; there must, however, be some exceptions. If, for instance, a murderer should ask you which way a man is gone."
Now I want to make this point first: great English authors like Jeremy Taylor, Milton, Paley, and Johnson, who come from very different schools of thought, clearly state that under certain special circumstances, it’s acceptable to tell a lie. Taylor says, "Telling a lie for the sake of charity, to save a person’s life—whether it's a friend, a husband, a prince, or a valuable public figure—has been done at all times and has been praised by wise and good people. Who wouldn’t save their father’s life, even if it meant telling a harmless lie to protect him from persecutors or tyrants?" Milton says, "What rational person would deny that there are people we have solid reasons to deceive—like children, the insane, the sick, the intoxicated, enemies, those who are misled, and thieves? I’d like to know, which commandment prohibits lying? You might say it’s the ninth. If my lie doesn’t harm my neighbor, then it clearly isn’t against this commandment." Paley argues, "There are falsehoods that are not lies, meaning they aren't criminal." Johnson states, "The general rule is that truth shouldn’t be compromised; however, there need to be exceptions. For example, if a murderer asks you which way a man has gone."
Now, I am not using these instances as an argumentum ad hominem; but this is the use to which I put them:—
Now, I'm not using these examples as an argumentum ad hominem; but this is how I intend to use them:—
1. First, I have set down the distinct statements of Taylor, Milton, Paley, and Johnson; now, would any one give ever so little weight to these statements, in forming a real estimate of the veracity of the writers, if they now were alive? Were a man, who is so fierce with St. Alfonso, to meet Paley or Johnson tomorrow in society, would he look upon him as a liar, a knave, as dishonest and untrustworthy? I am sure he would not. Why then does he not deal out the same measure to Catholic priests? If a copy of Scavini, which speaks of equivocation as being in a just cause allowable, be found in a student's room at Oscott, not Scavini himself, but the unhappy student, who has what a Protestant calls a bad book in his possession, is judged for life unworthy of credit. Are all Protestant text-books at the University immaculate? Is it necessary to take for gospel every word of Aristotle's Ethics, or every assertion of Hey or Burnett on the Articles? Are text-books the ultimate authority, or are they manuals in the hands of a lecturer, and the groundwork of his remarks? But, again, let us suppose, not the case of a student, or of a professor, but of Scavini himself, or of St. Alfonso; now here again I ask, if you would not scruple in holding Paley for an honest man, in spite of his defence of lying, why do you scruple at St. Alfonso? I am perfectly sure that you would not scruple at Paley personally; you might not agree with him, but you would call him a bold thinker: then why should St. Alfonso's person be odious to you, as well as his doctrine?
1. First, I’ve laid out the different views of Taylor, Milton, Paley, and Johnson. Now, would anyone put any weight on these views when judging the honesty of these writers if they were still alive? If someone who criticizes St. Alfonso were to meet Paley or Johnson socially tomorrow, would they see him as a liar, a fraud, or untrustworthy? I’m sure they wouldn’t. So why don’t they extend the same consideration to Catholic priests? If a student at Oscott has a copy of Scavini, which suggests that equivocation is acceptable in a just cause, it isn’t Scavini who is judged, but the unfortunate student labeled as untrustworthy for life because he possesses what a Protestant would call a bad book. Are all Protestant textbooks at the University beyond reproach? Do we have to accept everything in Aristotle’s Ethics or every claim made by Hey or Burnett about the Articles as truth? Are textbooks the final authority, or are they just tools for a lecturer and a foundation for their discussions? Now, let’s consider not just the student or professor, but Scavini or St. Alfonso himself. Again, I ask, if you wouldn’t hesitate to regard Paley as an honest man despite his justification of lying, why would you hesitate with St. Alfonso? I’m sure you wouldn’t have any issues with Paley personally; you might disagree with him, but you’d respect him as a bold thinker. So why should you find St. Alfonso objectionable both in person and in his beliefs?
Now I wish to tell you why you are not afraid of Paley; because, you would say, when he advocated lying, he was taking special cases. You would have no fear of a man who you knew had shot a burglar dead in his own house, because you know you are not a burglar: so you would not think that Paley had a habit of telling lies in society, because in the case of a cruel alternative he thought it the lesser evil to tell a lie. Then why do you show such suspicion of a Catholic theologian, who speaks of certain special cases in which an equivocation in a penitent cannot be visited by his confessor as if it were a sin? for this is the exact point of the question.
Now I want to explain why you’re not afraid of Paley; you might say it's because when he talked about lying, he was focusing on special cases. You wouldn't be intimidated by someone you knew shot a burglar in their own home because you know you’re not a burglar. So, you wouldn’t think Paley typically lies in society, as he believed that in some harsh situations, telling a lie is the lesser evil. So why are you so suspicious of a Catholic theologian who discusses specific cases where a penitent's equivocation cannot be treated as a sin by their confessor? That’s precisely the crux of the matter.
But again, why does Paley, why does Jeremy Taylor, when no practical matter is before him, lay down a maxim about the lawfulness of lying, which will startle most readers? The reason is plain. He is forming a theory of morals, and he must treat every question in turn as it comes. And this is just what St. Alfonso or Scavini is doing. You only try your hand yourself at a treatise on the rules of morality, and you will see how difficult the work is. What is the definition of a lie? Can you give a better than that it is a sin against justice, as Taylor and Paley consider it? but, if so, how can it be a sin at all, if your neighbour is not injured? If you do not like this definition, take another; and then, by means of that, perhaps you will be defending St. Alfonso's equivocation. However, this is what I insist upon; that St. Alfonso, as Paley, is considering the different portions of a large subject, and he must, on the subject of lying, give his judgment, though on that subject it is difficult to form any judgment which is satisfactory.
But again, why do Paley and Jeremy Taylor, when there's no practical issue at hand, state a principle about the permissibility of lying that will surprise most readers? The answer is simple. They are creating a moral theory, and they must address each question as it arises. This is exactly what St. Alfonso or Scavini is doing. If you attempt to write your own treatise on the rules of morality, you'll realize how challenging the task is. What is the definition of a lie? Can you provide a better definition than saying it’s a sin against justice, as Taylor and Paley view it? But if that's the case, how can it be a sin at all if your neighbor is not harmed? If you don’t like this definition, take another one; then, with that, you might find yourself defending St. Alfonso's idea of equivocation. However, I maintain this: St. Alfonso, like Paley, is examining different aspects of a broad topic, and he must, when discussing lying, offer his opinion, even though it’s tough to come up with a satisfying judgment on that matter.
But further still: you must not suppose that a philosopher or moralist uses in his own case the licence which his theory itself would allow him. A man in his own person is guided by his own conscience; but in drawing out a system of rules he is obliged to go by logic, and follow the exact deduction of conclusion from conclusion, and be sure that the whole system is coherent and one. You hear of even immoral or irreligious books being written by men of decent character; there is a late writer who says that David Hume's sceptical works are not at all the picture of the man. A priest may write a treatise which would be called really lax on the subject of lying, which might come under the condemnation of the holy see, as some treatises on that score have been condemned, and yet in his own person be a rigorist. And, in fact, it is notorious from St. Alfonso's Life, that he, who has the repute of being so lax a moralist, had one of the most scrupulous and anxious of consciences himself. Nay, further than this, he was originally in the Law, and on one occasion he was betrayed into the commission of what seemed like a deceit, though it was an accident; and that was the very occasion of his leaving the profession and embracing the religious life.
But even more importantly, don't assume that a philosopher or moralist applies the same flexibility to their own life that their theories might suggest. A person is guided by their own conscience, but when developing a system of rules, they have to rely on logic, following a clear deduction from one conclusion to the next, ensuring that the entire system is coherent and unified. You might hear about even immoral or irreligious books written by individuals of good character; a recent writer claims that David Hume's skeptical works don't reflect the man he was. A priest might write a paper that is deemed too lenient on the topic of lying, which could be condemned by the Holy See, as some writings on this issue have been, yet he might personally hold strict views. In fact, it's well-known from the Life of St. Alfonso that despite his reputation as a lenient moralist, he had a very scrupulous and anxious conscience himself. Furthermore, he originally studied law, and at one point, he found himself in a situation that appeared deceitful, though it was just an accident; this incident led him to leave that profession and pursue a religious life.
The account of this remarkable occurrence is told us in his Life:—
The story of this incredible event is recounted in his Life:—
"Notwithstanding he had carefully examined over and over the details of the process, he was completely mistaken regarding the sense of one document, which constituted the right of the adverse party. The advocate of the Grand Duke perceived the mistake, but he allowed Alfonso to continue his eloquent address to the end without interruption; as soon, however, as he had finished, he rose, and said with cutting coolness, 'Sir, the case is not exactly what you suppose it to be; if you will review the process, and examine this paper attentively, you will find there precisely the contrary of all you have advanced.' 'Willingly,' replied Alfonso, without hesitating; 'the decision depends on this question—whether the fief were granted under the law of Lombardy, or under the French Law.' The paper being examined, it was found that the Grand Duke's advocate was in the right. 'Yes,' said Alfonso, holding the paper in his hand, 'I am wrong, I have been mistaken.' A discovery so unexpected, and the fear of being accused of unfair dealing, filled him with consternation, and covered him with confusion, so much so, that every one saw his emotion. It was in vain that the President Caravita, who loved him, and knew his integrity, tried to console him, by telling him that such mistakes were not uncommon, even among the first men at the bar. Alfonso would listen to nothing, but, overwhelmed with confusion, his head sunk on his breast, he said to himself, 'World, I know you now; courts of law, never shall you see me again!' And turning his back on the assembly, he withdrew to his own house, incessantly repeating to himself, 'World, I know you now.' What annoyed him most was, that having studied and re-studied the process during a whole month, without having discovered this important flaw, he could not understand how it had escaped his observation."
"Even though he had carefully examined the details of the process over and over again, he completely misunderstood one document that represented the rights of the opposing party. The Grand Duke's advocate noticed the mistake but let Alfonso finish his passionate speech without interruption. However, as soon as Alfonso wrapped up, the advocate stood up and said with a sharp coolness, 'Sir, the case isn’t quite what you think it is; if you review the process and closely examine this document, you will find it states the exact opposite of what you've argued.' 'Of course,' Alfonso replied without hesitation; 'the decision hinges on whether the fief was granted under the laws of Lombardy or French law.' Upon examining the document, it became clear that the Grand Duke's advocate was correct. 'Yes,' Alfonso said, holding the paper, 'I was wrong, I made a mistake.' The shocking discovery and the fear of being accused of misconduct left him stunned and embarrassed, so much so that everyone could see his distress. It was pointless for President Caravita, who cared for him and understood his integrity, to try to comfort him by saying that such mistakes weren't unusual, even for the top lawyers. Alfonso wouldn’t listen; overwhelmed with shame, his head hung low, and he thought to himself, 'World, I see you now; courts of law, you will never see me again!' Turning his back on the assembly, he went home, repeatedly murmuring to himself, 'World, I see you now.' What troubled him the most was that, having studied the process for an entire month without discovering this critical flaw, he couldn’t understand how he had overlooked it."
And this is the man who is so flippantly pronounced to be a patron of lying.
And this is the guy who is so casually labeled as a supporter of lying.
But, in truth, a Catholic theologian has objects in view which men in general little compass; he is not thinking of himself, but of a multitude of souls, sick souls, sinful souls, carried away by sin, full of evil, and he is trying with all his might to rescue them from their miserable state; and, in order to save them from more heinous sins, he tries, to the full extent that his conscience will allow him to go, to shut his eyes to such sins, as are, though sins, yet lighter in character or degree. He knows perfectly well that, if he is as strict as he would wish to be, he shall be able to do nothing at all with the run of men; so he is as indulgent with them as ever he can be. Let it not be for an instant supposed, that I allow of the maxim of doing evil that good may come; but, keeping clear of this, there is a way of winning men from greater sins by winking for the time at the less, or at mere improprieties or faults; and this is the key to the difficulty which Catholic books of moral theology so often cause to the Protestant. They are intended for the confessor, and Protestants view them as intended for the preacher.
But, in reality, a Catholic theologian focuses on goals that most people hardly grasp; he's not thinking about himself, but about countless souls—suffering souls, sinful souls, caught up in sin, filled with evil. He's doing everything he can to rescue them from their desperate situation. To save them from worse sins, he tries, as much as his conscience permits, to overlook sins that, while still wrong, are less severe in nature or degree. He fully understands that if he's as strict as he'd like to be, he won't be able to reach most people at all, so he is as lenient with them as he can be. Let's not think for a second that I endorse the idea of doing evil so that good may come; however, avoiding that view, there is a way to lead people away from greater sins by temporarily ignoring the lesser ones or minor faults. This is the key to understanding the confusion that Catholic moral theology books often create for Protestants. They are meant for the confessor, but Protestants interpret them as if they're meant for the preacher.
2. And I observe upon Taylor, Milton, and Paley thus: What would a Protestant clergyman say to me, if I accused him of teaching that a lie was allowable; and if, when he asked for my proof, I said in reply that Taylor and Milton so taught? Why, he would sharply retort, "I am not bound by Taylor or Milton;" and if I went on urging that "Taylor was one of his authorities," he would answer that Taylor was a great writer, but great writers were not therefore infallible. This is pretty much the answer which I make, when I am considered in this matter a disciple of St. Alfonso.
2. I think about Taylor, Milton, and Paley like this: What would a Protestant minister say if I accused him of saying that a lie is acceptable? And if he asked for my evidence and I replied that Taylor and Milton taught that idea? He would quickly respond, "I am not bound by Taylor or Milton;" and if I insisted that "Taylor was one of his sources," he would say that Taylor was a great writer, but great writers aren’t infallible just because they’re great. This is basically the same response I give when I'm seen as a follower of St. Alfonso in this matter.
I plainly and positively state, and without any reserve, that I do not at all follow this holy and charitable man in this portion of his teaching. There are various schools of opinion allowed in the Church: and on this point I follow others. I follow Cardinal Gerdil, and Natalis Alexander, nay, St. Augustine. I will quote one passage from Natalis Alexander:—"They certainly lie, who utter the words of an oath, without the will to swear or bind themselves: or who make use of mental reservations and equivocations in swearing, since they signify by words what they have not in mind, contrary to the end for which language was instituted, viz. as signs of ideas. Or they mean something else than the words signify in themselves and the common custom of speech." And, to take an instance: I do not believe any priest in England would dream of saying, "My friend is not here;" meaning, "He is not in my pocket or under my shoe." Nor should any consideration make me say so myself. I do not think St. Alfonso would in his own case have said so; and he would have been as much shocked at Taylor and Paley, as Protestants are at him.
I clearly and definitely state, without any hesitation, that I do not agree with this holy and charitable man on this part of his teaching. There are different opinions allowed in the Church, and on this matter, I align with others. I follow Cardinal Gerdil, Natalis Alexander, and even St. Augustine. I’ll quote a passage from Natalis Alexander:—"Those who say the words of an oath without the intention to swear or bind themselves are certainly lying; or those who use mental reservations and equivocations in swearing, as they imply something different from what they actually mean, which goes against the purpose for which language was created, which is to represent ideas. Or they mean something other than what the words themselves and common speech imply." For example, I don’t think any priest in England would think to say, "My friend is not here," meaning, "He is not in my pocket or under my shoe." Nor would any circumstances lead me to say that myself. I don’t believe St. Alfonso would have said it either; he would have been just as shocked by Taylor and Paley as Protestants are by him.
And now, if Protestants wish to know what our real teaching is, as on other subjects, so on that of lying, let them look, not at our books of casuistry, but at our catechisms. Works on pathology do not give the best insight into the form and the harmony of the human frame; and, as it is with the body, so is it with the mind. The Catechism of the Council of Trent was drawn up for the express purpose of providing preachers with subjects for their sermons; and, as my whole work has been a defence of myself, I may here say that I rarely preach a sermon, but I go to this beautiful and complete Catechism to get both my matter and my doctrine. There we find the following notices about the duty of veracity:—
And now, if Protestants want to know what our real teaching is, just like with other topics, especially the issue of lying, they should not look at our books on ethics, but rather at our catechisms. Studies on pathology don’t give the best understanding of the structure and harmony of the human body; similarly, what applies to the body also applies to the mind. The Catechism of the Council of Trent was created specifically to give preachers topics for their sermons, and since my entire work has been a defense of myself, I can say that I rarely deliver a sermon without referring to this beautiful and comprehensive Catechism to gather both my content and my teachings. There, we find the following notes about the importance of honesty:—
"'Thou shalt not bear false witness,' etc.: let attention be drawn to two laws contained in this commandment:—the one, forbidding false witness; the other bidding, that removing all pretence and deceits, we should measure our words and deeds by simple truth, as the Apostle admonished the Ephesians of that duty in these words: 'Doing truth in charity, let us grow in Him through all things.'
"‘You shall not bear false witness,’ etc.: let's focus on two rules found in this commandment: one forbids false testimony; the other instructs us to set aside all pretense and deceit and to align our words and actions with simple truth, just as the Apostle advised the Ephesians with these words: ‘Speaking the truth in love, let us grow up in every way into Him who is the head.’"
"To deceive by a lie in joke or for the sake of compliment, though to no one there accrues loss or gain in consequence, nevertheless is altogether unworthy: for thus the Apostle admonishes, 'Putting aside lying, speak ye truth.' For therein is great danger of lapsing into frequent and more serious lying, and from lies in joke men gain the habit of lying, whence they gain the character of not being truthful. And thence again, in order to gain credit to their words, they find it necessary to make a practice of swearing.
"Deceiving someone with a lie as a joke or for flattery, even if no one loses or gains anything from it, is still completely unacceptable. The Apostle warns us, 'Set aside lying, speak the truth.' This behavior can lead to a habit of frequent and much more serious lying, and joking lies can make people accustomed to dishonesty, which gives them the reputation of being untrustworthy. As a result, to make their words credible, they feel the need to resort to swearing."
"Nothing is more necessary than truth of testimony, in those things, which we neither know ourselves, nor can allowably be ignorant of, on which point there is extant that maxim of St. Augustine's; Whoso conceals the truth, and whoso puts forth a lie, each is guilty; the one because he is not willing to do a service, the other because he has a wish to do a mischief.
"Nothing is more important than truthful testimony in matters we don’t know ourselves and can’t simply ignore. St. Augustine’s saying applies here: Whoever hides the truth and whoever spreads a lie is guilty; the first for refusing to help, the second for wanting to cause harm."
"It is lawful at times to be silent about the truth, but out of a court of law; for in court, when a witness is interrogated by the judge according to law, the truth is wholly to be brought out.
"It’s acceptable at times to stay silent about the truth, but not in a court of law; because in court, when a witness is questioned by the judge according to the law, the whole truth must be revealed."
"Witnesses, however, must beware, lest, from over-confidence in their memory, they affirm for certain, what they have not verified.
"Witnesses, however, need to be careful not to become overconfident in their memory and claim for sure what they haven't confirmed."
"In order that the faithful may with more good will avoid the sin of lying, the Parish Priest shall set before them the extreme misery and turpitude of this wickedness. For, in holy writ, the devil is called the father of a lie; for, in that he did not remain in Truth, he is a liar, and the father of a lie. He will add, with the view of ridding men of so great a crime, the evils which follow upon lying; and, whereas they are innumerable, he will point out [at least] the sources and the general heads of these mischiefs and calamities, viz. 1. How great is God's displeasure and how great His hatred of a man who is insincere and a liar. 2. What security there is that a man who is specially hated by God may not be visited by the heaviest punishments. 3. What more unclean and foul, as St. James says, than ... that a fountain by the same jet should send out sweet water and bitter? 4. For that tongue, which just now praised God, next, as far as in it lies, dishonours Him by lying. 5. In consequence, liars are shut out from the possession of heavenly beatitude. 6. That too is the worst evil of lying, that that disease of the mind is generally incurable.
In order for the faithful to more willingly avoid the sin of lying, the Parish Priest should highlight the extreme misery and disgrace of this wrongdoing. In holy scripture, the devil is referred to as the father of lies; since he did not stay in Truth, he is a liar and the father of lies. He will also point out, in an effort to help people steer clear of such a serious crime, the consequences that come from lying; and, while they are countless, he will emphasize [at least] the main sources and categories of these wrongs and disasters, namely: 1. How great God's displeasure is and how deep His hatred is for a person who is insincere and a liar. 2. What assurance is there that a person who is especially hated by God won't face the harshest punishments? 3. What could be more unclean and vile, as St. James mentions, than ... for a fountain to send out both sweet water and bitter from the same outlet? 4. The same tongue that just praised God next dishonors Him through lies, as much as it can. 5. As a result, liars are excluded from the joy of heavenly bliss. 6. Moreover, the worst consequence of lying is that this mental sickness is often incurable.
"Moreover, there is this harm too, and one of vast extent, and touching men generally, that by insincerity and lying faith and truth are lost, which are the firmest bonds of human society, and, when they are lost, supreme confusion follows in life, so that men seem in nothing to differ from devils.
"Additionally, there is this significant harm that affects everyone: through insincerity and lying, faith and truth are lost, which are the strongest ties of human society. When they are gone, chaos ensues in life, making people seem indistinguishable from devils."
"Lastly, the Parish Priest will set those right who excuse their insincerity and allege the example of wise men, who, they say, are used to lie for an occasion. He will tell them, what is most true, that the wisdom of the flesh is death. He will exhort his hearers to trust in God, when they are in difficulties and straits, nor to have recourse to the expedient of a lie.
"Finally, the Parish Priest will correct those who justify their dishonesty by citing the example of wise individuals, who, they claim, lie for a reason. He will remind them that the wisdom of the flesh leads to death. He will encourage his listeners to put their faith in God during tough times and not resort to lying as a quick fix."
"They who throw the blame of their own lie on those who have already by a lie deceived them, are to be taught that men must not revenge themselves, nor make up for one evil by another." ...
"Those who shift the blame for their own lies onto those who have already deceived them with a lie need to learn that people shouldn't seek revenge or balance one wrongdoing with another."
There is much more in the Catechism to the same effect, and it is of universal obligation; whereas the decision of a particular author in morals need not be accepted by any one.
There’s a lot more in the Catechism that supports this idea, and it applies to everyone; on the other hand, the views of a specific moral author don’t have to be accepted by anyone.
To one other authority I appeal on this subject, which commands from me attention of a special kind, for they are the words of a Father. They will serve to bring my work to a conclusion.
To one more authority I turn on this topic, which deserves my special attention, because these are the words of a Father. They will help to bring my work to a close.
"St. Philip," says the Roman oratorian who wrote his Life, "had a particular dislike of affectation both in himself and others, in speaking, in dressing, or in anything else.
"St. Philip," says the Roman oratorian who wrote his Life, "had a strong dislike for pretentiousness in himself and others, whether it was in speaking, dressing, or anything else.
"He avoided all ceremony which savoured of worldly compliment, and always showed himself a great stickler for Christian simplicity in everything; so that, when he had to deal with men of worldly prudence, he did not very readily accommodate himself to them.
He steered clear of any formalities that felt like empty flattery and always prioritized Christian simplicity in everything. Because of this, when he interacted with worldly-wise individuals, he didn't easily adjust to their ways.
"And he avoided, as much as possible, having anything to do with two-faced persons, who did not go simply and straightforwardly to work in their transactions.
"And he avoided, as much as possible, having anything to do with two-faced people, who didn't approach their dealings simply and honestly."
"As for liars, he could not endure them, and he was continually reminding his spiritual children, to avoid them as they would a pestilence."
"When it comes to liars, he just couldn't stand them, and he was always reminding his spiritual children, to steer clear of them like they would a plague."
These are the principles on which I have acted before I was a Catholic; these are the principles which, I trust, will be my stay and guidance to the end.
These are the principles I've followed even before I became a Catholic; I hope these principles will support and guide me until the end.
I have closed this history of myself with St. Philip's name upon St. Philip's feast-day; and, having done so, to whom can I more suitably offer it, as a memorial of affection and gratitude, than to St. Philip's sons, my dearest brothers of this house, the priests of the Birmingham Oratory, Ambrose St. John, Henry Austin Mills, Henry Bittleston, Edward Caswall, William Paine Neville, and Henry Ignatius Dudley Ryder? who have been so faithful to me; who have been so sensitive of my needs; who have been so indulgent to my failings; who have carried me through so many trials; who have grudged no sacrifice, if I asked for it; who have been so cheerful under discouragements of my causing; who have done so many good works, and let me have the credit of them;—with whom I have lived so long, with whom I hope to die.
I’ve wrapped up this story of my life with St. Philip’s name on St. Philip’s feast day; and now, who better to offer it to as a token of my love and gratitude than to St. Philip’s sons, my dear brothers in this house, the priests of the Birmingham Oratory: Ambrose St. John, Henry Austin Mills, Henry Bittleston, Edward Caswall, William Paine Neville, and Henry Ignatius Dudley Ryder? They have been so loyal to me; they have understood my needs; they have been patient with my shortcomings; they have helped me through so many challenges; they have made no sacrifice too great if I needed it; they have stayed positive even when I caused discouragement; they have accomplished so many good deeds and let me take the credit for them;—with whom I have shared so much time, and with whom I hope to pass away.
And to you especially, dear Ambrose St. John; whom God gave me, when He took every one else away; who are the link between my old life and my new; who have now for twenty-one years been so devoted to me, so patient, so zealous, so tender; who have let me lean so hard upon you; who have watched me so narrowly; who have never thought of yourself, if I was in question.
And especially to you, dear Ambrose St. John; the one God gave me when He took everyone else away; the connection between my old life and my new; who has been so devoted to me for twenty-one years, so patient, so enthusiastic, so caring; who has let me lean on you so heavily; who has watched over me so closely; who has never considered yourself if I was involved.
And in you I gather up and bear in memory those familiar affectionate companions and counsellors, who in Oxford were given to me, one after another, to be my daily solace and relief; and all those others, of great name and high example, who were my thorough friends, and showed me true attachment in times long past; and also those many younger men, whether I knew them or not, who have never been disloyal to me by word or by deed; and of all these, thus various in their relations to me, those more especially who have since joined the Catholic Church.
And in you, I collect and hold close the familiar, caring friends and mentors who were given to me one by one in Oxford, providing me daily comfort and support; and all those others, well-known and exemplary, who were my true friends and demonstrated real loyalty in times gone by; and also those many younger guys, whether I knew them or not, who have always been loyal to me in word and action; and among all these, especially those who have since joined the Catholic Church.
And I earnestly pray for this whole company, with a hope against hope, that all of us, who once were so united, and so happy in our union, may even now be brought at length, by the Power of the Divine Will, into One Fold and under One Shepherd.
And I sincerely pray for everyone here, with a hope that defies hope, that all of us, who were once so united and so happy together, may still be brought together in the end, by the power of the Divine Will, into One Fold and under One Shepherd.
May 26, 1864.
In Festo Corp. Christ.
May 26, 1864.
In Festo Corp. Christ.
Appendix
Answer in Detail to Mr. Kingsley's Accusations
In proceeding now, according to the engagement with which I entered upon my undertaking, to examine in detail the Pamphlet which has been written against me, I am very sorry to be obliged to say, that it is as slovenly and random and futile in its definite charges, as it is iniquitous in its method of disputation. And now I proceed to show this without any delay; and shall consider in order,
In moving forward with my commitment to thoroughly examine the Pamphlet written against me, I regret to say that it's as careless, random, and pointless in its specific accusations as it is unjust in its approach to debate. Now, I will demonstrate this without delay and will address each point in order,
- My Sermon on the Apostolical Christian.
- My Sermon on Wisdom and Innocence.
- The Anglican Church.
- The Lives of the English Saints.
- Ecclesiastical miracles.
- Popular Religion.
- The Economy.
- Lying and Equivocation.
1. My Sermon on "The Apostolical Christian," being the 19th of "Sermons on Subjects of the Day"
This writer says, "What Dr. Newman means by Christians ... he has not left in doubt;" and then, quoting a passage from this sermon which speaks of "the humble monk and the holy nun" being "Christians after the very pattern given us in Scripture," he observes, "This is his definition of Christians."—p. 9.
This writer says, "What Dr. Newman means by Christians ... he has not left in doubt;" and then, quoting a passage from this sermon that talks about "the humble monk and the holy nun" being "Christians after the very pattern given us in Scripture," he notes, "This is his definition of Christians."—p. 9.
This is not the case. I have neither given a definition, nor implied one, nor intended one; nor could I, either now or in 1843–4, or at any time, allow of the particular definition he ascribes to me. As if all Christians must be monks or nuns!
This is not true. I haven't provided a definition, implied one, or intended one; nor could I, either now or in 1843–4, or at any time, agree with the specific definition he attributes to me. As if all Christians have to be monks or nuns!
What I have said is, that monks and nuns are patterns of Christian perfection; and that Scripture itself supplies us with this pattern. Who can deny this? Who is bold enough to say that St. John Baptist, who, I suppose, is a Scripture character, is not a pattern-monk; and that Mary, who "sat at our Lord's feet," was not a pattern-nun? and "Anna too, who served God with fastings and prayers night and day?" Again, what is meant but this by St. Paul's saying, "It is good for a man not to touch a woman?" and, when speaking of the father or guardian of a young girl, "He that giveth her in marriage doeth well; but he that giveth her not in marriage doeth better?" And what does St. John mean but to praise virginity, when he says of the hundred forty and four thousand on Mount Sion, "These are they which were not defiled with women, for they are virgins?" And what else did our Lord mean, when He said, "There be eunuchs who have made themselves eunuchs for the kingdom of heaven's sake. He that is able to receive it, let him receive it?"
What I’m saying is that monks and nuns are examples of Christian perfection, and Scripture itself provides us with these examples. Who can argue with that? Who would dare to say that St. John the Baptist, who is certainly a biblical figure, isn’t a model monk? And that Mary, who "sat at our Lord’s feet," wasn’t a model nun? And "Anna, who worshiped God with fasting and prayer day and night?" Also, what else could St. Paul mean when he says, "It’s good for a man not to touch a woman?" And when he talks about the father or guardian of a young girl, saying, "He who gives her in marriage does well; but he who does not give her in marriage does better?" And what does St. John mean by praising virginity when he says of the one hundred forty-four thousand on Mount Zion, "These are those who were not defiled with women, for they are virgins?" What else could our Lord mean when He said, "There are eunuchs who have made themselves eunuchs for the sake of the kingdom of heaven. Let the one who is able to accept this accept it?"
He ought to know his logic better: I have said that "monks and nuns find their pattern in Scripture:" he adds, Therefore I hold all Christians are monks and nuns.
He should understand his reasoning better: I’ve said that "monks and nuns find their pattern in Scripture:" he adds, Therefore I believe all Christians are monks and nuns.
This is Blot one.
This is Blot one.
Now then for Blot two.
Now for Blot two.
"Monks and nuns the only perfect Christians ... what more?"—p. 9.
"Monks and nuns are the only perfect Christians ... what else?"—p. 9.
A second fault in logic. I said no more than that monks and nuns were perfect Christians: he adds, Therefore "monks and nuns are the only perfect Christians." Monks and nuns are not the only perfect Christians; I never thought so or said so, now or at any other time.
A second flaw in logic. I only said that monks and nuns were perfect Christians; he adds, Therefore "monks and nuns are the only perfect Christians." Monks and nuns are not the only perfect Christians; I never thought that or said it, now or at any other time.
P. 42. "In the Sermon ... monks and nuns are spoken of as the only true Bible Christians." This, again, is not the case. What I said is, that "monks and nuns are Bible Christians:" it does not follow, nor did I mean, that "all Bible Christians are monks and nuns." Bad logic again. Blot three.
P. 42. "In the Sermon ... monks and nuns are referred to as the only true Bible Christians." This, again, is not accurate. What I actually said is that "monks and nuns are Bible Christians:" it does not imply, nor did I intend, that "all Bible Christians are monks and nuns." That's flawed logic once more. Blot three.
2. My Sermon on "Wisdom and Innocence", Being the 20th of "Sermons on Subjects of the Day"
This writer says, p. 8, about my Sermon 20, "By the world appears to be signified, especially, the Protestant public of these realms."
This writer says, p. 8, about my Sermon 20, "By the world, it seems to refer mainly to the Protestant public of these regions."
He also asks, p. 14, "Why was it preached? ... to insinuate, that the admiring young gentlemen, who listened to him, stood to their fellow-countrymen in the relation of the early Christians to the heathen Romans? Or that Queen Victoria's Government was to the Church of England, what Nero's or Dioclesian's was to the Church of Rome? it may have been so."
He also asks, p. 14, "Why was it preached? ... to suggest that the admiring young men who listened to him were like the early Christians in relation to the pagan Romans? Or that Queen Victoria's Government was to the Church of England what Nero's or Diocletian's was to the Church of Rome? It could have been."
May or may not, it wasn't. He insinuates what not even with his little finger does he attempt to prove. Blot four.
May or may not, it wasn't. He hints at things without even trying to prove them with his little finger. Blot four.
He asserts, p. 9, that I said in the sermon in question, that "Sacramental Confession and the celibacy of the clergy are 'notes' of the Church." And, just before, he puts the word "notes" in inverted commas, as if it was mine. That is, he garbles. It is not mine. Blot five.
He claims, p. 9, that I stated in the sermon in question that "Sacramental Confession and the celibacy of the clergy are 'notes' of the Church." And, right before that, he puts the word "notes" in quotes, as if it were my word. In other words, he misrepresents. It is not my term. Blot five.
He says that I "define what I mean by the Church in two 'notes' of her character." I do not define, or dream of defining.
He says that I "define what I mean by the Church in two 'notes' of her character." I don’t define, or even think of defining.
1. He says that I teach that the celibacy of the clergy enters into the definition of the Church. I do no such thing; that is the blunt truth. Define the Church by the celibacy of the clergy! why, let him read 1 Tim. iii.; there he will find that bishops and deacons are spoken of as married. How, then, could I be the dolt to say or imply that the celibacy of the clergy was a part of the definition of the Church? Blot six.
1. He claims that I teach that the celibacy of the clergy is part of the definition of the Church. I don't do that; that's the plain truth. Define the Church by the celibacy of the clergy? He should read 1 Tim. iii.; there it mentions that bishops and deacons are referred to as married. So, how could I be foolish enough to say or suggest that the celibacy of the clergy is part of the Church's definition? Blot six.
And again in p. 42, "In the Sermon a celibate clergy is made a note of the Church." Thus the untruth is repeated. Blot seven.
And again on p. 42, "In the Sermon, a celibate clergy is highlighted as a point of the Church." Thus, the falsehood is reiterated. Blot seven.
2. And now for Blot eight. Neither did I say that "Sacramental confession" was "a note of the Church." Nor is it. Nor could I with any cogency have brought this as an argument against the Church of England, for the Church of England has retained Confession, nay, Sacramental Confession. No fair man can read the form of Absolution in the Anglican Prayer in the Visitation of the Sick, without seeing that that Church does sanction and provide for Confession and Absolution. If that form does not contain the profession of a grave sacramental act, words have no meaning. The form is almost in the words of the Roman form; and, by the time that this clergyman has succeeded in explaining it away, he will have also got skill enough to explain away the Roman form; and if he did but handle my words with that latitude with which he interprets his own formularies, he would prove that, instead of my being superstitious and frantic, I was the most Protestant of preachers and the most latitudinarian of thinkers. It would be charity in him, in his reading of my words, to use some of that power of evasion, of which he shows himself such a master in his dealing with his own Prayer Book. Yet he has the assurance at p. 14 to ask, "Why was the Sermon preached? to insinuate that a Church which had sacramental confession and a celibate clergy was the only true Church?"
2. And now for Blot eight. I didn’t say that "Sacramental confession" was "a mark of the Church." It’s not. I also couldn’t convincingly argue this against the Church of England, since the Church of England still practices Confession, even Sacramental Confession. No fair person can read the Absolution form in the Anglican Prayer during the Visitation of the Sick without realizing that this Church does support and provide for Confession and Absolution. If that form doesn’t include the declaration of a serious sacramental act, then words have no meaning. The wording is nearly identical to the Roman form; and by the time this clergyman has managed to explain it away, he’ll have enough skill to do the same with the Roman form. If he were to interpret my words with the same flexibility he uses for his own texts, he would actually show that, rather than being superstitious and irrational, I’m the most Protestant of preachers and the most open-minded of thinkers. It would be considerate of him, in his interpretation of my words, to use some of that evasive skill that he clearly masters when dealing with his own Prayer Book. Yet he has the audacity on page 14 to ask, "Why was the Sermon preached? To suggest that a Church with sacramental confession and celibate clergy was the only true Church?"
"Why?" I will tell the reader, why; and with this view will speak, first of the contents of the Sermon, then of its subject, then of its circumstances.
"Why?" I'll explain to the reader, why; and with this perspective, I'll discuss first the content of the Sermon, then its topic, and finally its context.
1. It was one of the last six sermons which I wrote when I was an Anglican. It was one of the five sermons I preached in St. Mary's between Christmas and Easter, 1843, the year when I gave up my living. The MS. of the sermon is destroyed; but I believe, and my memory too bears me out, as far as it goes, that the sentence in question about celibacy and confession was not preached at all. The volume, in which this sermon is found, was published after that I had given up St. Mary's, when I had no call on me to restrain the expression of anything which I might hold: and I state an important fact about it in the advertisement, which this truth-loving writer suppresses. Blot nine.
1. It was one of the last six sermons I wrote when I was an Anglican. It was one of the five sermons I preached at St. Mary's between Christmas and Easter, 1843, the year I left my post. The manuscript of the sermon is gone, but I believe, and my memory supports me as far as it can, that the statement about celibacy and confession was not preached at all. The volume in which this sermon appears was published after I had left St. Mary's, when I had no obligation to hold back my views: and I mention a significant fact about it in the advertisement, which this truth-seeking writer suppresses. Blot nine.
My words, which stared him in the face, are as follows:—"In preparing [these Sermons] for publication, a few words and sentences have in several places been added, which will be found to express more of private or personal opinion, than it was expedient to introduce into the instruction delivered in Church to a parochial Congregation. Such introduction, however, seems unobjectionable in the case of compositions, which are detached from the sacred place and service to which they once belonged, and submitted to the reason and judgment of the general reader."
My words, which directly address him, are as follows:—"In preparing [these Sermons] for publication, a few words and sentences have been added in several places, which reflect more of private or personal opinion than it was appropriate to include in the instruction given in Church to a local Congregation. However, such additions seem acceptable in the case of writings that are detached from the sacred place and service they once belonged to, and submitted to the reasoning and judgment of the general reader."
This volume of sermons then cannot be criticised at all as preachments; they are essays; essays of a man who, at the time of publishing them, was not a preacher. Such passages, as that in question, are just the very ones which I added upon my publishing them. I always was on my guard in the pulpit of saying anything which looked towards Rome; and therefore all his rhetoric about my "disciples," "admiring young gentlemen who listened to me," "fanatic and hot-headed young men, who hung upon my every word," becomes simple rubbish.
This collection of sermons can’t really be seen as traditional preachings; they’re more like essays. Essays by someone who, when they were published, wasn’t actually a preacher. Passages like the one in question are exactly the ones I added when I published them. I’ve always been careful in the pulpit not to say anything that hinted at Rome; so all that talk about my "disciples," "admiring young guys who listened to me," and "fanatic and hot-headed young men who hung on my every word" is just nonsense.
I have more to say on this point. This writer says, p. 14, "I know that men used to suspect Dr. Newman—I have been inclined to do so myself—of writing a whole Sermon, not for the sake of the text or of the matter, but for the sake of one simple passing hint—one phrase, one epithet." Can there be a plainer testimony borne to the practical character of my sermons at St. Mary's than this gratuitous insinuation? Many a preacher of Tractarian doctrine has been accused of not letting his parishioners alone, and of teasing them with his private theological notions. You would gather from the general tone of this writer that that was my way. Every one who was in the habit of hearing me, knows that it wasn't. This writer either knows nothing about it, and then he ought to be silent; or he does know, and then he ought to speak the truth. Others spread the same report twenty years ago as he does now, and the world believed that my sermons at St. Mary's were full of red-hot Tractarianism. Then strangers came to hear me preach, and were astonished at their own disappointment. I recollect the wife of a great prelate from a distance coming to hear me, and then expressing her surprise to find that I preached nothing but a plain humdrum sermon. I recollect how, when on the Sunday before Commemoration one year, a number of strangers came to hear me, and I preached in my usual way, residents in Oxford, of high position, were loud in their satisfaction that on a great occasion, I had made a simple failure, for after all there was nothing in the sermon to hear. Well, but they were not going to let me off, for all my common-sense view of duty. Accordingly, they got up the charitable theory which this writer revives. They said that there was a double purpose in those plain addresses of mine, and that my sermons were never so artful as when they seemed common-place; that there were sentences which redeemed their apparent simplicity and quietness. So they watched during the delivery of a sermon, which to them was too practical to be useful, for the concealed point of it, which they could at least imagine, if they could not discover. "Men used to suspect Dr. Newman," he says, "of writing a whole Sermon, not for the sake of the text or of the matter, but for the sake of ... one phrase, one epithet, one little barbed arrow, which, as he swept magnificently past on the stream of his calm eloquence, seemingly unconscious of all presences, save those unseen, he delivered unheeded," etc. p. 14. To all appearance, he says, I was "unconscious of all presences;" so this kind writer supplies the true interpretation of this unconsciousness. He is not able to deny that "the whole Sermon" had the appearance of being "for the sake of the text and matter;" therefore he suggests that perhaps it wasn't. And then he emptily talks of the "magnificent sweep of my eloquence," and my "oratoric power." Did he forget that the sermon of which he thus speaks can be read by others as well as him? Now, the sentences are as short as Aristotle's, and as grave as Bishop Butler's. It is written almost in the condensed style of Tract 90. Eloquence there is none. I put this down as Blot ten.
I have more to say on this point. This writer states, p. 14, "I know that people used to suspect Dr. Newman—I’ve felt the same way myself—of writing a whole Sermon not for the sake of the text or the content, but for the sake of one simple passing hint—one phrase, one epithet." Can there be a clearer indication of the practical nature of my sermons at St. Mary's than this unfounded suggestion? Many preachers of Tractarian doctrine have been accused of not leaving their parishioners alone and of bothering them with their personal theological ideas. From the overall tone of this writer, you’d think that was my approach. Anyone who regularly heard me knows that it wasn’t. This writer either doesn’t know anything about it and should remain silent, or he does know and should tell the truth. Others spread the same rumors twenty years ago as he does now, and the world believed that my sermons at St. Mary's were filled with intense Tractarianism. Then newcomers came to hear me preach and were shocked by their own disappointment. I remember the wife of a high-ranking bishop from afar coming to hear me and then expressing her surprise to find that I preached nothing but a plain, straightforward sermon. I recall that when, the Sunday before Commemoration one year, many strangers came to listen to me and I preached in my usual way, prominent residents in Oxford were very vocal about their disappointment that, on such an important occasion, I had produced a simple failure, since there was ultimately nothing in the sermon to hear. However, they were not going to let me off the hook for my practical view of duty. So, they came up with the charitable theory that this writer revives. They claimed there was a double purpose in my plain addresses and that my sermons were never more clever than when they seemed ordinary; that there were sentences that redeemed their apparent simplicity and calmness. So, they observed during the delivery of a sermon that they found too practical to be useful, looking for the hidden point of it, which they could at least imagine, even if they couldn’t uncover. "People used to suspect Dr. Newman," he says, "of writing a whole Sermon, not for the sake of the text or the content, but for the sake of ... one phrase, one epithet, one little pointed remark, which, as he swept majestically past on the flow of his calm eloquence, seemingly unaware of all presence, except for those unseen, he delivered unnoticed," etc. p. 14. Apparently, he claims I was "unaware of all presence;" thus, this kind writer provides the true interpretation of this unawareness. He cannot deny that "the whole Sermon" had the appearance of being "for the sake of the text and content;" therefore, he suggests that maybe it wasn’t. And then he empty talks about the "magnificent flow of my eloquence" and my "oratorical power." Did he forget that the sermon he speaks of can be read by others as well as him? Now, the sentences are as short as Aristotle’s and as serious as Bishop Butler’s. It is written almost in the condensed style of Tract 90. There is no eloquence at all. I mark this down as Blot ten.
2. And now as to the subject of the sermon. The series of which the volume consists are such sermons as are, more or less, exceptions to the rule which I ordinarily observed, as to the subjects which I introduced into the pulpit of St. Mary's. They are not purely ethical or doctrinal. They were for the most part caused by circumstances of the day or of the time, and they belong to various years. One was written in 1832, two in 1836, two in 1838, five in 1840, five in 1841, four in 1842, seven in 1843. Many of them are engaged on one subject, viz. in viewing the Church in its relation to the world. By the world was meant, not simply those multitudes which were not in the Church, but the existing body of human society, whether in the Church or not, whether Catholics, Protestants, Greeks, or Mahometans, theists or idolaters, as being ruled by principles, maxims, and instincts of their own, that is, of an unregenerate nature, whatever their supernatural privileges might be, greater or less, according to their form of religion. This view of the relation of the Church to the world as taken apart from questions of ecclesiastical politics, as they may be called, is often brought out in my sermons. Two occur to me at once; No. 3 of my Plain Sermons, which was written in 1829, and No. 15 of my third volume, written in 1835. Then, on the other hand, by Church I meant—in common with all writers connected with the Tract Movement, whatever their shades of opinion, and with the whole body of English divines, except those of the Puritan or Evangelical School—the whole of Christendom, from the apostles' time till now, whatever their later divisions into Latin, Greek, and Anglican. I have explained this view of the subject above at pp. 83-85 of this Volume. When then I speak, in the particular sermon before us, of the members, or the rulers, or the action of "the Church," I mean neither the Latin, nor the Greek, nor the English, taken by itself, but of the whole Church as one body: of Italy as one with England, of the Saxon or Norman as one with the Caroline Church. This was specially the one Church, and the points in which one branch or one period differed from another were not and could not be notes of the Church, because notes necessarily belonged to the whole of the Church everywhere and always.
2. Now, let’s talk about the topic of the sermon. The series in this volume consists of sermons that are somewhat exceptions to the usual subjects I introduced in the pulpit at St. Mary's. They aren’t purely ethical or doctrinal. Most were prompted by the circumstances of the day or the time, and they span various years. One was written in 1832, two in 1836, two in 1838, five in 1840, five in 1841, four in 1842, and seven in 1843. Many of them focus on one topic, which is looking at the Church in relation to the world. By "the world," I mean not just the many who are outside the Church but the entirety of human society, whether in the Church or not, including Catholics, Protestants, Greeks, or Muslims, theists or idolaters, all governed by their own principles, rules, and instincts of an unregenerate nature, regardless of their supernatural privileges that may vary by their form of religion. This perspective on the Church's relation to the world, set apart from ecclesiastical politics, is often highlighted in my sermons. Two examples come to mind immediately: No. 3 of my Plain Sermons, written in 1829, and No. 15 of my third volume, written in 1835. On the other hand, when I refer to the Church, I mean—like all writers associated with the Tract Movement, regardless of their differing opinions, and along with the entire body of English theologians, except for those in the Puritan or Evangelical tradition—the whole of Christendom from the time of the apostles to now, despite any later divisions into Latin, Greek, and Anglican. I explained this view earlier on pages 83-85 of this volume. So, when I talk about the members, the leaders, or the actions of "the Church" in this particular sermon, I don’t mean just the Latin, the Greek, or the English Church by itself, but rather the entire Church as one body: Italy as one with England, the Saxon or Norman as one with the Caroline Church. This was specifically the one Church, and the differences between one branch or one period and another were not, and could not be, defining features of the Church, because defining features necessarily belonged to the whole Church everywhere and at all times.
This being my doctrine as to the relation of the Church to the world, I laid down in the sermon three principles concerning it, and there left the matter. The first is, that Divine Wisdom had framed for its action, laws which man, if left to himself, would have antecedently pronounced to be the worst possible for its success, and which in all ages have been called by the world, as they were in the apostles' days, "foolishness;" that man ever relies on physical and material force, and on carnal inducements—as Mahomet with his sword and his houris, or indeed almost as that theory of religion, called, since the sermon was written, "muscular Christianity;" but that our Lord, on the contrary, has substituted meekness for haughtiness, passiveness for violence, and innocence for craft: and that the event has shown the high wisdom of such an economy, for it has brought to light a set of natural laws, unknown before, by which the seeming paradox that weakness should be stronger than might, and simplicity than worldly policy, is readily explained.
This is my belief about the Church's relationship with the world. In my sermon, I outlined three principles regarding this topic and then moved on. The first principle is that Divine Wisdom established laws for its operation that, if left to his own devices, man would have previously deemed the worst possible for success, and which, throughout history, people have labeled as "foolishness," just like in the days of the apostles. Man often relies on physical and material strength, and on earthly temptations—like Muhammad with his sword and his pleasures or, more recently, the concept of "muscular Christianity." In contrast, our Lord has replaced pride with humility, action with patience, and cunning with innocence. The outcomes have demonstrated the profound wisdom of this approach, revealing a set of natural laws previously unknown, which clarify the apparently paradoxical idea that weakness can be stronger than might, and simplicity can outshine worldly strategy.
Secondly, I said that men of the world, judging by the event, and not recognizing the secret causes of the success, viz. a higher order of natural laws—natural, though their source and action were supernatural, (for "the meek inherit the earth," by means of a meekness which comes from above)—these men, I say, concluded, that the success which they witnessed must arise from some evil secret which the world had not mastered—by means of magic, as they said in the first ages, by cunning as they say now. And accordingly they thought that the humility and inoffensiveness of Christians, or of Churchmen, was a mere pretence and blind to cover the real causes of that success, which Christians could explain and would not; and that they were simply hypocrites.
Secondly, I said that worldly people, judging by what they see and not understanding the underlying reasons for success—specifically, a higher set of natural laws that, while natural, have supernatural origins and operations (for "the meek inherit the earth" through a meekness that comes from above)—these people concluded that the success they observed must stem from some unknown evil that the world couldn't comprehend—whether through magic, as they said in ancient times, or through trickery, as they say now. Consequently, they believed that the humility and harmlessness of Christians or Church members was just a facade to hide the real reasons behind that success, which Christians could explain but choose not to, and that they were simply being hypocritical.
Thirdly, I suggested that shrewd ecclesiastics, who knew very well that there was neither magic nor craft in the matter, and, from their intimate acquaintance with what actually went on within the Church, discerned what were the real causes of its success, were of course under the temptation of substituting reason for conscience, and, instead of simply obeying the command, were led to do good that good might come, that is, to act in order to their success, and not from a motive of faith. Some, I said, did yield to the temptation more or less, and their motives became mixed; and in this way the world in a more subtle shape has got into the Church; and hence it has come to pass, that, looking at its history from first to last, we cannot possibly draw the line between good and evil there, and say either that everything is to be defended, or some things to be condemned. I expressed the difficulty, which I supposed to be inherent in the Church, in the following words. I said, "Priestcraft has ever been considered the badge, and its imputation is a kind of Note of the Church; and in part indeed truly, because the presence of powerful enemies, and the sense of their own weakness, has sometimes tempted Christians to the abuse, instead of the use of Christian wisdom, to be wise without being harmless; but partly, nay, for the most part, not truly, but slanderously, and merely because the world called their wisdom craft, when it was found to be a match for its own numbers and power." This passage he has partly garbled, partly omitted. Blot eleven.
Third, I pointed out that clever church leaders, who understood there was no magic involved, and who were familiar with what really happened in the Church, recognized the actual reasons behind its success. They were tempted to replace their conscience with reason and, instead of simply following orders, they aimed to do good for the sake of achieving good outcomes, meaning they acted with the intention of success, not from genuine faith. I noted that some of them did succumb to this temptation to varying degrees, leading to mixed motives. As a result, the world has subtly infiltrated the Church, making it impossible to clearly distinguish between good and evil throughout its history and leading us to either defend everything or condemn certain things. I described the inherent difficulty I believed existed within the Church in these words: “Priestcraft has always been seen as a mark of distinction, and this accusation serves as a kind of signature of the Church; and it’s partially true because the presence of powerful adversaries and the awareness of their own weakness sometimes pushed Christians to misuse rather than use Christian wisdom, to be wise yet harmful; but mostly, it's not true but rather slanderous, simply because the world labeled their wisdom as craft when it proved capable against its own numbers and strength.” This passage he has partially distorted and partially left out. Blot eleven.
Such is the substance of the sermon: and as to the main drift of it, it was this; that I was, there and elsewhere, scrutinising the course of the Church as a whole, as if philosophically, as an historical phenomenon, and observing the laws on which it was conducted. Hence the sermon, or essay as it more truly is, is written in a dry and unimpassioned way: it shows as little of human warmth of feeling, I repeat, as a sermon of Bishop Butler's. Yet, under that calm exterior there was a deep and keen sensitiveness, as I shall now proceed to show.
This is the essence of the sermon: its main point was that I was examining the Church's overall trajectory, almost philosophically, as a historical event, and noting the principles that guided it. Therefore, the sermon, or rather essay, is written in a straightforward and unemotional style; it expresses as little human warmth as one of Bishop Butler's sermons. However, beneath that calm surface was a profound and sharp sensitivity, as I will now demonstrate.
3. If I mistake not, it was written with a secret thought about myself. Every one preaches according to his frame of mind, at the time of preaching. One heaviness especially oppressed me at that season, which this writer, twenty years afterwards, has set himself with a good will to renew: it arose from the sense of the base calumnies which were thrown upon me on all sides. In this trouble of mind I gained, while I reviewed the history of the Church, at once an argument and a consolation. My argument was this: if I, who knew my own innocence, was so blackened by party prejudice, perhaps those high rulers and those servants of the Church, in the many ages which intervened between the early Nicene times and the present, who were laden with such grievous accusations, were innocent also; and this reflection served to make me tender towards those great names of the past, to whom weaknesses or crimes were imputed, and reconciled me to difficulties in ecclesiastical proceedings, which there were no means now of properly explaining. And the sympathy thus excited for them, reacted on myself, and I found comfort in being able to put myself under the shadow of those who had suffered as I was suffering, and who seemed to promise me their recompense, since I had a fellowship in their trial. In a letter to my bishop at the time of Tract 90, part of which I have quoted, I said that I had ever tried to "keep innocency;" and now two years had passed since then, and men were louder and louder in heaping on me the very charges, which this writer repeats out of my sermon, of "fraud and cunning," "craftiness and deceitfulness," "double-dealing," "priestcraft," of being "mysterious, dark, subtle, designing," when I was all the time conscious to myself, in my degree, and after my measure, of "sobriety, self-restraint, and control of word and feeling." I had had experience how my past success had been imputed to "secret management;" and how, when I had shown surprise at that success, that surprise again was imputed to "deceit;" and how my honest heartfelt submission to authority had been called, as it was called in a colonial bishop's charge, "mystic humility;" and how my silence was called an "hypocrisy;" and my faithfulness to my clerical engagements a secret correspondence with the enemy. And I found a way of destroying my sensitiveness about these things which jarred upon my sense of justice, and otherwise would have been too much for me, by the contemplation of a large law of the Divine Dispensation, and found myself more and more able to bear in my own person a present trial, of which in my past writings I had expressed an anticipation.
3. If I’m not mistaken, it was written with a hidden thought about me. Everyone shares their perspective based on their state of mind when they speak. I was particularly burdened by something during that time, which this writer, twenty years later, has purposefully tried to revive: it came from the awful slurs thrown at me from all sides. In this mental turmoil, as I looked back at the history of the Church, I found both an argument and some comfort. My argument was this: if I, who knew my own innocence, was so unfairly criticized by party bias, maybe those high leaders and servants of the Church, throughout the ages from the early Nicene era to now, who faced such serious accusations, were innocent too; and this thought helped me feel compassionate toward the prominent figures of the past, who were accused of faults or sins, and it eased my acceptance of the complexities in church matters that were beyond my ability to explain. The sympathy I felt for them reflected back on me, and I found solace in connecting with those who had suffered as I was suffering, as they appeared to promise me a reward for sharing in their trials. In a letter to my bishop during the time of Tract 90, part of which I’ve quoted, I mentioned that I had always tried to "maintain my innocence;" and now two years had gone by since then, and people were increasingly vocal in accusing me of the very things that this writer echoes from my sermon—"fraud and cunning," "craftiness and deceitfulness," "double-dealing," "priestcraft," being "mysterious, dark, subtle, and scheming," all while I felt, to the best of my ability, that I exhibited "sobriety, self-restraint, and control of my words and feelings." I had experienced how my past successes were attributed to "secret manipulation;" and how, when I expressed surprise at those successes, that surprise was deemed "deceit;" and how my genuine, heartfelt submission to authority was labeled, as noted in a colonial bishop's charge, as "mystic humility;" and how my silence was branded as "hypocrisy;" and my commitment to my clerical duties was seen as a hidden alliance with the enemy. I found a way to lessen my sensitivity to these accusations that clashed with my sense of justice and would have overwhelmed me by contemplating a broader principle of Divine Providence, and I became increasingly capable of enduring my current trials, which I had predicted in my earlier writings.
For thus feeling and thus speaking this writer has the charitableness and the decency to call me "Mawworm." "I found him telling Christians," he says, "that they will always seem 'artificial,' and 'wanting in openness and manliness;' that they will always be 'a mystery' to the world; and that the world will always think them rogues; and bidding them glory in what the world (that is, the rest of their fellow-countrymen) disown, and say with Mawworm, 'I like to be despised.' ... How was I to know that the preacher ... was utterly blind to the broad meaning and the plain practical result of a sermon like this delivered before fanatic and hot-headed young men, who hung upon his every word?"—p. 17. Hot-headed young men! why, man, you are writing a romance. You think the scene is Alexandria or the Spanish main, where you may let your imagination play revel to the extent of inveracity. It is good luck for me that the scene of my labours was not at Moscow or Damascus. Then I might be one of your ecclesiastical saints, of which I sometimes hear in conversation, but with whom, I am glad to say, I have no personal acquaintance. Then you might ascribe to me a more deadly craft than mere quibbling and lying; in Spain I should have been an Inquisitor, with my rack in the background; I should have had a concealed dagger in Sicily; at Venice I should have brewed poison; in Turkey I should have been the Sheik-el-Islam with my bowstring; in Khorassan I should have been a veiled prophet. "Fanatic young men!" Why he is writing out the list of a dramatis Personæ; "guards, conspirators, populace," and the like. He thinks I was ever moving about with a train of Capulets at my heels. "Hot-headed fanatics, who hung on my every word!" If he had taken to write a history, and not a play, he would have easily found out, as I have said, that from 1841 I had severed myself from the younger generation of Oxford, that Dr. Pusey and I had then closed our theological meetings at his house, that I had brought my own weekly evening parties to an end, that I preached only by fits and starts at St. Mary's, so that the attendance of young men was broken up, that in those very weeks from Christmas till over Easter, during which this sermon was preached, I was but five times in the pulpit there. He would have known that it was written at a time when I was shunned rather than sought, when I had great sacrifices in anticipation, when I was thinking much of myself; that I was ruthlessly tearing myself away from my own followers, and that, in the musings of that sermon, I was at the very utmost only delivering a testimony in my behalf for time to come, not sowing my rhetoric broadcast for the chance of present sympathy. Blot twelve.
For feeling and speaking this way, this writer kindly calls me "Mawworm." "I found him telling Christians," he says, "that they will always seem 'fake' and 'lacking in openness and manliness;' that they will always be 'a mystery' to the world; and that the world will always think of them as crooks; and urging them to take pride in what the world (that is, their fellow countrymen) rejects, and to say with Mawworm, 'I like to be despised.' ... How was I supposed to know that the preacher ... was completely blind to the broader meaning and the clear practical outcome of a sermon like this delivered in front of passionate and impulsive young men, who hung on his every word?"—p. 17. Passionate young men! Seriously, you’re writing a story. You think the setting is Alexandria or the Spanish main, where you can let your imagination run wild to the point of being untruthful. I’m lucky that my work didn’t take place in Moscow or Damascus. Otherwise, I might be one of those ecclesiastical saints that I sometimes hear about in conversation, but thankfully, I have no personal connection to them. Then you could have attributed to me a more sinister skill than just quibbling and lying; in Spain, I would have been an Inquisitor, with my rack in the background; I would have had a hidden dagger in Sicily; in Venice, I would have brewed poison; in Turkey, I would have been the Sheik-el-Islam with my bowstring; in Khorassan, I would have been a veiled prophet. "Fanatic young men!" He’s practically drafting a list of a dramatis Personæ; "guards, conspirators, the populace," and so on. He thinks I was always surrounded by a group of Capulets. "Hot-headed fanatics, who hung on my every word!" If he had chosen to write history instead of a play, he would have easily found out, as I’ve said, that since 1841, I had distanced myself from the younger generation of Oxford, that Dr. Pusey and I had stopped our theological meetings at his house, that I had ended my own weekly evening gatherings, that I only preached sporadically at St. Mary’s, which disrupted young men’s attendance, and that during those very weeks from Christmas to Easter, when this sermon was given, I was only in the pulpit five times. He would have realized that it was written during a time when I was avoided rather than sought out, when I faced significant sacrifices ahead, and when I was focused on myself; that I was desperately breaking away from my own followers, and that in the reflections of that sermon, I was merely delivering a testimony for my future, not spreading my rhetoric in hopes of immediate sympathy. Blot twelve.
I proceed: he says at p. 15, "I found him actually using of such [prelates], (and, as I thought, of himself and his party likewise), the words 'They yield outwardly; to assent inwardly were to betray the faith. Yet they are called deceitful and double-dealing, because they do as much as they can, not more than they may.'" This too is a proof of my duplicity! Let this writer go with some one else, just a little further than he has gone with me; and let him get into a court of law for libel; and let him be convicted; and let him still fancy that his libel, though a libel, was true, and let us then see whether he will not in such a case "yield outwardly," without assenting internally; and then again whether we should please him, if we called him "deceitful and double-dealing," because "he did as much as he could, not more than he ought to do." But Tract 90 will supply a real illustration of what I meant. I yielded to the bishops in outward act, viz. in not defending the Tract, and in closing the series; but, not only did I not assent inwardly to any condemnation of it, but I opposed myself to the proposition of a condemnation on the part of authority. Yet I was then by the public called "deceitful and double-dealing," as this writer calls me now, "because I did as much as I felt I could do, and not more than I felt I could honestly do." Many were the publications of the day and the private letters which accused me of shuffling, because I closed the series of tracts, yet kept the tracts on sale, as if I ought to comply not only with what my bishop asked, but with what he did not ask, and perhaps did not wish. However, such teaching, according to this writer, was likely to make young men suspect that truth was not a virtue for its own sake, but only for the sake of "the spread of Catholic opinions," and the "salvation of their own souls;" and that "cunning was the weapon which heaven had allowed to them to defend themselves against the persecuting Protestant public."—p. 16. Blot thirteen.
I continue: he states on p. 15, "I found him actually using such [prelates], (and, as I thought, himself and his party too), the words 'They yield outwardly; to agree inwardly would betray the faith. Yet they are called deceitful and double-dealing because they do as much as they can, not more than they are allowed.'" This is yet another example of my duplicity! Let this writer go a little further with someone else than he has with me; let him enter a court of law for libel; let him be convicted; and let him still think his libel, although a libel, was true. Then we'll see whether he will "yield outwardly" without agreeing inwardly; and then we'll see if he would appreciate being called "deceitful and double-dealing," because "he did as much as he could, not more than he ought to do." But Tract 90 provides a real example of what I meant. I yielded to the bishops in outward action, meaning I didn’t defend the Tract and ended the series; but I not only did not agree inwardly to any condemnation of it, but I opposed the idea of condemnation from authority. Yet at that time, the public called me "deceitful and double-dealing," just as this writer does now, "because I did as much as I felt I could do, and not more than I felt I could honestly do." Many publications and private letters of the time accused me of being evasive because I ended the series of tracts but kept them on sale, as if I should comply not only with what my bishop requested but also with what he did not request and perhaps did not want. However, according to this writer, such teaching was likely to make young men suspect that truth was not a virtue for its own sake, but only for the sake of "spreading Catholic opinions" and the "salvation of their own souls;" and that "cunning was the weapon which heaven had allowed them to defend themselves against the persecuting Protestant public."—p. 16. Blot thirteen.
And now I draw attention to another point. He says at p. 15, "How was I to know that the preacher ... did not foresee, that [fanatic and hot-headed young men] would think that they obeyed him, by becoming affected, artificial, sly, shifty, ready for concealments and equivocations?" "How should he know!" What! I suppose that we are to think every man a knave till he is proved not to be such. Know! had he no friend to tell him whether I was "affected" or "artificial" myself? Could he not have done better than impute equivocation to me, at a time when I was in no sense answerable for the amphibologia of the Roman casuists? Has he a single fact which belongs to me personally or by profession to couple my name with equivocation in 1843? "How should he know" that I was not sly, smooth, artificial, non-natural! he should know by that common manly frankness, if he had it, by which we put confidence in others, till they are proved to have forfeited it; he should know it by my own words in that very sermon, in which I say it is best to be natural, and that reserve is at best but an unpleasant necessity. I say, "I do not deny that there is something very engaging in a frank and unpretending manner; some persons have it more than others; in some persons it is a great grace. But it must be recollected that I am speaking of times of persecution and oppression to Christians, such as the text foretells; and then surely frankness will become nothing else than indignation at the oppressor, and vehement speech, if it is permitted. Accordingly, as persons have deep feelings, so they will find the necessity of self-control, lest they should say what they ought not." He omits these words. I call, then, this base insinuation that I taught equivocation, Blot the fourteenth.
And now I want to highlight another point. He states on p. 15, "How was I to know that the preacher ... did not foresee that [fanatic and hot-headed young men] would think they were following him by becoming affected, artificial, sly, shifty, ready for hiding their true intentions and equivocations?" "How should he know!" Really? Are we supposed to believe every man is a villain until proven otherwise? Know! Did he have no friend to tell him whether I was "affected" or "artificial" myself? Could he not have done better than to accuse me of equivocation at a time when I wasn’t responsible for the ambiguity of the Roman casuists? Does he have any facts that personally connect me to equivocation in 1843? "How should he know" that I was not sly, smooth, artificial, or unnatural! He should know through that basic manly honesty, if he possesses it, by which we trust others until they show they’ve lost that trust; he should recognize it from my own words in that very sermon, where I say it’s best to be natural and that holding back is usually just an unpleasant necessity. I state, "I do not deny that there is something very appealing about a straightforward and unpretentious manner; some people have it more than others; in some individuals, it is a significant grace. But it must be remembered that I am talking about times of persecution and oppression against Christians, as the text predicts; and during such times, frankness will turn into nothing more than anger at the oppressor and passionate speech, if it's allowed. Therefore, when people have deep feelings, they will recognize the need for self-control, so they don't say things they shouldn’t." He leaves out these words. I therefore label this as a shameful insinuation that I taught equivocation, Blot the fourteenth.
Lastly, he sums up thus: "If [Dr. Newman] would ... persist (as in this Sermon) in dealing with matters dark, offensive, doubtful, sometimes actually forbidden, at least according to the notions of the great majority of English Churchmen; if he would always do so in a tentative, paltering way, seldom or never letting the world know how much he believed, how far he intended to go; if, in a word, his method of teaching was a suspicious one, what wonder if the minds of men were filled with suspicions of him?"—p. 17.
Lastly, he sums it up like this: "If [Dr. Newman] would ... keep on (as in this Sermon) bringing up topics that are unclear, offensive, questionable, and sometimes actually prohibited, at least according to the views of most English Churchmen; if he always approached these issues in a hesitant, evasive manner, rarely or never revealing how much he truly believed or how far he planned to go; if, in short, his teaching method raised doubts, what can we expect if people are filled with suspicions about him?" — p. 17.
Now first he is speaking of my sermons; where, then, is his proof that in my sermons I dealt in matters dark, offensive, doubtful, actually forbidden? he has said nothing in proof that I have not been able flatly to deny.
Now he's talking about my sermons; so where’s his evidence that I talked about dark, offensive, uncertain, or actually forbidden topics in them? He hasn’t provided anything that I can’t completely deny.
"Forbidden according to the notions of the great majority of English Churchmen." I should like to know what opinions, beyond those which relate to the Creed, are held by the "majority of English Churchmen:"—are his own? is it not perfectly well known, that "the great majority" think of him and his views with a feeling which I will not describe, because it is not necessary for my argument? So far is certain, that he has not the majority with him.
"Forbidden according to the beliefs of most English Churchmen." I’d like to know what opinions, aside from those related to the Creed, are held by the "majority of English Churchmen":—are these his own? Isn’t it well-known that "the great majority" see him and his views in a way that I won’t describe, because it’s not necessary for my argument? What’s certain is that he doesn’t have the majority on his side.
"In a tentative, paltering way." The word "paltering" I reject, as vague; as to "tentative," he must show that I was tentative in my sermons; and he has eight volumes to look through. As to the ninth, my University sermons, of course I was "tentative;" but not because "I would seldom or never let the world know how much I believed, or how far I intended to go;" but because in deep subjects, which had not been fully investigated, I said as much as I believed, and about as far as I saw I could go; and a man cannot do more; and I account no man to be a philosopher who attempts to do more. How long am I to have the office of merely negativing assertions which are but supported by former assertions, in which John is ever helping Tom, and the elephant stands upon the tortoise? This is Blot fifteen.
"In a careful, ambiguous way." I reject the word "ambiguous" because it's unclear; and regarding "careful," he must prove that I was careful in my sermons; he has eight volumes to sift through. As for the ninth, my University sermons, I admit I was "careful;" but not because "I would rarely or never let the world know how much I believed or how far I intended to go;" but because, on complex topics that hadn't been fully explored, I expressed what I truly believed and went as far as I felt I could; and a person can't do more than that. I don't consider anyone a philosopher who tries to go beyond that. How long do I have to just deny claims that are only backed up by previous claims, where John is always helping Tom, and the elephant is standing on the tortoise? This is Blot fifteen.
3. The Anglican Church
This writer says:—"If there is, as there is, a strong distrust of certain Catholics, it is restricted to the proselytizing priests among them; and especially to those, who, like Dr. Newman, have turned round upon their mother Church (I had almost said their mother country), with contumely and slander."—p. 18.
This writer says:—"If there is, as there is, a strong distrust of certain Catholics, it's limited to the missionary priests among them; especially those who, like Dr. Newman, have turned against their mother Church (I almost said their mother country) with contempt and slander."—p. 18.
No one has a right to make a charge, without at least an attempt to prove what he says; but this writer is consistent with himself. From the time that he first spoke of me in the magazine, when has he ever even professed to give evidence of any sort for any one of his charges, from his own sense of propriety, and without being challenged on the point? After the sentence which I have been quoting, and another like it, he coolly passes on to Tract 90! Blot sixteen; but I shall dwell on it awhile, for its own sake.
No one has the right to make an accusation without at least trying to back up what they say; however, this writer is consistent with himself. Since the first time he mentioned me in the magazine, when has he ever even claimed to provide any evidence for any of his accusations, based on his own sense of propriety and without being challenged on it? After the sentence I've been quoting, and another similar one, he just moves on to Tract 90! Blot sixteen; but I’ll focus on it for a bit, just for its own sake.
Now I have been bringing out my mind in this volume on every subject which has come before me; and therefore I am bound to state plainly what I feel and have felt, since I was a Catholic, about the Anglican Church. I said, in a former page, that, on my conversion, I was not conscious of any change in me of thought or feeling, as regards matters of doctrine; this, however, was not the case as regards some matters of fact, and, unwilling as I am to give offence to religious Anglicans, I am bound to confess that I felt a great change in my view of the Church of England. I cannot tell how soon there came on me—but very soon—an extreme astonishment that I had ever imagined it to be a portion of the Catholic Church. For the first time, I looked at it from without, and (as I should myself say) saw it as it was. Forthwith I could not get myself to see in it anything else, than what I had so long fearfully suspected, from as far back as 1836—a mere national institution. As if my eyes were suddenly opened, so I saw it—spontaneously, apart from any definite act of reason or any argument; and so I have seen it ever since. I suppose, the main cause of this lay in the contrast which was presented to me by the Catholic Church. Then I recognised at once a reality which was quite a new thing with me. Then I was sensible that I was not making for myself a Church by an effort of thought; I needed not to make an act of faith in her; I had not painfully to force myself into a position, but my mind fell back upon itself in relaxation and in peace, and I gazed at her almost passively as a great objective fact. I looked at her;—at her rites, her ceremonial, and her precepts; and I said, "This is a religion;" and then, when I looked back upon the poor Anglican Church, for which I had laboured so hard, and upon all that appertained to it, and thought of our various attempts to dress it up doctrinally and esthetically, it seemed to me to be the veriest of nonentities. Vanity of vanities, all is vanity! How can I make a record of what passed within me, without seeming to be satirical? But I speak plain, serious words. As people call me credulous for acknowledging Catholic claims, so they call me satirical for disowning Anglican pretensions; to them it is credulity, to them it is satire; but it is not so in me. What they think exaggeration, I think truth. I am not speaking of the Anglican Church in any disdain, though to them I seem contemptuous. To them of course it is "Aut Cæsar aut nullus," but not to me. It may be a great creation, though it be not divine, and this is how I judge of it. Men, who abjure the divine right of kings, would be very indignant, if on that account they were considered disloyal. And so I recognise in the Anglican Church a time-honoured institution, of noble historical memories, a monument of ancient wisdom, a momentous arm of political strength, a great national organ, a source of vast popular advantage, and, to a certain point, a witness and teacher of religious truth. I do not think that, if what I have written about it since I have been a Catholic, be equitably considered as a whole, I shall be found to have taken any other view than this; but that it is something sacred, that it is an oracle of revealed doctrine, that it can claim a share in St. Ignatius or St. Cyprian, that it can take the rank, contest the teaching, and stop the path of the Church of St. Peter, that it can call itself "the Bride of the Lamb," this is the view of it which simply disappeared from my mind on my conversion, and which it would be almost a miracle to reproduce. "I went by, and lo! it was gone; I sought it, but its place could no where be found;" and nothing can bring it back to me. And, as to its possession of an episcopal succession from the time of the apostles, well, it may have it, and, if the holy see ever so decided, I will believe it, as being the decision of a higher judgment than my own; but, for myself, I must have St. Philip's gift, who saw the sacerdotal character on the forehead of a gaily-attired youngster, before I can by my own wit acquiesce in it, for antiquarian arguments are altogether unequal to the urgency of visible facts. Why is it that I must pain dear friends by saying so, and kindle a sort of resentment against me in the kindest of hearts? but I must, though to do it be not only a grief to me, but most impolitic at the moment. Anyhow, this is my mind; and, if to have it, if to have betrayed it, before now, involuntarily by my words or my deeds, if on a fitting occasion, as now, to have avowed it, if all this be a proof of the justice of the charge brought against me of having "turned round upon my Mother-Church with contumely and slander," in this sense, but in no other sense, do I plead guilty to it without a word in extenuation.
Now I have been expressing my thoughts in this volume on every topic that has come my way; so I must clearly state what I feel and have felt, since I was a Catholic, about the Anglican Church. I mentioned earlier that, upon my conversion, I didn’t notice any change in my thoughts or feelings regarding doctrine; however, that wasn't true for some factual matters. Though I don’t want to offend religious Anglicans, I must admit that I experienced a significant shift in my perception of the Church of England. I can’t say exactly when it happened, but very soon, I was shocked that I had ever thought of it as part of the Catholic Church. For the first time, I looked at it from the outside and, as I would put it, saw it as it truly was. Immediately, I could no longer see it as anything other than what I had feared for a long time, since as far back as 1836—a simple national institution. It was as if my eyes had been opened; I saw it spontaneously, without any specific reasoning or argument; and I have viewed it that way ever since. I suppose the main reason for this change was the contrast with the Catholic Church. Then I immediately recognized a reality that was completely new to me. I realized that I wasn’t constructing a Church in my mind; I didn’t need to make a leap of faith in it; I didn’t have to push myself into a position—it was as if my mind relaxed, and I observed her almost passively as a significant reality. I looked at her—her rituals, her ceremonies, and her teachings; and I thought, "This is a religion." Then, reflecting on the poor Anglican Church, for which I had worked so hard, and all that belonged to it, I found it to be utterly insubstantial. Vanity of vanities, all is vanity! How can I record my internal thoughts without sounding sarcastic? But I’m speaking plain, serious words. Just as people call me gullible for recognizing Catholic claims, they label me sarcastic for rejecting Anglican pretensions; to them it is gullibility, to them it is satire; but that’s not how I see it. What they consider exaggeration, I see as truth. I don’t speak about the Anglican Church with disdain, although it may seem that way to them. For them, it’s "Either Caesar or nothing," but not for me. It may be a significant creation, even if it isn't divine, and that's how I assess it. People who reject the divine right of kings would be quite upset if they were seen as disloyal for that reason. Therefore, I recognize the Anglican Church as a long-standing institution with a rich historical legacy, a monument of ancient wisdom, a powerful political force, a major national entity, a source of considerable public benefit, and, to some extent, a witness and teacher of religious truth. I don't believe that, if my writings about it since becoming a Catholic are fairly considered as a whole, anyone would find that I've taken a different view; but that it is something sacred, that it is an oracle of revealed doctrine, that it can claim a connection to St. Ignatius or St. Cyprian, that it can elevate itself, challenge the teachings, and impede the path of the Church of St. Peter, that it can refer to itself as "the Bride of the Lamb," this perspective simply vanished from my mind at the time of my conversion, and it would be nearly miraculous to revitalize it. "I went by, and lo! it was gone; I sought it, but its place could no where be found;" and nothing can bring it back to me. Regarding its claim to an episcopal succession from the apostles, it might have that, and if the Holy See decided so, I would believe it, as it would be based on a higher judgment than my own; but personally, I need St. Philip's gift, who recognized the priestly character on the forehead of a flamboyantly dressed young man, before I can accept it with my own reasoning because historical arguments don't compare to the immediacy of visible facts. Why do I have to upset dear friends by saying this and spark some resentment in the kindest of hearts? But I must, even though it causes me a lot of grief and is quite unwise at this moment. In any case, this is my opinion; and, if having it, if I have inadvertently revealed it before, through my words or actions, if on an appropriate occasion, like now, I've admitted it, if all of this is evidence of the accusation leveled against me for having "turned upon my Mother-Church with disdain and slander," in this sense— but in no other sense—I plead guilty to it without offering any justification.
In no other sense surely; the Church of England has been the instrument of Providence in conferring great benefits on me; had I been born in Dissent, perhaps I should never have been baptised; had I been born an English Presbyterian, perhaps I should never have known our Lord's divinity; had I not come to Oxford, perhaps I never should have heard of the visible Church, or of Tradition, or other Catholic doctrines. And as I have received so much good from the Anglican Establishment itself, can I have the heart, or rather the want of charity, considering that it does for so many others, what it has done for me, to wish to see it overthrown? I have no such wish while it is what it is, and while we are so small a body. Not for its own sake, but for the sake of the many congregations to which it ministers, I will do nothing against it. While Catholics are so weak in England, it is doing our work; and, though it does us harm in a measure, at present the balance is in our favour. What our duty would be at another time and in other circumstances, supposing, for instance, the Establishment lost its dogmatic faith, or at least did not preach it, is another matter altogether. In secular history we read of hostile nations having long truces, and renewing them from time to time, and that seems to be the position the Catholic Church may fairly take up at present in relation to the Anglican Establishment.
In no other sense, surely; the Church of England has been an instrument of Providence in granting me great benefits. If I had been born into dissenting beliefs, I might never have been baptized; if I had been born a Presbyterian, I might never have known our Lord's divinity. If I hadn’t come to Oxford, I might never have learned about the visible Church, Tradition, or other Catholic doctrines. Since I have received so much good from the Anglican Church itself, how can I wish to see it torn down, especially considering it offers the same for so many others? I don’t hold such a desire while it remains what it is, and while we are such a small group. Not for its own sake, but for the many congregations it serves, I won’t do anything against it. While Catholics are so few in England, it is doing our work; and even though it causes us some harm, for now, the balance is in our favor. What our duty would be at another time and in different circumstances, if, for instance, the Establishment lost its dogmatic faith or at least didn’t preach it, is a completely different issue. In secular history, we read of hostile nations having long truces and renewing them periodically, and that seems to be the stance the Catholic Church can reasonably take at present concerning the Anglican Church.
Doubtless the National Church has hitherto been a serviceable breakwater against doctrinal errors, more fundamental than its own. How long this will last in the years now before us, it is impossible to say, for the nation drags down its Church to its own level; but still the National Church has the same sort of influence over the nation that a periodical has upon the party which it represents, and my own idea of a Catholic's fitting attitude towards the National Church in this its supreme hour, is that of assisting and sustaining it, if it be in our power, in the interest of dogmatic truth. I should wish to avoid everything, except under the direct call of duty, which went to weaken its hold upon the public mind, or to unsettle its establishment, or to embarrass and lessen its maintenance of those great Christian and Catholic principles and doctrines which it has up to this time successfully preached.
No doubt the National Church has been a useful barrier against more fundamental doctrinal errors. How long this will continue in the coming years is uncertain, as the nation pulls the Church down to its level. However, the National Church still influences the nation in a way similar to how a magazine affects the political party it represents. My view on how a Catholic should respond to the National Church in its critical moment is to support and uphold it, if we can, in the interest of dogmatic truth. I would like to avoid anything, except when directly called to do so by duty, that would weaken its influence on the public, disturb its establishment, or hinder its ability to uphold the essential Christian and Catholic principles and doctrines that it has successfully preached so far.
I say, "except under the call of duty;" and this exception, I am obliged to admit, is not a slight one; it is one which necessarily places a bar to any closer relation between it and ourselves, than that of an armed truce. For, in the first place, it stands to reason that even a volume, such as this has been, exerts an influence adverse to the Establishment—at least in the case of many minds; and this I cannot avoid, though I have sincerely attempted to keep as wide of controversy in the course of it, as ever I could. And next I cannot deny, what must be ever a very sore point with Anglicans, that, if any Anglican comes to me after careful thought and prayer, and with deliberate purpose, and says, "I believe in the Holy Catholic Church, and that your Church and yours alone is it, and I demand admittance into it," it would be the greatest of sins in me to reject such a man, as being a distinct contravention of our Lord's maxim, "Freely ye have received, freely give."
I say, "except when duty calls;" and this exception, I have to admit, is significant; it creates a barrier to any closer relationship between it and us than that of a tentative peace. First of all, it’s clear that even a book like this can have a negative impact on the Establishment—at least for many people; and I can’t escape this, even though I've truly tried to steer clear of controversy as much as possible throughout. Secondly, I can’t deny that it must be a very sensitive issue for Anglicans, that if any Anglican approaches me after careful thought and prayer, with a clear intention, and says, "I believe in the Holy Catholic Church, and that your Church is the only one that truly embodies it, and I request to join it," it would be a serious sin on my part to turn away such a person, as it directly contradicts our Lord's saying, "Freely you have received, freely give."
I have written three volumes which may be considered controversial; Loss and Gain in 1847; Lectures on Difficulties felt by Anglicans in submitting to the Catholic Church in 1850; and Lectures on the present Position of Catholics in England in 1851. And though I have neither time nor need to go into the matter minutely, a few words will suffice for some general account of what has been my object and my tone in these works severally.
I have written three volumes that might be seen as controversial: Loss and Gain in 1847; Lectures on Difficulties Anglicans Face in Accepting the Catholic Church in 1850; and Lectures on the Current Position of Catholics in England in 1851. While I don't have the time or need to go into detail, a few words will give a general overview of my purpose and tone in each of these works.
Of these three, the Lectures on the "Position of Catholics" have nothing to do with the Church of England, as such; they are directed against the Protestant or Ultra-Protestant tradition on the subject of Catholicism since the time of Queen Elizabeth, in which parties indeed in the Church of England have largely participated, but which cannot be confused with Anglican teaching itself. Much less can that tradition be confused with the doctrine of the Laudian or of the Tractarian School. I owe nothing to Protestantism; and I spoke against it even when I was an Anglican, as well as in these Catholic lectures. If I spoke in them against the Church Established, it was because, and so far as, at the time when they were delivered the Establishment took a violent part against the Catholic Church, on the basis of the Protestant tradition. Moreover, I had never as an Anglican been a lover of the actual Establishment; Hurrell Froude's Remains, in which it is called an "incubus" and "Upas Tree," will stand in evidence, as for him, so for me; for I was one of the editors. What I said even as an Anglican, it is not strange that I said when I was not. Indeed I have been milder in my thoughts of the Establishment ever since I have been a Catholic than before, and for an obvious reason:—when I was an Anglican, I viewed it as repressing a higher doctrine than its own; and now I view it as keeping out a lower and more dangerous.
Of these three, the Lectures on the "Position of Catholics" have nothing to do with the Church of England itself; they are aimed at the Protestant or Ultra-Protestant views on Catholicism since the time of Queen Elizabeth. Many within the Church of England have been involved in these views, but they should not be confused with Anglican teaching itself. Even less can this tradition be mixed up with the beliefs of the Laudian or Tractarian School. I don't owe anything to Protestantism; I spoke out against it even when I was an Anglican, as well as in these Catholic lectures. When I criticized the Established Church in these lectures, it was because, at the time, the Establishment took a strong stance against the Catholic Church based on the Protestant tradition. Moreover, I had never been fond of the actual Establishment as an Anglican; Hurrell Froude's Remains, where it’s called an "incubus" and "Upas Tree," will serve as proof, both for him and for me, since I was one of the editors. What I said even as an Anglican, it's no surprise I said when I was not. In fact, I've been more lenient in my views of the Establishment since becoming Catholic than I was before, and for a clear reason: when I was an Anglican, I saw it as suppressing a higher doctrine than its own; now I see it as keeping out a lower and more dangerous one.
Then as to my Lectures on Anglican Difficulties. Neither were these formally directed against the National Church. They were addressed to the "Children of the Movement of 1833," to impress upon them, that, whatever was the case with others, their duty at least was to become Catholics, since Catholicism was the real scope and issue of that Movement. "There is but one thing," I say, "that forces me to speak.... It will be a miserable thing for you and for me, if I have been instrumental in bringing you but half-way, if I have co-operated in removing your invincible ignorance, but am able to do no more."—p. 5. Such being the drift of the volume, the reasoning directed against the Church of England goes no further than this, that it had no claims whatever on such of its members as were proceeding onwards with the Movement into the Catholic Church.
Then regarding my Lectures on Anglican Difficulties. These weren’t specifically aimed at the National Church. They were meant for the "Children of the Movement of 1833," to emphasize that, regardless of others' situations, their responsibility was to become Catholics, as Catholicism was the true aim and outcome of that Movement. "There is only one thing," I say, "that compels me to speak.... It would be a terrible outcome for you and for me if I've helped you only halfway, if I’ve assisted in dispelling your ignorance, but can do no more."—p. 5. Given this purpose of the volume, the arguments against the Church of England go no further than this, that it has no claims whatsoever on those of its members who are moving forward with the Movement into the Catholic Church.
Lastly, as to Loss and Gain: it is the story, simply ideal, of the conversion of an Oxford man. Its drift is to show how little there is in Anglicanism to satisfy and retain a young and earnest heart. In this tale, all the best characters are sober Church-of-England people. No Tractarians proper are introduced: and this is noted in the advertisement: "No proper representative is intended in this tale, of the religious opinions, which had lately so much influence in the University of Oxford." There could not be such in the tale, without the introduction of friends, which was impossible in its very notion. But, since the scene was to be laid during the very years, and at the head-quarters, of Tractarianism, some expedient was necessary in order to meet what was a great difficulty. My expedient was the introduction of what may be called Tractarians improper; and I took them the more readily, because, though I knew that such there were, I knew none of them personally. I mean such men as I used to consider of "the gilt-gingerbread school," from whom I expected little good, persons whose religion lay in ritualism or architecture, and who "played at Popery" or at Anglicanism. I repeat I knew no such men, because it is one thing to desire fine churches and ceremonies (which of course I did myself), and quite another thing to desire these and nothing else; but at that day there was in some quarters, though not in those where I had influence, a strong movement in the esthetic direction. Doubtless I went too far in my apprehension of such a movement: for one of the best, and most devoted and hard-working priests I ever knew was the late Father Hutchison, of the London Oratory, and I believe it was architecture that directed his thoughts towards the Catholic Church. However, I had in my mind an external religion which was inordinate; and, as the men who were considered instances of it, were personally unknown to me, even by name, I introduced them, under imaginary representatives, in Loss and Gain, and that, in order to get clear of Tractarians proper; and of the three men, whom I have introduced, the Anglican is the best. In like manner I introduced two "gilt-gingerbread" young ladies, who were ideal, absolutely, utterly, without a shred of concrete existence about them; and I introduced them with the remark that they were "really kind charitable persons," and "by no means put forth as a type of a class," that "among such persons were to be found the gentlest spirits and the tenderest hearts," and that "these sisters had open hands, if they had not wise heads," but that "they did not know much of matters ecclesiastical, and they knew less of themselves."
Lastly, regarding Loss and Gain: it’s simply an ideal story about the conversion of an Oxford man. Its aim is to show how little Anglicanism has to offer someone young and earnest. In this tale, all the best characters are modest Church of England people. Proper Tractarians are not included, as noted in the advertisement: "No proper representative is intended in this tale, of the religious opinions, which had lately so much influence in the University of Oxford." There could not be such in the story without bringing in friends, which was not possible given the concept. However, since the setting was during the peak years of Tractarianism, some solution was needed to address a major challenge. My solution was to create what could be called improper Tractarians; and I did this more easily because, while I knew they existed, I didn’t know any of them personally. I mean men whom I would have categorized as from the "gilt-gingerbread school," from whom I expected little good—people whose faith centered on rituals or architecture and who "played at Popery" or Anglicanism. I emphasize that I didn’t know any such men personally, because wanting beautiful churches and ceremonies (which I certainly did) is one thing, while wanting only those and nothing else is another. Yet, at that time, there was a strong aesthetic movement in some circles, though not in those I was connected to. I may have overestimated this movement: one of the best, most dedicated, and hardworking priests I ever knew was the late Father Hutchison of the London Oratory, who I believe was led to the Catholic Church by architecture. Still, I had in mind an external religion that was excessive; and since the men considered examples of this were unknown to me even by name, I created imaginary representatives in Loss and Gain to avoid proper Tractarians. Among the three men I introduced, the Anglican was the best. Similarly, I created two "gilt-gingerbread" young ladies who were completely idealized, utterly lacking any real existence, and I introduced them with the note that they were "really kind charitable persons," and "by no means put forth as a type of a class," that "among such persons were to be found the gentlest spirits and the tenderest hearts," and that "these sisters had open hands, if they had not wise heads," but that "they did not know much of ecclesiastical matters, and they knew less of themselves."
It has been said, indeed, I know not to what extent, that I introduced my friends or partisans into the tale; this is utterly untrue. Only two cases of this misconception have come to my knowledge, and I at once denied each of them outright; and I take this opportunity of denying generally the truth of all other similar charges. No friend of mine, no one connected in any way with the Movement, entered into the composition of any one of the characters. Indeed, putting aside the two instances which have been distinctly brought before me, I have not even any sort of suspicion who the persons are, whom I am thus accused of introducing.
It’s been said, though I’m not sure how true it is, that I included my friends or supporters in the story; this is completely false. I’ve only heard about two claims of this kind, and I immediately denied both of them. I want to take this chance to deny all other similar accusations as well. No friend of mine, or anyone connected to the Movement in any way, was included in any of the characters. In fact, aside from the two specific cases that have been pointed out to me, I don’t even have any idea who the people are that I’m being accused of including.
Next, this writer goes on to speak of Tract 90; a subject of which I have treated at great length in a former passage of this narrative, and, in consequence, need not take up again now.
Next, this writer addresses Tract 90, a topic I covered extensively in an earlier part of this narrative, so there's no need to go over it again now.
4. Series of Lives of the English Saints
I have given the history of this publication above at pp. 195-196. It was to have consisted of almost 300 Lives, and I was to have been the editor. It was brought to an end, before it was well begun, by the act of friends who were frightened at the first Life printed, the Life of St. Stephen Harding. Thus I was not responsible except for the first two numbers; and the advertisements distinctly declared this. I had just the same responsibility about the other Lives, that my assailant had, and not a bit more. However, it answers his purpose to consider me responsible.
I shared the history of this publication earlier on pages 195-196. It was supposed to feature nearly 300 biographies, and I was set to be the editor. However, it ended prematurely, before it even really started, due to friends who got scared after seeing the first biography published, which was about St. Stephen Harding. So, I was only responsible for the first two issues; the advertisements clearly stated this. I had the same level of responsibility for the other biographies as my critic did, and no more. Still, it suits his agenda to hold me accountable.
Next, I observe, that his delusion about "hot-headed fanatic young men" continues: here again I figure with my strolling company. "They said," he observes, "what they believed; at least, what they had been taught to believe that they ought to believe. And who had taught them? Dr. Newman can best answer that question," p. 20. Well, I will do what I can to solve the mystery.
Next, I notice that his misunderstanding about "hot-headed fanatic young men" is still around: once again, I appear with my traveling group. "They said," he notes, "what they believed; at least, what they were taught to believe they should believe. And who taught them? Dr. Newman can best answer that question," p. 20. Well, I'll do what I can to clarify the mystery.
Now as to the juvenile writers in the proposed series. One was my friend Mr. Bowden, who in 1843 was a man of 46 years old; he was to have written St. Boniface. Another was Mr. Johnson, a man of 42; he was to have written St. Aldelm. Another was the author of St. Augustine: let us hear something about him from this writer:—
Now about the young writers in the proposed series. One was my friend Mr. Bowden, who in 1843 was 46 years old; he was supposed to write St. Boniface. Another was Mr. Johnson, a 42-year-old; he was meant to write St. Aldelm. Additionally, there was the author of St. Augustine: let’s hear something about him from this writer:—
"Dr. Newman," he says, "might have said to the Author of the Life of St. Augustine, when he found him, in the heat and haste of youthful fanaticism, outraging historic truth and the law of evidence, 'This must not be.'"—p. 20.
"Dr. Newman," he says, "might have said to the Author of the Life of St. Augustine, when he found him, in the heat and haste of youthful fanaticism, twisting historical facts and disregarding the rules of evidence, 'This can’t be tolerated.'"—p. 20.
Good. This juvenile was past 40—well, say 39. Blot seventeen. "This must not be." This is what I ought to have said, it seems! And then, you see, I have not the talent, and never had, of some people, for lecturing my equals, much less men twenty years older than myself.
Good. This young person was over 40—let's say 39. Scratch seventeen. "This can't be." This is what I should have said, it seems! And then, you see, I don’t have the skill, and never did, like some people do, for lecturing my peers, let alone men twenty years older than me.
But again, the author of St. Augustine's Life distinctly says in his advertisement, "No one but himself is responsible for the way in which these materials have been used." Blot eighteen.
But once more, the writer of St. Augustine's Life clearly states in his note, "No one but himself is responsible for how these materials have been used." Blot eighteen.
Thirty-three Lives were actually published. Out of the whole number this writer notices three. Of these one is "charming;" therefore I am not to have the benefit of it. Another "outrages historic truth and the law of evidence;" therefore "it was notoriously sanctioned by Dr. Newman." And the third was "one of the most offensive," and Dr. Newman must have formally connected himself with it in "a moment of amiable weakness."—p. 22. What even-handed justice is here! Blot nineteen.
Thirty-three Lives were actually published. Out of that total, this writer points out three. One of these is "charming;" so I won't benefit from it. Another "distorts historical truth and the law of evidence;" so "it was famously approved by Dr. Newman." And the third is "one of the most offensive," and Dr. Newman must have officially associated himself with it in "a moment of kind-hearted weakness."—p. 22. What fair justice we have here! Blot nineteen.
But to return to the juvenile author of St. Augustine:—"I found," says this writer, "the Life of St. Augustine saying, that, though the pretended visit of St. Peter to England wanted historic evidence, 'yet it has undoubtedly been received as a pious opinion by the Church at large, as we learn from the often-quoted words of St. Innocent I. (who wrote A.D. 416) that St. Peter was instrumental in the conversion of the West generally.'"—p. 21. He brings this passage against me (with which, however, I have nothing more to do than he has) as a great misdemeanour; but let us see what his criticism is worth. "And this sort of argument," continues the passage, "though it ought to be kept quite distinct from documentary and historic proof, will not be without its effect on devout minds," etc. I should have thought this a very sober doctrine, viz. that we must not confuse together two things quite distinct from each other, criticism and devotion, so proof and opinion—that a devout mind will hold opinions which it cannot demonstrate by "historic proof." What, I ask, is the harm of saying this? Is this my assailant's definition of opinion, "a thing which can be proved?" I cannot answer for him, but I can answer for men in general. Let him read Sir David Brewster's "More Worlds than One;"—this principle, which is so shocking to my assailant, is precisely the argument of Sir David's book; he tells us that the plurality of worlds cannot be proved, but will be received by religious men. He asks, p. 229, "If the stars are not suns, for what conceivable purpose were they created?" and then he lays down dogmatically, p. 254, "There is no opinion, out of the region of pure demonstration, more universally cherished than the doctrine of the Plurality of worlds." And in his title-page he styles this "opinion" "the creed of the philosopher and the hope of the Christian." If Brewster may bring devotion into astronomy, why may not my friend bring it into history? and that the more, when he actually declares that it ought to be kept quite distinct from history, and by no means assumes that he is an historian because he is a hagiographer; whereas, somehow or other, Sir David does seem to me to show a zeal greater than becomes a savant, and to assume that he himself is a theologian because he is an astronomer. This writer owes Sir David as well as me an apology. Blot twenty.
But to go back to the young author discussing St. Augustine: “I found,” says this writer, “the Life of St. Augustine stating that, although the supposed visit of St. Peter to England lacks historic evidence, 'it has certainly been accepted as a pious opinion by the Church as a whole, as we learn from the frequently cited words of St. Innocent I. (who wrote in A.D. 416) that St. Peter played a role in the conversion of the West in general.’”—p. 21. He uses this passage against me (although I have no more to do with it than he does) as a serious offense; but let's see how valuable his criticism really is. “And this kind of argument,” continues the passage, “though it should be kept quite distinct from documentary and historic proof, will not lack its effect on devout minds,” etc. I would have thought this a very reasonable notion, namely, that we should not conflate two things that are completely distinct from each other, like criticism and devotion, nor proof and opinion—that a devout mind will hold opinions that it cannot substantiate with “historic proof.” What, I ask, is wrong with saying this? Is this my attacker’s definition of opinion, “something that can be proven?” I can't speak for him, but I can speak for people in general. Let him read Sir David Brewster's "More Worlds than One;"—this principle, which shocks my opponent, is precisely the argument of Sir David's book; he tells us that the plurality of worlds cannot be proven, but will be accepted by religious individuals. He asks, p. 229, "If the stars are not suns, for what conceivable purpose were they created?" and he then states dogmatically, p. 254, "There is no opinion, outside the realm of pure demonstration, more universally held than the idea of the Plurality of worlds." And on his title page, he refers to this “opinion” as "the creed of the philosopher and the hope of the Christian." If Brewster can introduce devotion into astronomy, why can't my friend bring it into history? Especially since he explicitly states that it should be kept quite distinct from history, and does not assume that he is a historian just because he is a hagiographer; whereas, somehow, Sir David seems to me to demonstrate a zeal that exceeds what is appropriate for a savant, and to assume that he is a theologian simply because he is an astronomer. This writer owes Sir David—and me—an apology. Blot twenty.
He ought to wish his original charge against me in the magazine dead and buried; but he has the good sense and good taste to revive it again and again. This is one of the places which he has chosen for it. Let him then, just for a change, substitute Sir David Brewster for me in his sentence; Sir David has quite as much right to the compliment as I have, as far as this Life of St. Augustine is concerned. Then he will be saying, that, because Sir David teaches that the belief in more worlds than one is a pious opinion, and not a demonstrated fact, he "does not care for truth for its own sake, or teach men to regard it as a virtue," p. 21. Blot twenty-one.
He should wish his original accusation against me in the magazine forgotten; instead, he has the sense and taste to bring it up again and again. This is one of the times he has chosen to do so. So, how about he replace me with Sir David Brewster in his argument? Sir David deserves the compliment just as much as I do when it comes to this Life of St. Augustine. Then he would be claiming that because Sir David teaches that believing in more than one world is just an opinion and not a proven fact, he "does not care for truth for its own sake, or teach people to see it as a virtue," p. 21. Blot twenty-one.
However, he goes on to give in this same page one other evidence of my disregard of truth. The author of St. Augustine's Life also asks the following question: "On what evidence do we put faith in the existence of St. George, the patron of England? Upon such, assuredly, as an acute critic or skillful pleader might easily scatter to the winds; the belief of prejudiced or credulous witnesses, the unwritten record of empty pageants and bauble decorations. On the side of scepticism might be exhibited a powerful array of suspicious legends and exploded acts. Yet, after all, what Catholic is there but would count it a profaneness to question the existence of St. George?" On which my assailant observes, "When I found Dr. Newman allowing his disciples ... in page after page, in Life after Life, to talk nonsense of this kind which is not only sheer Popery, but saps the very foundation of historic truth, was it so wonderful that I conceived him to have taught and thought like them?" p. 22, that is, to have taught lying.
However, he goes on to provide another example on this same page of my disregard for the truth. The author of St. Augustine's Life also poses the following question: "On what evidence do we place our faith in the existence of St. George, the patron saint of England? Surely, on evidence that an insightful critic or skilled lawyer could easily tear apart; the beliefs of biased or gullible witnesses, the unrecorded history of empty spectacles and flashy decorations. On the side of skepticism, there could be a strong collection of dubious legends and debunked actions. Yet, after all, what Catholic would not find it disrespectful to question the existence of St. George?" To which my critic responds, "When I saw Dr. Newman permitting his followers ... page after page, in Life after Life, to talk nonsense of this sort which is not only pure Popery, but undermines the very foundation of historical truth, was it really surprising that I assumed he had taught and thought like them?" p. 22, that is, to have taught dishonesty.
Well and good; here again take a parallel; not St. George, but Lycurgus.
Well and good; let’s consider a parallel here; not St. George, but Lycurgus.
Mr. Grote says: "Plutarch begins his biography of Lycurgus with the following ominous words: 'Concerning the lawgiver Lycurgus, we can assert absolutely nothing, which is not controverted. There are different stories in respect to his birth, his travels, his death, and also his mode of proceeding, political as well as legislative: least of all is the time in which he lived agreed on.' And this exordium is but too well borne out by the unsatisfactory nature of the accounts which we read, not only in Plutarch himself, but in those other authors, out of whom we are obliged to make up our idea of the memorable Lycurgian system."—Greece, vol. ii. p 455. But Bishop Thirlwall says, "Experience proves that scarcely any amount of variation, as to the time or circumstances of a fact, in the authors who record it, can be a sufficient ground for doubting its reality."—Greece, vol. i. p. 332.
Mr. Grote says: "Plutarch starts his biography of Lycurgus with these troubling words: 'About the lawgiver Lycurgus, we can assert absolutely nothing, that isn’t disputed. There are various stories about his birth, his travels, his death, and his political as well as legislative methods: the time period in which he lived is the least agreed upon.' And this introduction is all too well supported by the unsatisfactory nature of the accounts we read, not only in Plutarch himself but in other authors, from whom we have to piece together our understanding of the remarkable Lycurgian system."—Greece, vol. ii. p 455. But Bishop Thirlwall states, "Experience shows that barely any level of variation regarding the time or circumstances of a fact, among the authors who record it, can be a valid reason for questioning its existence."—Greece, vol. i. p. 332.
Accordingly, my assailant is virtually saying of the latter of these two historians, "When I found the Bishop of St. David's talking nonsense of this kind, which saps the very foundation of historic truth," was it "hasty or far-fetched" to conclude "that he did not care for truth for its own sake, or teach his disciples to regard it as a virtue?" p. 21. Nay, further, the Author of St. Augustine is no more a disciple of mine, than the Bishop of St. David's is of my assailant's, and therefore the parallel will be more exact if I accuse this professor of history of teaching Dr. Thirlwall not to care for truth, as a virtue, for its own sake. Blot twenty-two.
Accordingly, my attacker is basically saying about the latter of these two historians, "When I found the Bishop of St. David's spouting nonsense like this, which undermines the very basis of historical truth," was it "premature or unreasonable" to conclude "that he didn't value truth for its own sake, or teach his students to see it as a virtue?" p. 21. Moreover, the Author of St. Augustine is no more a disciple of mine than the Bishop of St. David's is of my attacker, so it would be more accurate if I accused this history professor of teaching Dr. Thirlwall not to value truth as a virtue for its own sake. Blot twenty-two.
It is hard on me to have this dull, profitless work. But I have pledged myself;—so now for St. Walburga.
It’s tough for me to deal with this boring, unfulfilling work. But I’ve committed to this;—so now, off to St. Walburga.
Now will it be believed that this writer suppresses the fact that the miracles of St. Walburga are treated by the author of her Life as mythical? yet that is the tone of the whole composition. This writer can notice it in the Life of St. Neot, the first of the three Lives which he criticises; these are his words: "Some of them, the writers, for instance, of Volume 4, which contains, among others, a charming life of St. Neot, treat the stories openly as legends and myths, and tell them as they stand, without asking the reader, or themselves, to believe them altogether. The method is harmless enough, if the legends had stood alone; but dangerous enough, when they stand side by side with stories told in earnest, like that of St. Walburga."—p. 22.
Now, is it really believable that this writer ignores the fact that the miracles of St. Walburga are regarded by the author of her Life as mythical? Yet that's the overall tone of the entire piece. This writer points it out in the Life of St. Neot, the first of the three Lives he critiques; here are his words: "Some of the authors, for instance, those of Volume 4, which includes, among others, a delightful life of St. Neot, openly treat the stories as legends and myths, presenting them as they are without asking the reader, or themselves, to fully believe in them. This approach is harmless enough if the legends stand alone; but it becomes quite risky when they are placed alongside stories told earnestly, like that of St. Walburga."—p. 22.
Now, first, that the miraculous stories are treated, in the Life of St. Walburga, as legends and myths. Throughout, the miracles and extraordinary occurrences are spoken of as "said" or "reported;" and the suggestion is made that, even though they occurred, they might have been after all natural. Thus, in one of the very passages which my assailant quotes, the author says, "Illuminated men feel the privileges of Christianity, and to them the evil influence of Satanic power is horribly discernible, like the Egyptian darkness which could be felt; and the only way to express their keen perception of it is to say, that they see upon the countenances of the slaves of sin, the marks, and lineaments, and stamp of the evil one; and [that] they smell with their nostrils the horrible fumes that arise from their vices and uncleansed heart," etc. p.78. This introduces St. Sturme and the gambolling Germans; what does it mean but that "the intolerable scent" was nothing physical, or strictly miraculous, but the horror, parallel to physical distress, with which the saint was affected, from his knowledge of the state of their souls? My assailant is a lucky man, if mental pain has never come upon him with a substance and a volume, as forcible as if it were bodily.
Now, first, the miraculous stories in the Life of St. Walburga are presented as legends and myths. Throughout, the miracles and extraordinary events are referred to as "said" or "reported;" and there's a suggestion that, even if they happened, they might have been natural after all. For example, in one of the passages my critic quotes, the author states, "Enlightened people recognize the privileges of Christianity, and to them, the evil influence of Satanic power is painfully noticeable, like the Egyptian darkness that could be felt; and the only way to express their sharp awareness of it is to say that they see upon the faces of the slaves of sin the marks, features, and stamp of the evil one; and that they smell with their noses the terrible fumes that arise from their vices and unclean hearts," etc. p.78. This brings in St. Sturme and the playful Germans; what does it mean other than that "the intolerable scent" was not a physical or strictly miraculous thing, but rather the horror, akin to physical suffering, that the saint experienced due to his understanding of their souls' condition? My critic is fortunate if he has never experienced mental anguish with a substance and intensity as real as physical pain.
And so in like manner, the author of the Life says, as this writer actually has quoted him, "a story was told and believed," p. 94. "One evening, says her history," p. 87. "Another incident is thus related," p. 88. "Immediately, says Wülfhard," p. 91. "A vast number of other cases are recorded," p. 92. And there is a distinct intimation that they may be myths, in a passage which this assailant himself quotes, "All these have the character of a gentle mother correcting the idleness and faults of careless and thoughtless children with tenderness."—p. 95. I think the criticism which he makes upon this Life is one of the most wanton passages in his pamphlet. The Life is beautifully written, full of poetry, and, as I have said, bears on its very surface the profession of a legendary and mythical character. Blot twenty-three.
And so, similarly, the author of the Life states, as this writer has actually quoted him, "a story was told and believed," p. 94. "One evening, her history states," p. 87. "Another incident is reported," p. 88. "Right away, Wülfhard says," p. 91. "A large number of other cases are documented," p. 92. And there is a clear suggestion that they might be myths, in a passage that this critic himself quotes, "All these have the character of a gentle mother correcting the idleness and faults of careless and thoughtless children with tenderness."—p. 95. I believe the criticism he makes about this Life is one of the most outrageous parts of his pamphlet. The Life is beautifully written, full of poetry, and, as I've mentioned, clearly presents itself as having a legendary and mythical character. Blot twenty-three.
In saying all this, I have no intention whatever of implying that miracles did not illustrate the Life of St. Walburga; but neither the author nor I have bound ourselves to the belief of certain instances in particular. My assailant, in the passage which I just now quoted from him, made some distinction, which was apparently intended to save St. Neot, while it condemned St. Walburga. He said that legends are "dangerous enough, when they stand side by side with stories told in earnest like St. Walburga." He will find he has here Dr. Milman against him, as he has already had Sir David Brewster, and the Bishop of St. David's. He accuses me of having "outraged historic truth and the law of evidence," because friends of mine have considered that, though opinions need not be convictions, nevertheless that legends may be connected with history: now, on the contrary, let us hear the Dean of St. Paul's:—
In saying all this, I definitely don't mean to suggest that miracles didn't play a role in the Life of St. Walburga; however, neither the author nor I have committed ourselves to believing in certain specific instances. My critic, in the passage I just quoted, made some distinction that seemed aimed at defending St. Neot while discrediting St. Walburga. He claimed that legends are "dangerous enough when they are placed alongside stories told sincerely like St. Walburga." He'll find that Dr. Milman is against him, just like Sir David Brewster and the Bishop of St. David's have been. He accuses me of having "outraged historic truth and the law of evidence" because some of my friends believe that, while opinions don't have to be convictions, legends can still be linked to history. Now, on the contrary, let's hear from the Dean of St. Paul's:—
"History, to be true, must condescend to speak the language of legend; the belief of the times is part of the record of the times; and, though there may occur what may baffle its more calm and searching philosophy, it must not disdain that which was the primal, almost universal, motive of human life."—Latin. Christ., vol. i. p. 388. Dr. Milman's decision justifies me in putting this down as Blot twenty-four.
"History must, to be true, be willing to use the language of legend; the belief of the times is part of the record of the times; and, although things may happen that challenge its more calm and thorough understanding, it must not dismiss what was the fundamental, almost universal, motivation of human life."—Latin. Christ., vol. i. p. 388. Dr. Milman's decision justifies me in putting this down as Blot twenty-four.
However, there is one miraculous account for which this writer makes me directly answerable, and with reason; and with it I shall conclude my reply to his criticisms on the "Lives of the English Saints." It is the medicinal oil which flows from the relics of St. Walburga.
However, there's one amazing story that I have to answer for directly, and rightfully so; with it, I’ll wrap up my response to his criticisms of the "Lives of the English Saints." It’s the healing oil that comes from the relics of St. Walburga.
Now, as I shall have occasion to remark under my next head, these two questions among others occur, in judging of a miraculous story; viz. whether the matter of it is extravagant, and whether it is a fact. And first, it is plain there is nothing extravagant in this report of the relics having a supernatural virtue; and for this reason, because there are such instances in Scripture, and Scripture cannot be extravagant. For instance, a man was restored to life by touching the relics of the prophet Eliseus. The sacred text runs thus:—"And Elisha died, and they buried him. And the bands of the Moabites invaded the land at the coming in of the year. And it came to pass, as they were burying a man, that, behold, they spied a band of men; and they cast the man into the sepulchre of Elisha. And, when the man was let down, and touched the bones of Elisha, he revived, and stood upon his feet." Again, in the case of an inanimate substance, which had touched a living saint: "And God wrought special miracles by the hands of Paul; so that from his body were brought unto the sick handkerchiefs or aprons, and the diseases departed from them." And again in the case of a pool: "An angel went down at a certain season into the pool, and troubled the water; whosoever then first, after the troubling of the water, stepped in, was made whole of whatsoever disease he had." 2 Kings [4 Kings] xiii. 20, 21. Acts xix. 11, 12. John v. 4. Therefore there is nothing extravagant in the character of the miracle.
Now, as I will mention in my next point, two questions arise when evaluating a miraculous story: whether the content is outrageous and whether it is factual. First, it's clear that there is nothing outrageous in this report about the relics having supernatural powers; this is because there are similar examples in the Scriptures, which cannot be outrageous. For instance, a man was brought back to life by touching the relics of the prophet Elisha. The sacred text states: "And Elisha died, and they buried him. And the bands of the Moabites invaded the land at the beginning of the year. And it happened that as they were burying a man, they saw a band of men; and they threw the man into Elisha's tomb. When the man was lowered and touched the bones of Elisha, he revived and stood on his feet." Again, in the case of an inanimate object that had touched a living saint: "And God performed special miracles through Paul, so that handkerchiefs or aprons were brought from his body to the sick, and the diseases left them." And once more, in the case of a pool: "An angel would come down at a certain time into the pool and stir the water; whoever stepped in first, after the stirring of the water, was healed of whatever disease they had." 2 Kings [4 Kings] xiii. 20, 21. Acts xix. 11, 12. John v. 4. Therefore, there is nothing extravagant in the character of the miracle.
The main question then (I do not say the only remaining question, but the main question) is the matter of fact:—is there an oil flowing from St. Walburga's tomb, which is medicinal? To this question I confined myself in the Preface to the volume. Of the accounts of medieval miracles, I said that there was no extravagance in their general character, but I could not affirm that there was always evidence for them. I could not simply accept them as facts, but I could not reject them in their nature; they might be true, for they were not impossible: but they were not proved to be true, because there was not trustworthy testimony. However, as to St. Walburga, I made one exception, the fact of the medicinal oil, since for that miracle there was distinct and successive testimony. And then I went on to give a chain of witnesses. It was my duty to state what those witnesses said in their very words; and I did so; they were in Latin, and I gave them in Latin. One of them speaks of the "sacrum oleum" flowing "de membris ejus virgineis, maximè tamen pectoralibus;" and I so printed it;—if I had left it out, this sweet-tempered writer would have accused me of an "economy." I gave the testimonies in full, tracing them from the saint's death. I said, "She is one of the principal Saints of her age and country." Then I quoted Basnage, a Protestant, who says, "Six writers are extant, who have employed themselves in relating the deeds or miracles of Walburga." Then I said that her "renown was not the mere natural growth of ages, but begins with the very century of the Saint's death." Then I observed that only two miracles seem to have been "distinctly reported of her as occurring in her lifetime; and they were handed down apparently by tradition." Also, that they are said to have commenced about A.D. 777. Then I spoke of the medicinal oil as having testimony to it in 893, in 1306, after 1450, in 1615, and in 1620. Also, I said that Mabillon seems not to have believed some of her miracles; and that the earliest witness had got into trouble with his bishop. And so I left it, as a question to be decided by evidence, not deciding anything myself.
The main question then (I don’t say it’s the only remaining question, but the key one) is the matter of fact:—is there medicinal oil flowing from St. Walburga's tomb? I focused on this question in the Preface to the volume. Regarding accounts of medieval miracles, I noted that there was no extravagance in their general character, but I couldn't claim that there was always evidence for them. I couldn’t just accept them as facts, but I also couldn’t dismiss them outright; they might be true, as they were not impossible, yet they were not proven true due to a lack of trustworthy testimony. However, when it comes to St. Walburga, I made one exception regarding the medicinal oil, because there was clear and continuous testimony for that miracle. I then went on to present a series of witnesses. It was my duty to state what those witnesses said in their exact words; and I did so; they were in Latin, and I provided them in Latin. One of them refers to the "sacrum oleum" flowing "de membris ejus virgineis, maximè tamen pectoralibus;" and I printed it as is;—if I had left it out, this kind-natured writer would have accused me of being selective. I provided the testimonies in full, tracing them from the saint's death. I stated, "She is one of the principal Saints of her age and country." I then quoted Basnage, a Protestant, who says, "Six writers exist who have related the deeds or miracles of Walburga." I remarked that her "renown was not simply the natural growth of ages, but began with the very century of the Saint's death." I also noted that only two miracles seem to have been "distinctly reported of her as occurring in her lifetime; and these were apparently passed down by tradition." Additionally, these are said to have started around A.D. 777. I mentioned the medicinal oil having testimony recorded in 893, in 1306, after 1450, in 1615, and in 1620. I also observed that Mabillon apparently didn’t believe some of her miracles; and that the earliest witness had encountered issues with his bishop. And so I left it, as a question to be determined by evidence, without making any conclusions myself.
What was the harm of all this? but my critic has muddled it together in a most extraordinary manner, and I am far from sure that he knows himself the definite categorical charge which he intends it to convey against me. One of his remarks is, "What has become of the holy oil for the last 240 years, Dr. Newman does not say," p. 25. Of course I did not, because I did not know; I gave the evidence as I found it; he assumes that I had a point to prove, and then asks why I did not make the evidence larger than it was. I put this down as Blot twenty-five.
What’s the harm in all this? My critic has mixed it up in a really strange way, and I’m not even sure he knows the specific accusation he’s trying to make against me. One of his comments is, “What happened to the holy oil for the last 240 years, Dr. Newman does not say,” p. 25. Of course I didn’t, because I didn’t know; I shared the evidence as I found it. He assumes I had a point to prove and then questions why I didn’t elaborate on the evidence. I’ll note this as Blot twenty-five.
I can tell him more about it now; the oil still flows; I have had some of it in my possession; it is medicinal; some think it is so by a natural quality, others by a divine gift. Perhaps it is on the confines of both.
I can share more about it now; the oil still flows; I've had some of it on hand; it's medicinal; some believe this is due to its natural properties, while others think it's a divine blessing. Maybe it falls somewhere in between both.
5. Ecclesiastical Miracles
What is the use of going on with this writer's criticisms upon me, when I am confined to the dull monotony of exposing and oversetting him again and again, with a persistence, which many will think merciless, and few will have the interest to read? Yet I am obliged to do so, lest I should seem to be evading difficulties.
What’s the point of continuing with this writer’s criticisms of me, when I’m stuck in the boring routine of pointing out and countering him over and over, with a persistence that many might see as relentless, and few will care to read? Still, I have to do it, or else I’ll look like I’m avoiding the challenges.
Now as to Miracles. Catholics believe that they happen in any age of the Church, though not for the same purposes, in the same number, or with the same evidence, as in apostolic times. The apostles wrought them in evidence of their divine mission; and with this object they have been sometimes wrought by evangelists of countries since, as even Protestants allow. Hence we hear of them in the history of St. Gregory in Pontus, and St. Martin in Gaul; and in their case, as in that of the apostles, they were both numerous and clear. As they are granted to evangelists, so are they granted, though in less measure and evidence, to other holy men; and as holy men are not found equally at all times and in all places, therefore miracles are in some places and times more than in others. And since, generally, they are granted to faith and prayer, therefore in a country in which faith and prayer abound, they will be more likely to occur, than where and when faith and prayer are not; so that their occurrence is irregular. And further, as faith and prayer obtain miracles, so still more commonly do they gain from above the ordinary interventions of Providence; and, as it is often very difficult to distinguish between a providence and a miracle, and there will be more providences than miracles, hence it will happen that many occurrences will be called miraculous, which, strictly speaking, are not such, and not more than providential mercies, or what are sometimes called "graces" or "favours."
Now about miracles. Catholics believe they happen in every age of the Church, though not for the same reasons, in the same quantity, or with the same proof as in the time of the apostles. The apostles performed miracles to show their divine mission, and evangelists in other countries have sometimes done the same, as even Protestants acknowledge. That's how we hear about them in the stories of St. Gregory in Pontus and St. Martin in Gaul; in their cases, just like with the apostles, the miracles were numerous and clear. Just as they are given to evangelists, they are also granted, though less frequently and with less evidence, to other holy people. Since holy people aren't found equally at all times and in all places, miracles occur more in some places and times than in others. Miracles are generally linked to faith and prayer, so in a place where faith and prayer are strong, they are more likely to happen than where they aren't; therefore, their occurrence is irregular. Moreover, just as faith and prayer can lead to miracles, they often bring about the usual acts of Providence even more commonly. Since it can be quite tough to tell the difference between an act of Providence and a miracle, and since there will be more acts of Providence than miracles, many events may be called miraculous that, strictly speaking, are not, but are rather instances of providential mercy, or what are sometimes referred to as "graces" or "favors."
Persons who believe all this, in accordance with Catholic teaching, as I did and do, they, on the report of a miracle, will of necessity, the necessity of good logic, be led to say, first, "It may be," and secondly, "But I must have good evidence in order to believe it." It may be, because miracles take place in all ages; it must be clearly proved, because perhaps after all it may be only a providential mercy, or an exaggeration, or a mistake, or an imposture. Well, this is precisely what I have said, which this writer considers so irrational. I have said, as he quotes me, p. 24, "In this day, and under our present circumstances, we can only reply, that there is no reason why they should not be." Surely this is good logic, provided that miracles do occur in all ages; and so again is it logical to say, "There is nothing, primâ facie, in the miraculous accounts in question, to repel a properly taught or religiously disposed mind." What is the matter with this statement? My assailant does not pretend to say what the matter is, and he cannot; but he expresses a rude, unmeaning astonishment. Next, I stated what evidence there is for the miracles of which I was speaking; what is the harm of that? He observes, "What evidence Dr. Newman requires, he makes evident at once. He at least will fear for himself, and swallow the whole as it comes."—p. 24. What random abuse is this, or, to use his own words of me just before, what "stuff and nonsense!" What is it I am "swallowing"? "the whole" what? the evidence? or the miracles? I have swallowed neither, nor implied any such thing. Blot twenty-six.
People who believe all this, according to Catholic teaching, as I did and still do, will necessarily, following good logic, first say, "It may be," and then, "But I need good evidence to believe it." It may be because miracles happen in all ages; it must be clearly proved because it might just be a providential mercy, or an exaggeration, or a mistake, or a hoax. Well, this is precisely what I said, which this writer finds so irrational. I said, as he quotes me on p. 24, "In this day, and under our present circumstances, we can only reply, that there is no reason why they shouldn't be." Surely this is good logic, provided that miracles do occur in all ages; and it is also logical to say, "There is nothing, primâ facie, in the miraculous accounts in question that should deter a properly taught or religiously inclined mind." What's wrong with this statement? My critic doesn’t even try to explain what the problem is, and he can't; instead, he just shows a rude, meaningless astonishment. Next, I pointed out what evidence there is for the miracles I was discussing; what's wrong with that? He notes, "What evidence Dr. Newman requires, he makes clear right away. He at least will worry for himself and take it all in as it comes."—p. 24. What random insult is this, or to use his own words about me just before, what "stuff and nonsense!" What is it that I am "taking in"? "The whole" what? The evidence? Or the miracles? I have accepted neither, nor suggested any such thing. Blot twenty-six.
But to return: I have just said that a Catholic's state of mind, of logical necessity, will be, "It may be a miracle, but it has to be proved." What has to be proved? 1. That the event occurred as stated, and is not a false report or an exaggeration. 2. That it is clearly miraculous, and not a mere providence or answer to prayer within the order of nature. What is the fault of saying this? The inquiry is parallel to that which is made about some extraordinary fact in secular history. Supposing I hear that King Charles II. died a Catholic, I should say, 1. It may be. 2. What is your proof? Accordingly, in the passage which this writer quotes, I observe, "Miracles are the kind of facts proper to ecclesiastical history, just as instances of sagacity or daring, personal prowess, or crime, are the facts proper to secular history." What is the harm of this? But this writer says, "Verily his [Dr. Newman's] idea of secular history is almost as degraded as his idea of ecclesiastical," p. 24, and he ends with this muddle of an Ipse dixit! Blot twenty-seven.
But to get back to the point: I just mentioned that a Catholic's mindset will logically be, "It might be a miracle, but it needs to be proven." What needs to be proven? 1. That the event actually happened as described, and is not a false report or an exaggeration. 2. That it is clearly miraculous, and not just a coincidence or a response to prayer within the natural order. What’s wrong with saying this? The investigation is similar to what we do when examining some extraordinary fact in secular history. If I hear that King Charles II died a Catholic, I would respond, 1. It might be. 2. What’s your proof? So, in the passage this writer quotes, I note, "Miracles are the kinds of facts appropriate to ecclesiastical history, just as examples of wisdom or bravery, personal achievements, or crimes are the facts appropriate to secular history." What’s the problem with this? Yet this writer claims, "Truly, his [Dr. Newman's] view of secular history is nearly as degraded as his view of ecclesiastical," p. 24, and he concludes with this confused Ipse dixit! Blot twenty-seven.
In like manner, about the Holy Coat at Trèves, he says of me, "Dr. Newman ... seems hardly sure of the authenticity of the Holy Coat." Why need I be, more than I am sure that Richard III. murdered the little princes? If I have not means of making up my mind one way or the other, surely my most logical course is "not to be sure." He continues, "Dr. Newman 'does not see why it may not have been what it professes to be.'" Well, is not that just what this writer would say of a great number of the facts recorded in secular history? is it not what he would be obliged to say of much that is told us about the armour and other antiquities in the Tower of London? To this I alluded in the passage from which he quotes; but he has garbled that passage, and I must show it. He quotes me to this effect: "Is the Tower of London shut against sight-seers because the coats of mail or pikes there may have half-legendary tales connected with them? why then may not the country people come up in joyous companies, singing and piping, to see the holy coat at Treves?" On this he remarks, "To see, forsooth! to worship, Dr. Newman would have said, had he known (as I take for granted he does not) the facts of that imposture." Here, if I understand him, he implies that the people came up, not only to see, but to worship, and that I have slurred over the fact that their coming was an act of religious homage, that is, what he would call "worship." Now, will it be believed that, so far from concealing this, I had carefully stated it in the sentence immediately preceding, and he suppresses it? I say, "The world pays civil honour to it [a jewel said to be Alfred's] on the probability; we pay religious honour to relics, if so be, on the probability. Is the Tower of London," I proceed, "shut," etc. Blot twenty-eight.
In the same way, regarding the Holy Coat at Trèves, he mentions me, "Dr. Newman ... seems hardly sure of the authenticity of the Holy Coat." Why should I be, more than I am sure that Richard III. murdered the little princes? If I don’t have clear evidence to come to a conclusion one way or the other, surely my most logical approach is "not to be sure." He goes on to say, "Dr. Newman 'does not see why it may not have been what it claims to be.'" Well, isn’t that exactly what this writer would say about a lot of the facts recorded in secular history? Isn’t that what he would have to say about much of what we’re told regarding the armor and other relics in the Tower of London? I mentioned this in the passage from which he quotes; but he has misquoted that passage, and I need to clarify it. He quotes me saying: "Is the Tower of London shut to sightseers because the coats of mail or pikes there may have half-legendary stories attached to them? Why then may not the locals come up in cheerful groups, singing and playing, to see the holy coat at Treves?" He remarks, "To see, really! To worship, Dr. Newman would have said, had he known (as I assume he doesn’t) the facts of that deception." Here, if I understand him correctly, he implies that the people came not just to see, but to worship, and that I have overlooked the fact that their visit was an act of religious respect, which is what he would term "worship." Now, can it be believed that, far from hiding this, I had actually stated it clearly in the sentence right before, and he ignores it? I say, "The world pays civil honor to it [a jewel said to be Alfred's] on the basis of probability; we pay religious honor to relics, if so be, on the basis of probability. Is the Tower of London," I continue, "shut," etc. Blot twenty-eight.
These words of mine, however, are but one sentence in a long argument, conveying the Catholic view on the subject of ecclesiastical miracles; and, as it is carefully worked out, and very much to the present point, and will save me doing over again what I could not do better or more fully now, if I set about it, I shall make a very long extract from the Lecture in which it occurs, and so bring this Head to an end.
These words of mine, though, are just one part of a lengthy argument, expressing the Catholic perspective on ecclesiastical miracles. Since it’s well-developed, very relevant, and will save me from repeating something I couldn’t cover better or more thoroughly now if I tried, I will include a lengthy excerpt from the lecture where it appears, bringing this section to a close.
The argument, I should first observe, which is worked out, is this, that Catholics set out with a definite religious tenet as a first principle, and Protestants with a contrary one, and that on this account it comes to pass that miracles are credible to Catholics and incredible to Protestants.
The argument I want to point out is this: Catholics start with a specific religious belief as their foundation, while Protestants begin with the opposite belief. For this reason, miracles are believable to Catholics and unbelievable to Protestants.
"We affirm that the Supreme Being has wrought miracles on earth ever since the time of the Apostles; Protestants deny it. Why do we affirm, why do they deny? We affirm it on a first principle, they deny it on a first principle; and on either side the first principle is made to be decisive of the question ... Both they and we start with the miracles of the Apostles; and then their first principle or presumption against our miracles is this, 'What God did once, He is not likely to do again;' while our first principle or presumption for our miracles is this; 'What God did once, He is likely to do again.' They say, It cannot be supposed He will work many miracles; we, It cannot be supposed He will work few.
"We assert that the Supreme Being has performed miracles on earth since the time of the Apostles; Protestants disagree. Why do we assert it, and why do they deny it? We affirm it based on a fundamental principle, while they deny it based on their own fundamental principle; and on both sides, that principle is seen as decisive. Both they and we begin with the miracles of the Apostles. Their foundational belief against our miracles is this: 'What God did once, He is not likely to do again;' while our foundational belief supporting our miracles is: 'What God did once, He is likely to do again.' They argue that it's unlikely He would perform many miracles; we argue that it's unlikely He would perform few."
"The Protestant, I say, laughs at the very idea of miracles or supernatural powers as occurring at this day; his first principle is rooted in him; he repels from him the idea of miracles; he laughs at the notion of evidence; one is just as likely as another; they are all false. Why? because of his first principle, There are no miracles since the Apostles. Here, indeed, is a short and easy way of getting rid of the whole subject, not by reason, but by a first principle which he calls reason. Yes, it is reason, granting his first principle is true; it is not reason, supposing his first principle is false.
"The Protestant laughs at the idea of miracles or supernatural powers happening today; his core belief is ingrained in him; he pushes away the idea of miracles; he mocks the concept of evidence; one claim is just as valid as another; they are all untrue. Why? Because of his core belief: There have been no miracles since the Apostles. This is indeed a quick and easy way to dismiss the entire topic, not through reasoning, but by a fundamental belief he calls reason. Yes, it is reason, assuming his core belief is true; it is not reason, if his core belief is false."
"There is in the Church a vast tradition and testimony about miracles; how is it to be accounted for? If miracles can take place, then the fact of the miracle will be a natural explanation of the report, just as the fact of a man dying accounts satisfactorily for the news that he is dead; but the Protestant cannot so explain it, because he thinks miracles cannot take place; so he is necessarily driven, by way of accounting for the report of them, to impute that report to fraud. He cannot help himself. I repeat it; the whole mass of accusations which Protestants bring against us under this head, Catholic credulity, imposture, pious frauds, hypocrisy, priestcraft, this vast and varied superstructure of imputation, you see, all rests on an assumption, on an opinion of theirs, for which they offer no kind of proof. What then, in fact, do they say more than this, If Protestantism be true, you Catholics are a most awful set of knaves? Here, at least, is a most sensible and undeniable position.
There is a huge tradition and testimony about miracles in the Church; how do we explain it? If miracles can happen, then the fact of the miracle becomes a natural explanation for the report, similar to how the fact that a man has died satisfactorily explains the news of his death; but the Protestant cannot explain it this way, because they believe miracles cannot happen. So, they are forced to attribute the report of them to fraud. They have no other option. I repeat, all the accusations that Protestants make against us—Catholic gullibility, deception, pious frauds, hypocrisy, priestly manipulation—this entire complex of accusations, see, all rests on an assumption, on their opinion, for which they provide no proof. So, in essence, what do they really say? If Protestantism is true, then you Catholics are a truly terrible bunch of swindlers. At least that is a clear and undeniable statement.
"Now, on the other hand, let me take our own side of the question, and consider how we ourselves stand relatively to the charge made against us. Catholics, then, hold the mystery of the Incarnation; and the Incarnation is the most stupendous event which ever can take place on earth; and after it and henceforth, I do not see how we can scruple at any miracle on the mere ground of its being unlikely to happen.... When we start with assuming that miracles are not unlikely, we are putting forth a position which lies embedded, as it were, and involved in the great revealed fact of the Incarnation. So much is plain on starting; but more is plain too. Miracles are not only not unlikely, but they are positively likely; and for this simple reason, because for the most part, when God begins, He goes on. We conceive, that when He first did a miracle, He began a series; what He commenced, He continued: what has been, will be. Surely this is good and clear reasoning. To my own mind, certainly, it is incomparably more difficult to believe that the Divine Being should do one miracle and no more, than that He should do a thousand; that He should do one great miracle only, than that He should do a multitude of lesser besides.... If the Divine Being does a thing once, He is, judging by human reason, likely to do it again. This surely is common sense. If a beggar gets food at a gentleman's house once, does he not send others thither after him? If you are attacked by thieves once, do you forthwith leave your windows open at night? ... Nay, suppose you yourselves were once to see a miracle, would you not feel the occurrence to be like passing a line? would you, in consequence of it, declare, 'I never will believe another if I hear of one?' would it not, on the contrary, predispose you to listen to a new report? ...
"Now, let me take our side of the argument and think about how we relate to the accusation against us. Catholics believe in the mystery of the Incarnation, which is the most incredible event that can happen on earth. After that, I don't see how we can doubt any miracle simply because it seems unlikely to happen. When we assume that miracles are not unlikely, we are embracing a belief that is deeply connected to the significant fact of the Incarnation. This is clear from the start, but there’s even more clarity. Miracles are not just unlikely; they are actually likely. The reason is simple: when God takes action, He tends to keep going. We believe that when He performed a miracle once, He started a series; what He began, He continues: what has happened will happen again. This is good reasoning. To me, it seems far more difficult to believe that the Divine Being would perform one miracle and stop than to think He would perform many. If the Divine Being does something once, it makes sense to think He is likely to do it again. This is just common sense. If a beggar gets food at a gent's house once, doesn't he then send others there? If you get robbed once, do you really leave your windows open at night? If you witnessed a miracle, wouldn't it feel like crossing a boundary? Would you say, ‘I'll never believe in another one’? Wouldn't it actually make you more open to hearing about another miracle?"
"When I hear the report of a miracle, my first feeling would be of the same kind as if it were a report of any natural exploit or event. Supposing, for instance, I heard a report of the death of some public man; it would not startle me, even if I did not at once credit it, for all men must die. Did I read of any great feat of valour, I should believe it, if imputed to Alexander or Cœur de Lion. Did I hear of any act of baseness, I should disbelieve it, if imputed to a friend whom I knew and loved. And so in like manner were a miracle reported to me as wrought by a Member of Parliament, or a Bishop of the Establishment, or a Wesleyan preacher, I should repudiate the notion: were it referred to a saint, or the relic of a saint, or the intercession of a saint, I should not be startled at it, though I might not at once believe it. And I certainly should be right in this conduct, supposing my First Principle be true. Miracles to the Catholic are historical facts, and nothing short of this; and they are to be regarded and dealt with as other facts; and as natural facts, under circumstances, do not startle Protestants, so supernatural, under circumstances, do not startle the Catholic. They may or may not have taken place in particular cases; he may be unable to determine which, he may have no distinct evidence; he may suspend his judgment, but he will say 'It is very possible;' he never will say 'I cannot believe it.'
"When I hear about a miracle, my first reaction is similar to how I'd feel if I heard about any natural event or achievement. For example, if I heard about the death of a public figure, it wouldn’t surprise me, even if I didn’t immediately believe it, because everyone has to die. If I read about a great act of bravery, I would believe it if it was attributed to Alexander or Richard the Lionheart. If I heard about something shameful done by a friend I knew and cared about, I would doubt it. Similarly, if a miracle was reported as being performed by a Member of Parliament, a bishop, or a Wesleyan preacher, I would reject the idea. However, if it was attributed to a saint, or the relic of a saint, or the intercession of a saint, I wouldn't be shocked, although I might not believe it right away. And I would be justified in this stance, assuming my First Principle is correct. For Catholics, miracles are seen as historical facts and nothing less; they should be treated and considered like other facts. Just as natural events, under certain circumstances, don’t shock Protestants, supernatural occurrences, under certain circumstances, don't unsettle Catholics. They may or may not have happened in specific instances; a Catholic might not be able to tell which, may lack clear evidence, and may withhold judgment, but they will say, 'It’s very possible;' they would never say, 'I cannot believe it.'"
"Take the history of Alfred; you know his wise, mild, beneficent, yet daring character, and his romantic vicissitudes of fortune. This great king has a number of stories, or, as you may call them, legends told of him. Do you believe them all? no. Do you, on the other hand, think them incredible? no. Do you call a man a dupe or a block-head for believing them? no. Do you call an author a knave or a cheat who records them? no. You go into neither extreme, whether of implicit faith or of violent reprobation. You are not so extravagant; you see that they suit his character, they may have happened: yet this is so romantic, that has so little evidence, a third is so confused in dates or in geography, that you are in matter of fact indisposed towards them. Others are probably true, others certainly. Nor do you force every one to take your view of particular stories; you and your neighbour think differently about this or that in detail, and agree to differ. There is in the museum at Oxford, a jewel or trinket said to be Alfred's; it is shown to all comers; I never heard the keeper of the museum accused of hypocrisy or fraud for showing, with Alfred's name appended, what he might or might not himself believe to have belonged to that great king; nor did I ever see any party of strangers who were looking at it with awe, regarded by any self-complacent bystander with scornful compassion. Yet the curiosity is not to a certainty Alfred's. The world pays civil honour to it on the probability; we pay religious honour to relics, if so be, on the probability. Is the Tower of London shut against sight-seers, because the coats of mail and pikes there may have half-legendary tales connected with them? why then may not the country people come up in joyous companies, singing and piping, to see the Holy Coat at Trèves? There is our Queen again, who is so truly and justly popular; she roves about in the midst of tradition and romance; she scatters myths and legends from her as she goes along; she is a being of poetry, and you might fairly be sceptical whether she had any personal existence. She is always at some beautiful, noble, bounteous work or other, if you trust the papers. She is doing alms-deeds in the Highlands; she meets beggars in her rides at Windsor; she writes verses in albums, or draws sketches, or is mistaken for the house-keeper by some blind old woman, or she runs up a hill as if she were a child. Who finds fault with these things? he would be a cynic, he would be white-livered, and would have gall for blood, who was not struck with this graceful, touching evidence of the love her subjects bear her. Who could have the head, even if he had the heart, who could be so cross and peevish, who could be so solemn and perverse, as to say that some of these stories may be simple lies, and all of them might have stronger evidence than they carry with them? Do you think she is displeased at them? Why then should He, the Great Father, who once walked the earth, look sternly on the unavoidable mistakes of His own subjects and children in their devotion to Him and His? Even granting they mistake some cases in particular, from the infirmity of human nature and the contingencies of evidence, and fancy there is or has been a miracle here and there when there is not, though a tradition, attached to a picture, or to a shrine, or a well, be very doubtful, though one relic be sometimes mistaken for another, and St. Theodore stands for St. Eugenius or St. Agathocles, still, once take into account our First Principle, that He is likely to continue miracles among us, which is as good as the Protestant's, and I do not see why He should feel much displeasure with us on account of this, or should cease to work wonders in our behalf. In the Protestant's view, indeed, who assumes that miracles never are, our thaumatology is one great falsehood; but that is his First Principle, as I have said so often, which he does not prove but assume. If he, indeed, upheld our system, or we held his principle, in either case he or we should be impostors; but though we should be partners to a fraud if we thought like Protestants, we surely are not if we think like Catholics.
"Take the story of Alfred; you know he was wise, kind, generous, yet bold, and had a life full of ups and downs. This great king has a bunch of tales, or as you might call them, legends told about him. Do you believe all of them? No. Do you think they're unbelievable? No. Would you call someone a fool for believing them? No. Would you call an author dishonest for recording them? No. You don’t go to either extreme of blind belief or harsh criticism. You’re not that extreme; you see that they align with his character and could have happened. Yet some are so fantastical, others have little evidence, while others are muddled in dates or geography, which makes you skeptical about them. Some are probably true, while others definitely are. Nor do you force everyone to share your opinion on specific stories; you and your neighbor may think differently about this or that detail and agree to disagree. There’s a jewel or trinket in the museum at Oxford claimed to be Alfred's; it’s displayed for everyone to see. I’ve never heard anyone accuse the museum keeper of deception or fraud for showing, with Alfred's name added, something they may or may not believe belonged to that great king. I've also never seen a group of visitors looking at it in awe be scornfully judged by any self-satisfied bystander. Yet there’s no certainty that the curiosity truly belonged to Alfred. The world shows it respect based on its likelihood; we honor relics religiously based on their probability. Is the Tower of London closed to visitors because the armor and weapons there might have legendary tales linked to them? So why shouldn’t people come in joyful groups, singing and playing, to see the Holy Coat at Trèves? And then there’s our Queen, who is genuinely and rightly popular; she walks among tradition and romance, spreading myths and legends as she moves. She’s a figure of poetry, and it might even be reasonable to question whether she truly exists. According to the papers, she’s always engaged in some beautiful, noble, generous deed, whether it’s helping people in the Highlands, meeting beggars on her rides at Windsor, writing poetry in albums, doing sketches, being mistaken for the housekeeper by some blind old woman, or running up a hill like a child. Who criticizes these actions? Only a cynic, someone timid and bitter who can't appreciate the lovely, moving evidence of her subjects’ affection for her. Who could be so negative, even if they had a heart, to claim these stories might just be simple lies, and that all of them could have stronger evidence than they show? Do you think she is upset by them? Why should the Great Father, who once walked the earth, look upon the inevitable misunderstandings of His own subjects and children in their devotion to Him? Even if they confuse some details due to human frailty and the variability of evidence, and think there’s or has been a miracle here and there when there isn’t, despite the doubts surrounding a tradition linked to a picture, shrine, or well, or if one relic is occasionally mistaken for another, and St. Theodore is confused for St. Eugenius or St. Agathocles, still, if we consider our First Principle, that He is likely to continue miracles among us, just as good as the Protestant's view, I don’t see why He should be very displeased with us because of this, or why He should stop performing wonders for us. In the Protestant's perspective, indeed, who assumes miracles never happen, our thaumatology is seen as one big lie; but that's his First Principle, as I’ve mentioned before, which he doesn’t prove but simply assumes. If he were to support our system, or if we were to endorse his principle, in either case he or we would be fakes; but while we might be complicit in a deception if we thought like Protestants, we surely aren’t if we think like Catholics."
"Such then is the answer I make to those who would urge against us the multitude of miracles recorded in our Saints' Lives and devotional works, for many of which there is little evidence, and for some next to none. We think them true in the same sense in which Protestants think the history of England true. When they say that, they do not mean to say that there are no mistakes, but no mistakes of consequence, none which alter the general course of history. Nor do they mean they are equally sure of every part; for evidence is fuller and better for some things than for others. They do not stake their credit on the truth of Froissart or Sully, they do not pledge themselves for the accuracy of Doddington or Walpole, they do not embrace as an Evangelist Hume, Sharon Turner, or Macaulay. And yet they do not think it necessary, on the other hand, to commence a religious war against all our historical catechisms, and abstracts, and dictionaries, and tales, and biographies, through the country; they have no call on them to amend and expurgate books of archæology, antiquities, heraldry, architecture, geography, and statistics, to re-write our inscriptions, and to establish a censorship on all new publications for the time to come. And so as regards the miracles of the Catholic Church; if, indeed, miracles never can occur, then, indeed, impute the narratives to fraud; but till you prove they are not likely, we shall consider the histories which have come down to us true on the whole, though in particular cases they may be exaggerated or unfounded. Where, indeed, they can certainly be proved to be false, there we shall be bound to do our best to get rid of them; but till that is clear, we shall be liberal enough to allow others to use their private judgment in their favour, as we use ours in their disparagement. For myself, lest I appear in any way to be shrinking from a determinate judgment on the claims of some of those miracles and relics, which Protestants are so startled at, and to be hiding particular questions in what is vague and general, I will avow distinctly, that, putting out of the question the hypothesis of unknown laws of nature (which is an evasion from the force of any proof), I think it impossible to withstand the evidence which is brought for the liquefaction of the blood of St. Januarius at Naples, and for the motion of the eyes of the pictures of the Madonna in the Roman States. I see no reason to doubt the material of the Lombard crown at Monza; and I do not see why the Holy Coat at Trèves may not have been what it professes to be. I firmly believe that portions of the True Cross are at Rome and elsewhere, that the Crib of Bethlehem is at Rome, and the bodies of St. Peter and St. Paul also.... Many men when they hear an educated man so speak, will at once impute the avowal to insanity, or to an idiosyncrasy, or to imbecility of mind, or to decrepitude of powers, or to fanaticism, or to hypocrisy. They have a right to say so, if they will; and we have a right to ask them why they do not say it of those who bow down before the Mystery of mysteries, the Divine Incarnation?"
Here is the updated text: "That's my response to those who challenge us with the many miracles reported in the lives of our saints and devotional writings, many of which have little evidence, and some hardly any at all. We believe them to be true in the same way that Protestants view the history of England as true. When they say that, they don't mean to imply there are no errors, but rather no significant errors that change the general course of history. Nor do they claim to be equally certain about every detail; the evidence is stronger and better for some things than for others. They don’t base their credibility on the truth of Froissart or Sully, don’t guarantee the accuracy of Doddington or Walpole, and don’t regard Hume, Sharon Turner, or Macaulay as gospel. Yet they don’t feel the need to start a religious war against all our historical teachings, summaries, dictionaries, stories, and biographies throughout the country; they have no reason to amend or censor books on archaeology, antiquities, heraldry, architecture, geography, and statistics, to rewrite our inscriptions, or to impose censorship on all future publications. Similarly, regarding the miracles of the Catholic Church; if miracles truly cannot happen, then yes, attribute the stories to deceit; but until you prove they’re unlikely, we will consider the histories we’ve inherited generally true, even if some specific cases may be exaggerated or unfounded. Where they can definitely be proven false, we should do our best to eliminate them; but until that's clear, we’re broad-minded enough to let others use their judgment in favor of them, just as we do in their criticism. Personally, so that I don't come across as avoiding a firm judgment on the claims of some miracles and relics that Protestants find shocking, and to avoid obscuring specific questions with vague generalizations, I will openly state that, excluding the hypothesis of unknown natural laws (which sidesteps the force of any evidence), I think it’s impossible to ignore the evidence for the liquefaction of the blood of St. Januarius in Naples, and for the movement of the eyes in the pictures of the Madonna in the Roman States. I see no reason to doubt the material of the Lombard crown in Monza; and I don’t see why the Holy Coat in Trèves can't be what it claims to be. I firmly believe that parts of the True Cross are in Rome and elsewhere, that the Crib of Bethlehem is in Rome, and that the bodies of St. Peter and St. Paul are there too.... Many people, when they hear a well-educated person say this, will quickly attribute the statement to insanity, eccentricity, mental weakness, declining abilities, fanaticism, or hypocrisy. They have the right to say that if they want; and we have the right to ask them why they don't say the same about those who bow down before the Mystery of mysteries, the Divine Incarnation?"
In my Essay on Miracles of the year 1826, I proposed three questions about a professed miraculous occurrence, 1. is it antecedently probable? 2. is it in its nature certainly miraculous? 3. has it sufficient evidence? These are the three heads under which I still wish to conduct the inquiry into the miracles of ecclesiastical history.
In my Essay on Miracles from 1826, I raised three questions about a claimed miraculous event: 1. Is it probably true? 2. Is it definitely miraculous in nature? 3. Does it have enough evidence? These are the three areas I still want to explore regarding the miracles in church history.
6. Popular Religion
This writer uses much rhetoric against a lecture of mine, in which I bring out, as honestly as I can, the state of countries which have long received the Catholic Faith, and hold it by the force of tradition, universal custom, and legal establishment; a lecture in which I give pictures, drawn principally from the middle ages, of what, considering the corruption of the human race generally, that state is sure to be—pictures of its special sins and offences, sui generis, which are the result of that faith when it is separated from love or charity, or of what Scripture calls a "dead faith," of the light shining in darkness, and the truth held in unrighteousness. The nearest approach which this writer is able to make towards stating what I have said in this lecture, is to state the very reverse. Observe: we have already had some instances of the haziness of his ideas concerning the "Notes of the Church." These notes are, as any one knows who has looked into the subject, certain great and simple characteristics, which He who founded the Church has stamped upon her in order to draw both the reason and the imagination of men to her, as being really a divine work, and a religion distinct from all other religious communities; the principal of these notes being that she is Holy, One, Catholic, and Apostolic, as the Creed says. Now, to use his own word, he has the incredible "audacity" to say, that I have declared, not the divine characteristics of the Church, but the sins and scandals in her, to be her Notes—as if I made God the author of evil. He says distinctly, "Dr. Newman, with a kind of desperate audacity, will dig forth such scandals as Notes of the Catholic Church." This is what I get at his hands for my honesty. Blot twenty-nine.
This writer uses a lot of rhetoric against my lecture, where I honestly describe the state of countries that have long embraced the Catholic Faith, preserving it through tradition, common practice, and legal support. In this lecture, I share examples mainly from the Middle Ages of what, considering humanity's general corruption, that state is likely to be—examples of specific sins and offenses, sui generis, that result from this faith when it is disconnected from love or charity, or what Scripture refers to as a "dead faith," the light shining in the darkness, and the truth held in unrighteousness. The closest this writer can get to summarizing my lecture is to state the exact opposite. Note: we have already seen some examples of his unclear ideas about the "Notes of the Church." These notes are, as anyone who has studied the topic knows, significant and straightforward characteristics that the founder of the Church has inscribed upon her to attract both the reasoning and imagination of people, proving that she is truly a divine institution and a religion different from all others; the main notes being that she is Holy, One, Catholic, and Apostolic, as stated in the Creed. Now, using his own term, he has the unbelievable "audacity" to claim that I have pointed out the Church's sins and scandals as her Notes—as if I were blaming God for evil. He explicitly states, "Dr. Newman, with a kind of desperate audacity, will dig forth such scandals as Notes of the Catholic Church." This is the result of my honesty with him. Blot twenty-nine.
Again, he says, "[Dr. Newman uses] the blasphemy and profanity which he confesses to be so common in Catholic countries, as an argument for, and not against the 'Catholic Faith.'"—p. 34. That is, because I admit that profaneness exists in the Church, therefore I consider it a token of the Church. Yes, certainly, just as our national form of cursing is an evidence of the being of a God, and as a gallows is the glorious sign of a civilised country,—but in no other way. Blot thirty.
Again, he says, "[Dr. Newman uses] the blasphemy and profanity which he admits are so common in Catholic countries, as an argument for, and not against the 'Catholic Faith.'"—p. 34. That is, because I acknowledge that profaneness exists in the Church, I view it as a sign of the Church. Yes, of course, just like our national cursing is proof of the existence of a God, and like a gallows is a proud symbol of a civilized country—but in no other way. Blot thirty.
What is it that I really say? I say as follows: Protestants object that the communion of Rome does not fulfil satisfactorily the expectation which we may justly form concerning the true Church, as it is delineated in the four notes, enumerated in the Creed; and among others, e.g. in the note of sanctity; and they point, in proof of what they assert, to the state of Catholic countries. Now, in answer to this objection, it is plain what I might have done, if I had not had a conscience. I might have denied the fact. I might have said, for instance, that the middle ages were as virtuous, as they were believing. I might have denied that there was any violence, any superstition, any immorality, any blasphemy during them. And so as to the state of countries which have long had the light of Catholic truth, and have degenerated. I might have admitted nothing against them, and explained away everything which plausibly told to their disadvantage. I did nothing of the kind; and what effect has this had upon this estimable critic? "Dr. Newman takes a seeming pleasure," he says, "in detailing instances of dishonesty on the part of Catholics."—p. 34. Blot thirty-one. Any one who knows me well, would testify that my "seeming pleasure," as he calls it, at such things, is just the impatient sensitiveness, which relieves itself by means of a definite delineation of what is so hateful to it.
What do I really say? I say the following: Protestants argue that the communion of Rome does not meet the expectations we can justifiably have about the true Church, as described by the four characteristics mentioned in the Creed; specifically, for example, in the aspect of holiness. They point to the condition of Catholic countries as evidence for their claims. Now, in response to this objection, it’s obvious what I could have done if I weren’t guided by my conscience. I could have denied the facts. I could have claimed, for example, that the Middle Ages were as virtuous as they were faithful. I could have insisted that there was no violence, superstition, immorality, or blasphemy during that time. And regarding the countries that have long embraced Catholic truth and have since declined, I could have dismissed any criticisms against them and explained away everything that seemed to reflect poorly on them. I did nothing of the sort; and what impact has this had on this esteemed critic? "Dr. Newman appears to take pleasure," he states, "in detailing instances of dishonesty on the part of Catholics."—p. 34. Blot thirty-one. Anyone who knows me well would confirm that my so-called "pleasure," as he puts it, in such matters is actually just an impatient sensitivity that expresses itself through a clear depiction of what I find so objectionable.
However, to pass on. All the miserable scandals of Catholic countries, taken at the worst, are, as I view the matter, no argument against the Church itself; and the reason which I give in the lecture is, that, according to the proverb, Corruptio optimi est pessima. The Jews could sin in a way no other contemporary race could sin, for theirs was a sin against light; and Catholics can sin with a depth and intensity with which Protestants cannot sin. There will be more blasphemy, more hatred of God, more of diabolical rebellion, more of awful sacrilege, more of vile hypocrisy in a Catholic country than anywhere else, because there is in it more of sin against light. Surely, this is just what Scripture says, "Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto thee, Bethsaida!" And, again, surely what is told us by religious men, say by Father Bresciani, about the present unbelieving party in Italy, fully bears out the divine text: "If, after they have escaped the pollutions of the world ... they are again entangled therein and overcome, the latter end is worse with them than the beginning. For it had been better for them not to have known the way of righteousness, than, after they have known it, to turn from the holy commandments delivered unto them."
However, to move on. All the terrible scandals of Catholic countries, taken at their worst, are, in my view, not an argument against the Church itself; and the reason I give in the lecture is that, as the saying goes, Corruptio optimi est pessima. The Jews could sin in a way that no other contemporary race could, because theirs was a sin against knowledge; and Catholics can sin with a depth and intensity that Protestants cannot reach. There will be more blasphemy, more hatred of God, more devilish rebellion, more terrible sacrilege, and more wretched hypocrisy in a Catholic country than anywhere else, because there is more sin against knowledge. Surely, this is exactly what Scripture says, "Woe unto thee, Chorazin! woe unto thee, Bethsaida!" And, again, what religious figures, like Father Bresciani, say about the current unbelieving party in Italy supports the divine text: "If, after they have escaped the corruptions of the world ... they become entangled in them again and overcome, the end for them is worse than the beginning. For it would have been better for them not to have known the way of righteousness than to know it and then turn away from the holy commandments delivered to them."
And what is true of those who thus openly oppose themselves to the truth, as it was true of the Evil One in the beginning, will in an analogous way be true in the case of all sin, be it of a heavier or lighter character, which is found in a Catholic country:—sin will be strangely tinged or dyed by religious associations or beliefs, and will exhibit the tragical inconsistencies of the excess of knowledge over love, or of much faith with little obedience. The mysterious battle between good and evil will assume in a Catholic country its most frightful shape, when it is not the collision of two distinct and far-separated hosts, but when it is carried on in hearts and souls, taken one by one, and when the eternal foes are so intermingled and interfused that to human eyes they seem to coalesce into a multitude of individualities. This is in course of years, the real, the hidden condition of a nation, which has been bathed in Christian ideas, whether it be a young vigorous race, or an old and degenerate; and it will manifest itself socially and historically in those characteristics, sometimes grotesque, sometimes hideous, sometimes despicable, of which we have so many instances, medieval and modern, both in this hemisphere and in the western. It is, I say, the necessary result of the intercommunion of divine faith and human corruption.
And what holds true for those who openly oppose the truth, just as it was true for the Evil One at the beginning, will similarly apply to all sin, whether serious or minor, found in a Catholic country: sin will be strangely colored or influenced by religious beliefs and will show the tragic inconsistencies of having too much knowledge over love, or a lot of faith with little obedience. The mysterious struggle between good and evil will take on its most terrifying form in a Catholic country, not as the clash of two distinct and far-separated armies, but as a battle fought within individual hearts and souls, one by one, with the eternal enemies so intertwined and mixed that to human eyes they appear to merge into many different identities. Over the years, this will become the real, hidden condition of a nation steeped in Christian ideas, whether it is a young, vigorous society or an old, declining one; it will show itself socially and historically in those traits, sometimes absurd, sometimes grotesque, sometimes contemptible, of which we have numerous examples, both medieval and modern, across this hemisphere and the West. I maintain that this is the inevitable outcome of the mix of divine faith and human corruption.
But it has a light side as well as a dark. First, much which seems profane, is not in itself profane, but in the subjective view of the Protestant beholder. Scenic representations of our Lord's Passion are not profane to a Catholic population; in like manner, there are usages, customs, institutions, actions, often of an indifferent nature, which will be necessarily mixed up with religion in a Catholic country, because all things whatever are so mixed up. Protestants have been sometimes shocked, most absurdly as a Catholic rightly decides, at hearing that Mass is sometimes said for a good haul of fish. There is no sin here, but only a difference from Protestant customs. Other phenomena of a Catholic nation are at most mere extravagances. And then as to what is really sinful, if there be in it fearful instances of blasphemy or superstition, there are also special and singular fruits and exhibitions of sanctity; and, if the many do not seem to lead better lives for all their religious knowledge, at least they learn, as they can learn nowhere else, how to repent thoroughly and to die well.
But it has both a light side and a dark side. First, much that seems disrespectful is not inherently so; it’s just how a Protestant viewer perceives it. Depictions of our Lord's Passion aren’t seen as disrespectful by a Catholic audience; similarly, there are practices, customs, institutions, and actions—often neutral in nature—that will inevitably be intertwined with religion in a Catholic country, because everything tends to be mixed together. Protestants have sometimes been shocked—quite absurdly, as a Catholic would rightly argue—upon hearing that Mass is sometimes said for a good catch of fish. There’s no sin in that; it’s merely a difference from Protestant traditions. Other aspects of a Catholic nation may be seen as merely extravagant. And as for what is genuinely sinful, while there might be serious instances of blasphemy or superstition, there are also unique and remarkable demonstrations of holiness. Even if many don’t seem to lead better lives despite their religious knowledge, at least they learn, in a way they can’t learn anywhere else, how to truly repent and die well.
The visible state of a country, which professes Catholicism, need not be the measure of the spiritual result of that Catholicism, at the eternal judgment seat; but no one could say that that visible state was a note that Catholicism was divine.
The observable condition of a country that claims to be Catholic doesn't necessarily reflect the spiritual outcome of that Catholicism at the final judgment; however, no one could argue that this visible condition indicates that Catholicism is divine.
All this I attempted to bring out in the lecture of which I am speaking; and that I had some success, I am glad to infer from the message of congratulation upon it, which I received at the time, from a foreign Catholic layman, of high English reputation, with whom I had not the honour of a personal acquaintance. And having given the key to the lecture, which the writer so wonderfully misrepresents, I pass on to another head.
All of this is what I tried to explain in the lecture I’m talking about. I’m pleased to see that I had some success, as shown by the congratulatory message I received at the time from a well-known foreign Catholic layman, whom I had not had the pleasure of meeting in person. After providing the key points of the lecture, which the writer misrepresents so greatly, I’ll move on to another topic.
7. The Economy
For the subject of the Economy, I shall refer to my discussion upon it in my History of the Arians, after one word about this writer. He puts into his title-page these words from a sermon of mine: "It is not more than an hyperbole to say, that, in certain cases, a lie is the nearest approach to truth." This sermon he attacks; but I do not think it necessary to defend it here, because any one who reads it, will see that he is simply incapable of forming a notion of what it is about. It treats of subjects which are entirely out of his depth; and, as I have already shown in other instances, and observed in the beginning of this volume, he illustrates in his own person the very thing that shocks him, viz. that the nearest approach to truth, in given cases, is a lie. He does his best to make something of it, I believe; but he gets simply perplexed. He finds that it annihilates space, robs him of locomotion, almost scoffs at the existence of the earth, and he is simply frightened and cowed. He can but say "the man who wrote that sermon was already past the possibility of conscious dishonesty," p. 41. Perhaps it is hardly fair, after such a confession on his part of being fairly beat, to mark down a blot; however, let it be Blot thirty-two.
For the topic of the Economy, I’ll refer to my discussion of it in my History of the Arians, but first, I want to say something about this writer. He quotes a line from one of my sermons on his title page: "It’s not an exaggeration to say that, in some cases, a lie is the closest thing to the truth." He criticizes this sermon, but I don’t think it’s necessary to defend it here, because anyone who reads it will see that he simply doesn’t understand what it’s about. It deals with topics that are completely beyond his grasp; and, as I’ve already pointed out in other cases and mentioned at the start of this volume, he exemplifies the very thing that disturbs him, namely that the closest thing to the truth, in certain situations, is a lie. He tries his best to make sense of it, I believe, but he just gets confused. He finds that it eliminates space, takes away his ability to move, nearly mocks the existence of the earth, and he is just scared and overwhelmed. All he can say is, "the man who wrote that sermon was already beyond the possibility of conscious dishonesty," p. 41. Maybe it isn’t fair, after such a confession of being thoroughly beaten, to point out a flaw; however, let’s label it Blot thirty-two.
Then again, he quotes from me thus: "Many a theory or view of things, on which an institution is founded, or a party held together, is of the same kind (economical). Many an argument, used by zealous and earnest men, has this economical character, being not the very ground on which they act (for they continue in the same course, though it be refuted), yet in a certain sense, a representation of it, a proximate description of their feelings, in the shape of argument, on which they can rest, to which they can recur when perplexed, and appeal when they are questioned." He calls these "startling words," p. 39. Yet here again he illustrates their truth; for in his own case, he has acted on them in this very controversy with the most happy exactness. Surely he referred to my sermon on Wisdom and Innocence, when called on to prove me a liar, as "a proximate description of his feelings about me, in the shape of argument," and he has "continued in the same course though it has been refuted." Blot thirty-three.
Then again, he quotes me saying: "Many theories or views of the world, on which an institution is built or a group stays united, are of a similar nature (economical). Many arguments, used by passionate and dedicated people, have this economical quality, not being the actual basis of their actions (since they keep going in the same direction even when proven wrong), but in a certain way, serve as a representation of it, a close description of their feelings, in the form of an argument, on which they can rely, to which they can turn when confused, and appeal when challenged." He calls these "startling words," p. 39. Yet again, he shows their truth; for in his own actions during this very debate, he has followed them with remarkable accuracy. Surely he referred to my sermon on Wisdom and Innocence when asked to prove I’m a liar, as "a close description of his feelings about me, in the form of an argument," and he has "continued in the same direction even when it has been refuted." Blot thirty-three.
Then, as to "a party being held together by a mythical representation," or economy. Surely "Church and King," "Reform," "Non-intervention," are such symbols; or let this writer answer Mr. Kinglake's question in his "Crimean War," "Is it true that ... great armies were gathering, and that for the sake of the Key and the Star the peace of the nations was brought into danger?" Blot thirty-four.
Then, regarding "a party being held together by a mythical representation," or economy. Clearly, "Church and King," "Reform," "Non-intervention," are symbols like these; or let this writer respond to Mr. Kinglake's question in his "Crimean War," "Is it true that ... great armies were assembling, and that for the sake of the Key and the Star the peace of the nations was put at risk?" Blot thirty-four.
In the beginning of this work, pp. 17-23, I refuted his gratuitous accusation against me at p. 42, founded on my calling one of my Anglican sermons a Protestant one: so I have nothing to do but to register it here as Blot thirty-five.
In the beginning of this work, pp. 17-23, I disproved his baseless accusation against me on p. 42, which was based on my referring to one of my Anglican sermons as a Protestant one: so I just need to note it here as Blot thirty-five.
Then he says that I committed an economy in placing in my original title-page, that the question between him and me, was whether "Dr. Newman teaches that Truth is no virtue." It was a "wisdom of the serpentine type," since I did not add, "for its own sake." Now observe: First, as to the matter of fact, in the course of my Letters, which bore that title-page, I printed the words "for its own sake," five times over. Next, pray, what kind of a virtue is that, which is not done for its own sake? So this, after all, is this writer's idea of virtue! a something that is done for the sake of something else; a sort of expedience! He is honest, it seems, simply because honesty is "the best policy," and on that score it is that he thinks himself virtuous. Why, "for its own sake" enters into the very idea or definition of a virtue. Defend me from such virtuous men, as this writer would inflict upon us! Blot thirty-six.
Then he claims that I made a mistake in my original title page by stating that the issue between him and me was whether "Dr. Newman teaches that Truth is no virtue." He calls it a "wisdom of the serpentine type" because I didn’t include "for its own sake." Now, let’s point out a couple of things: First, regarding the facts, in my Letters that had that title page, I used the phrase "for its own sake" five times. Secondly, what kind of virtue is it that isn’t done for its own sake? So, this is what this writer thinks virtue is! Something done for the sake of something else; a sort of practicality! It seems he is honest simply because honesty is "the best policy," and that’s how he views himself as virtuous. The concept of "for its own sake" is fundamental to the very definition of a virtue. Protect me from such virtuous men as this writer would impose on us! Blot thirty-six.
These blots are enough just now; so I proceed to a brief sketch of what I held in 1833 upon the Economy, as a rule of practice. I wrote this two months ago; perhaps the composition is not quite in keeping with the run of this Appendix; and it is short; but I think it will be sufficient for my purpose:—
These notes are enough for now; so I’ll move on to a quick overview of what I thought in 1833 about the Economy, as a guideline for practice. I wrote this two months ago; it may not fully match the flow of this Appendix, and it’s brief, but I believe it will be adequate for my needs:—
The doctrine of the Economia, had, as I have shown, pp. 49-51, a large signification when applied to the divine ordinances; it also had a definite application to the duties of Christians, whether clergy or laity, in preaching, in instructing or catechizing, or in ordinary intercourse with the world around them.
The concept of the Economia, as I've demonstrated on pages 49-51, carried significant meaning when related to divine laws; it also had a clear impact on the responsibilities of Christians, both clergy and laity, in preaching, teaching or catechizing, and in everyday interactions with those around them.
As Almighty God did not all at once introduce the Gospel to the world, and thereby gradually prepared men for its profitable reception, so, according to the doctrine of the early Church, it was a duty, for the sake of the heathen among whom they lived, to observe a great reserve and caution in communicating to them the knowledge of "the whole counsel of God." This cautious dispensation of the truth, after the manner of a discreet and vigilant steward, is denoted by the word "economy." It is a mode of acting which comes under the head of prudence, one of the four cardinal virtues.
As Almighty God didn’t suddenly reveal the Gospel to the world but instead gradually prepared people for its beneficial acceptance, the early Church believed it was important to exercise great care and restraint when sharing the knowledge of "the whole counsel of God" with the pagans around them. This careful handling of the truth, like a wise and watchful steward, is referred to as "economy." It is a way of acting that falls under prudence, one of the four cardinal virtues.
The principle of the economy is this; that out of various courses, in religious conduct or statement, all and each allowable antecedently and in themselves, that ought to be taken which is most expedient and most suitable at the time for the object in hand.
The principle of the economy is this: that among various choices in religious actions or expressions, all of which are allowable beforehand and in themselves, one should choose what is most effective and appropriate for the situation at hand.
Instances of its application and exercise in Scripture are such as the following:—1. Divine Providence did but gradually impart to the world in general, and to the Jews in particular, the knowledge of His will:—He is said to have "winked at the times of ignorance among the heathen;" and He suffered in the Jews divorce "because of the hardness of their hearts." 2. He has allowed Himself to be represented as having eyes, ears, and hands, as having wrath, jealousy, grief, and repentance. 3. In like manner, our Lord spoke harshly to the Syro-Phœnician woman, whose daughter He was about to heal, and made as if He would go further, when the two disciples had come to their journey's end. 4. Thus too Joseph "made himself strange to his brethren," and Elisha kept silence on request of Naaman to bow in the house of Rimmon. 5. Thus St. Paul circumcised Timothy, while he cried out "Circumcision availeth not."
Instances of its application and practice in Scripture include the following:—1. Divine Providence gradually revealed His will to the world, especially to the Jews:—He is said to have "overlooked the times of ignorance among the pagans;" and He allowed divorce among the Jews "because of the hardness of their hearts." 2. He has allowed Himself to be depicted as having eyes, ears, and hands, as well as emotions like wrath, jealousy, grief, and regret. 3. Similarly, our Lord spoke harshly to the Syro-Phoenician woman, whose daughter He was about to heal, and acted as if He would move on when the two disciples reached their destination. 4. Likewise, Joseph "made himself strange to his brothers," and Elisha remained silent at Naaman's request to bow in the house of Rimmon. 5. In the same way, St. Paul circumcised Timothy, while he proclaimed that "Circumcision is of no value."
It may be said that this principle, true in itself, yet is dangerous, because it admits of an easy abuse, and carries men away into what becomes insincerity and cunning. This is undeniable; to do evil that good may come, to consider that the means, whatever they are, justify the end, to sacrifice truth to expedience, unscrupulousness, recklessness, are grave offences. These are abuses of the economy. But to call them economical is to give a fine name to what occurs every day, independent of any knowledge of the doctrine of the Economy. It is the abuse of a rule which nature suggests to every one. Every one looks out for the "mollia tempora fandi," and "mollia verba" too.
This principle, while true in itself, can be dangerous because it can easily be misused, leading people to insincerity and deceit. This is undeniable; doing wrong so that good can come from it, believing that any means justify the end, sacrificing truth for convenience, and acting without scruples or caution are serious offenses. These are misuses of economics. However, calling them economical just gives a nice label to what happens every day, regardless of anyone's understanding of the doctrine of Economics. It's the misuse of a rule that nature suggests to everyone. Everyone looks for the "mollia tempora fandi" and also the "mollia verba."
Having thus explained what is meant by the economy as a rule of social intercourse between men of different religious, or, again, political, or social views, next I go on to state what I said in the Arians.
Having explained what the economy means as a way of social interaction between people with different religious, political, or social beliefs, I will now share what I mentioned in the Arians.
I say in that volume first, that our Lord has given us the principle in His own words—"Cast not your pearls before swine;" and that He exemplified it in His teaching by parables; that St. Paul expressly distinguishes between the milk which is necessary to one set of men, and the strong meat which is allowed to others, and that, in two Epistles. I say, that the apostles in the Acts observe the same rule in their speeches, for it is a fact, that they do not preach the high doctrines of Christianity, but only "Jesus and the resurrection" or "repentance and faith." I also say, that this is the very reason that the Fathers assign for the silence of various writers in the first centuries on the subject of our Lord's divinity. I also speak of the catechetical system practised in the early Church, and the disciplina arcani as regards the doctrine of the Holy Trinity, to which Bingham bears witness; also of the defence of this rule by Basil, Cyril of Jerusalem, Chrysostom, and Theodoret.
I mention in that volume first, that our Lord has given us the principle in His own words—"Don't throw your pearls before pigs;" and that He demonstrated it in His teachings through parables; that St. Paul clearly distinguishes between the milk that's necessary for one group of people and the solid food that's suitable for others, in two different letters. I state that the apostles in the Acts follow the same principle in their speeches, as it's a fact that they don't preach the deeper doctrines of Christianity, but only "Jesus and the resurrection" or "repentance and faith." I also point out that this is the exact reason the Church Fathers cite for the silence of various writers in the first centuries regarding our Lord's divinity. I discuss the catechetical system practiced in the early Church, as well as the disciplina arcani concerning the doctrine of the Holy Trinity, which Bingham supports; I also mention the defense of this principle by Basil, Cyril of Jerusalem, Chrysostom, and Theodoret.
And next the question may be asked, whether I have said anything in my volume to guard the doctrine, thus laid down, from the abuse to which it is obviously exposed: and my answer is easy. Of course, had I had any idea that I should have been exposed to such hostile misrepresentations, as it has been my lot to undergo on the subject, I should have made more direct avowals than I have done of my sense of the gravity and the danger of that abuse. Since I could not foresee when I wrote, that I should have been wantonly slandered, I only wonder that I have anticipated the charge as fully as will be seen in the following extracts.
And next, one might wonder whether I have said anything in my book to protect the doctrine I’ve presented from the obvious misuse it faces. My answer is simple. Had I known I would encounter such hostile misrepresentations regarding this topic, I would have been more explicit about my awareness of the seriousness and dangers of that misuse. Since I couldn’t foresee, when I wrote this, that I would be unjustly slandered, I’m surprised that I managed to address the accusation as thoroughly as you will see in the following excerpts.
For instance, speaking of the Disciplina Arcani, I say:—(1) "The elementary information given to the heathen or catechumen was in no sense undone by the subsequent secret teaching, which was in fact but the filling up of a bare but correct outline," p. 58, and I contrast this with the conduct of the Manichæans "who represented the initiatory discipline as founded on a fiction or hypothesis, which was to be forgotten by the learner as he made progress in the real doctrine of the Gospel." (2) As to allegorising, I say that the Alexandrians erred, whenever and as far as they proceeded "to obscure the primary meaning of Scripture, and to weaken the force of historical facts and express declarations," p. 69. (3) And that they were "more open to censure," when, on being "urged by objections to various passages in the history of the Old Testament, as derogatory to the divine perfections or to the Jewish Saints, they had recourse to an allegorical explanation by way of answer," p. 71. (4) I add, "It is impossible to defend such a procedure, which seems to imply a want of faith in those who had recourse to it;" for "God has given us rules of right and wrong," ibid. (5) Again, I say—"The abuse of the Economy in the hands of unscrupulous reasoners, is obvious. Even the honest controversialist or teacher will find it very difficult to represent, without misrepresenting, what it is yet his duty to present to his hearers with caution or reserve. Here the obvious rule to guide our practice is, to be careful ever to maintain substantial truth in our use of the economical method," pp. 79, 80. (6) And so far from concurring at all hazards with Justin, Gregory, or Athanasius, I say, "It is plain [they] were justified or not in their Economy, according as they did or did not practically mislead their opponents," p. 80. (7) I proceed, "It is so difficult to hit the mark in these perplexing cases, that it is not wonderful, should these or other Fathers have failed at times, and said more or less than was proper," ibid.
For example, when I talk about the Disciplina Arcani, I say:—(1) "The basic information given to non-believers or those learning about faith was in no way undone by the later secret teachings, which were actually just the filling in of a basic but accurate outline," p. 58, and I compare this to the actions of the Manichæans "who portrayed the initiation process as based on a fiction or theory, which the student was supposed to forget as they advanced in the real teachings of the Gospel." (2) Regarding allegorizing, I state that the Alexandrians made a mistake when they "sought to obscure the primary meaning of Scripture, and to weaken the significance of historical facts and clear statements," p. 69. (3) I also noted that they were "more subject to criticism," especially when they were "challenged by objections to various parts of the Old Testament history, which seemed to undermine divine qualities or the Jewish Saints, they turned to an allegorical interpretation as a response," p. 71. (4) I add, "It is impossible to justify such an approach, which seems to indicate a lack of faith in those who resorted to it;" because "God has given us standards of right and wrong,” ibid. (5) Furthermore, I say—"The misuse of the Economy in the hands of unprincipled thinkers is evident. Even the sincere debater or teacher will find it quite challenging to present, without distorting, what he needs to share with his audience cautiously or selectively. The clear guideline for our practice here is to always ensure we maintain substantial truth in our application of the economical method," pp. 79, 80. (6) And far from agreeing at all costs with Justin, Gregory, or Athanasius, I state, "It is clear [they] were justified or not in their Economy, depending on whether they practically misled their opponents," p. 80. (7) I continue, "It is so challenging to get it right in these confusing situations, that it’s not surprising if these or other Fathers sometimes failed and said more or less than was warranted," ibid.
The principle of the economy is familiarly acted on among us every day. When we would persuade others, we do not begin by treading on their toes. Men would be thought rude who introduced their own religious notions into mixed society, and were devotional in a drawing-room. Have we never thought lawyers tiresome who came down for the assizes and talked law all through dinner? Does the same argument tell in the House of Commons, on the hustings, and at Exeter Hall? Is an educated gentleman never worsted at an election by the tone and arguments of some clever fellow, who, whatever his shortcomings in other respects, understands the common people?
The principle of economy is something we all experience every day. When we want to convince others, we don’t start by stepping on their toes. People would consider it rude if someone introduced their own religious beliefs in a mixed gathering and got all spiritual during a social event. Have we never found lawyers annoying when they came in for the court sessions and talked about legal matters throughout dinner? Does the same principle apply in the House of Commons, during political campaigns, and at Exeter Hall? Does an educated gentleman never end up outmatched in an election by some clever person who, despite their shortcomings in other areas, knows how to connect with the common people?
As to the Catholic religion in England at the present day, this only will I observe—that the truest expedience is to answer right out, when you are asked; that the wisest economy is to have no management; that the best prudence is not to be a coward; that the most damaging folly is to be found out shuffling; and that the first of virtues is to "tell truth, and shame the devil."
As for the Catholic religion in England today, I will only say this—that the best approach is to respond honestly when asked; that the smartest strategy is to avoid overthinking; that true wisdom is not to be afraid; that the biggest mistake is being caught being dishonest; and that the greatest virtue is to "speak the truth and shame the devil."
8. Lying and Equivocation
This writer says, "Though [a lie] be a sin, the fact of its being a venial one seems to have gained for it as yet a very slight penance."—p. 46. Yet he says also that Dr. Newman takes "a perverse pleasure in eccentricities," because I say that "it is better for sun and moon to drop from heaven than that one soul should tell one wilful untruth."—p. 30. That is, he first accuses us without foundation of making light of a lie; and, when he finds that we don't, then he calls us inconsistent. I have noticed these words of mine, and two passages besides, which he quotes, above at pp. 222-224. Here I will but observe on the subject of venial sin generally, that he altogether forgets our doctrine of purgatory. This punishment may last till the day of judgment; so much for duration; then as to intensity, let the image of fire, by which we denote it, show what we think of it. Here is the expiation of venial sins. Yet Protestants, after the manner of this writer, are too apt to play fast and loose; to blame us because we hold that sin may be venial, and to blame us again when we tell them what we think will be its punishment. Blot thirty-seven.
This writer says, "Even though [a lie] is a sin, its classification as a venial sin seems to have earned it only a minimal punishment."—p. 46. Yet he also states that Dr. Newman takes "a twisted enjoyment in eccentricities," because I claim that "it’s better for the sun and moon to fall from the sky than for one soul to tell one deliberate lie."—p. 30. In other words, he initially accuses us without any basis of making light of a lie; and when he realizes we don’t, he then labels us as inconsistent. I've noted these comments of mine and two other excerpts he quotes earlier on pp. 222-224. Here, I will just point out regarding venial sin in general, that he completely overlooks our belief in purgatory. This punishment can last until the day of judgment; that addresses its duration; and as for its intensity, let the imagery of fire, which we use to describe it, illustrate our view on it. Here is the atonement for venial sins. However, Protestants, like this writer, often tend to be inconsistent; they criticize us for believing that sin can be venial, and then they criticize us again when we explain what we think its punishment will be. Blot thirty-seven.
At the end of his pamphlet he makes a distinction between the Catholic clergy and gentry in England, which I know the latter consider to be very impertinent; and he makes it apropos of a passage in one of my original letters in January. He quotes me as saying that "Catholics differ from Protestants, as to whether this or that act in particular is conformable to the rule of truth," p. 48; and then he goes on to observe, that I have "calumniated the Catholic gentry," because "there is no difference whatever, of detail or other, between their truthfulness and honour, and the truthfulness and honour of the Protestant gentry among whom they live." But again he has garbled my words; they run thus:
At the end of his pamphlet, he points out the difference between the Catholic clergy and the gentry in England, which I know the latter find quite rude; and he brings it up in relation to a part of one of my original letters from January. He quotes me saying that "Catholics differ from Protestants regarding whether this or that act in particular aligns with the rule of truth," p. 48; and then he claims that I have "smeared the Catholic gentry," because "there is no difference whatsoever, in detail or otherwise, between their honesty and honor, and the honesty and honor of the Protestant gentry around them." But once again, he has misrepresented my words; they actually say:
"Truth is the same in itself and in substance, to Catholic and Protestant; so is purity; both virtues are to be referred to that moral sense which is the natural possession of us all. But, when we come to the question in detail, whether this or that act in particular is conformable to the rule of truth, or again to the rule of purity, then sometimes there is a difference of opinion between individuals, sometimes between schools, and sometimes between religious communions." I knew indeed perfectly well, and I confessed that "Protestants think that the Catholic system, as such, leads to a lax observance of the rule of truth;" but I added, "I am very sorry that they should think so," and I never meant myself to grant that all Protestants were on the strict side, and all Catholics on the lax. Far from it; there is a stricter party as well as a laxer party among Catholics, there is a laxer party as well as a stricter party among Protestants. I have already spoken of Protestant writers who in certain cases allow of lying, I have also spoken of Catholic writers who do not allow of equivocation; when I wrote "a difference of opinion between individuals," and "between schools," I meant between Protestant and Protestant, and particular instances were in my mind. I did not say then, or dream of saying, that Catholics, priests and laity, were lax on the point of lying, and that Protestants were strict, any more than I meant to say that all Catholics were pure, and all Protestants impure; but I meant to say that, whereas the rule of truth is one and the same both to Catholic and Protestant, nevertheless some Catholics were lax, some strict, and again some Protestants were strict, some lax; and I have already had opportunities of recording my own judgment on which side this writer is himself, and therefore he may keep his forward vindication of "honest gentlemen and noble ladies," who, in spite of their priests, are still so truthful, till such time as he can find a worse assailant of them than I am, and they no better champion of them than himself. And as to the Priests of England, those who know them, as he does not, will pronounce them no whit inferior in this great virtue to the gentry, whom he says that he does; and I cannot say more. Blot thirty-eight.
"Truth is consistent in itself and in substance for both Catholics and Protestants; so is purity; both virtues relate to the moral sense that we all naturally possess. However, when we examine specific actions to see if they align with the standards of truth or purity, then sometimes there can be differing opinions between individuals, sometimes between groups, and sometimes between religious traditions." I fully recognized, and I admitted that "Protestants believe that the Catholic system, in general, leads to a relaxed view of the rule of truth;" but I added, "I regret that they believe this," and I never intended to imply that all Protestants are strict and all Catholics are lax. Quite the opposite; there are stricter and more lenient factions among Catholics, and likewise among Protestants. I have already mentioned Protestant writers who sometimes justify lying, and I’ve also talked about Catholic writers who disallow equivocation; when I referred to "a difference of opinion between individuals," and "between groups," I meant among Protestants, with specific examples in mind. I did not claim, nor did I ever intend to suggest, that Catholics, whether clergy or laity, were lax about lying, while Protestants were strict, just as I didn't mean to assert that all Catholics are pure and all Protestants impure. What I meant to convey is that, while the rule of truth is the same for both Catholics and Protestants, some Catholics are lax, some are strict, and likewise, some Protestants are strict, some are lax. I have already stated my own view on which side this writer is himself, and so he can hold onto his bold defense of "honest gentlemen and noble ladies," who, despite their priests, remain so truthful, until he finds someone more critical of them than I am, and a better advocate for them than he is. As for the priests of England, those who actually know them, unlike him not, would say they are just as strong in this important virtue as the gentry, whom he claims to represent does; and I have no more to say. Blot thirty-eight.
Lastly, this writer uses the following words, which I have more than once quoted, and with a reference to them I shall end my remarks upon him. "I am henceforth," he says, "in doubt and fear, as much as an honest man can be, concerning every word Dr. Newman may write. How can I tell that I shall not be the dupe of some cunning equivocation, of one of the three kinds, laid down as permissible by the blessed St. Alfonso da Liguori and his pupils, even when confirmed with an oath...?"
Lastly, this writer uses the following words, which I have quoted more than once, and I will finish my comments about him with this reference. "From now on," he says, "I am in doubt and fear, as much as an honest person can be, regarding every word Dr. Newman may write. How can I be sure that I won’t be the victim of some clever twist of language, one of the three types considered acceptable by the blessed St. Alfonso da Liguori and his followers, even when backed by an oath...?"
I will tell him why he need not fear; because he has left out one very important condition in the statement of St. Alfonso—and very applicable to my own case, even if I followed St. Alfonso's view of the subject. St. Alfonso says "ex justâ causâ;" but our "honest man," as he styles himself, has omitted these words; which are a key to the whole question. Blot thirty-nine. Here endeth our "honest man." Now for the subject of lying.
I will explain to him why he doesn’t need to worry; because he has left out one very important condition in St. Alfonso's statement—and it’s very relevant to my situation, even if I agreed with St. Alfonso's perspective on the matter. St. Alfonso says "ex justâ causâ;" but our so-called "honest man" left out these words; which are essential to the whole issue. Remove thirty-nine. This is the end of our "honest man." Now, let’s talk about lying.
Almost all authors, Catholic and Protestant, admit, that when a just cause is present, there is some kind or other of verbal misleading, which is not sin. Even silence is in certain cases virtually such a misleading, according to the proverb, "Silence gives consent." Again, silence is absolutely forbidden to a Catholic, as a mortal sin, under certain circumstances, e.g. to keep silence, instead of making a profession of faith.
Almost all authors, both Catholic and Protestant, agree that when there is a just cause, some form of verbal deception exists that is not considered sinful. In some cases, even silence can be seen as a form of deception, as the saying goes, "Silence gives consent." Additionally, silence is strictly prohibited for a Catholic and is regarded as a mortal sin in certain situations, e.g. remaining silent instead of professing one's faith.
Another mode of verbal misleading, and the most direct, is actually saying the thing that is not; and it is defended on the principle that such words are not a lie, when there is a "justa causa," as killing is not murder in the case of an executioner.
Another way to mislead with words, and the most straightforward, is to directly say something that isn’t true; and it’s justified by the principle that those words aren’t a lie when there’s a "just cause," just as killing isn’t considered murder in the case of an executioner.
Another ground of certain authors for saying that an untruth is not a lie where there is a just cause, is, that veracity is a kind of justice, and therefore, when we have no duty of justice to tell truth to another, it is no sin not to do so. Hence we may say the thing that is not, to children, to madmen, to men who ask impertinent questions, to those whom we hope to benefit by misleading.
Another reason some writers argue that a falsehood isn't a lie when there's a good reason is that honesty is a form of fairness. So, if we don’t have a duty to be truthful with someone, it's not wrong not to be. Therefore, we can say things that aren’t true to children, to people who are mentally unstable, to those who ask inappropriate questions, or to those we hope to help by misleading them.
Another ground, taken in defending certain untruths, ex justâ causâ, as if not lies, is that veracity is for the sake of society, and, if in no case we might lawfully mislead others, we should actually be doing society great harm.
Another reason given for defending certain lies, ex justâ causâ, as if they weren't lies, is that truthfulness exists for the benefit of society. If we couldn't legally mislead others in any situation, we would actually be causing great harm to society.
Another mode of verbal misleading is equivocation or a play upon words; and it is defended on the view that to lie is to use words in a sense which they will not bear. But an equivocator uses them in a received sense, though there is another received sense, and therefore, according to this definition, he does not lie.
Another way of misleading with words is through equivocation or wordplay; it's defended by the idea that lying means using words in a way they can't legitimately convey. However, someone who equivocates uses words in a commonly accepted way, even though there's another accepted meaning, so according to this definition, they aren't lying.
Others say that all equivocations are, after all, a kind of lying, faint lies or awkward lies, but still lies; and some of these disputants infer, that therefore we must not equivocate, and others that equivocation is but a half measure, and that it is better to say at once that in certain cases untruths are not lies.
Others argue that all forms of equivocation are, ultimately, a type of lying—subtle lies or clumsy lies, but still lies. Some of these debaters conclude that we shouldn't equivocate at all, while others believe that equivocation is just a halfway solution and that it's better to state outright that, in certain situations, untruths are not considered lies.
Others will try to distinguish between evasions and equivocations; but they will be answered, that, though there are evasions which are clearly not equivocations, yet that it is difficult scientifically to draw the line between them.
Others will try to differentiate between evasions and equivocations; but they will be told that, although there are evasions that are clearly not equivocations, it is scientifically challenging to draw a clear line between them.
To these must be added the unscientific way of dealing with lies, viz. that on a great or cruel occasion a man cannot help telling a lie, and he would not be a man, did he not tell it, but still it is wrong and he ought not to do it, and he must trust that the sin will be forgiven him, though he goes about to commit it. It is a frailty, and had better not be anticipated, and not thought of again, after it is once over. This view cannot for a moment be defended, but, I suppose, it is very common.
To this, we should add the unscientific way of handling lies, namely that in a significant or harsh situation, a person can't help but lie, and if they didn't, they wouldn't be human. Still, it's wrong, and they shouldn't do it, and they have to hope that the wrongdoing will be forgiven, even if they plan to commit it. It's a weakness and should be avoided and not thought about again once it's done. This perspective can't be justified at all, but I guess it's pretty common.
And now I think the historical course of thought upon the matter has been this: the Greek Fathers thought that, when there was a justa causa, an untruth need not be a lie. St. Augustine took another view, though with great misgiving; and, whether he is rightly interpreted or not, is the doctor of the great and common view that all untruths are lies, and that there can be no just cause of untruth. In these later times, this doctrine has been found difficult to work, and it has been largely taught that, though all untruths are lies, yet that certain equivocations, when there is a just cause, are not untruths.
And now I believe the historical perspective on this issue has been as follows: the Greek Fathers believed that when there is a justa causa, an untruth doesn’t have to be considered a lie. St. Augustine had a different viewpoint, albeit with significant hesitation; and whether his thoughts are interpreted correctly or not, he represents the widely accepted belief that all untruths are lies, and that there can be no just cause for an untruth. In more recent times, this belief has proven difficult to apply, and it has been largely argued that while all untruths are lies, certain equivocations, when justified by a just cause, are not considered untruths.
Further, there have been and all along through these later ages, other schools, running parallel with the above mentioned, one of which says that equivocations, etc. after all are lies, and another which says that there are untruths which are not lies.
Further, there have been and all along through these later ages, other schools, running parallel with the ones mentioned above, one of which argues that equivocations, etc. after all are lies, and another which claims that there are untruths which are not lies.
And now as to the "just cause," which is the condition, sine quâ non. The Greek Fathers make them such as these, self-defence, charity, zeal for God's honour, and the like.
And now regarding the "just cause," which is the essential condition. The Greek Fathers consider it things like self-defense, charity, a desire to honor God, and similar concepts.
St. Augustine seems to deal with the same "just causes" as the Greek Fathers, even though he does not allow of their availableness as depriving untruths, spoken with such objects, of their sinfulness. He mentions defence of life and of honour, and the safe custody of a secret. Also the Anglican writers, who have followed the Greek Fathers, in defending untruths when there is the "just cause," consider that just cause to be such as the preservation of life and property, defence of law, the good of others. Moreover, their moral rights, e.g. defence against the inquisitive, etc.
St. Augustine seems to address the same "just causes" as the Greek Fathers, even though he doesn't accept that these causes can make lies spoken for those reasons any less sinful. He talks about defending life and honor, as well as protecting a secret. Similarly, the Anglican writers who followed the Greek Fathers, when justifying lies in the presence of a "just cause," consider that cause to include the protection of life and property, upholding the law, and the well-being of others. Additionally, their moral rights, such as defending against prying inquiries, etc.
St. Alfonso, I consider, would take the same view of the "justa causa" as the Anglican divines; he speaks of it as "quicunque finis honestus, ad servanda bona spiritui vel corpori utilia;" which is very much the view which they take of it, judging by the instances which they give.
St. Alfonso, I believe, would have the same perspective on "justa causa" as the Anglican theologians; he describes it as "quicunque finis honestus, ad servanda bona spiritui vel corpori utilia;" which aligns closely with their interpretation, based on the examples they provide.
In all cases, however, and as contemplated by all authors, Clement of Alexandria, or Milton, or St. Alfonso, such a causa is, in fact, extreme, rare, great, or at least special. Thus the writer in the Mélanges Théologiques (Liège, 1852-3, p. 453) quotes Lessius: "Si absque justa causa fiat, est abusio orationis contra virtutem veritatis, et civilem consuetudinem, etsi proprie non sit mendacium." That is, the virtue of truth, and the civil custom, are the measure of the just cause. And so Voit, "If a man has used a reservation (restrictione non purè mentali) without a grave cause, he has sinned gravely." And so the author himself, from whom I quote, and who defends the Patristic and Anglican doctrine that there are untruths which are not lies, says, "Under the name of mental reservation theologians authorise many lies, when there is for them a grave reason and proportionate," i.e. to their character—p. 459. And so St. Alfonso, in another treatise, quotes St. Thomas to the effect, that, if from one cause two immediate effects follow, and, if the good effect of that cause is equal in value to the bad effect (bonus æquivalet malo), then nothing hinders that the good may be intended and the evil permitted. From which it will follow that, since the evil to society from lying is very great, the just cause which is to make it allowable, must be very great also. And so Kenrick: "It is confessed by all Catholics that, in the common intercourse of life, all ambiguity of language is to be avoided; but it is debated whether such ambiguity is ever lawful. Most theologians answer in the affirmative, supposing a grave cause urges, and the [true] mind of the speaker can be collected from the adjuncts, though in fact it be not collected."
In all cases, however, as all authors, including Clement of Alexandria, Milton, and St. Alfonso, have considered, such a reason is, in fact, extreme, rare, significant, or at least special. Thus, the writer in the Mélanges Théologiques (Liège, 1852-3, p. 453) quotes Lessius: "If done without a just cause, it is an abuse of speech against the virtue of truth, and civil custom, even if it is not strictly a lie." In other words, the virtue of truth and civil custom are the measure of a just cause. Voit states, "If a person has used a reservation (restricitione non purè mentali) without a grave cause, he has sinned gravely." The author I’m quoting, who defends the Patristic and Anglican view that some untruths are not lies, says, "Under the term mental reservation, theologians permit many lies, when there is for them a grave reason and proportionate," i.e. to their significance—p. 459. St. Alfonso, in another treatise, quotes St. Thomas to the effect that if one cause leads to two immediate effects, and if the good effect of that cause is equal in value to the bad effect (bonus æquivalet malo), nothing prevents the good from being intended while the evil is permitted. This implies that since the harm to society from lying is significant, the just cause that would make it acceptable must be considerable as well. Kenrick states: "It is acknowledged by all Catholics that, in everyday life, all ambiguity in language should be avoided; however, it is debated whether such ambiguity is ever permissible. Most theologians respond affirmatively, assuming a grave cause justifies it, and the [true] intent of the speaker can be inferred from the context, even if it is not explicitly clear."
However, there are cases, I have already said, of another kind, in which Anglican authors would think a lie allowable; such as when a question is impertinent. Accordingly, I think the best word for embracing all the cases which would come under the "justa causa," is, not "extreme," but "special," and I say the same as regards St. Alfonso; and therefore, above in pp. 242 and 244, whether I speak of St. Alfonso or Paley, I should have used the word "special," or "extraordinary," not "extreme."
However, there are situations, as I've mentioned before, where Anglican authors might consider a lie acceptable, like when a question is irrelevant. Therefore, I believe the best term to cover all the cases that would fall under "justa causa" is not "extreme," but "special." I feel the same applies to St. Alfonso; hence, in the sections above on pp. 242 and 244, whether mentioning St. Alfonso or Paley, I should have used the term "special" or "extraordinary," not "extreme."
What I have been saying shows what different schools of opinion there are in the Church in the treatment of this difficult doctrine; and, by consequence, that a given individual, such as I am, cannot agree with all, and has a full right to follow which he will. The freedom of the schools, indeed, is one of those rights of reason, which the Church is too wise really to interfere with. And this applies not to moral questions only, but to dogmatic also.
What I've been saying highlights the various perspectives within the Church regarding this complex doctrine; therefore, an individual like me, cannot agree with everyone and has every right to choose their own path. The freedom of academic thought is indeed one of those fundamental rights of reason that the Church is wise enough not to interfere with. This applies not only to moral issues but also to dogmatic ones.
It is supposed by Protestants that, because St. Alfonso's writings have had such high commendation bestowed upon them by authority, therefore they have been invested with a quasi-infallibility. This has arisen in good measure from Protestants not knowing the force of theological terms. The words to which they refer are the authoritative decision that "nothing in his works has been found worthy of censure," "censurâ dignum;" but this does not lead to the conclusions which have been drawn from it. Those words occur in a legal document, and cannot be interpreted except in a legal sense. In the first place, the sentence is negative; nothing in St. Alfonso's writings is positively approved; and secondly it is not said that there are no faults in what he has written, but nothing which comes under the ecclesiastical censura, which is something very definite. To take and interpret them, in the way commonly adopted in England, is the same mistake, as if one were to take the word "apologia" in the English sense of apology, or "infant" in law to mean a little child.
Protestants assume that since St. Alfonso's writings have received high praise from authority, they are almost infallible. This misunderstanding largely comes from Protestants not grasping the meaning of theological terms. The phrases they cite include the official statement that “nothing in his works has been found worthy of censure,” or “censurâ dignum;” but this doesn’t support the conclusions that have been drawn. These words are found in a legal document and can only be understood in a legal context. First, the statement is negative; it doesn’t assert that St. Alfonso's writings are positively approved. Secondly, it doesn’t claim there are no errors in his work, but rather that nothing falls under ecclesiastical censura, which has a specific meaning. To interpret them as is commonly done in England makes the same mistake as interpreting the word "apologia" to mean an apology in English, or "infant" in law to refer to a small child.
1. Now first as to the meaning of the form of words viewed as a proposition. When they were brought before the fitting authorities at Rome by the Archbishop of Besançon, the answer returned to him contained the condition that those words were to be interpreted, "with due regard to the mind of the Holy See concerning the approbation of writings of the servants of God, ad effectum Canonisationis." This is intended to prevent any Catholic taking the words about St. Alfonso's works in too large a sense. Before a saint is canonised, his works are examined and a judgment pronounced upon them. Pope Benedict XIV. says, "The end or scope of this judgment is, that it may appear, whether the doctrine of the servant of God, which he has brought out in his writings, is free from any soever theological censure." And he remarks in addition, "It never can be said that the doctrine of a servant of God is approved by the Holy See, but at most it can [only] be said that it is not disapproved (non reprobatam) in case that the revisers had reported that there is nothing found by them in his works, which is adverse to the decrees of Urban VIII., and that the judgment of the Revisers has been approved by the sacred Congregation, and confirmed by the Supreme Pontiff." The Decree of Urban VIII. here referred to is, "Let works be examined, whether they contain errors against faith or good morals (bonos mores), or any new doctrine, or a doctrine foreign and alien to the common sense and custom of the Church." The author from whom I quote this (M. Vandenbroeck, of the diocese of Malines) observes, "It is therefore clear, that the approbation of the works of the Holy Bishop touches not the truth of every proposition, adds nothing to them, nor even gives them by consequence a degree of intrinsic probability." He adds that it gives St. Alfonso's theology an extrinsic probability, from the fact that, in the judgment of the Holy See, no proposition deserves to receive a censure; but that "that probability will cease nevertheless in a particular case, for any one who should be convinced, whether by evident arguments, or by a decree of the Holy See, or otherwise, that the doctrine of the Saint deviates from the truth." He adds, "From the fact that the approbation of the works of St. Alfonso does not decide the truth of each proposition, it follows, as Benedict XIV. has remarked, that we may combat the doctrine which they contain; only, since a canonised saint is in question, who is honoured by a solemn culte in the Church, we ought not to speak except with respect, nor to attack his opinions except with temper and modesty."
1. First, let’s discuss the meaning of the wording as a proposition. When the Archbishop of Besançon brought them to the appropriate authorities in Rome, the response he received stated that these words needed to be interpreted with "due regard to the mind of the Holy See regarding the approval of writings from the servants of God, for the purpose of canonization." This is meant to prevent any Catholic from interpreting the words about St. Alfonso's works too broadly. Before someone is canonized, their works are reviewed, and a judgment is made about them. Pope Benedict XIV. says, "The purpose of this judgment is to determine whether the doctrine of the servant of God, expressed in his writings, is free from any kind of theological censure." He also notes, "It can never be said that the doctrine of a servant of God is approved by the Holy See; rather, it can at most be said that it is not disapproved (non reprobatam) if the reviewers report that nothing in his works contradicts the decrees of Urban VIII. and that their judgment has been approved by the sacred Congregation and confirmed by the Supreme Pontiff." The Decree of Urban VIII. referred to here states, "Let works be examined to see if they contain errors against faith or good morals (bonos mores), any new doctrine, or a doctrine that is foreign and alien to the common sense and customs of the Church." The author I’m quoting (M. Vandenbroeck, from the diocese of Malines) notes, "It is clear that the approval of the works of the Holy Bishop does not validate the truth of every statement, nor does it add anything to them, nor does it even give them a degree of intrinsic likelihood by default." He further points out that it gives St. Alfonso's theology an external probability, based on the fact that, in the view of the Holy See, no proposition deserves to face censure; however, "that probability may cease in a specific case for anyone convinced, whether by clear arguments, a decree from the Holy See, or otherwise, that the doctrine of the Saint differs from the truth." He concludes, "Since the approval of St. Alfonso's works does not determine the truth of each proposition, as Benedict XIV. mentioned, we are free to challenge the doctrine they present; however, since we are speaking of a canonized saint who is honored with solemn worship in the Church, we should express ourselves with respect and critique his opinions with care and modesty."
2. Then, as to the meaning of the word censura: Benedict XIV. enumerates a number of "Notes" which come under that name; he says, "Out of propositions which are to be noted with theological censure, some are heretical, some erroneous, some close upon error, some savouring of heresy," and so on; and each of these terms has its own definite meaning. Thus by "erroneous" is meant, according to Viva, a proposition which is not immediately opposed to a revealed proposition, but only to a theological conclusion drawn from premisses which are de fide; "savouring of heresy," when a proposition is opposed to a theological conclusion not evidently drawn from premisses which are de fide, but most probably and according to the common mode of theologising, and so with the rest. Therefore when it was said by the revisers of St. Alfonso's works that they were not "worthy of censure," it was only meant that they did not fall under these particular Notes.
2. Now, regarding the meaning of the word censura: Benedict XIV lists several "Notes" that fall under this term; he states, "Among the propositions that are to be marked with theological censure, some are heretical, some erroneous, some close to error, some suggestive of heresy," and so on; each of these terms has its own specific meaning. So, when we say "erroneous," according to Viva, it refers to a proposition that is not immediately opposed to a revealed proposition, but only to a theological conclusion drawn from premises that are de fide; "suggestive of heresy" means a proposition that opposes a theological conclusion not clearly derived from premises that are de fide, but is most likely and aligns with the common approach to theology, and so on with the others. Therefore, when the revisers of St. Alfonso's works stated that they were not "worthy of censure," they simply meant that these works did not fall under these specific Notes.
But the answer from Rome to the Archbishop of Besançon went further than this; it actually took pains to declare that any one who pleased might follow other theologians instead of St. Alfonso. After saying that no priest was to be interfered with who followed St. Alfonso in the Confessional, it added, "This is said, however, without on that account judging that they are reprehended who follow opinions handed down by other approved authors."
But the response from Rome to the Archbishop of Besançon went beyond that; it emphasized that anyone could choose to follow other theologians instead of St. Alfonso. After stating that no priest should be interfered with for following St. Alfonso in the Confessional, it added, "This is said, however, without implying that those who follow the opinions of other respected authors are wrong."
And this too, I will observe, that St. Alfonso made many changes of opinion himself in the course of his writings; and it could not for an instant be supposed that we were bound to every one of his opinions, when he did not feel himself bound to them in his own person. And, what is more to the purpose still, there are opinions, or some opinion, of his which actually has been proscribed by the Church since, and cannot now be put forward or used. I do not pretend to be a well-read theologian myself, but I say this on the authority of a theological professor of Breda, quoted in the Mélanges Théol. for 1850-1. He says: "It may happen, that, in the course of time, errors may be found in the works of St. Alfonso and be proscribed by the Church, a thing which in fact has already occurred."
And I also want to point out that St. Alfonso changed his opinions multiple times throughout his writings; it’s impossible to think that we have to agree with every one of his views when he himself didn’t stick to them. Moreover, there are certain opinions of his that have actually been banned by the Church since then and can’t be presented or used now. I don’t claim to be an expert in theology myself, but I say this based on the authority of a theological professor from Breda, who is quoted in the Mélanges Théol. for 1850-1. He states: "It may happen that over time, errors may be found in the works of St. Alfonso and be banned by the Church, which has already happened."
In not ranging myself then with those who consider that it is justifiable to use words in a double sense, that is, to equivocate, I put myself, first, under the protection of Cardinal Gerdil, who, in a work lately published at Rome, has the following passage, which I owe to the kindness of a friend:
In not aligning myself with those who believe it's acceptable to use words in a double meaning, or to be ambiguous, I first take refuge under the protection of Cardinal Gerdil, who, in a recently published work in Rome, includes the following passage, which I owe to the kindness of a friend:
Gerdil
"In an oath one ought to have respect to the intention of the party swearing, and the intention of the party to whom the oath is taken. Whoso swears binds himself in virtue of the words, not according to the sense he retains in his own mind, but in the sense according to which he perceives that they are understood by him to whom the oath is made. When the mind of the one is discordant with the mind of the other, if this happens by deceit or cheat of the party swearing, he is bound to observe the oath according to the right sense (sana mente) of the party receiving it; but, when the discrepancy in the sense comes of misunderstanding, without deceit of the party swearing, in that case he is not bound, except to that to which he had in mind to wish to be bound. It follows hence, that whoso uses mental reservation or equivocation in the oath, in order to deceive the party to whom he offers it, sins most grievously, and is always bound to observe the oath in the sense in which he knew that his words were taken by the other party, according to the decision of St. Augustine, 'They are perjured, who, having kept the words, have deceived the expectations of those to whom the oath was taken.' He who swears externally, without the inward intention of swearing, commits a most grave sin, and remains all the same under the obligation to fulfil it.... In a word, all that is contrary to good faith, is iniquitous, and by introducing the name of God the iniquity is aggravated by the guilt of sacrilege."
"In an oath, one should consider the intentions of both the person swearing and the person to whom the oath is given. Whoever swears binds themselves by their words, not according to the meaning they have in their own mind, but by the meaning they believe the person receiving the oath understands. When one person's understanding conflicts with the other's, if this is due to deceit or trickery by the person swearing, they must uphold the oath according to the true meaning (sana mente) of the person receiving it. However, if the misunderstanding arises without deceit, then the person is not bound except to what they intended to be bound to. Therefore, anyone who uses mental reservation or equivocation in the oath to mislead the other person commits a serious sin and is always obligated to fulfill the oath in the sense that they knew their words would be understood, according to St. Augustine's statement, 'Those are perjured who, having kept the words, have deceived the expectations of those to whom the oath was made.' Anyone who swears outwardly without the true intention of swearing commits a grave sin and is still required to fulfill it.... In short, anything contrary to good faith is wrong, and invoking God's name worsens the wrongdoing with the guilt of sacrilege."
Natalis Alexander
"They certainly lie, who utter the words of an oath, and without the will to swear or bind themselves; or who make use of mental reservations and equivocations in swearing, since they signify by words what they have not in mind, contrary to the end for which language was instituted, viz. as signs of ideas. Or they mean something else than the words signify in themselves, and the common custom of speech, and the circumstances of persons and business-matters; and thus they abuse words which were instituted for the cherishing of society."
"People definitely lie when they say words of an oath without truly intending to commit or bind themselves; or when they use mental reservations and vague language in swearing, because they express through words what they do not actually mean, which goes against the purpose of language, which is to represent ideas. They may convey something different from what the words literally mean, as understood in everyday language, along with the context of people and situations; in doing so, they misuse words that were meant to support society."
Contenson
"Hence is apparent how worthy of condemnation is the temerity of those half-taught men, who give a colour to lies and equivocations by the words and instances of Christ. Than whose doctrine, which is an art of deceiving, nothing can be more pestilent. And that, both because what you do not wish done to yourself, you should not do to another; now the patrons of equivocations and mental reservations would not like to be themselves deceived by others, etc.... and also because St. Augustine, etc.... In truth, as there is no pleasant living with those whose language we do not understand, and, as St. Augustine teaches, a man would more readily live with his dog than with a foreigner, less pleasant certainly is our converse with those who make use of frauds artificially covered, overreach their hearers by deceits, address them insidiously, observe the right moment, and catch at words to their purpose, by which truth is hidden under a covering; and so on the other hand nothing is sweeter than the society of those, who both love and speak the naked truth, ... without their mouth professing one thing and their mind hiding another, or spreading before it the cover of double words. Nor does it matter that they colour their lies with the name of equivocations or mental reservations. For Hilary says, 'The sense, not the speech, makes the crime.'"
It's clear how deserving of criticism are those poorly informed individuals who twist lies and equivocations using the words and examples of Christ. His teachings, which are nothing more than a skill in manipulation, are among the most harmful. This is true because you shouldn't do to others what you wouldn't want done to you; the supporters of equivocations and mental reservations wouldn't want to be deceived themselves, and so on. In fact, just as it’s hard to enjoy being with people whose language we can’t understand, and as St. Augustine points out, one would rather live with a dog than with a foreigner, it is certainly less pleasant to engage with those who use deceitful tactics, deceive their listeners, speak insidiously, time their words just right, and twist language to hide the truth. Conversely, nothing is more enjoyable than the company of those who both cherish and communicate the plain truth, without their words saying one thing while their minds conceal another, or cloaking their intent in double meanings. It doesn’t matter that they disguise their lies as equivocations or mental reservations. As Hilary says, 'The sense, not the speech, makes the crime.'
Concina allows of what I shall presently call evasions, but nothing beyond, if I understand him; but he is most vehement against mental reservation of every kind, so I quote him.
Concina permits what I will now refer to as evasions, but nothing more, if I interpret him correctly; however, he strongly opposes any form of mental reservation, so I’ll quote him.
Concina
"That mode of speech, which some theologians call pure mental reservation, others call reservation not simply mental; that language which to me is lying, to the greater part of recent authors is only amphibological.... I have discovered that nothing is adduced by more recent theologians for the lawful use of amphibologies which has not been made use of already by the ancients, whether philosophers or some Fathers, in defence of lies. Nor does there seem to me other difference when I consider their respective grounds, except that the ancients frankly called those modes of speech lies, and the more recent writers, not a few of them, call them amphibological, equivocal, and material."
"That way of speaking, which some theologians refer to as pure mental reservation, and others as something more than just mental reservation; that language which I see as lying, while many recent authors view it as merely ambiguous... I've found that nothing recent theologians present as a valid use of amphibologies hasn't already been used by the ancients, whether philosophers or some Church Fathers, to defend lies. It doesn't seem to me that there's much difference when I look at their respective reasons, except that the ancients openly labeled those ways of speaking as lies, while many contemporary writers call them amphibological, equivocal, and material."
In another place he quotes Caramuel, so I suppose I may do so too, for the very reason that his theological reputation does not place him on the side of strictness. Concina says, "Caramuel himself, who bore away the palm from all others in relaxing the evangelical and natural law, says:
In another place, he quotes Caramuel, so I guess I can do the same, since his theological reputation doesn't lean towards strictness. Concina says, "Caramuel himself, who excelled above all others in softening the evangelical and natural law, says:
Caramuel
"I have an innate aversion to mental reservations. If they are contained within the bounds of piety and sincerity, then they are not necessary; ... but if [otherwise] they are the destruction of human society and sincerity, and are to be condemned as pestilent. Once admitted, they open the way to all lying, all perjury. And the whole difference in the matter is, that what yesterday was called a lie, changing, not its nature and malice, but its name, is today entitled 'mental reservation;' and this is to sweeten poison with sugar, and to colour guilt with the appearance of virtue."
"I have a natural dislike for mental reservations. If they fall within the limits of genuine faith and honesty, then they're unnecessary; ... but if not, they ruin human society and authenticity and should be seen as harmful. Once they’re allowed in, they lead to all kinds of lying and perjury. The only difference is that what was called a lie yesterday—without changing its nature or harm—now goes by the name 'mental reservation;' and that's just sweetening poison with sugar and disguising guilt as virtue."
St. Thomas
"When the sense of the party swearing, and of the party to whom he swears, is not the same, if this proceeds from the deceit of the former, the oath ought to be kept according to the right sense of the party to whom it is made. But if the party swearing does not make use of deceit, then he is bound according to his own sense."
"When the understanding of the person taking the oath and the understanding of the person who receives it are not the same, if this difference comes from the dishonesty of the former, the oath should be upheld according to the true understanding of the person to whom it is sworn. However, if the person taking the oath is not being dishonest, then they are bound by their own understanding."
St. Isidore
"With whatever artifice of words a man swears, nevertheless God who is the witness of his conscience, so takes the oath as he understands it, to whom it is sworn. And he becomes twice guilty, who both takes the name of God in vain, and deceives his neighbour."
"Regardless of the way someone uses their words to swear, God, who knows their true thoughts, accepts the oath based on how the person understands it and to whom it's sworn. A person is doubly guilty if they misrepresent God's name and also deceive their neighbor."
St. Augustine
"I do not question that this is most justly laid down, that the promise of an oath must be fulfilled, not according to the words of the party taking it, but according to the expectation of the party to whom it is taken, of which he who takes it is aware."
"I completely agree that it's absolutely true that a promise made in an oath must be honored, not based on what the person making the oath says, but according to what the person receiving the oath expects, and the person making the oath should be aware of this."
And now, under the protection of these authorities, I say as follows:—
And now, with the backing of these authorities, I say the following:—
Casuistry is a noble science, but it is one to which I am led, neither by my abilities nor my turn of mind. Independently, then, of the difficulties of the subject, and the necessity, before forming an opinion, of knowing more of the arguments of theologians upon it than I do, I am very unwilling to say a word here on the subject of lying and equivocation. But I consider myself bound to speak; and therefore, in this strait, I can do nothing better, even for my own relief, than submit myself and what I shall say to the judgment of the Church, and to the consent, so far as in this matter there be a consent, of the Schola Theologorum.
Casuistry is a respected field of study, but it’s not something I feel suited for, given my skills or mindset. Apart from the complexities of the topic and the need to understand the arguments from theologians better than I currently do, I'm reluctant to express any opinions on lying and equivocation. However, I feel obligated to address it; therefore, in this situation, the best I can do for my own peace of mind is to submit my thoughts to the judgment of the Church and to whatever agreement, if any exists, among the School of Theologians.
Now, in the case of one of those special and rare exigencies or emergencies, which constitute the justa causa of dissembling or misleading, whether it be extreme as the defence of life, or a duty as the custody of a secret, or of a personal nature as to repel an impertinent inquirer, or a matter too trivial to provoke question, as in dealing with children or madmen, there seem to be four courses:
Now, in the case of one of those special and rare situations that justify hiding the truth or being misleading, whether it’s something as serious as defending your life, a responsibility like keeping a secret, something personal like fending off an annoying questioner, or something too trivial to even warrant a question, like dealing with children or mentally unstable individuals, there seem to be four options:
1. To say the thing that is not. Here I draw the reader's attention to the words material and formal. "Thou shalt not kill;" murder is the formal transgression of this commandment, but accidental homicide is the material transgression. The matter of the act is the same in both cases; but in the homicide, there is nothing more than the act, whereas in murder there must be the intention, etc. which constitutes the formal sin. So, again, an executioner commits the material act, but not that formal killing which is a breach of the commandment. So a man, who, simply to save himself from starving, takes a loaf which is not his own, commits only the material, not the formal act of stealing, that is, he does not commit a sin. And so a baptised Christian, external to the Church, who is in invincible ignorance, is a material heretic, and not a formal. And in like manner, if to say the thing which is not be in special cases lawful, it may be called a material lie.
1. To say what isn’t true. Here, I want to highlight the words material and formal. "You shall not kill;" murder is the formal violation of this commandment, but accidental homicide is the material violation. The matter of the act is the same in both scenarios; however, in homicide, there's only the act itself, while in murder, there must be intention, etc., which makes it a formal sin. So, an executioner carries out the material act, but not the formal killing that breaks the commandment. Similarly, a man who takes a loaf of bread that isn’t his simply to avoid starving commits only the material act, not the formal act of stealing, meaning he doesn’t sin. And likewise, a baptized Christian who is outside the Church and is completely unaware is a material heretic, not a formal one. In the same way, if saying what isn’t true is lawful in specific cases, it might be termed a material lie.
The first mode then which has been suggested of meeting those special cases, in which to mislead by words has a sufficient object, or has a just cause, is by a material lie.
The first approach suggested for addressing those specific situations, where misleading with words has a valid purpose or a just cause, is through a blatant lie.
The second mode is by an æquivocatio, which is not equivalent to the English word "equivocation," but means sometimes a play upon words, sometimes an evasion.
The second mode is by an æquivocatio, which isn't the same as the English word "equivocation," but can mean a play on words at times and an evasion at others.
2. A play upon words. St. Alfonso certainly says that a play upon words is allowable; and, speaking under correction, I should say that he does so on the ground that lying is not a sin against justice, that is, against our neighbour, but a sin against God; because words are the signs of ideas, and therefore if a word denotes two ideas, we are at liberty to use it in either of its senses: but I think I must be incorrect here in some respect, because the Catechism of the Council, as I have quoted it at p. 248, says, "Vanitate et mendacio fides ac veritas tolluntur, arctissima vincula societatis humanæ; quibus sublatis, sequitur summa vitæ confusio, ut homines nihil a dæmonibus differre videantur."
2. A play upon words. St. Alfonso definitely claims that using wordplay is acceptable; and, if I may respectfully say so, I believe he does this because he considers lying to be not a sin against justice, meaning it does not harm our neighbor, but rather a sin against God. This is because words represent ideas, and therefore if a word has two meanings, we can use it in either context. However, I think I might be mistaken in some way here, because the Catechism of the Council, as I referenced on p. 248, states, "Vanity and deceit undermine faith and truth, the strongest bonds of human society; when these are removed, it leads to the greatest confusion in life, to the point that humans seem no different from demons."
3. Evasion;—when, for instance, the speaker diverts the attention of the hearer to another subject; suggests an irrelevant fact or makes a remark, which confuses him and gives him something to think about; throws dust into his eyes; states some truth, from which he is quite sure his hearer will draw an illogical and untrue conclusion, and the like. Bishop Butler seems distinctly to sanction such a proceeding, in a passage which I shall extract below.
3. Evasion;—for example, when the speaker shifts the listener's focus to a different topic; brings up an unrelated fact or makes a comment that confuses them and gives them something else to think about; throws them off track; states a truth from which they are likely to draw an illogical and false conclusion, and so on. Bishop Butler appears to clearly approve of this approach in a passage that I will quote below.
The greatest school of evasion, I speak seriously, is the House of Commons; and necessarily so, from the nature of the case. And the hustings is another.
The best place for dodging questions, I'm serious, is the House of Commons; and it has to be, given the situation. The hustings is another one.
An instance is supplied in the history of St. Athanasius: he was in a boat on the Nile, flying persecution; and he found himself pursued. On this he ordered his men to turn his boat round, and ran right to meet the satellites of Julian. They asked him, Have you seen Athanasius? and he told his followers to answer, "Yes, he is close to you." They went on their course, and he ran into Alexandria, and there lay hid till the end of the persecution.
An example can be found in the story of St. Athanasius: he was in a boat on the Nile, escaping from persecution, when he realized he was being followed. He told his crew to turn the boat around and headed straight for the followers of Julian. They asked him, "Have you seen Athanasius?" and he instructed his companions to reply, "Yes, he is close to you." They continued on their way, and he made his way to Alexandria, where he hid until the end of the persecution.
I gave another instance above, in reference to a doctrine of religion. The early Christians did their best to conceal their Creed on account of the misconceptions of the heathen about it. Were the question asked of them, "Do you worship a Trinity?" and did they answer, "We worship one God, and none else;" the inquirer might, or would, infer that they did not acknowledge the Trinity of Divine Persons.
I mentioned another example earlier concerning a religious belief. The early Christians tried hard to keep their beliefs a secret because of the misunderstandings from non-believers. If someone asked them, "Do you worship a Trinity?" and they replied, "We worship one God, and no one else;" the person asking might conclude that they did not recognize the Trinity of Divine Persons.
It is very difficult to draw the line between these evasions, and what are commonly called in English equivocations; and of this difficulty, again, I think, the scenes in the House of Commons supply us with illustrations.
It’s really hard to distinguish between these evasions and what are commonly referred to in English as equivocations; and I believe the scenes in the House of Commons provide us with examples of this difficulty.
4. The fourth method is silence. For instance, not giving the whole truth in a court of law. If St. Alban, after dressing himself in the priest's clothes, and being taken before the persecutor, had been able to pass off for his friend, and so gone to martyrdom without being discovered; and had he in the course of examination answered all questions truly, but not given the whole truth, the most important truth, that he was the wrong person, he would have come very near to telling a lie, for a half-truth is often a falsehood. And his defence must have been the justa causa, viz. either that he might in charity or for religion's sake save a priest, or again that the judge had no right to interrogate him on the subject.
4. The fourth method is silence. For example, not sharing the whole truth in a court of law. If St. Alban, after putting on the priest's clothes and being brought before the persecutor, had managed to pass for his friend and gone to martyrdom without being found out; and if during the questioning he had answered all questions truthfully but not revealed the most crucial truth—that he was the wrong person—he would have come very close to lying, since a half-truth is often a falsehood. His defense would have been the justa causa, either that he was acting out of charity or for the sake of his faith to save a priest, or that the judge had no right to question him about it.
Now, of these four modes of misleading others by the tongue, when there is a justa causa (supposing there can be such)—a material lie, that is an untruth which is not a lie, an equivocation, an evasion, and silence,—First, I have no difficulty whatever in recognizing as allowable the method of silence.
Now, out of these four ways of deceiving others with words, when there is a justa causa (assuming there can be one)—a substantial lie, which is not a lie, an equivocation, an evasion, and silence—first, I have no problem at all acknowledging that the approach of silence is acceptable.
Secondly, But, if I allow of silence, why not of the method of material lying, since half of a truth is often a lie? And, again, if all killing be not murder, nor all taking from another stealing, why must all untruths be lies? Now I will say freely that I think it difficult to answer this question, whether it be urged by St. Clement or by Milton; at the same time, I never have acted, and I think, when it came to the point, I never should act upon such a theory myself, except in one case, stated below. This I say for the benefit of those who speak hardly of Catholic theologians, on the ground that they admit text-books which allow of equivocation. They are asked, how can we trust you, when such are your views? but such views, as I already have said, need not have anything to do with their own practice, merely from the circumstance that they are contained in their text-books. A theologian draws out a system; he does it partly as a scientific speculation: but much more for the sake of others. He is lax for the sake of others, not of himself. His own standard of action is much higher than that which he imposes upon men in general. One special reason why religious men, after drawing out a theory, are unwilling to act upon it themselves, is this: that they practically acknowledge a broad distinction between their reason and their conscience; and that they feel the latter to be the safer guide, though the former may be the clearer, nay even though it be the truer. They would rather be wrong with their conscience, than right with their reason. And again here is this more tangible difficulty in the case of exceptions to the rule of veracity, that so very little external help is given us in drawing the line, as to when untruths are allowable and when not; whereas that sort of killing which is not murder, is most definitely marked off by legal enactments, so that it cannot possibly be mistaken for such killing as is murder. On the other hand the cases of exemption from the rule of Veracity are left to the private judgment of the individual, and he may easily be led on from acts which are allowable to acts which are not. Now this remark does not apply to such acts as are related in Scripture, as being done by a particular inspiration, for in such cases there is a command. If I had my own way, I would oblige society, that is, its great men, its lawyers, its divines, its literature, publicly to acknowledge, as such, those instances of untruth which are not lies, as for instance, untruths in war; and then there could be no danger in them to the individual Catholic, for he would be acting under a rule.
Secondly, if I accept silence, why not accept the approach of material lying, since half of a truth is often a lie? And, if not every killing is murder, and not every act of taking from someone is stealing, why must every untruth be a lie? I will say openly that I find it challenging to answer this question, whether it comes from St. Clement or Milton; however, I’ve never acted, and I believe, if it came down to it, I wouldn’t act on such a theory myself, except in one case mentioned below. I say this for the benefit of those who criticize Catholic theologians for accepting texts that allow for equivocation. They ask, how can we trust you when you hold such views? But, as I've said, those views don’t have to affect their own practices just because they are included in their texts. A theologian develops a system; he does it partly as a scientific exploration but even more for the sake of others. He might be lenient for the sake of others, not for himself. His own standard of behavior is much higher than what he expects from people in general. One reason why religious individuals, after creating a theory, are reluctant to follow it themselves is that they recognize a clear distinction between their reason and their conscience; they believe the latter is the safer guide, even if the former is clearer or even truer. They would rather be wrong with their conscience than right with their reason. Furthermore, there’s this more concrete challenge regarding exceptions to the rule of honesty: there is very little external guidance on where to draw the line for when untruths are acceptable and when they aren’t. In contrast, the kinds of killing that are not considered murder are clearly defined by laws, so they can’t be mistaken for the kinds of killing that are murder. On the other hand, the exceptions to the rule of honesty are left to individual judgment, which makes it easy to move from permissible actions to impermissible ones. This comment does not apply to actions described in Scripture as being done through divine inspiration, because in those instances there is a command. If it were up to me, I would require society—its leaders, lawyers, theologians, and writers—to publicly acknowledge situations of untruth that aren’t lies, like untruths in war; this way, there would be no risk for the individual Catholic since they would be operating under a clear rule.
Thirdly, as to playing upon words, or equivocation, I suppose it is from the English habit, but, without meaning any disrespect to a great Saint, or wishing to set myself up, or taking my conscience for more than it is worth, I can only say as a fact, that I admit it as little as the rest of my countrymen: and, without any reference to the right and the wrong of the matter, of this I am sure, that, if there is one thing more than another which prejudices Englishmen against the Catholic Church, it is the doctrine of great authorities on the subject of equivocation. For myself, I can fancy myself thinking it was allowable in extreme cases for me to lie, but never to equivocate. Luther said, "Pecca fortiter." I anathematise the formal sentiment, but there is a truth in it, when spoken of material acts.
Thirdly, regarding wordplay or equivocation, I think it comes from the English way of thinking. Without disrespecting a great Saint or trying to elevate myself, and without thinking too highly of my own conscience, I can honestly say that I accept it as little as my fellow countrymen do. Setting aside the moral issues involved, I am sure of one thing: if there’s anything that turns English people against the Catholic Church, it’s the teachings from major authorities about equivocation. Personally, I can imagine thinking it might be okay to lie in extreme situations, but never to equivocate. Luther said, "Sin boldly." I reject that idea, but there’s some truth to it when referring to tangible actions.
Fourthly, I think evasion, as I have described it, to be perfectly allowable; indeed, I do not know, who does not use it, under circumstances; but that a good deal of moral danger is attached to its use; and that, the cleverer a man is, the more likely he is to pass the line of Christian duty.
Fourthly, I believe evasion, as I've described it, is totally acceptable; in fact, I don't know anyone who doesn't use it at times. However, there's a significant moral risk involved in using it, and the smarter a person is, the more likely they are to cross the line of Christian duty.
But it may be said, that such decisions do not meet the particular difficulties for which provision is required; let us then take some instances.
But it could be argued that such decisions don't address the specific challenges that need to be dealt with; so, let's consider some examples.
1. I do not think it right to tell lies to children, even on this account, that they are sharper than we think them, and will soon find out what we are doing; and our example will be a very bad training for them. And so of equivocation: it is easy of imitation, and we ourselves shall be sure to get the worst of it in the end.
1. I don't think it's right to lie to kids, even for the reason that they are smarter than we realize and will figure out what we're doing pretty quickly; plus, our behavior will set a bad example for them. The same goes for being vague or misleading: it's easy to mimic, and in the end, we’ll definitely end up worse off for it.
2. If an early Father defends the patriarch Jacob in his mode of gaining his father's blessing, on the ground that the blessing was divinely pledged to him already, that it was his, and that his father and brother were acting at once against his own rights and the divine will, it does not follow from this that such conduct is a pattern to us, who have no supernatural means of determining when an untruth becomes a material and not a formal lie. It seems to me very dangerous, be it allowable or not, to lie or equivocate in order to preserve some great temporal or spiritual benefit, nor does St. Alfonso here say anything to the contrary, for he is not discussing the question of danger or expedience.
2. If an early Church Father defends Jacob for how he secured his father's blessing by arguing that the blessing was already promised to him by God, that it rightfully belonged to him, and that his father and brother were acting against both his rights and God's will, it doesn’t mean that this behavior serves as a model for us. We don’t have divine insight to determine when a false statement becomes a significant lie rather than just a minor one. It seems very risky, whether it's acceptable or not, to lie or dodge the truth to protect some significant personal or spiritual advantage. St. Alfonso doesn’t address this issue either, as he’s not talking about the risks or practicality involved.
3. As to Johnson's case of a murderer asking you which way a man had gone, I should have anticipated that, had such a difficulty happened to him, his first act would have been to knock the man down, and to call out for the police; and next, if he was worsted in the conflict, he would not have given the ruffian the information he asked, at whatever risk to himself. I think he would have let himself be killed first. I do not think that he would have told a lie.
3. Regarding Johnson's scenario of a murderer asking which way a man went, I would have expected that if he faced such a situation, his first reaction would be to knock the guy down and call for the police. And if he ended up losing that fight, I believe he wouldn't have given the criminal the information he wanted, no matter the risk to himself. I think he would rather get killed than tell a lie.
4. A secret is a more difficult case. Supposing something has been confided to me in the strictest secrecy, which could not be revealed without great disadvantage to another, what am I to do? If I am a lawyer, I am protected by my profession. I have a right to treat with extreme indignation any question which trenches on the inviolability of my position; but, supposing I was driven up into a corner, I think I should have a right to say an untruth, or that, under such circumstances, a lie would be material, but it is almost an impossible case, for the law would defend me. In like manner, as a priest, I should think it lawful to speak as if I knew nothing of what passed in confession. And I think in these cases, I do in fact possess that guarantee, that I am not going by private judgment, which just now I demanded; for society would bear me out, whether as a lawyer or as a priest, that I had a duty to my client or penitent, such, that an untruth in the matter was not a lie. A common type of this permissible denial, be it material lie or evasion, is at the moment supplied to me: an artist asked a Prime Minister, who was sitting to him, "What news, my Lord, from France?" He answered, "I do not know; I have not read the Papers."
4. A secret is a trickier situation. If someone has shared something with me in total confidence, which I can't disclose without causing serious harm to someone else, what should I do? If I'm a lawyer, I have protection from my profession. I can respond with outrage to any question that challenges the confidentiality of my role; however, if I found myself in a tight spot, I believe I would be justified in telling a lie, or that, in those circumstances, a lie would be material, but it’s almost an impossible scenario since the law would defend me. Similarly, as a priest, I would find it acceptable to act as though I didn’t know anything about what was said in confession. In these cases, I genuinely believe I have that assurance that I'm not acting on personal judgment, which I just mentioned; society would support me, whether as a lawyer or as a priest, in fulfilling my duty to my client or penitent, meaning that a falsehood in this context wouldn't be considered a lie. A typical example of this acceptable denial, whether it’s a material lie or evasion, comes to mind: an artist asked a Prime Minister, who was posing for him, "What’s the news, my Lord, from France?" He replied, "I don’t know; I haven’t read the Papers."
5. A more difficult question is, when to accept confidence has not been a duty. Supposing a man wishes to keep the secret that he is the author of a book, and he is plainly asked on the subject. Here I should ask the previous question, whether any one has a right to publish what he dare not avow. It requires to have traced the bearings and results of such a principle, before being sure of it; but certainly, for myself, I am no friend of strictly anonymous writing. Next, supposing another has confided to you the secret of his authorship: there are persons who would have no scruple at all in giving a denial to impertinent questions asked them on the subject. I have heard a great man in his day at Oxford, warmly contend, as if he could not enter into any other view of the matter, that, if he had been trusted by a friend with the secret of his being author of a certain book, and he were asked by a third person, if his friend was not (as he really was) the author of it, he ought without any scruple and distinctly to answer that he did not know. He had an existing duty towards the author; he had none towards his inquirer. The author had a claim on him; an impertinent questioner had none at all. But here again I desiderate some leave, recognised by society, as in the case of the formulas "Not at home," and "Not guilty," in order to give me the right of saying what is a material untruth. And moreover, I should here also ask the previous question, Have I any right to accept such a confidence? have I any right to make such a promise? and, if it be an unlawful promise, is it binding at the expense of a lie? I am not attempting to solve these difficult questions, but they have to be carefully examined.
5. A more challenging question is when it's okay to accept that keeping a confidence isn’t a duty. Let’s say someone wants to keep their authorship of a book a secret, and they’re directly asked about it. Here, I would ask the previous question: does anyone have the right to publish something they can’t claim as their own? It’s important to understand the implications and consequences of such a principle before being certain about it; however, personally, I don't support completely anonymous writing. Now, if someone has confided in you about their authorship: there are people who wouldn’t hesitate at all to deny any intrusive questions about it. I once heard a prominent figure in Oxford passionately argue, seemingly unable to see any other perspective, that if a friend had trusted him with the secret of writing a certain book, and a third person asked him whether his friend was (as he actually was) the author, he should confidently and without hesitation say that he didn’t know. He felt he had an obligation to the author but none to the person asking. The author deserved his loyalty; the prying questioner did not. Yet, I still crave some social acknowledgment, like with the phrases "Not at home" and "Not guilty," to give me the right to assert what is a material untruth. Furthermore, I should also ask the previous questions: Do I have any right to accept such a confidence? Do I have a right to make that promise? And if it's an improper promise, is it still binding if it means telling a lie? I’m not trying to resolve these tough questions, but they need to be carefully considered.
As I put into print some weeks ago various extracts from authors relating to the subject which I have been considering, I conclude by inserting them here, though they will not have a very methodical appearance.
As I shared in print a few weeks ago various excerpts from authors connected to the topic I've been thinking about, I will wrap up by including them here, even if they don't look very organized.
For instance, St. Dorotheus: "Sometimes the necessity of some matter urges (incumbit), which, unless you somewhat conceal and dissemble it, will turn into a greater trouble." And he goes on to mention the case of saving a man who has committed homicide from his pursuers: and he adds that it is not a thing that can be done often, but once in a long time.
For example, St. Dorotheus says: "Sometimes the need of a situation presses on you, which, unless you hide it a bit and keep it under wraps, will become a bigger problem." He then talks about the case of saving a person who has committed murder from those chasing him, and he notes that it’s not something that can happen often, but only once in a while.
St. Clement in like manner speaks of it only as a necessity, and as a necessary medicine.
St. Clement similarly refers to it only as a necessity and as a necessary remedy.
Origen, after saying that God's commandment makes it a plain duty to speak the truth, adds, that a man, "when necessity urges," may avail himself of a lie, as medicine, that is, to the extent of Judith's conduct towards Holofernes; and he adds that that necessity may be the obtaining of a great good, as Jacob hindered his father from giving the blessing to Esau against the will of God.
Origen, after stating that God's commandment clearly requires us to speak the truth, adds that a person, "when necessary," may resort to a lie, like using medicine, specifically referring to Judith's actions towards Holofernes; he also notes that this necessity could involve achieving a significant good, similar to how Jacob prevented his father from blessing Esau against God's will.
Cassian says, that the use of a lie, in order to be allowable, must be like the use of hellebore, which is itself poison, unless a man has a fatal disease on him. He adds, "Without the condition of an extreme necessity, it is a present ruin."
Cassian says that for a lie to be acceptable, it must be like hellebore, which is poisonous unless someone has a life-threatening illness. He adds, "Without the condition of extreme necessity, it leads to guaranteed ruin."
St. John Chrysostom defends Jacob on the ground that his deceiving his father was not done for the sake of temporal gain, but in order to fulfil the providential purpose of God; and he says, that, as Abraham was not a murderer, though he was minded to kill his son, so an untruth need not be a lie. And he adds, that often such a deceit is the greatest possible benefit to the man who is deceived, and therefore allowable. Also St. Hilary, St. John Climacus, etc., in Thomassin, Concina, the Mélanges, etc.
St. John Chrysostom defends Jacob by arguing that deceiving his father wasn’t intended for personal gain but was meant to fulfill God’s plan. He points out that just as Abraham wasn’t a murderer even though he intended to sacrifice his son, a lie doesn’t always need to be considered a lie. He also states that sometimes such deception can actually be the greatest benefit for the person being deceived, making it acceptable. St. Hilary, St. John Climacus, and others also support this view, as noted in Thomassin, Concina, the Mélanges, and so on.
Various modern Catholic divines hold this doctrine of the "material lie" also. I will quote three passages in point.
Various modern Catholic theologians support the doctrine of the "material lie" as well. I will quote three relevant passages.
Cataneo: "Be it then well understood, that the obligation to veracity, that is, of conforming our words to the sentiments of our mind, is founded principally upon the necessity of human intercourse, for which reason they (i.e. words) ought not and cannot be lawfully opposed to this end, so just, so necessary, and so important, without which, the world would become a Babylon of confusion. And this would in a great measure be really the result, as often as a man should be unable to defend secrets of high importance, and other evils would follow, even worse than confusion, in their nature destructive of this very intercourse between man and man for which speech was instituted. Every body must see the advantage a hired assassin would have, if supposing he did not know by sight the person he was commissioned to kill, I being asked by the rascal at the moment he was standing in doubt with his gun cocked, were obliged to approve of his deed by keeping silence, or to hesitate, or lastly to answer 'Yes, that is the man.' [Then follow other similar cases.] In such and similar cases, in which your sincerity is unjustly assailed, when no other way more prompt or more efficacious presents itself, and when it is not enough to say, 'I do not know,' let such persons be met openly with a downright resolute 'No' without thinking upon anything else. For such a 'No' is conformable to the universal opinion of men, who are the judges of words, and who certainly have not placed upon them obligations to the injury of the Human Republic, nor ever entered into a compact to use them in behalf of rascals, spies, incendiaries, and thieves. I repeat that such a 'No' is conformable to the universal mind of man, and with this mind your own mind ought to be in union and alliance. Who does not see the manifest advantage which highway robbers would derive, were travellers when asked if they had gold, jewels, etc., obliged either to invent tergiversations or to answer 'Yes, we have?' Accordingly in such circumstances that 'No' which you utter [see Card. Pallav. lib. iii. c. xi. n. 23, de Fide, Spe, etc.] remains deprived of its proper meaning, and is like a piece of coin, from which by the command of the government the current value has been withdrawn, so that by using it you become in no sense guilty of lying."
Cataneo: "Let it be clearly understood that the duty to be truthful—meaning aligning our words with our thoughts—primarily stems from the need for human interaction. For this reason, words should not and cannot be used against this vital, necessary, and important purpose, without which the world would descend into chaos. This would significantly happen whenever someone cannot protect important secrets, leading to even worse consequences than mere confusion, which would damage the very communication between people for which language was created. Everyone can see the advantage a hired killer would have if, for example, he didn't recognize his target and, in a moment of doubt with his gun ready, I had to either remain silent, waver, or say 'Yes, that’s the person.' [Then follow other similar cases.] In such instances, where your honesty is unjustly challenged and no more immediate or effective response is available, and saying 'I don’t know' isn’t enough, one should respond firmly with a straightforward 'No' without considering anything else. This 'No' aligns with the common understanding of people, who judge words and have certainly not agreed to use them in a way that harms society, nor have they colluded to assist rogues, spies, arsonists, or thieves. I emphasize that such a 'No' is consistent with the collective mindset of humanity, and your own thoughts should align with this mindset. Who doesn't see the clear advantage that robbers would gain if travelers, when asked if they had gold, jewels, etc., were forced to either lie or say 'Yes, we have it'? Therefore, in such situations, the 'No' you express [see Card. Pallav. lib. iii. c. xi. n. 23, de Fide, Spe, etc.] loses its true meaning and becomes like a coin whose value has been revoked by government order, so that using it does not make you guilty of lying."
Bolgeni says, "We have therefore proved satisfactorily, and with more than moral certainty, that an exception occurs to the general law of not speaking untruly, viz. when it is impossible to observe a certain other precept, more important, without telling a lie. Some persons indeed say, that in the cases of impossibility which are above drawn out, what is said is not a lie. But a man who thus speaks confuses ideas and denies the essential characters of things. What is a lie? It is 'locutio contra mentem;' this is its common definition. But in the cases of impossibility, a man speaks contra mentem; that is clear and evident. Therefore he tells a lie. Let us distinguish between the lie and the sin. In the above cases, the man really tells a lie, but this lie is not a sin, by reason of the existing impossibility. To say that in those cases no one has a right to ask, that the words have a meaning according to the common consent of men, and the like, as is said by certain authors in order in those cases to exempt the lie from sin, this is to commit oneself to frivolous excuses, and to subject oneself to a number of retorts, when there is the plain reason of the above-mentioned fact of impossibility."
Bolgeni says, "We have therefore convincingly shown, with more than just moral certainty, that an exception occurs to the general rule of not lying, specifically when it is impossible to follow a certain other, more important guideline without telling a lie. Some people claim that in the impossible situations we've discussed, what's said is not a lie. But someone who says this confuses concepts and overlooks the fundamental nature of things. What is a lie? It is 'speaking against the mind;' this is its common definition. But in these impossible situations, a person is speaking against the mind; this is clear and evident. Therefore, they are lying. We need to differentiate between a lie and a sin. In these situations, a person is indeed telling a lie, but this lie is not a sin due to the existing impossibility. To argue that in these cases no one has the right to question, that the words have a meaning according to common understanding, and so forth, as some authors say to excuse the lie from being a sin, is to resort to trivial excuses and expose oneself to various counterarguments, given the clear reasoning behind the mentioned impossibility."
And the Author in the Mélanges Théologiques: "We have then gained this truth, and it is a conclusion of which we have not the smallest doubt, that if the intention of deceiving our neighbour is essential to a lie, it is allowable in certain cases to say what we know to be false, as, e.g. to escape from a great danger....
And the Author in the Mélanges Théologiques: "We've established this truth, and we have no doubt about it: if the intention to deceive our neighbor is key to a lie, then in certain situations, it's acceptable to say something we know is false, for example, to escape a significant danger..."
"But, let no one be alarmed, it is never allowable to lie; in this we are in perfect agreement with the whole body of theologians. The only point in which we differ from them is in what we mean by a lie. They call that a lie which is not such in our view, or rather, if you will, what in our view is only a material lie they account to be both formal and material."
"But don’t worry, it’s never okay to lie; in this, we completely agree with all theologians. The only thing we disagree on is what we consider to be a lie. They define a lie in a way that doesn’t match our view, or rather, what we see as just a material lie they see as both formal and material."
Now to come to Anglican authorities.
Now let's discuss the Anglican authorities.
Taylor: "Whether it can in any case be lawful to tell a lie? To this I answer, that the holy Scriptures of the Old and New Testament do indefinitely and severely forbid lying. Prov. xiii. 5; xxx. 8. Ps. v. 6. John viii. 44. Col. iii. 9. Rev. xxi. 8, 27. Beyond these things, nothing can be said in condemnation of lying.
Taylor: "Is it ever acceptable to lie? My answer is that the holy Scriptures of the Old and New Testament clearly and strictly forbid lying. Prov. xiii. 5; xxx. 8. Ps. v. 6. John viii. 44. Col. iii. 9. Rev. xxi. 8, 27. Other than these points, there’s nothing else that can be said against lying."
"But then lying is to be understood to be something said or written to the hurt of our neighbour, which cannot be understood otherwise than to differ from the mind of him that speaks. 'A lie is petulantly or from a desire of hurting, to say one thing, or to signify it by gesture, and to think another thing;'[6] so Melancthon, 'To lie is to deceive our neighbour to his hurt.' For in this sense a lie is naturally or intrinsically evil; that is, to speak a lie to our neighbour is naturally evil ... not because it is different from an eternal truth.... A lie is an injury to our neighbour.... There is in mankind a universal contract implied in all their intercourses.... In justice we are bound to speak, so as that our neighbour do not lose his right, which by our speaking we give him to the truth, that is, in our heart. And of a lie, thus defined, which is injurious to our neighbour, so long as his right to truth remains, it is that St. Austin affirms it to be simply unlawful, and that it can in no case be permitted, nisi forte regulas quasdam daturus es.... If a lie be unjust, it can never become lawful; but, if it can be separate from injustice, then it may be innocent. Here then I consider
"But then lying is understood to be something said or written that harms our neighbor, which should be seen as differing from what the speaker truly believes. 'A lie is when someone says one thing, or shows it through gestures, while actually thinking another thing;'[6] as Melancthon puts it, 'To lie is to deceive our neighbor to his detriment.' In this way, a lie is inherently evil; that is, to speak a lie to our neighbor is inherently wrong ... not because it contradicts an eternal truth.... A lie is an injury to our neighbor.... There's an implied contract among all people in their interactions.... In fairness we are obligated to speak in a way that doesn’t cause our neighbor to lose his right, which we affirm through our words, that is, in our hearts. And regarding a lie, as defined, which is harmful to our neighbor, as long as his right to the truth persists, St. Augustine claims it is simply wrong, and can never be allowed, unless perhaps you are about to give some rules.... If a lie is unjust, it can never become acceptable; but, if it can be separated from injustice, then it may be innocent. Here then I consider"
"This right, though it be regularly and commonly belonging to all men, yet it may be taken away by a superior right intervening; or it may be lost, or it may be hindered, or it may cease, upon a greater reason.
"This right, while it normally and universally belongs to everyone, can be taken away by a higher right coming into play; or it can be lost, or it can be obstructed, or it can end, for a more significant reason."
"Therefore upon this account it was lawful for the children of Israel to borrow jewels of the Egyptians, which supposes a promise of restitution, though they intended not to pay them back again. God gave commandment so to spoil them, and the Egyptians were divested of their rights, and were to be used like enemies.
"Because of this, it was acceptable for the children of Israel to borrow jewels from the Egyptians, which suggests a promise to return them, even though they had no intention of paying them back. God commanded this act of taking from them, and the Egyptians were stripped of their rights, and were to be treated like enemies."
"It is lawful to tell a lie to children or to madmen; because they, having no powers of judging, have no right to truth; but then, the lie must be charitable and useful.... If a lie be told, it must be such as is for their good ... and so do physicians to their patients.... This and the like were so usual, so permitted to physicians, that it grew to a proverb, 'You lie like a doctor;'[7] which yet was always to be understood in the way of charity, and with honour to the profession.... To tell a lie for charity, to save a man's life, the life of a friend, of a husband, of a prince, of a useful and a public person, hath not only been done at all times, but commended by great and wise and good men.... Who would not save his father's life ... at the charge of a harmless lie, from the rage of persecutors or tyrants? ...When the telling of a truth will certainly be the cause of evil to a man, though he have right to truth, yet it must not be given to him to his harm.... Every truth is no more justice, than every restitution of a straw to the right owner is a duty. 'Be not over-righteous,' says Solomon.... If it be objected, that we must not tell a lie for God, therefore much less for our brother, I answer, that it does not follow; for God needs not a lie, but our brother does.... Deceiving the enemy by the stratagem of actions or words, is not properly lying; for this supposes a conversation, of law or peace, trust or promise explicit or implicit. A lie is a deceiving of a trust or confidence."—Taylor, vol. xiii. pp. 351-371, ed. Heber.
"It’s acceptable to lie to children or to the mentally ill; because they lack the ability to judge and have no right to the truth; however, the lie must be kind and helpful.... If a lie is told, it should be for their benefit ... much like how doctors do with their patients.... This and similar practices were so common, so allowed for doctors, that it became a saying, 'You lie like a doctor;'[7] which was always meant to be understood in a charitable way and to honor the profession.... Lying for charity, to save someone's life—be it a friend, a spouse, a ruler, or a person of public importance—has always happened and has been praised by great, wise, and good people.... Who wouldn’t want to save their father’s life ... at the expense of a harmless lie, from the fury of enemies or tyrants? ...When telling the truth will certainly lead to harm for someone, even if they have a right to the truth, it shouldn’t be said if it causes them harm.... Not every truth is justice, just as returning a straw to its rightful owner isn’t always a duty. 'Don’t be overly righteous,' says Solomon.... If it’s argued that we shouldn’t lie for God, then much less for our fellow human beings, I respond that it doesn’t follow; because God doesn’t need a lie, but our fellow human does.... Deceiving the enemy through plans or words isn’t truly lying; because this implies a conversation about law, peace, trust, or an explicit or implicit promise. A lie is deceiving someone’s trust or confidence."—Taylor, vol. xiii. pp. 351-371, ed. Heber.
It is clear that Taylor thought that veracity was one branch of justice; a social virtue; under the second table of the law, not under the first; only binding, when those to whom we speak have a claim of justice upon us, which ordinarily all men have. Accordingly, in cases where a neighbour has no claim of justice upon us, there is no opportunity of exercising veracity, as, for instance, when he is mad, or is deceived by us for his own advantage. And hence, in such cases, a lie is not really a lie, as he says in one place, "Deceiving the enemy is not properly lying." Here he seems to make that distinction common to Catholics; viz. between what they call a material act and a formal act. Thus Taylor would maintain, that to say the thing that is not to a madman, has the matter of a lie, but the man who says it as little tells a formal lie, as the judge, sheriff, or executioner murders the man whom he certainly kills by forms of law.
Taylor believed that truthfulness was a part of justice; a social value; related to the second part of the law, rather than the first; only required when the people we speak to have a claim to justice from us, which generally applies to everyone. So, in situations where a neighbor has no claim to justice from us, there’s no chance to practice truthfulness, like when he’s out of his mind or being misled by us for his own benefit. Therefore, in these cases, a lie is not really a lie, as he states in one instance, "Deceiving the enemy is not properly lying." Here, he seems to note a distinction commonly recognized by Catholics; namely, the difference between what they call a material act and a formal act. Thus, Taylor would argue that telling an untruth to a madman has the matter of a lie, but the person who says it does not actually tell a formal lie, just as a judge, sheriff, or executioner does not commit murder in the traditional sense when they lawfully carry out their duties.
Other English authors take precisely the same view, viz. that veracity is a kind of justice—that our neighbour generally has a right to have the truth told him; but that he may forfeit that right, or lose it for the time, and then to say the thing that is not to him is no sin against veracity, that is, no lie. Thus Milton says, "Veracity is a virtue, by which we speak true things to him to whom it is equitable, and concerning what things it is suitable for the good of our neighbour.... All dissimulation is not wrong, for it is not necessary for us always openly to bring out the truth; that only is blamed which is malicious.... I do not see why that cannot be said of lying which can be said of homicide and other matters, which are not weighed so much by the deed as by the object and end of acting. What man in his senses will deny that there are those whom we have the best of grounds for considering that we ought to deceive—as boys, madmen, the sick, the intoxicated, enemies, men in error, thieves? ...Is it a point of conscience not to deceive them? ... I would ask, by which of the commandments is a lie forbidden? You will say, by the ninth. Come, read it out, and you will agree with me. For whatever is here forbidden comes under the head of injuring one's neighbour. If then any lie does not injure one's neighbour, certainly it is not forbidden by this commandment. It is on this ground that, by the judgment of theologians, we shall acquit so many holy men of lying. Abraham, who said to his servants that he would return with his son; ... the wise man understood that it did not matter to his servants to know [that his son would not return], and that it was at the moment expedient for himself that they should not know.... Joseph would be a man of many lies if the common definition of lying held; [also] Moses, Rahab, Ehud, Jael, Jonathan." Here again veracity is due only on the score of justice towards the person whom we speak with; and, if he has no claim upon us to speak the truth, we need not speak the truth to him.
Other English authors share the same view: that honesty is a form of justice—that our neighbor generally has a right to hear the truth. However, that right can be forfeited or temporarily lost, and in such cases, saying something untrue to them isn't a violation of honesty, meaning it’s not a lie. Milton states, "Honesty is a virtue, meaning we speak the truth to those to whom it is fair and about things that are suitable for the good of our neighbor.... Not all deception is wrong, as it’s not always necessary for us to reveal the truth openly; only malicious deception is criticized.... I don’t see why lying can’t be judged the same way as homicide and other actions, which are evaluated not just by the act itself but by the intent and purpose behind it. What reasonable person would deny that there are individuals we have good reason to deceive—like children, the insane, the sick, the drunk, enemies, misguided individuals, or thieves? ... Is it a matter of conscience not to mislead them? ... Which commandment prohibits lying? You might say it’s the ninth. Go ahead, read it out loud, and you’ll agree with me. Everything it forbids relates to harming one’s neighbor. Therefore, if a lie does not harm a neighbor, it’s surely not prohibited by this commandment. This is why theologians believe many holy figures are not guilty of lying. Abraham, who told his servants he would return with his son; ... the wise man recognized it didn’t matter for them to know [that his son wouldn’t return], and that it was better for him at the time that they didn’t know.... Joseph would be seen as a liar under the common definition of lying; [similarly] Moses, Rahab, Ehud, Jael, and Jonathan. Again, honesty is owed only as a matter of justice toward the person we’re speaking with; if they have no claim on us to hear the truth, we don’t have to tell them the truth.
And so, again, Paley: "A lie is a breach of promise; for whoever seriously addresses his discourse to another tacitly promises to speak the truth, because he knows that the truth is expected. Or the obligation of veracity may be made out from the direct ill consequences of lying to social happiness.... There are falsehoods which are not lies; that is, which are not criminal." (Here, let it be observed, is the same distinction as in Taylor between material and formal untruths.) "1. When no one is deceived.... 2. When the person to whom you speak has no right to know the truth, or, more properly, when little or no inconveniency results from the want of confidence in such cases, as where you tell a falsehood to a madman for his own advantage; to a robber, to conceal your property; to an assassin, to defeat or divert him from his purpose.... It is upon this principle that, by the laws of war, it is allowable to deceive an enemy by feints, false colours, spies, false intelligence.... Many people indulge, in serious discourse, a habit of fiction or exaggeration.... So long as ... their narratives, though false, are inoffensive, it may seem a superstitious regard to truth to censure them merely for truth's sake." Then he goes on to mention reasons against such a practice, adding, "I have seldom known any one who deserted truth in trifles that could be trusted in matters of importance."—Works, vol. iv. p. 123.
And so, again, Paley: "A lie is a breach of promise; because anyone who seriously communicates with another implicitly promises to tell the truth, knowing that the truth is expected. Or the obligation to be truthful can be derived from the clear negative effects of lying on social happiness.... There are falsehoods that are not lies; that is, they aren’t criminal." (Here, note that this is the same distinction as in Taylor between material and formal untruths.) "1. When no one is deceived.... 2. When the person you're speaking to has no right to know the truth, or, more accurately, when little or no harm comes from such a lack of trust, like when you lie to a madman for his own good; to a thief, to hide your valuables; to a murderer, to stop him from completing his plan.... It is based on this principle that, under the laws of war, it is permissible to mislead an enemy through deceptions, false flags, spies, and false information.... Many people tend to indulge in a habit of fiction or exaggeration in serious discussions.... As long as ... their stories, even if false, are inoffensive, it might seem overly strict to criticize them just for the sake of truth." Then he continues to outline reasons against such behavior, adding, "I have rarely met anyone who strays from the truth in small matters that can be trusted in significant matters."—Works, vol. iv. p. 123.
Dr. Johnson, who, if any one, has the reputation of being a sturdy moralist, thus speaks:
Dr. Johnson, who is known for his strong moral views, says this:
"We talked," says Boswell, "of the casuistical question—whether it was allowable at any time to depart from truth." Johnson. "The general rule is, that truth should never be violated; because it is of the utmost importance to the comfort of life, that we should have a full security by mutual faith; and occasional inconveniences should be willingly suffered, that we may preserve it. There must, however, be some exceptions. If, for instance, a murderer should ask you which way a man is gone, you may tell him what is not true, because you are under a previous obligation not to betray a man to a murderer." Boswell. "Supposing the person who wrote Junius were asked whether he was the author, might he deny it?" Johnson. "I don't know what to say to this. If you were sure that he wrote Junius, would you, if he denied it, think as well of him afterwards? Yet it may be urged, that what a man has no right to ask, you may refuse to communicate; and there is no other effectual mode of preserving a secret, and an important secret, the discovery of which may be very hurtful to you, but a flat denial; for if you are silent, or hesitate, or evade, it will be held equivalent to a confession. But stay, sir; here is another case. Supposing the author had told me confidentially that he had written Junius, and I were asked if he had, I should hold myself at liberty to deny it, as being under a previous promise, express or implied, to conceal it. Now what I ought to do for the author, may I not do for myself? But I deny the lawfulness of telling a lie to a sick man for fear of alarming him. You have no business with consequences; you are to tell the truth. Besides, you are not sure what effect your telling him that he is in danger may have; it may bring his distemper to a crisis, and that may cure him. Of all lying I have the greatest abhorrence of this, because I believe it has been frequently practised on myself."—Boswell's Life, vol. iv. p. 277.
"We talked," says Boswell, "about the tricky question—whether it's ever acceptable to stray from truth." Johnson. "The general rule is that truth should never be compromised; it's essential for the comfort of life that we have complete trust in one another. We should be willing to endure occasional inconveniences to maintain that trust. However, there must be some exceptions. For example, if a murderer asks you which way a person has gone, you may lie because you have a prior obligation not to betray someone to a murderer." Boswell. "If the person who wrote Junius was asked if he was the author, could he deny it?" Johnson. "I’m not sure how to answer that. If you were certain he wrote Junius, would you still think as highly of him if he denied it? Yet, it could be argued that if someone has no right to ask something, you can refuse to disclose it; and the only effective way to keep a secret, especially an important one whose revelation could be very damaging to you, is a direct denial. Because if you stay silent, hesitate, or dodge the question, people will assume you’re admitting it. But wait, sir; here’s another scenario. If the author had confided in me that he wrote Junius, and I was asked if he did, I would feel free to deny it since I’d be under a previous promise, either explicit or implied, to keep it secret. Now, what I should do for the author, can’t I also do for myself? But I believe it's wrong to lie to a sick person out of fear of upsetting them. You have no obligation to consider the consequences; your duty is to tell the truth. Besides, you can’t know what effect telling him he’s in danger may have; it could push his illness to a turning point, and that might actually help him. Of all forms of lying, I detest this the most because I believe I've often been subjected to it myself."—Boswell's Life, vol. iv. p. 277.
There are English authors who allow of mental reservation and equivocation; such is Jeremy Taylor.
There are English writers who accept mental reservation and ambiguity; one of them is Jeremy Taylor.
He says, "In the same cases in which it is lawful to tell a lie, in the same cases it is lawful to use a mental reservation."—Ibid. p. 374.
He says, "In the same situations where it's okay to lie, it's also okay to use a mental reservation."—Ibid. p. 374.
He says, too, "When the things are true in several senses, the not explicating in what sense I mean the words is not a criminal reservation.... But 1, this liberty is not to be used by inferiors, but by superiors only; 2, not by those that are interrogated, but by them which speak voluntarily; 3, not by those which speak of duty, but which speak of grace and kindness."—Ibid. p. 378.
He also says, "When things are true in several senses, not explaining in what sense I mean the words is not a dishonest reservation.... But 1, this freedom should only be used by those in higher positions, not by those below; 2, not by those who are being questioned, but by those who speak willingly; 3, not by those who speak out of obligation, but by those who speak out of kindness and generosity."—Ibid. p. 378.
Bishop Butler, the first of Anglican authorities, writing in his grave and abstract way, seems to assert a similar doctrine in the following passage:
Bishop Butler, the first of the Anglican authorities, writing in his serious and abstract style, appears to put forward a similar doctrine in the following passage:
"Though veracity, as well as justice, is to be our rule of life, it must be added, otherwise a snare will be laid in the way of some plain men, that the use of common forms of speech generally understood, cannot be falsehood; and, in general, that there can be no designed falsehood without designing to deceive. It must likewise be observed, that, in numberless cases, a man may be under the strictest obligations to what he foresees will deceive, without his intending it. For it is impossible not to foresee, that the words and actions of men in different ranks and employments, and of different educations, will perpetually be mistaken by each other; and it cannot but be so, whilst they will judge with the utmost carelessness, as they daily do, of what they are not perhaps enough informed to be competent judges of, even though they considered it with great attention."—Nature of Virtue, fin. These last words seem in a measure to answer to the words in Scavini, that an equivocation is permissible, because "then we do not deceive our neighbour, but allow him to deceive himself." In thus speaking, I have not the slightest intention of saying anything disrespectful to Bishop Butler; and still less of course to St. Alfonso.
"While honesty and justice should guide our lives, it's important to note that using common expressions that most people understand cannot be considered lying; generally, a lie is only a lie if there's an intention to deceive. Additionally, it's worth mentioning that, in countless situations, a person might be bound by things they know will mislead others, even if they don't intend to. It’s impossible not to foresee that people from different backgrounds, professions, and educations will constantly misinterpret one another; this will always happen, especially since they often judge matters with great carelessness, as they do every day, about things they may not fully understand enough to judge correctly, even if they consider them very attentively."—Nature of Virtue, fin. These last remarks seem to link to the idea in Scavini, suggesting that an equivocation is acceptable because "then we do not deceive our neighbor, but let him deceive himself." In saying this, I have no intention of being disrespectful to Bishop Butler or, of course, to St. Alfonso.
And a third author, for whom I have a great respect, as different from the above two as they are from each other, bears testimony to the same effect in his "Comment on Scripture," Thomas Scott. He maintains indeed that Ehud and Jael were divinely directed in what they did; but they could have no divine direction for what was in itself wrong.
And a third author, whom I greatly respect, as different from the first two as they are from each other, attests to the same effect in his "Comment on Scripture," Thomas Scott. He argues that Ehud and Jael were divinely guided in their actions; however, they could not have divine guidance for actions that were inherently wrong.
Thus on Judges iii. 15-21:
Thus on Judges 3:15-21:
"'And Ehud said, I have a secret errand unto thee, O king; I have a message from God unto thee, and Ehud thrust the dagger into his belly.' Ehud, indeed," says Scott, "had a secret errand, a message from God unto him; but it was of a far different nature than Eglon expected."
"'And Ehud said, I have a secret mission for you, O king; I have a message from God for you, and Ehud drove the dagger into his belly.' Ehud, indeed," says Scott, "had a secret mission, a message from God for him; but it was of a very different nature than Eglon expected."
And again on Judges iv. 18-21:
And once more in Judges 4:18-21:
"'And Jael said, Turn in, my lord, fear not. And he said to her, When any man doth inquire, Is there any man here? thou shalt say, No. Then Jael took a nail, and smote the nail into his temple.' Jael," says Scott, "is not said to have promised Sisera that she would deny his being there; she would give him shelter and refreshment, but not utter a falsehood to oblige him."
"'And Jael said, Come in, my lord, don't be afraid. And he said to her, When anyone asks, Is there a man here? you shall say, No. Then Jael took a tent peg and drove it into his temple.' Jael," says Scott, "is not said to have promised Sisera that she would deny his presence there; she would provide him with shelter and refreshment, but would not lie to help him."
Footnotes
[6] "Mendacium est petulanter, aut cupiditate nocendi, aliud loqui, seu gestu significare, et aliud sentire."
[6] "It's a lie to speak one way or show it through gestures while feeling something completely different, either out of a playful spirit or a desire to cause harm."
[7] Mentiris ut medicus.
Lying like a doctor.
POSTSCRIPTUM
June 4, 1864
June 4, 1864
While I was engaged with these concluding pages, I received another of those special encouragements, which from several quarters have been bestowed upon me, since my controversy began. It was the extraordinary honour done me of an address from the clergy of this large diocese, who had been assembled for the Synod.
While I was working on these final pages, I got another one of those special words of encouragement that I've received from various people since my controversy started. It was the incredible honor of getting a statement from the clergy of this large diocese, who had gathered for the Synod.
It was followed two days afterwards by a most gracious testimonial from my Bishop, Dr. Ullathorne, in the shape of a letter which he wrote to me, and also inserted in the Birmingham papers. With his leave I transfer it to my own volume, as a very precious document, completing and recompensing, in a way most grateful to my feelings, the anxious work which has occupied me so fully for nearly ten weeks.
It was followed two days later by a very kind endorsement from my Bishop, Dr. Ullathorne, in the form of a letter he wrote to me and also published in the Birmingham papers. With his permission, I'm including it in my own book, as a cherished document that completes and rewards, in a way that means a lot to me, the intense work that has kept me so busy for nearly ten weeks.
"Bishop's House, June 2, 1864.
Bishop's House, June 2, 1864.
"My dear Dr. Newman,—It was with warm gratification that, after the close of the Synod yesterday, I listened to the Address presented to you by the clergy of the diocese, and to your impressive reply. But I should have been little satisfied with the part of the silent listener, except on the understanding with myself that I also might afterwards express to you my own sentiments in my own way.
"My dear Dr. Newman, — I felt a deep sense of satisfaction as I listened to the Address given to you by the clergy of the diocese after the Synod ended yesterday, along with your impactful response. However, I wouldn't have been completely content just being a quiet listener unless I could also share my own thoughts with you in my own words afterwards."
"We have now been personally acquainted, and much more than acquainted, for nineteen years, during more than sixteen of which we have stood in special relation of duty towards each other. This has been one of the singular blessings which God has given me amongst the cares of the Episcopal office. What my feelings of respect, of confidence, and of affection have been towards you, you know well, nor should I think of expressing them in words. But there is one thing that has struck me in this day of explanations, which you could not, and would not, be disposed to do, and which no one could do so properly or so authentically as I could, and which it seems to me is not altogether uncalled for, if every kind of erroneous impression that some persons have entertained with no better evidence than conjecture is to be removed.
"We have been personally acquainted, and much more than just acquainted, for nineteen years, and for over sixteen of those years, we have had a special responsibility towards each other. This has been one of the unique blessings that God has given me amidst the challenges of the Episcopal office. You know very well what my feelings of respect, confidence, and affection for you have been, and I wouldn’t think of trying to put them into words. However, there’s one thing that has struck me today during this time of clarifications, which you wouldn’t, and couldn't, feel inclined to do, and which no one could convey as properly or authentically as I can. It seems to me that this is necessary, especially if we want to clear up any misconceptions some people may have based on nothing but guesswork."
"It is difficult to comprehend how, in the face of facts, the notion should ever have arisen that, during your Catholic life, you have been more occupied with your own thoughts than with the service of religion and the work of the Church. If we take no other work into consideration beyond the written productions which your Catholic pen has given to the world, they are enough for the life's labour of another. There are the Lectures on Anglican Difficulties, the Lectures on Catholicism in England, the great work on the Scope and End of University Education, that on the Office and Work of Universities, the Lectures and Essays on University Subjects, and the two Volumes of Sermons; not to speak of your contributions to the Atlantis, which you founded, and to other periodicals; then there are those beautiful offerings to Catholic literature, the Lectures on the Turks, Loss and Gain, and Callista, and though last, not least, the Apologia, which is destined to put many idle rumours to rest, and many unprofitable surmises; and yet all these productions represent but a portion of your labour, and that in the second half of your period of public life.
"It's hard to understand how, despite the evidence, the idea ever came about that, throughout your Catholic life, you've been more focused on your own thoughts than on serving religion and the Church's work. Just considering the written works your Catholic pen has produced, they would be enough for a lifetime of work for someone else. There are the Lectures on Anglican Difficulties, the Lectures on Catholicism in England, the comprehensive work on the Scope and End of University Education, the one on the Office and Work of Universities, the Lectures and Essays on University Subjects, and the two volumes of Sermons; not to mention your contributions to the Atlantis, which you founded, and other periodicals. Then there are those beautiful additions to Catholic literature, the Lectures on the Turks, Loss and Gain, and Callista, and last but not least, the Apologia, which is set to dispel many idle rumors and unhelpful assumptions. Yet all these works are just a part of your effort, and that comes from the second half of your public life."
"These works have been written in the midst of labour and cares of another kind, and of which the world knows very little. I will specify four of these undertakings, each of a distinct character, and any one of which would have made a reputation for untiring energy in the practical order.
"These works were created while dealing with the challenges and responsibilities of another kind, which the world barely knows about. I will outline four of these projects, each with its own unique character, any one of which would have established a name for relentless dedication in practical matters."
"The first of these undertakings was the establishment of the congregation of the Oratory of St. Philip Neri—that great ornament and accession to the force of English Catholicity. Both the London and the Birmingham Oratory must look to you as their founder and as the originator of their characteristic excellences; whilst that of Birmingham has never known any other presidency.
"The first of these efforts was the founding of the congregation of the Oratory of St. Philip Neri—an important addition to the strength of English Catholicism. Both the London and Birmingham Oratory see you as their founder and as the source of their unique strengths, while the Birmingham Oratory has never had anyone else in charge."
"No sooner was this work fairly on foot than you were called by the highest authority to commence another, and one of yet greater magnitude and difficulty, the founding of a University in Ireland. After the Universities had been lost to the Catholics of these kingdoms for three centuries, everything had to be begun from the beginning: the idea of such an institution to be inculcated, the plan to be formed that would work, the resources to be gathered, and the staff of superiors and professors to be brought together. Your name was then the chief point of attraction which brought these elements together. You alone know what difficulties you had to conciliate and what to surmount, before the work reached that state of consistency and promise, which enabled you to return to those responsibilities in England which you had never laid aside or suspended. And here, excuse me if I give expression to a fancy which passed through my mind.
"As soon as this project was underway, you were summoned by the highest authority to start another, one that was even bigger and more challenging: the founding of a University in Ireland. After the Universities had been lost to the Catholics in these kingdoms for three centuries, everything had to start from scratch: the concept of such an institution had to be promoted, a workable plan developed, resources secured, and a team of leaders and professors assembled. Your name was the main draw that brought all these elements together. Only you know the challenges you faced and overcame before the project reached a level of stability and potential that allowed you to return to your responsibilities in England, which you had never abandoned or paused. And here, forgive me for sharing a thought that crossed my mind."
"I was lately reading a poem, not long published, from the MSS. De Rerum Natura, by Neckham, the foster-brother of Richard the Lion-hearted. He quotes an old prophecy, attributed to Merlin, and with a sort of wonder, as if recollecting that England owed so much of its literary learning to that country; and the prophecy says that after long years Oxford will pass into Ireland—'Vada boum suo tempore transibunt in Hiberniam.' When I read this, I could not but indulge the pleasant fancy that in the days when the Dublin University shall arise in material splendour, an allusion to this prophecy might form a poetic element in the inscription on the pedestal of the statue which commemorates its first Rector.
"I was recently reading a poem, published not long ago, from the manuscript De Rerum Natura, by Neckham, the foster-brother of Richard the Lion-hearted. He quotes an old prophecy, attributed to Merlin, with a kind of wonder, as if remembering that England owes so much of its literary knowledge to that country. The prophecy states that after many years, Oxford will become part of Ireland—'Vada boum suo tempore transibunt in Hiberniam.' When I read this, I couldn't help but entertain the delightful idea that when Dublin University rises in physical grandeur, a reference to this prophecy could become a poetic aspect of the inscription on the pedestal of the statue that honors its first Rector."
"The original plan of an oratory did not contemplate any parochial work, but you could not contemplate so many souls in want of pastors without being prompt and ready at the beck of authority to strain all your efforts in coming to their help. And this brings me to the third and the most continuous of those labours to which I have alluded. The mission in Alcester Street, its church and schools, were the first work of the Birmingham Oratory. After several years of close and hard work, and a considerable call upon the private resources of the Fathers who had established this congregation, it was delivered over to other hands, and the Fathers removed to the district of Edgbaston, where up to that time nothing Catholic had appeared. Then arose under your direction the large convent of the Oratory, the church expanded by degrees into its present capaciousness, a numerous congregation has gathered and grown in it; poor schools and other pious institutions have grown up in connection with it, and, moreover, equally at your expense and that of your brethren, and, as I have reason to know, at much inconvenience, the Oratory has relieved the other clergy of Birmingham all this while by constantly doing the duty in the poor-house and gaol of Birmingham.
The original plan for the oratory didn’t include any parish work, but it’s impossible to see so many people in need of clergy and not be ready to answer the call of authority to do everything possible to help them. This brings me to the third and most ongoing type of work I’ve mentioned. The mission on Alcester Street, along with its church and schools, was the first project of the Birmingham Oratory. After several years of intense effort and a significant drain on the personal resources of the Fathers who started this congregation, it was handed over to others, and the Fathers moved to the Edgbaston area, where there had been no Catholic presence until then. Under your leadership, the large convent of the Oratory was established, the church gradually expanded to its current size, and a large congregation has formed and grown there. Poor schools and other charitable institutions have developed in connection with it, and, as I know, at considerable cost and inconvenience to you and your colleagues, the Oratory has supported the other clergy of Birmingham by consistently taking on duties in the poorhouse and jail of Birmingham.
"More recently still, the mission and the poor school at Smethwick owe their existence to the Oratory. And all this while the founder and father of these religious works has added to his other solicitudes the toil of frequent preaching, of attendance in the confessional, and other parochial duties.
"Recently, the mission and the struggling school in Smethwick owe their existence to the Oratory. Meanwhile, the founder and leader of these religious efforts has taken on the added responsibilities of frequent preaching, hearing confessions, and other parish duties."
"I have read on this day of its publication the seventh part of the Apologia, and the touching allusion in it to the devotedness of the Catholic clergy to the poor in seasons of pestilence reminds me that when the cholera raged so dreadfully at Bilston, and the two priests of the town were no longer equal to the number of cases to which they were hurried day and night, I asked you to lend me two fathers to supply the place of other priests whom I wished to send as a further aid. But you and Father St. John preferred to take the place of danger which I had destined for others, and remained at Bilston till the worst was over.
"I read the seventh part of the Apologia on its publication day, and the heartfelt mention of the Catholic clergy's commitment to helping the poor during times of plague reminds me that when cholera hit Bilston so badly, and the town's two priests couldn't keep up with the overwhelming number of cases they faced day and night, I asked you to send me two fathers to replace other priests I wanted to send for additional support. But you and Father St. John chose to take the dangerous positions I had set aside for others and stayed in Bilston until the worst was past."
"The fourth work which I would notice is one more widely known. I refer to the school for the education of the higher classes, which at the solicitation of many friends you have founded and attached to the Oratory. Surely after reading this bare enumeration of work done, no man will venture to say that Dr. Newman is leading a comparatively inactive life in the service of the Church.
"The fourth work I want to mention is more widely recognized. I'm talking about the school for the education of the higher classes, which, at the request of many friends, you have established and connected to the Oratory. After reading this brief list of accomplishments, no one can claim that Dr. Newman is living a relatively inactive life in the service of the Church."
"To spare, my dear Dr. Newman, any further pressure on those feelings with which I have already taken so large a liberty, I will only add one word more for my own satisfaction. During our long intercourse there is only one subject on which, after the first experience, I have measured my words with some caution, and that has been where questions bearing on ecclesiastical duty have arisen. I found some little caution necessary, because you were always so prompt and ready to go even beyond the slightest intimation of my wish or desires.
"To spare you, dear Dr. Newman, any more pressure on the feelings I've already intruded upon, I'll just add one more word for my own peace of mind. Throughout our long conversations, there's only one topic where I've chosen my words more carefully after my initial experience, and that’s when issues related to church duties came up. I found it necessary to exercise a bit of caution because you were always so quick to respond, even to the slightest hint of my wishes or desires."
"That God may bless you with health, life, and all the spiritual good which you desire, you and your brethren of the Oratory, is the earnest prayer now and often of, my dear Dr. Newman, your affectionate friend and faithful servant in Christ,
"May God bless you with health, life, and all the spiritual goodness you seek, you and your fellow members of the Oratory. This is the sincere prayer of your loving friend and devoted servant in Christ, my dear Dr. Newman."
"+ W. B. ULLATHORNE."
"+ W. B. ULLATHORNE."
Download ePUB
If you like this ebook, consider a donation!